|
|
by Charles Darwin
1859
Causes of Variability
Effects of Habit and of the Use or Disuse of
Parts; Correlated Variation; Inheritance
Character of Domestic Varieties; Difficulty
of distinguishing between Varieties and Species; Origin of Domestic
Varieties from one or more Species
Breeds of the Domestic Pigeon, their Differences
and Origin
Principles of Selection anciently followed,
and their Effects
Unconscious Selection
Circumstances favourable to Man's Power of
Selection
Individual Differences
Doubtful Species
Wide-ranging, much diffused, and common Species
vary most
Species of the Larger Genera in each Country
vary more frequently than the Species of the Smaller Genera
Summary
The Term, Struggle for Existence, used
in a large sense
Geometrical Ratio of Increase
Nature of the Checks to Increase
Complex Relations of all Animals and Plants
to each other in the Struggle for Existence
Struggle for Life most severe between Individuals
and Varieties of the same Species
Sexual Selection
Illustrations of the Action of Natural Selection,
or the Survival of the Fittest
On the Intercrossing of Individuals
Circumstances favourable for the production
of new forms through Natural Selection
Extinction caused by Natural Selection
Divergence of Character
The Probable Effects of the Action of Natural
Selection through Divergence of Character and Extinction, on the Descendants
of a Common Ancestor
On the Degree to which Organisation tends to
advance
Convergence of Character
Summary of Chapter
Effects of the increased Use and Disuse
of Parts, as controlled by Natural Selection
Acclimatisation
Correlated Variation
Compensation and Economy of Growth
Multiple, Rudimentary, and Lowly-organised
Structures are Variable
Specific Characters more Variable than Generic
Characters
Organs of extreme Perfection and Complication
Modes of Transition
Special Difficulties of the Theory Of Natural
Selection
Organs of little apparent Importance, as affected
by Natural Selection
Utilitarian Doctrine, how far true: Beauty,
how acquired.
Summary: the Law of Unity of Type and of the
Conditions of Existence embraced by the Theory of Natural Selection
Inherited Changes of Habit or Instinct
in Domesticated Animals
Special Instincts
Objections to the Theory of Natural Selection
as applied to Instincts: Neuter and Sterile Insects
Summary
Laws governing the Sterility of first
Crosses and of Hybrids
Origin and Causes of the Sterility of first
Crosses and of Hybrids
Reciprocal Dimorphism and Trimorphism
Fertility of Varieties when Crossed, and of
their Mongrel Offspring, not universal
Hybrids and Mongrels compared, independently
of their fertility
Summary of Chapter
On the Lapse of Time, as inferred from
the rate of Deposition and extent of Denudation
On the Poorness of Palaeontological Collections
On the Absence of Numerous Intermediate Varieties
in any Single Formation
On the sudden Appearance of whole Groups of
allied Species
On the Sudden Appearance of Groups of allied
Species in the lowest known Fossiliferous Strata
On Extinction
On the Forms of Life changing almost simultaneously
throughout the World
On the Affinities of Extinct Species to each
other, and to Living Forms
On the State of Development of Ancient compared
with Living Forms
On the Succession of the same Types within
the same Areas, during the later Tertiary periods
Summary of the preceding and present Chapters
Means of Dispersal
Dispersal during the Glacial Period
Alternate Glacial Periods in the North and
South
Fresh-water Productions
On the Inhabitants of Oceanic Islands
Absence of Batrachians and Terrestrial Mammals
on Oceanic Islands
On the Relations of the Inhabitants of Islands
to those of the nearest Mainland
Summary of the last and present Chapters
Classification
Morphology
Development and Embryology
Rudimentary, Atrophied, and Aborted Organs
Summary
go to top / gehe zum Anfang
WHEN on board H.M.S. Beagle as naturalist, I was much struck with
certain facts in the distribution of the organic beings inhabiting
South America, and in the geological relations of the present to
the past inhabitants of that continent. These facts, as will be
seen in the latter chapters of this volume, seemed to throw some
light on the origin of species- that mystery of mysteries, as it
has been called by one of our greatest philosophers. On my return
home, it occurred to me, in 1837, that something might perhaps be
made out on this question by patiently accumulating and reflecting
on all sorts of facts which could possibly have any bearing on it.
After five years' work I allowed myself to speculate on the subject,
and drew up some short notes; these I enlarged in 1844 into a sketch
of the conclusions, which then seemed to me probable: from that
period to the present day I have steadily pursued the same object.
I hope that I may be excused for entering on these personal details,
as I give them to show that I have not been hasty in coming to a
decision.
My work is now (1859) nearly finished; but as it will take me many
more years to complete it, and as my health is far from strong,
I have been urged to publish this abstract. I have more especially
been induced to do this, as Mr. Wallace, who is now studying the
natural history of the Malay Archipelago, has arrived at almost
exactly the same general conclusions that I have on the origin of
species. In 1858 he sent me a memoir on this subject, with a request
that I would forward it to Sir Charles Lyell, who sent it to the
Linnean Society, and it is published in the third volume of the
Journal of that society. Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Hooker, who both knew
of my work- the latter having read my sketch of 1844- honoured me
by thinking it advisable to publish, with Mr. Wallace's excellent
memoir, some brief extracts from my manuscripts.
This abstract, which I now publish, must necessarily be imperfect.
cannot here give references and authorities for my several statements;
and I must trust to the reader reposing some confidence in my accuracy.
No doubt errors will have crept in, though I hope I have always
been cautious in trusting to good authorities alone. I can here
give only the general conclusions at which I have arrived, with
a few facts in illustration, but which, I hope, in most cases will
suffice. No one can feel more sensible than I do of the necessity
of hereafter publishing in detail all the facts, with references,
on which my conclusions have been grounded; and I hope in a future
work to do this. For I am well aware that scarcely a single point
is discussed in this volume on which facts cannot be adduced, often
apparently leading to conclusions directly opposite to those at
which I have arrived. A fair result can be obtained only by fully
stating and balancing the facts and arguments on both sides of each
question; and this is here impossible.
I much regret that want of space prevents my having the satisfaction
of acknowledging the generous assistance which I have received from
very many naturalists, some of them personally unknown to me. I
cannot, however, let this opportunity pass without expressing my
deep obligations to Dr. Hooker, who, for the last fifteen years,
has aided me in every possible way by his large stores of knowledge
and his excellent judgment.
In considering the Origin of Species, it is quite conceivable that
a naturalist, reflecting on the mutual affinities of organic beings,
on their embryological relations, their geographical distribution,
geological succession, and other such facts, might come to the conclusion
that species had not been independently created, but had descended,
like varieties, from other species. Nevertheless, such a conclusion,
even if well founded, would be unsatisfactory, until it could be
shown how the innumerable species inhabiting this world have been
modified, so as to acquire that perfection of structure and coadaptation
which justly excites our admiration. Naturalists continually refer
to external conditions, such as climate, food, &c., as the only
possible cause of variation. In one limited sense, as we shall hereafter
see, this may be true; but it is preposterous to attribute to mere
external conditions, the structure, for instance, of the woodpecker,
with its feet, tail, beak, and tongue, so admirably adapted to catch
insects under the bark of trees. In the case of the mistletoe, which
draws its nourishment from certain trees, which has seeds that must
be transported by certain birds, and which has flowers with separate
sexes absolutely requiring the agency of certain insects to bring
pollen from one flower to the other, it is equally preposterous
to account for the structure of this parasite, with its relations
to several distinct organic beings, by the effects of external conditions,
or of habit, or of the volition of the plant itself.
It is, therefore, of the highest importance to gain a clear insight
into the means of modification and coadaptation. At the commencement
of my observations it seemed to me probable that a careful study
of domesticated animals and of cultivated plants would offer the
best chance of making out this obscure problem. Nor have I been
disappointed; in this and in all other perplexing cases I have invariably
found that our knowledge, imperfect though it be, of variation under
domestication, afforded the best and safest clue. I may venture
to express my conviction of the high value of such studies, although
they have been very commonly neglected by naturalists.
From these considerations, I shall devote the first chapter of
this Abstract to Variation under Domestication. We shall thus see
that a large amount of hereditary modification is at least possible;
and, what is equally or more important, we shall see how great is
the power of man in accumulating by his Selection successive slight
variations. I will then pass on to the variability of species in
a state of nature; but I shall, unfortunately, be compelled to treat
this subject far too briefly, as it can be treated properly only
by giving long catalogues of facts. We shall, however, be enabled
to discuss what circumstances are most favourable to variation.
In the next chapter the Struggle for Existence amongst all organic
beings throughout the world, which inevitably follows from the high
geometrical ratio of their increase, will be considered. This is
the doctrine of Malthus, applied to the whole animal and vegetable
kingdoms. As many more individuals of each species are born than
can possibly survive; and as, consequently, there is a frequently
recurring struggle for existence, it follows that any being, if
it vary however slightly in any manner profitable to itself, under
the complex and sometimes varying conditions of life, will have
a better chance of surviving, and thus be naturally selected. From
the strong principle of inheritance, any selected variety will tend
to propagate its new and modified form.
This fundamental subject of Natural Selection will be treated at
some length in the fourth chapter; and we shall then see how Natural
Selection almost inevitably causes much Extinction of the less improved
forms of life, and leads to what I have called Divergence of Character.
In the next chapter I shall discuss the complex and little known
laws of variation. In the five succeeding chapters, the most apparent
and gravest difficulties in accepting the theory will be given:
namely, first, the difficulties of transitions, or how a simple
being or a simple organ can be changed and perfected into a highly
developed being or into an elaborately constructed organ; secondly,
the subject of Instinct, or the mental powers of animals; thirdly,
Hybridism, or the infertility of species and the fertility of varieties
when intercrossed; and fourthly, the imperfection of the Geological
Record. In the next chapter I shall consider the geological succession
of organic beings throughout time; in the twelfth and thirteenth,
their geographical distribution throughout space; in the fourteenth,
their classification or mutual affinities, both when mature and
in an embryonic condition. In the last chapter I shall give a brief
recapitulation of the whole work, and a few concluding remarks.
No one ought to feel surprise at much remaining as yet unexplained
in regard to the origin of species and varieties, if he make due
allowance for our profound ignorance in regard to the mutual relations
of the many beings which live around us. Who can explain why one
species ranges widely and is very numerous, and why another allied
species has a narrow range and is rare? Yet these relations are
of the highest importance, for they determine the present welfare
and, as I believe, the future success and modification of every
inhabitant of this world. Still less do we know of the mutual relations
of the innumerable inhabitants of the world during the many past
geological epochs in its history. Although much remains obscure,
and will long remain obscure, I can entertain no doubt, after the
most deliberate study and dispassionate judgment of which I am capable,
that the view which most naturalists until recently entertained,
and which I formerly entertained- namely, that each species has
been independently created- is erroneous. I am fully convinced that
species are not immutable; but that those belonging to what are
called the same genera are lineal descendants of some other and
generally extinct species, in the same manner as the acknowledged
varieties of any one species are the descendants of that species.
Furthermore, I am convinced that Natural Selection has been the
most important, but not the exclusive, means of modification.

WHEN we compare the individuals of the same variety or sub-variety
of our older cultivated plants and animals, one of the first points
which strikes us is, that they generally differ more from each other
than do the individuals of any one species or variety in a state
of nature. And if we reflect on the vast diversity of the plants
and animals which have been cultivated, and which have varied during
all ages under the most different climates and treatment, we are
driven to conclude that this great variability is due to our domestic
productions having been raised under conditions of life not so uniform
as, and somewhat different from, those to which the parent species
had been exposed under nature. There is, also, some probability
in the view propounded by Andrew Knight, that this variability may
be partly connected with excess of food. It seems clear that organic
beings must be exposed during several generations to new conditions
to cause any great amount of variation; and that, when the organisation
has once begun to vary, it generally continues varying for many
generations. No case is on record of a variable organism ceasing
to vary under cultivation. Our oldest cultivated plants, such as
wheat, still yield new varieties: our oldest, domesticated animals
are still capable of rapid improvement or modification.
As far as I am able to judge, after long attending to the subject,
the conditions of life appear to act in two ways,- directly on the
whole organisation or on certain parts alone, and indirectly by
affecting the reproductive system. With respect to the direct action,
we must bear in mind that in every case, as Professor Weismann has
lately insisted, and as I have incidentally shown in my work on
Variation under Domestication, there are two factors: namely, the
nature of the organism, and the nature of the conditions. The former
seems to be much the more important; for nearly similar variations
sometimes arise under, as far as we can judge, dissimilar conditions;
and, on the other hand, dissimilar variations arise under conditions
which appear to be nearly uniform. The effects on the offspring
are either definite or indefinite. They may be considered as definite
when all or nearly all the offspring of individuals exposed to certain
conditions during several generations are modified in the same manner.
It is extremely difficult to come to any conclusion in regard to
the extent of the changes which have been thus definitely induced.
There can, however, be little doubt about many slight changes,-
such as size from the amount of food, colour from the nature of
the food, thickness of the skin and hair from climate, &c. Each
of the endless variations which we see in the plumage of our fowls
must have had some efficient cause; and if the same cause were to
act uniformly during a long series of generations on. many individuals,
all probably would be modified in the same manner. Such facts as
the complex and extraordinary out-growths which variably follow
from the insertion of a minute drop of poison by a gall-producing
insect, show us what singular modifications might result in the
case of plants from a chemical change in the nature of the sap.
Indefinite variability is a much more common result of changed
conditions than definite variability, and has probably played a
more important part in the formation of our domestic races. We see
indefinite variability in the endless slight peculiarities which
distinguish the individuals of the same species, and which cannot
be accounted for by inheritance from either parent or from some
more remote ancestor. Even strongly marked differences occasionally
appear in the young of the same litter, and in seedlings from the
same seed-capsule. At long intervals of time, out of millions of
individuals reared in the same country and fed on nearly the same
food, deviations of structure so strongly pronounced as to deserve
to be called monstrosities arise; but monstrosities cannot be separated
by any distinct line from slighter variations. All such changes
of structure, whether extremely slight or strongly marked, which
appear amongst many individuals living together, may be considered
as the indefinite effects of the conditions of life on each individual
organism, in nearly the same manner as the chill affects different
men in an indefinite manner, according to their state of body or
constitution, causing coughs or colds, rheumatism, or inflammation
of various organs.
With respect to what I have called the indirect action of changed
conditions, namely, through the reproductive system of being affected,
we may infer that variability is thus induced, partly from the fact
of this system being extremely sensitive to any change in the conditions,
and partly from the similarity, as Kreuter and others have remarked,
between the variability which follows from the crossing of distinct
species, and that which may be observed with plants and animals
when reared under new or unnatural conditions. Many facts clearly
show how eminently susceptible the reproductive system is to very
slight changes in the surrounding conditions. Nothing is more easy
than to tame an animal, and few things more difficult than to get
it to breed freely under confinement, even when the male and female
unite. How many animals there are which will not breed, though kept
in an almost free state in their native country! This is generally,
but erroneously, attributed to vitiated instincts. Many cultivated
plants display the utmost vigour, and yet rarely or never seed!
In some few cases it has been discovered that a very trifling change,
such as a little more or less water at some particular period of
growth, will determine whether or not a plant will produce seeds.
I cannot here give the details which I have collected and elsewhere
published on this curious subject; but to show how singular the
laws are which determine the reproduction of animals under confinement,
I may mention that carnivorous animals, even from the tropics, breed
in this country pretty freely under confinement, with the exception
of the plantigrades or bear family, which seldom produce young;
whereas carnivorous birds, with the rarest exceptions, hardly ever
lay fertile eggs. Many exotic plants have pollen utterly worthless,
in the same condition as in the most sterile hybrids. When, on the
one hand, we see domesticated animals and plants, though often weak
and sickly, breeding freely under confinement; and when, on the
other hand, we see individuals, though taken young from a state
of nature perfectly tamed, long-lived and healthy (of which I could
give numerous instances), yet having their reproductive system so
seriously affected by unperceived causes as to fail to act, we need
not be surprised at this system, when it does act under confinement,
acting irregularly, and producing offspring somewhat unlike their
parents. I may add, that as some organisms breed freely under the
most unnatural conditions (for instance, rabbits and ferrets kept
in hutches), showing that their reproductive organs are not easily
affected; so will some animals and plants withstand domestication
or cultivation, and vary very slightly- perhaps hardly more than
in a state of nature.
Some naturalists have maintained that all variations are connected
with the act of sexual reproduction; but this is certainly an error;
for I have given in another work a long list of "sporting plants,"
as they are called by gardeners;- that is, of plants which have
suddenly produced a single bud with a new and sometimes widely different
character from that of the other buds on the same plant. These bud
variations, as they may be named, can be propagated by grafts, offsets,
&c., and sometimes by seed. They occur rarely under nature,
but are far from rare under culture. As a single bud out of the
many thousands, produced year after year on the same tree under
uniform conditions, has been known suddenly to assume a new character;
and as buds on distinct trees, growing under different conditions,
have sometimes yielded nearly the same variety- for instance, buds
on peach-trees producing nectarines, and buds on common roses producing
moss-roses- we clearly see that the nature of the conditions is
of subordinate importance in comparison with the nature of the organism
in determining each particular form of variation;- perhaps of not
more importance than the nature of the spark, by which a mass of
combustible matter is ignited, has in determining the nature of
the flames.

Changed habits produce an inherited effect, as in the period of
the flowering of plants when transported from one climate to another.
With animals the increased use or disuse of parts has had a more
marked influence; thus I find in the domestic duck that the bones
of the wing weigh less and the bones of the leg more, in proportion
to the whole skeleton, than do the same bones in the wild-duck;
and this change may be safely attributed to the domestic duck flying
much less, and walking more, than its wild parents. The great and
inherited development of the udders in cows and goats in countries
where they are habitually milked, in comparison with these organs
in other countries, is probably another instance of the effects
of use. Not one of our domestic animals can be named which has not
in some country drooping ears; and the view which has been suggested
that the drooping is due to disuse of the muscles of the ear, from
the animals being seldom much alarmed, seems probable.
Many laws regulate variation, some few of which can be dimly seen,
and will hereafter be briefly discussed. I will here only allude
to what may be called correlated variation. Important changes in
the embryo or larva will probably entail changes in the mature animal.
In monstrosities, the correlations between quite distinct parts
are very curious; and many instances are given in Isidore Geoffroy
St-Hilaire's great work on this subject. Breeders believe that long
limbs are almost always accompanied by an elongated head. Some instances
of correlation are quite whimsical: thus cats which are entirely
white and have blue eyes are generally deaf; but it has been lately
stated by Mr. Tait that this is confined to the males. Colour and
constitutional peculiarities go together, of which many remarkable
cases could be given amongst animals and plants. From facts collected
by Heusinger, it appears that white sheep and pigs are injured by
certain plants, whilst dark-coloured individuals escape: Professor
Wyman has recently communicated to me a good illustration of this
fact; on asking some farmers in Virginia how it was that all their
pigs were black, they informed him that the pigs ate the paint-root
(Lachnanthes), which coloured their bones pink, and which caused
the hoofs of all but the black varieties to drop off; and one of
the "crackers" (i.e. Virginia squatters) added, "we select the black
members of a litter for raising, as they alone have a good chance
of living." Hairless dogs have imperfect teeth; long-haired and
coarse-haired animals are apt to have, as is asserted, long or many
horns; pigeons with feathered feet have skin between their outer
toes; pigeons with short beaks have small feet, and those with long
beaks large feet. Hence if man goes on selecting, and thus augmenting,
any peculiarity, he will almost certainly modify unintentionally
other parts of the structure, owing to the mysterious laws of correlation.
The results of the various, unknown, or but dimly understood laws
of variation are infinitely complex and diversified. It is well
worth while carefully to study the several treatises on some of
our old cultivated plants, as on the hyacinth, potato, even the
dahlia, &c.; and it is really surprising to note the endless
points of structure and constitution in which the varieties and
sub-varieties differ slightly from each other. The whole organisation
seems to have become plastic, and departs in a slight degree from
that of the parental type.
Any variation which is not inherited is unimportant for us. But
the number and diversity of inheritable deviations of structure,
both those of slight and those of considerable physiological importance,
are endless. Dr. Prosper Lucas's treatise, in two large volumes,
is the fullest and the best on this subject. No breeder doubts how
strong is the tendency to inheritance; that like produces like is
his fundamental belief: doubts have been thrown on this principle
only by theoretical writers. When any deviation of structure often
appears, and we see it in the father and child, we cannot tell whether
it may not be due to the same cause having acted on both; but when
amongst individuals, apparently exposed to the same conditions,
any very rare deviation, due to some extraordinary combination of
circumstances, appears in the parent- say, once amongst several
million individuals- and it reappears in the child, the mere doctrine
of chances almost compels us to attribute its reappearance to inheritance.
Every one must have heard of cases of albinism, prickly skin, hairy
bodies, &c., appearing in several members of the same family.
If strange and rare deviations of structure are really inherited,
less strange and commoner deviations may be freely admitted to be
inheritable. Perhaps the correct way of viewing the whole subject
would be, to look at the inheritance of every character whatever
as the rule, and non-inheritance as the anomaly?
The laws governing inheritance are for the most part unknown. No
one can say why the same peculiarity in different individuals of
the same species, or in different species, is sometimes inherited
and sometimes not so; why the child often reverts in certain characters
to its grandfather or grandmother or more remote ancestor; why a
peculiarity is often transmitted from one sex to both sexes, or
to one sex alone, more commonly but not exclusively to the like
sex. It is a fact of some importance to us, that peculiarities appearing
in the males of our domestic breeds are often transmitted, either
exclusively or in a much greater degree, to the males alone. A much
more important rule, which I think may be trusted, is that, at whatever
period of life a peculiarity first appears, it tends to reappear
in the offspring at a corresponding age, though sometimes earlier.
In many cases this could not be otherwise; thus the inherited peculiarities
in the horns of cattle could appear only in the offspring when nearly
mature; peculiarities in the silkworm are known to appear at the
corresponding caterpillar or cocoon stage. But hereditary diseases
and some other facts make me believe that the rule has a wider extension,
and that, when there is no apparent reason why a peculiarity should
appear at any particular age, yet that it does tend to appear in
the offspring at the same period at which it first appeared in the
parent. I believe this rule to be of the highest importance in explaining
the laws of embryology. These remarks are of course confined to
the first appearance of the peculiarity, and not to the primary
cause which may have acted on the ovules or on the male element;
in nearly the same manner as the increased length of the horns in
the offspring from a short-horned cow by a long-horned bull, though
appearing late in life, is clearly due to the male element.
Having alluded to the subject of reversion, I may here refer to
a statement often made by naturalists- namely, that our domestic
varieties, when run wild, gradually but invariably revert in character
to their aboriginal stocks. Hence it has been argued that no deductions
can be drawn from domestic races to species in a state of nature.
I have in vain endeavoured to discover on what decisive facts the
above statement has so often and so boldly been made. There would
be great difficulty in proving its truth: we may safely conclude
that very many of the most strongly marked domestic varieties could
not possibly live in a wild state. In many cases, we do not know
what the aboriginal stock was, and so could not tell whether or
not nearly perfect reversion had ensued. It would be necessary,
in order to prevent the effects of intercrossing, that only a single
variety should have been turned loose in its new home. Nevertheless,
as our varieties certainly do occasionally revert in some of their
characters to ancestral forms, it seems to me not improbable that
if we could succeed in naturalising, or were to cultivate, during
many generations, the several races, for instance, of the cabbage,
in very poor soil (in which case, however, some effect would have
to be attributed to the definite action of the poor soil), that
they would, to a large extent, or even wholly, revert to the wild
aboriginal stock. Whether or not the experiment would succeed, is
not of great importance for our line of argument; for by the experiment
itself the conditions of life are changed. If it could be shown
that our domestic varieties manifested a strong tendency to reversion,-
that is, to lose their acquired characters, whilst kept under the
same conditions, and whilst kept in a considerable body, so that
free intercrossing might check, by blending together, any slight
deviations in their structure, in such case, I grant that we could
deduce nothing from domestic varieties in regard to species. But
there is not a shadow of evidence in favour of this view: to assert
that we could not breed our cart- and race-horses, long and short-horned
cattle, and poultry of various breeds, and esculent vegetables,
for an unlimited number of generations, would be opposed to all
experience.

When we look to the hereditary varieties or races of our domestic
animals and plants, and compare them with closely allied species,
we generally perceive in each domestic race, as already remarked,
less uniformity of character than in true species. Domestic races
often have a somewhat monstrous character; by which I mean, that,
although differing from each other, and from other species of the
same genus, in several trifling respects, they often differ in an
extreme degree in some one part, both when compared one with another,
and more especially when compared with the species under nature
to which they are nearest allied. With these exceptions (and with
that of the perfect fertility of varieties when crossed,- a subject
hereafter to be discussed), domestic races of the same species differ
from each other in the same manner as do the closely-allied species
of the same genus in a state of nature, but the differences in most
cases are less in degree. This must be admitted as true, for the
domestic races of many animals and plants have been ranked by some
competent judges as the descendants of aboriginally distinct species,
and by other competent judges as mere varieties. If any well marked
distinction existed between a domestic race and a species, this
source of doubt would not so perpetually recur. It has often been
stated that domestic races do not differ from each other in character
of generic value. It can be shown that this statement is not correct;
but naturalists differ much in determining what characters are of
generic value; all such valuations being at present empirical. When
it is explained how genera originate under nature, it will be seen
that we have no right to expect often to find a generic amount of
difference in our domesticated races.
In attempting to estimate the amount of structural difference between
allied domestic races, we are soon involved in doubt, from not knowing
whether they are descended from one or several parent species. This
point, if it could be cleared up, would be interesting; if, for
instance, it could be shown that the greyhound, bloodhound, terrier,
spaniel, and bull-dog, which we all know propagate their kind truly,
were the offspring of any single species, then such facts would
have great weight in making us doubt about the immutability of the
many closely allied natural species- for instance, of the many foxes-
inhabiting different quarters of the world. I do not believe, as
we shall presently see, that the whole amount of difference between
the several breeds of the dog has been produced under domestication;
I believe that a small part of the difference is due to their being
descended from distinct species. In the case of strongly marked
races of some other domesticated species, there is presumptive or
even strong evidence, that all are descended from a single wild
stock.
It has often been assumed that man has chosen for domestication
animals and plants having an extraordinary inherent tendency to
vary, and likewise to withstand diverse climates. I do not dispute
that these capacities have added largely to the value of most of
our domesticated productions: but how could a savage possibly know,
when he first tamed an animal, whether it would vary in succeeding
generations, and whether it would endure other climates? Has the
little variability of the ass and goose, or the small power of endurance
of warmth by the reindeer, or of cold by the common camel, prevented
their domestication? I cannot doubt that if other animals and plants,
equal in number to our domesticated productions, and belonging to
equally diverse classes and countries, were taken from a state of
nature, and could be made to breed for an equal number of generations
under domestication, they would on an average vary as largely as
the parent species of our existing domesticated productions have
varied.
In the case of most of our anciently domesticated animals and plants,
it is not possible to come to any definite conclusion, whether they
are descended from one or several wild species. The argument mainly
relied on by those who believe in the multiple origin of our domestic
animals is, that we find in the most ancient times, on the monuments
of Egypt, and in the lake-habitations of Switzerland, much diversity
in the breeds; and that some of these ancient breeds closely resemble,
or are even identical with, those still existing. But this only
throws far backwards the history of civilisation, and shows that
animals were domesticated at a much earlier period than has hitherto
been supposed. The lake-inhabitants of Switzerland cultivated several
kinds of wheat and barley, the pea, the poppy for oil, and flax;
and they possessed several domesticated animals. They also carried
on commerce with other nations. All this clearly shows, as Reer
has remarked, that they had at this early age progressed considerably
in civilisation; and this again implies a long continued previous
period of less advanced civilisation, during which the domesticated
animals, kept by different tribes in different districts, might
have varied and given rise to distinct races. Since the discovery
of flint tools in the superficial formations of many parts of the
world, all geologists believe that barbarian man existed at an enormously
remote period; and we know that at the present day there is hardly
a tribe so barbarous, as not to have domesticated at least the dog.
The origin of most of our domestic animals will probably for ever
remain vague. But I may here state, that, looking to the domestic
dogs of the whole world, I have, after a laborious collection of
all known facts, come to the conclusion that several wild species
of Canidae have been tamed, and that their blood, in some cases
mingled together, flows in the veins of our domestic breeds. In
regard to sheep and goats I can form no decided opinion. From facts
communicated to me by Mr. Blyth, on the habits, voice, constitution,
and structure of the humped Indian cattle, it is almost certain
that they are descended from a different aboriginal stock from our
European cattle; and some competent judges believe that these latter
have had two or three wild progenitors,- whether or not these deserve
to be called species. This conclusion, as well as that of the specific
distinction between the humped and common cattle, may, indeed, be
looked upon as established by the admirable researches of Professor
Rutimeyer. With respect to horses, from reasons which I cannot here
give, I am doubtfully inclined to believe, in opposition to several
authors, that all the races belong to the same species. Having kept
nearly all the English breeds of the fowl alive, having bred and
crossed them, and examined their skeletons, it appears to me almost
certain that all are the descendants of the wild Indian fowl, Gallus
bankiva; and this is the conclusion of Mr. Blyth, and of others
who have studied this bird in India. In regard to ducks and rabbits,
some breeds of which differ much from each other, the evidence is
clear that they are all descended from the common wild duck and
rabbit.
The doctrine of the origin of our several domestic races from several
aboriginal stocks, has been carried to an absurd extreme by some
authors. They believe that every race which breeds true, let the
distinctive characters be ever so slight, has had its wild prototype.
At this rate there must have existed at least a score of species
of wild cattle, as many sheep, and several goats, in Europe alone,
and several even within Great Britain. One author believes that
there formerly existed eleven wild species of sheep peculiar to
Great Britain! When we bear in mind that Britain has now not one
peculiar mammal, and France but few distinct from those of Germany,
and so with Hungary, Spain, &c., but that each of these kingdoms
possesses several peculiar breeds of cattle, sheep, &c., we
must admit that many domestic breeds must have originated in Europe;
for whence otherwise could they have been derived? So it is in India.
Even in the case of the breeds of the domestic dog throughout the
world, which I admit are descended from several wild species, it
cannot be doubted that there has been an immense amount of inherited
variation; for who will believe that animals closely resembling
the Italian greyhound, the bloodhound, the bull-dog, pug-dog, or
Blenheim spaniel, &c.- so unlike all wild Canidae- ever existed
in a state of nature? It has often been loosely said that all our
races of dogs have been produced by the crossing of a few aboriginal
species; but by crossing we can only get forms in some degree intermediate
between their parents; and if we account for our several domestic
races by this process, we must admit the former existence of the
most extreme forms, as the Italian greyhound, bloodhound, bulldog,
&c., in the wild state. Moreover, the possibility of making
distinct races by crossing has been greatly exaggerated. Many cases
are on record, showing that a race may be modified by occasional
crosses, if aided by the careful selection of the individuals which
present the desired character; but to obtain a race intermediate
between two quite distinct races, would be very difficult. Sir J.
Sebright expressly experimented with this object and failed. The
offspring from the first cross between two pure breeds is tolerably
and sometimes (as I have found with pigeons) quite uniform in character,
and everything seems simple enough; but when these mongrels are
crossed one with another for several generations, hardly two of
them are alike and then the difficulty of the task becomes manifest.

Believing that it is always best to study some special group, I
have, after deliberation, taken up domestic pigeons. I have kept
every breed which I could purchase or obtain, and have been most
kindly favoured with skins from several quarters of the world, more
especially by the Hon. W. Elliot from India, and by the Hon. C.
Murray from Persia. Many treatises in different languages have been
published on pigeons, and some of them are very important, as being
of considerable antiquity. I have associated with several eminent
fanciers, and have been permitted to join two of the London Pigeon
Clubs. The diversity of the breeds is something astonishing. Compare
the English carrier and the short-faced tumbler, and see the wonderful
difference in their beaks, entailing corresponding differences in
their skulls. The carrier, more especially the male bird, is also
remarkable from the wonderful development of the carunculated skin
about the head; and this is accompanied by greatly elongated eyelids,
very large external orifices to the nostrils, and a wide gape of
mouth. The short-faced tumbler has a beak in outline almost like
that of a finch; and the common tumbler has the singular inherited
habit of flying at a great height in a compact flock, and tumbling
in the air head over heels. The runt is a bird of great size, with
long massive beak and large feet; some of the sub-breeds of runts
have very long necks, others very long wings and tails, others singularly
short tails. The barb is allied to the carrier, but, instead of
a long beak has a very short and broad one. The pouter has a much
elongated body, wings, and legs; and its enormously developed crop,
which it glories in inflating, may well excite astonishment and
even laughter. The turbit has a short and conical beak, with a line
of reversed feathers down the breast; and it has the habit of continually
expanding slightly, the upper part of the oesophagus. The Jacobin
has the feathers so much reversed along the back of the neck that
they form a hood; and it has, proportionally to its size, elongated
wing and tail feathers. The trumpeter and laugher, as their names
express, utter a very different coo from the other breeds. The fantail
has thirty or even forty tailfeathers, instead of twelve or fourteen-
the normal number in all the members of the great pigeon family:
these feathers are kept expanded, and are carried so erect, that
in good birds the head and tail touch: the oil-gland is quite aborted.
Several other less distinct breeds might be specified.
In the skeletons of the several breeds, the development of the
bones of the face in length and breadth and curvature differs enormously.
The shape, as well as the breadth and length of the ramus of the
lower jaw, varies in a highly remarkable manner. The caudal and
sacral vertebrae vary in number; as does the number of the ribs,
together with their relative breadth and the presence of processes.
The size and shape of the apertures in the sternum are highly variable;
so is the degree of divergence and relative size of the two arms
of the furcula. The proportional width of the gape of mouth, the
proportional length of the eyelids, of the orifice of the nostrils,
of the tongue (not always in strict correlation with the length
of beak), the size of the crop and of the upper part of the oesophagus;
the development and abortion of the oil-gland; the number of the
primary wing and caudal feathers; the relative length of the wing
and tail to each other and to the body; the relative length of the
leg and foot; the number of scutellae on the toes, the development
of skin between the toes, are all points of structure which are
variable. The period at which the perfect plumage is acquired varies,
as does the state of the down with which the nestling birds are
clothed when hatched. The shape and size of the eggs vary. The manner
of flight, and in some breeds the voice and disposition, differ
remarkably. Lastly, in certain breeds, the males and females have
come to differ in a slight degree from each other.
Altogether at least a score of pigeons might be chosen, which,
if shown to an ornithologist, and he were told that they were wild
birds, would certainly be ranked by him as well-defined species.
Moreover, I do not believe that any ornithologist would in this
case place the English carrier, the short-faced tumbler, the runt,
the barb, pouter, and fantail in the same genus; more especially
as in each of these breeds several truly-inherited sub-breeds, or
species, as he would call them, could be shown him.
Great as are the differences between the breeds of the pigeon,
I am fully convinced that the common opinion of naturalists is correct,
namely, that all are descended from the rock-pigeon (Columba livia),
including under this term several geographical races or sub-species,
which differ from each other in the most trifling respects. As several
of the reasons which have led me to this belief are in some degree
applicable in other cases, I will here briefly give them. If the
several breeds are not varieties, and have not proceeded from the
rock-pigeon, they must have descended from at least seven or eight
aboriginal stocks; for it is impossible to make the present domestic
breeds by the crossing of any lesser number: how, for instance,
could a pouter be produced by crossing two breeds unless one of
the parent-stocks possessed the characteristic enormous crop? The
supposed aboriginal stocks must all have been rock-pigeons, that
is, they did not breed or willingly perch on trees. But besides
C. livia, with its geographical sub-species, only two or three other
species of rock-pigeons are known; and these have not any of the
characters of the domestic breeds. Hence the supposed aboriginal
stocks must either still exist in the countries where they were
originally domesticated, and yet be unknown to ornithologists; and
this, considering their size, habits, and remarkable characters,
seems improbable; or they must have become extinct in the wild state.
But birds breeding on precipices, and good fliers, are unlikely
to be exterminated; and the common rock-pigeon, which has the same
habits with the domestic breeds, has not been exterminated even
on several of the smaller British islets, or on the shores of the
Mediterranean. Hence the supposed extermination of so many species
having similar habits with the rock-pigeon seems a very rash assumption.
Moreover, the several above-named domesticated breeds have been
transported to all parts of the world, and, therefore, some of them
must have been carried back again into their native country; but
not one has become wild or feral, though the dovecot-pigeon, which
is the rock-pigeon in very slightly altered state, has become feral
in several places. Again, all recent experience shows that it is
difficult to get wild animals to breed freely under domestication,
yet on the hypothesis of the multiple origin of our pigeons, it
must be assumed that at least seven or eight species were so thoroughly
domesticated in ancient times by half-civilised man, as to be quite
prolific under confinement.
An argument of great weight, and applicable in several other cases,
is, that the above-specified breeds, though agreeing generally with
the wild rock-pigeon in constitution, habits, voice, colouring,
and in most parts of their structure, yet are certainly highly abnormal
in other parts; we may look in vain through the whole great family
of Columbidae for a beak like that of the English carrier, or that
of the short-faced tumbler, or barb; for reversed feathers like
those of the Jacobin; for a crop like that of the pouter; for tail-feathers
like those of the fantail. Hence it must be assumed not only that
half-civilised man succeeded in thoroughly domesticating several
species, but that he intentionally or by chance picked out extraordinarily
abnormal species; and further, that these very species have since
all become extinct or unknown. So many strange contingencies are
improbable in the highest degree.
Some facts in regard to the colouring of pigeons well deserve consideration.
The rock-pigeon is of a slaty-blue, with white loins; but the Indian
sub-species, C. intermedia of Strickland, has this part bluish.
The tail has a terminal dark bar, with the outer feathers externally
edged at the base with white. The wings have two black bars. Some
semi-domestic breeds, and some truly wild breeds, have, besides
the two black bars, the wings chequered with black. These several
marks do not occur together in any other species of the whole family.
Now, in every one of the domestic breeds, taking thoroughly well-bred
birds, all the above marks, even to the white edging of the outer
tail-feathers, sometimes concur perfectly developed. Moreover, when
birds belonging to two or more distinct breeds are crossed, none
of which are blue or have any of the above-specified marks, the
mongrel offspring are very apt suddenly to acquire these characters.
To give one instance out of several which I have observed:- I crossed
some white fantails, which breed very true, with some black barbs-
and it so happens that blue varieties of barbs are so rare that
I never heard of an instance in England; and the mongrels were black,
brown, and mottled. I also crossed a barb with a spot, which is
a white bird with a red tail and red spot on the forehead, and which
notoriously breeds very true; the mongrels were dusky and mottled.
I then crossed one of the mongrel barb-fantails with a mongrel barb-spot,
and they produced a bird of as beautiful a blue colour, with the
white loins, double black wing-bar, and barred and white-edged tail-feathers,
as any wild-rock pigeon! We can understand these facts, on the well-known
principle of reversion to ancestral characters, if all the domestic
breeds are descended from the rock-pigeon. But if we deny this,
we must make one of the two following highly improbable suppositions.
Either, first, that all the several imagined aboriginal stocks were
coloured and marked like the rock-pigeon, although no other existing
species is thus coloured and marked, so that in each separate breed
there might be a tendency to revert to the very same colours and
markings. Or, secondly, that each breed, even the purest, has within
a dozen, or at most within a score, of generations, been crossed
by the rock-pigeon: I say within dozen or twenty generations, for
no instance is known of crossed descendants reverting to an ancestor
of foreign blood, removed by a greater number of generations. In
a breed which has been crossed only once, the tendency to revert
to any character derived from such a cross will naturally become
less and less, as in each succeeding generation there will be less
of the foreign blood; but when there has been no cross, and there
is a tendency in the breed to revert to a character which was lost
during some former generation, this tendency, for all that we can
see to the contrary, may be transmitted undiminished for an indefinite
number of generations. These two distinct cases of reversion are
often confounded together by those who have written on inheritance.
Lastly, the hybrids or mongrels from between all the breeds of
the pigeon are perfectly fertile, as I can state from my own observations,
purposely made, on the most distinct breeds. Now, hardly any cases
have been ascertained with certainty of hybrids from two quite distinct
species of animals being perfectly fertile. Some authors believe
that long-continued domestication eliminates this strong tendency
to sterility in species. From the history of the dog, and of some
other domestic animals, this conclusion is probably quite correct,
if applied to species closely related to each other. But to extend
it so far as to suppose that species, aboriginally as distinct as
carriers, tumblers, pouters, and fantails now are, should yield
offspring perfectly fertile inter se, would be rash in the extreme.
From these several reasons, namely,- the improbability of man having
formerly made seven or eight supposed species of pigeons to breed
freely under domestication;- these supposed species being quite
unknown in a wild state, and their not having become anywhere feral;-
these species presenting certain very abnormal characters, as compared
with all other Columbidae, though so like the rock-pigeon in most
respects;- the occasional reappearance of the blue colour and various
black marks in all the breeds, both when kept pure and when crossed;-
and lastly, the mongrel offspring being perfectly fertile;- from
these several reasons taken together, we may safely conclude that
all our domestic breeds are descended from the rock-pigeon or Columba
livia with its geographical sub-species.
In favour of this view, I may add, firstly, that the wild C. livia
has been found capable of domestication in Europe and in India;
and that it agrees in habits and in a great number of points of
structure with all the domestic breeds. Secondly, that, although
an English carrier or a short-faced tumbler differs immensely in
certain characters from the rock-pigeon, yet that, by comparing
the several sub-breeds of these two races, more especially those
brought from distant countries, we can make, between them and the
rock-pigeon, an almost perfect series; so we can in some other cases,
but not with all the breeds. Thirdly, those characters which are
mainly distinctive of each breed are in each eminently variable,
for instance the wattle and length of beak of the carrier, the shortness
of that of the tumbler, and the number of tailfeathers in the fantail;
and the explanation of this fact will be obvious when we treat of
Selection. Fourthly, pigeons have been watched and tended with the
utmost care, and loved by many people. They have been domesticated
for thousands of years in several quarters of the world; the earliest
known record of pigeons is in the fifth AEgyptian dynasty, about
3000 B.C., as was pointed out to me by Professor Lepsius; but Mr.
Birch informs me that pigeons are given in a bill of fare in the
previous dynasty. In the time of the Romans, as we hear from Pliny,
immense prices were given for pigeons; "nay, they are come to this
pass, that they can reckon up their pedigree and race." Pigeons
were much valued by Akber Khan in India, about the year 1600; never
less than 90,000 pigeons were taken with the court. "The monarchs
of Iran and Turan sent him some very rare birds"; and continues
the courtly historian, "His Majesty by crossing the breeds, which
method was never practised before, has improved them astonishingly."
About this same period the Dutch were as eager about pigeons as
were the old Romans. The paramount importance of these considerations
in explaining the immense amount of variation which pigeons have
undergone, will likewise be obvious when we treat of Selection.
We shall then, also, see how it is that the several breeds so often
have a somewhat monstrous character. It is also a most favourable
circumstance for the production of distinct breeds, that male and
female pigeons can be easily mated for life; and thus different
breeds can be kept together in the same aviary.
I have discussed the probable origin of domestic pigeons at some,
yet quite insufficient, length; because when I first kept pigeons
and watched the several kinds, well knowing how truly they breed,
I felt fully as much difficulty in believing that since they had
been domesticated they had all proceeded from a common parent, as
any naturalist could in coming to a similar conclusion in regard
to the many species of finches, or other groups of birds, in nature.
One circumstance has struck me much; namely, that nearly all the
breeders of the various domestic animals and the cultivators of
plants, with whom I have conversed, or whose treatises I have read,
are firmly convinced that the several breeds to which each has attended,
are descended from so many aboriginally distinct species. Ask, as
I have asked, a celebrated raiser of Hereford cattle, whether his
cattle might not have descended from long-horns, or both from a
common parent-stock, and he will laugh you to scorn. I have never
met a pigeon, or poultry, or duck, or rabbit fancier, who was not
fully convinced that each main breed was descended from a distinct
species. Van Mons, in his treatise on pears and apples, shows how
utterly he disbelieves that the several sorts, for instance a Ribston-pippin
or Codlin-apple, could ever have proceeded from the seeds of the
same tree. Innumerable other examples could be given. The explanation,
I think, is simple: from long-continued study they are strongly
impressed with the differences between the several races; and though
they well know that each race varies slightly, for they win their
prizes by selecting such slight differences, yet they ignore all
general arguments, and refuse to sum up in their minds slight differences
accumulated during many successive generations. May not those naturalists
who, knowing far less of the laws of inheritance than does the breeder,
and knowing no more than he does of the intermediate links in the
long lines of descent, yet admit that many of our domestic races
are descended from the same parents- may they not learn a lesson
of caution, when they deride the idea of species in a state of nature
being lineal descendants of other species?

Let us now briefly consider the steps by which domestic races have
been produced, either from one or from several allied species. Some
effect may be attributed to the direct and definite action of the
external conditions of life, and some to habit; but he would be
a bold man who would account by such agencies for the differences
between a dray- and race-horse, a greyhound and bloodhound, a carrier
and tumbler pigeon. One of the most remarkable features in our domesticated
races is that we see in them adaptation, not indeed to the animal's
or plant's own good, but to man's use or fancy. Some variations
useful to him have probably arisen suddenly, or by one step; many
botanists, for instance, believe that the fuller's teasel, with
its hooks, which cannot be rivalled by any mechanical contrivance,
is only a variety of the wild Dipsacus; and this amount of change
may have suddenly arisen in a seedling. So it has probably been
with the turnspit dog; and this is known to have been the case with
the ancon sheep. But when we compare the dray-horse and race-horse,
the dromedary and camel, the various breeds of sheep fitted either
for cultivated land or mountain pasture, with the wool of one breed
good for one purpose, and that of another breed for another purpose;
when we compare the many breeds of dogs, each good for man in different
ways; when we compare the game-cock, so pertinacious in battle,
with other breeds so little quarrelsome, with "everlasting layers"
which never desire to sit, and with the bantam so small and elegant;
when we compare the host of agricultural, culinary, orchard, and
flower-garden races of plants, most useful to man at different seasons
and for different purposes, or so beautiful in his eyes, we must,
I think, look further than to mere variability. We cannot suppose
that all the breeds were suddenly produced as perfect and as useful
as we now see them; indeed, in many cases, we know that this has
not been their history. The key is man's power of accumulative selection:
nature gives successive variations; man adds them up in certain
directions useful to him. In this sense he may be said to have made
for himself useful breeds.
The great power of this principle of selection is not hypothetical.
It is certain that several of our eminent breeders have, even within
a single lifetime, modified to a large extent their breeds of cattle
and sheep. In order fully to realise what they have done, it is
almost necessary to read several of the many treatises devoted to
this subject, and to inspect the animals. Breeders habitually speak
of an animal's organisation as something plastic, which they can
model as they please. If I had space I could quote numerous passages
to this effect from highly competent authorities. Youatt, who was
probably better acquainted with the works of agriculturists than
almost any other individual, and who was himself a very good judge
of animals, speaks of the principle of selection as "that which
enables the agriculturist, not only to modify the character of his
flock, but to change it altogether. It is the magician's wand, by
means of which he may summon into life whatever form and mould he
pleases." Lord Somerville, speaking of what breeders have done for
sheep, says:- "It would seem as if they had chalked out upon a wall
a form perfect in itself, and then had given it existence." In Saxony
the importance of the principle of selection in regard to merino
sheep is so fully recognised, that men follow it as a trade: the
sheep are placed on a table and are studied, like a picture by a
connoisseur; this is done three times at intervals of months, and
the sheep are each time marked and classed, so that the very best
may ultimately be selected for breeding.
What English breeders have actually effected is proved by the enormous
prices given for animals with a good pedigree; and these have been
exported to almost every quarter of the world. The improvement is
by no generally due to crossing different breeds; all the best breeders
are strongly opposed to this practice, except sometimes amongst
closely allied sub-breeds. And when a cross has been made, the closest
selection is far more indispensable even than in ordinary cases.
If selection consisted merely in separating some very distinct variety,
and breeding from it, the principle would be so obvious as hardly
to be worth notice; but its importance consists in the great effect
produced by the accumulation in one direction, during successive
generations, of differences absolutely inappreciable by an uneducated
eye- differences which I for one have vainly attempted to appreciate.
Not one man in a thousand has accuracy of eye and judgment sufficient
to become an eminent breeder. If, gifted with these qualities, he
studies his subject for years, and devotes his lifetime to it with
indomitable perseverance, he will succeed, and may make great improvements;
if he wants any of these qualities, he will assuredly fail. Few
would readily believe in the natural capacity and years of practice
requisite to become even a skilful pigeon fancier.
The same principles are followed by horticulturists; but the variations
are here often more abrupt. No one supposes that our choicest productions
have been produced by a single variation from the aboriginal stock.
We have proofs that this has not been so in several cases in which
exact records have been kept; thus, to give a very trifling instance,
the steadily-increasing size of the common gooseberry may be quoted.
We see an astonishing improvement in many florists' flowers, when
the flowers of the present day are compared with drawings made only
twenty or thirty years ago. When a race of plants is once pretty
well established, the seed-raisers do not pick out the best plants,
but merely go over their seed-beds, and pull up the "rogues," as
they call the plants that deviate from the proper standard. With
animals this kind of selection is, in fact, likewise followed; for
hardly any one is so careless as to breed from his worst animals.
In regard to plants, there is another means of observing the accumulated
effects of selection- namely, by comparing the diversity of flowers
in the different varieties of the same species in the flower-garden;
the diversity of leaves, pods, or tubers, or whatever part is valued,
in the kitchen garden, in comparison with the flowers of the same
varieties; and the diversity of fruit of the same species in the
orchard, in comparison with the leaves and flowers of the same set
of varieties. See how different the leaves of the cabbage are, and
how extremely alike the flowers; how unlike the flowers of the heartsease
are, and how alike the leaves; how much the fruit of the different
kinds of gooseberries differ in size, colour, shape, and hairiness,
and yet the flowers present very slight differences. It is not that
the varieties which differ largely in some one point do not differ
at all in other points; this is hardly ever,- I speak after careful
observation, perhaps never, the case. The law of correlated variation,
the importance of which should never be overlooked, will ensure
some differences; but, as a general rule, it cannot be doubted that
the continued selection of slight variations, either in the leaves,
the flowers, or the fruit, will produce races differing from each
other chiefly in these characters.
It may be objected that the principle of selection has been reduced
to methodical practice for scarcely more than three-quarters of
a century; it has certainly been more attended to of late years,
and many treatises have been published on the subject; and the result
has been, in a corresponding degree, rapid and important. But it
is very far from true that the principle is a modern discovery.
I could give several references to works of high antiquity, in which
the full importance of the principle is acknowledged. In rude and
barbarous periods of English history choice animals were often imported,
and laws were passed to prevent their exportation: the destruction
of horses under a certain size was ordered, and this may be compared
to the "roguing" of plants by nurserymen. The principle of selection
I find distinctly given in an ancient Chinese encyclopaedia. Explicit
rules are laid down by some of the Roman classical writers. From
passages in Genesis, it is clear that the colour of domestic animals
was at that early period attended to. Savages now sometimes cross
their dogs with wild canine animals, to improve the breed, and they
formerly did so, as is attested by passages in Pliny. The savages
in South Africa match their draught cattle by colour, as do some
of the Esquimaux their teams of dogs. Livingstone states that good
domestic breeds are highly valued by the negroes in the interior
of Africa who have not associated with Europeans. Some of these
facts do not show actual selection, but they show that the breeding
of domestic animals was carefully attended to in ancient times,
and is now attended to by the lowest savages. It would, indeed,
have been a strange fact, had attention not been paid to breeding,
for the inheritance of good and bad qualities is so obvious.

At the present time, eminent breeders try by methodical selection,
with a distinct object in view, to make a new strain or sub-breed,
superior to anything of the kind in the country. But, for our purpose,
a form of Selection, which may be called Unconscious, and which
results from every one trying to possess and breed from the best
individual animals, is more important. Thus, a man who intends keeping
pointers naturally tries to get as good dogs as he can, and afterwards
breeds from his own best dogs, but he has no wish or expectation
of permanently altering the breed. Nevertheless we may infer that
this process, continued during centuries, would improve and modify
any breed, in the same way as Bakewell, Collins, &c., by this
very same process, only carried on more methodically, did greatly
modify, even during their lifetimes, the forms and qualities of
their cattle. Slow and insensible changes of this kind can never
be recognised unless actual measurements or careful drawings of
the breeds in question have been made long ago, which may serve
for comparison. In some cases, however, unchanged, or but little
changed individuals of the same breed exist in less civilised districts,
where the breed has been less improved. There is reason to believe
that King Charles's spaniel has been unconsciously modified to a
large extent since the time of that monarch. Some highly competent
authorities are convinced that the setter is directly derived from
the spaniel, and has probably been slowly altered from it. It is
known that the English pointer has been greatly changed within the
last century, and in this case the change has, it is believed, been
chiefly effected by crosses with the foxhound; but what concerns
us is, that the change has been effected unconsciously and gradually,
and yet so effectually, that, though the old Spanish pointer certainly
came from Spain, Mr. Borrow has not seen, as I am informed by him,
any native dog in Spain like our pointer.
By a similar process of selection, and by careful training, English
race-horses have come to surpass in fleetness and size the parent
Arabs, so that the latter, by the regulations for the Goodwood Races,
are favoured in the weights which they carry. Lord Spencer and others
have shown how the cattle of England have increased in weight and
in early maturity, compared with the stock formerly kept in this
country. By comparing the accounts given in various old treatises
of the former and present state of carrier and tumbler pigeons in
Britain, India, and Persia, we can trace the stages through which
they have insensibly passed, and come to differ so greatly from
the rock-pigeon.
Youatt gives an excellent illustration of the effects of a course
of selection, which may be considered as unconscious, in so far
that the breeders could never have expected, or even wished, to
produce the result which ensued- namely, the production of two distinct
strains. The two flocks of Leicester sheep kept by Mr. Buckley and
Mr. Burgess, as Mr. Youatt remarks, "have been purely bred from
the original stock of Mr. Bakewell for upwards of fifty years. There
is not a suspicion existing in the mind of any one at all acquainted
with the subject, that the owner of either of them has deviated
in any one instance from the pure blood of Mr. Bakewell's flock,
and yet the difference between the sheep possessed by these two
gentlemen is so great that they have the appearance of being quite
different varieties."
If there exist savages so barbarous as never to think of the inherited
character of the offspring of their domestic animals, yet any one
animal particularly useful to them, for any special purpose, would
be carefully preserved during famines and other accidents, to which
savages are so liable, and such choice animals would thus generally
leave more offspring than the inferior ones; so that in this case
there would be a kind of unconscious selection going on. We see
the value set on animals even by the barbarians of Tierra del Fuego,
by their killing and devouring their old women, in times of dearth,
as of less value than their dogs.
In plants the same gradual process of improvement, through the
occasional preservation of the best individuals, whether or not
sufficiently distinct to be ranked at their first appearance, as
distinct varieties, and whether or not two or more species or races
have become blended together by crossing, may plainly be recognised
in the increased size and beauty which we now see in the varieties
of the heartsease, rose, pelargonium, dahlia, and other plants,
when compared with the older varieties or with their parent-stocks.
No one would ever expect to get a first-rate heartsease or dahlia
from the seed of a wild plant. No one would expect to raise a first-rate
melting pear from the seed of the wild pear, though he might succeed
from a poor seedling growing wild, if it had come from a garden-stock.
The pear, though cultivated in classical times, appears, from Pliny's
description, to have been a fruit of very inferior quality. I have
seen great surprise expressed in horticultural works at the wonderful
skill of gardeners, in having produced such splendid results from
such poor materials; but the art has been simple, and, as far as
the final result is concerned, has been followed almost unconsciously.
It has consisted in always cultivating the best-known variety, sowing
its seeds, and, when a slightly better variety chanced to appear,
selecting it, and so onwards. But the gardeners of the classical
period who cultivated the best pears which they could procure, never
thought what splendid fruit we should eat; though we owe our excellent
fruit in some small degree, to their having naturally chosen and
preserved the best varieties they could anywhere find.
A large amount of change, thus slowly and unconsciously accumulated,
explains, as I believe, the well-known fact, that in a number of
cases we cannot recognise, and therefore do not know, the wild parent-stocks
of the plants which have been longest cultivated in our flower and
kitchen gardens. If it has taken centuries or thousands of years
to improve or modify most of our plants up to their present standard
of usefulness to man, we can understand how it is that neither Australia,
the Cape of Good Hope, nor any other region inhabited by quite uncivilised
man, has afforded us a single plant worth culture. It is not that
these countries, so rich in species, do not by a strange chance
possess the aboriginal stocks of any useful plants, but that the
native plants have not been improved by continued selection up to
a standard of perfection comparable with that acquired by the plants
in countries anciently civilised.
In regard to the domestic animals kept by uncivilised man, it should
not be overlooked that they almost always have to struggle for their
own food, at least during certain seasons. And in two countries
very differently circumstanced, individuals of the same species,
having slightly different constitutions or structure would often
succeed better in the one country than in the other; and thus by
a process of "natural selection," as will hereafter be more fully
explained, two sub-breeds might be formed. This, perhaps, partly
explains why the varieties kept by savages, as has been remarked
by some authors, have more of the character of true species than
the varieties kept in civilised countries.
On the view here given of the important part which selection by
man has played, it becomes at once obvious, how it is that our domestic
races show adaptation in their structure or in their habits to man's
wants or fancies. We can, I think, further understand the frequently
abnormal characters of our domestic races, and likewise their differences
being so great in external characters, and relatively so slight
in internal parts or organs. Man can hardly select, or only with
much difficulty, any deviation of structure excepting such as is
externally visible; and indeed he rarely cares for what is internal.
He can never act by selection, excepting on variations which are
first given to him in some slight degree by nature. No man would
ever try to make a fantail till he saw a pigeon with a tail developed
in some slight degree in an unusual manner, or a pouter till he
saw a pigeon with a crop of somewhat unusual size; and the more
abnormal or unusual any character was when it first appeared, the
more likely it would be to catch his attention. But to use such
an expression as trying to make a fantail, is, I have no doubt,
in most cases, utterly incorrect. The man who first selected a pigeon
with a slightly larger tail, never dreamed what the descendants
of that pigeon would become through long-continued, partly unconscious
and partly methodical, selection. Perhaps the parent-bird of all
fantails had only fourteen tail-feathers somewhat expanded, like
the present Java fantail, or like individuals of other and distinct
breeds, in which as many as seventeen tail-feathers have been counted.
Perhaps the first pouter-pigeon did not inflate its crop much more
than the turbit now does the upper part of its oesophagus,- a habit
which is disregarded by all fanciers, as it is not one of the points
of the breed.
Nor let it be thought that some great deviation of structure would
be necessary to catch the fancier's eye: he perceives extremely
small differences, and it is in human nature to value any novelty,
however slight, in one's own possession. Nor must the value which
would formerly have been set on any slight differences in the individuals
of the same species, be judged of by the value which is now set
on them, after several breeds have fairly been established. I is
known that with pigeons many slight variations now occasionally
appear, but these are rejected as faults or deviations from the
standard of perfection in each breed. The common goose has not given
rise to any marked varieties; hence the Toulouse and the common
breed, which differ only in colour, that most fleeting of characters,
have lately been exhibited as distinct at our poultry shows.
These views appear to explain what has sometimes been noticed-
namely, that we know hardly anything about the origin or history
of any of our domestic breeds. But, in fact, a breed, like a dialect
of a language, can hardly be said to have a distinct origin. man
preserves and breeds from an individual with some slight deviation
of structure, or takes more care than usual in matching his best
animals, and thus improves them, and the improved animals slowly
spread in the immediate neighbourhood. But they will as yet hardly
have a distinct name, and from being only slightly valued, their
history will have been disregarded. When further improved by the
same slow and gradual process, they will spread more widely, and
will be recognised as something distinct and valuable, and will
then probably first receive a provincial name. In semi-civilised
countries, with little free communication, the spreading of a new
sub-breed would be a slow process. As soon as the points of value
are once acknowledged, the principle, as I have called it, of unconscious
selection will always tend,- perhaps more at one period than at
another, as the breed rises or falls in fashion,- perhaps more in
one district than in another, according to the state of civilisation
of the inhabitants,- slowly to add to the characteristic features
of the breed, whatever they may be. But the chance will be infinitely
small of any record having been preserved of such slow, varying,
and insensible changes.

I will now say a few words on the circumstances, favourable, or
the reverse, to man's power of selection. A high degree of variability
is obviously favourable, as freely giving the materials for selection
to work on; not that mere individual differences are not amply sufficient,
with extreme care, to allow of the accumulation of a large amount
of modification in almost any desired direction. But as variations
manifestly useful or pleasing to man appear only occasionally, the
chance of their appearance will be much increased by a large number
of individuals being kept. Hence, number is of the highest importance
for success. On this principle Marshall formerly remarked, with
respect to the sheep of parts of Yorkshire, "as they generally belong
to poor people, and are mostly in small lots, they never can be
improved." On the other hand, nurserymen, from keeping large stocks
of the same plant, are generally far more successful than amateurs
in raising new and valuable varieties. A large number of individuals
of an animal or plant can be reared only where the conditions for
its propagation are favourable. When the individuals are scanty,
all will be allowed to breed, whatever their quality may be, and
this will effectually prevent selection. But probably the most important
element is that the animal or plant should be so highly valued by
man, that the closest attention is paid to even the slightest deviations
in its qualities or structure. Unless such attention be paid nothing
can be effected. I have seen it gravely remarked, that it was most
fortunate that the strawberry began to vary just when gardeners
began to attend to this plant. No doubt the strawberry had always
varied since it was cultivated, but the slightest varieties had
been neglected. As soon, however, as gardeners picked out individual
plants with slightly larger, earlier, or better fruit, and raised
seedlings from them, and again picked out the best seedlings and
bred from them, then (with some aid by crossing distinct species)
those many admirable varieties of the strawberry were raised which
have appeared during the last half-century.
With animals, facility in preventing crosses is an important element
in the formation of new races,- at least, in a country which is
already stocked with other races. In this respect enclosure of the
land plays a part. Wandering savages or the inhabitants of open
plains rarely possess more than one breed of the same species. Pigeons
can be mated for life, and this is a great convenience to the fancier,
for thus many races may be improved and kept true, though mingled
in the same aviary; and this circumstance must have largely favoured
the formation of new breeds. Pigeons, I may add, can be propagated
in great numbers and at a very quick rate, and inferior birds may
be freely rejected, as when killed they serve for food. On the other
hand, cats from their nocturnal rambling habits cannot be easily
matched, and, although so much valued by women and children, we
rarely see a distinct breed long kept up; such breeds as we do sometimes
see are almost always imported from some other country. Although
I do not doubt that some domestic animals vary less than others,
yet the rarity or absence of distinct breeds of the cat, the donkey,
peacock, goose, &c., may be attributed in main part to selection
not having been brought into play: in cats, from the difficulty
in pairing them; in donkeys, from only a few being kept by poor
people, and little attention paid to their breeding; for recently
in certain parts of Spain and of the United States this animal has
been surprisingly modified and improved by careful selection: in
peacocks, from not being very easily reared and a large stock not
kept: in geese, from being valuable only for two purposes, food
and feathers, and more especially from no pleasure having been felt
in the display of distinct breeds; but the goose, under the conditions
to which it is exposed when domesticated seems to have a singularly
inflexible organisation, though it has varied to a slight extent,
as I have elsewhere described.
Some authors have maintained that the amount of variation in our
domestic productions is soon reached, and can never afterwards be
exceeded. It would be somewhat rash to assert that the limit has
been attained in any one case; for almost all our animals and plants
have been greatly improved in many ways within a recent period;
and this implies variation. It would be equally rash to assert that
characters now increased to their utmost limit, could not, after
remaining fixed for many centuries, again vary under new conditions
of life. No doubt, as Mr. Wallace has remarked with much truth,
a limit will be at last reached. For instance, there must be a limit
to the fleetness of any terrestrial animal, as this will be determined
by the friction to be overcome, the weight of body to be carried,
and the power of contraction in the muscular fibres. But what concerns
us is that the domestic varieties of the same species differ from
each other in almost every character, which man has attended to
and selected, more than do the distinct species of the same genera.
Isidore Geoffroy St-Hilaire has proved this in regard to size, and
so it is with colour and probably with the length of hair. With
respect to fleetness, which depends on many bodily characters, Eclipse
was far fleeter, and a dray-horse is incomparably stronger than
any two natural species belonging to the same genus. So with plants,
the seeds of the different varieties of the bean or maize probably
differ more in size, than do the seeds of the distinct species in
any one genus in the same two families. The same remark holds good
in regard to the fruit of the several varieties of the plum, and
still more strongly with the melon, as well as in many other analogous
cases.
To sum up on the origin of our domestic races of animals and plants.
Changed conditions of life are of the highest importance in causing
variability, both by acting directly on the organisation, and indirectly
by affecting the reproductive system. It is not probable that variability
is an inherent and necessary contingent, under all circumstances.
The greater or less force of inheritance and reversion, determine
whether variations shall endure. Variability is governed by many
unknown laws, of which correlated growth is probably the most important.
Something, but how much we do not know, may be attributed to the
definite action of the conditions of life. Some, perhaps a great,
effect may be attributed to the increased use or disuse of parts.
The final result is thus rendered infinitely complex. In some cases
the intercrossing of aboriginally distinct species appears to have
played an important part in the origin of our breeds. When several
breeds have once been formed in any country, their occasional intercrossing,
with the aid of selection, has, no doubt, largely aided in the formation
of new sub-breeds; but the importance of crossing has been much
exaggerated, both in regard to animals and to those plants which
are propagated by seed. With plants which are temporarily propagated
by cuttings, buds, &c., the importance of crossing is immense;
for the cultivator may here disregard the extreme variability both
of hybrids and of mongrels, and the sterility of hybrids; but plants
not propagated by seed are of little importance to us, for their
endurance is only temporary. Over all these causes of Change, the
accumulative action of Selection, whether applied methodically and
quickly, or unconsciously and slowly but more efficiently, seems
to have been the predominant Power.

BEFORE applying the principles arrived at in the last chapter to
organic beings in a state of nature, we must briefly discuss whether
these latter are subject to any variation. To treat this subject
properly, a long catalogue of dry facts ought to be given; but these
shall reserve for a future work. Nor shall I here discuss the various
definitions which have been given of the term species. No one definition
has satisfied all naturalists; yet every naturalist knows vaguely
what he means when he speaks of a species. Generally the term includes
the unknown element of a distant act of creation. The term "variety"
is almost equally difficult to define; but here community of descent
is almost universally implied, though it can rarely be proved. We
have also what are called monstrosities; but they graduate into
varieties. By a monstrosity I presume is meant some considerable
deviation of structure, generally injurious, or not useful to the
species. Some authors use the term "variation" in a technical sense,
as implying a modification directly due to the physical conditions
of life; and "variations" in this sense are supposed not to be inherited;
but who can say that the dwarfed condition of shells in the brackish
waters of the Baltic, or dwarfed plants on Alpine summits, or the
thicker fur of an animal from far northwards, would not in some
cases be inherited for at least a few generations? And in this case
I presume that the form would be called a variety.
It may be doubted whether sudden and considerable deviations of
structure such as we occasionally see in our domestic productions,
more especially with plants, are ever permanently propagated in
a state of nature. Almost every part of every organic being is so
beautifully related to its complex conditions of life that it seems
as improbable that any part should have been suddenly produced perfect,
as that a complex machine should have been invented by man in a
perfect state. Under domestication monstrosities sometimes occur
which resemble normal structures in widely different animals. Thus
pigs have occasionally been born with a sort of proboscis, and if
any wild species of the same genus had naturally possessed a proboscis,
it might have been argued that this had appeared as a monstrosity;
but I have as yet failed to find, after diligent search, cases of
monstrosities resembling normal structures in nearly allied forms,
and these alone bear on the question. If monstrous forms of this
kind ever do appear in a state of nature and are capable of reproduction
(which is not always the case), as they occur rarely and singularly,
their preservation would depend on unusually favourable circumstances.
They would, also, during the first and succeeding generations cross
with the ordinary form, and thus their abnormal character would
almost inevitably be lost. But I shall have to return in a future
chapter to the preservation and perpetuation of single or occasional
variations.

The many slight differences which appear in the offspring from
the same parents, or which it may be presumed have thus arisen,
from being observed in the individuals of the same species inhabiting
the same confined locality, may be called individual differences.
No one supposes that all the individuals of the same species are
cast in the same actual mould. These individual differences are
of the highest importance for us, for they are often inherited,
as must be familiar to every one; and they thus afford materials
for natural selection to act on and accumulate, in the same manner
as man accumulates in any given direction individual differences
in his domesticated productions. These individual differences generally
affect what naturalists consider unimportant parts; but I could
show by a long catalogue of facts, that parts which must be called
important, whether viewed under a physiological or classificatory
point of view, sometimes vary in the individuals of the same species.
I am convinced that the most experienced naturalist would be surprised
at the number of the cases of variability, even in important parts
of structure, which he could collect on good authority, as I have
collected, during a course of years. It should be remembered that
systematists are far from being pleased at finding variability in
important characters, and that there are not many men who will laboriously
examine internal and important organs, and compare them in many
specimens of the same species. It would never have been expected
that the branching of the main nerves close to the great central
ganglion of an insect would have been variable in the same species;
it might have been thought that changes of this nature could have
been effected only by slow degrees; yet Sir J. Lubbock has shown
a degree of variability in these main nerves in Coccus, which may
almost be compared to the irregular branching of a stem of a tree.
This philosophical naturalist, I may add, has also shown that the
muscles in the larvae of certain insects are far from uniform. Authors
sometimes argue in a circle when they state that important organs
never vary; for these same authors practically rank those parts
as important (as some few naturalists have honestly confessed) which
do not vary; and, under this point of view, no instance will ever
be found of an important part varying; but under any other point
of view many instances assuredly can be given.
There is one point connected with individual differences, which
is extremely perplexing: I refer to those genera which have been
called "protean" or "Polymorphic," in which the species present
an inordinate amount of variation. With respect to many of these
forms, hardly two naturalists agree whether to rank them as species
or as varieties. We may instance Rubus, Rosa, and Hieracium amongst
plants, several genera of and of brachiopod shells. In most polymorphic
genera some of the species have fixed and definite characters. Genera
which are polymorphic in one country seem to be, with a few exceptions,
polymorphic in other countries, and likewise, judging from brachiopod
shells, at former periods of time. These facts are very perplexing,
for they seem to show that this kind of variability is independent
of the conditions of life. I am inclined to suspect that we see,
at least in some of these polymorphic genera, variations which are
of no service or disservice to the species, and which consequently
have not been seized on and rendered definite by natural selection,
as hereafter to be explained.
Individuals of the same species often present, as is known to every
one, great differences of structure, independently of variation,
as in the two sexes of various animals, in the two or three castes
of sterile females or workers amongst insects, and in the immature
and larval states of many of the lower animals. There are, also,
cases of dimorphism and trimorphism, both with animals and plants.
Thus, Mr. Wallace, who has lately called attention to the subject,
has shown that the females of certain species of butterflies, in
the Malayan archipelago, regularly appear under two or even three
conspicuously distinct forms, not connected by intermediate varieties.
Fritz Muller has described analogous but more extraordinary cases
with the males of certain Brazilian crustaceans: thus, the male
of the Tanais regularly occurs under two distinct forms; one of
these has strong and differently shaped pincers, and the other has
antennae much more abundantly furnished with smelling-hairs. Although
in most of these cases, the two or three forms, both with animals
and plants are not now connected by intermediate gradations, it
is probable that they were once thus connected. Mr. Wallace, for
instance, describes a certain butterfly which presents in the same
island a great range of varieties connected by intermediate links,
and the extreme links of the chain closely resemble the two forms
of an allied dimorphic species inhabiting another part of the Malay
Archipelago. Thus also with ants, the several worker castes are
generally quite distinct; but in some cases, as we shall hereafter
see, the castes are connected together by finely graduated varieties.
So it is, as I myself observed, with some dimorphic plants. It certainly
at first appears a highly remarkable fact that the same female butterfly
should have the power of producing at the same time three distinct
female forms and a male; and that an hermaphrodite plant should
produce from the same seed-capsule three distinct hermaphrodite
forms, bearing three different kinds of females and three or even
six different kinds of males. Nevertheless these cases are only
exaggerations of the common fact that the female produces offspring
of two sexes which sometimes differ from each other in a wonderful
manner.

The forms which possess in some considerable degree the character
of species, but which are go closely similar to other forms, or
are so closely linked to them by intermediate gradations, that naturalists
do not like to rank them as distinct species, are in several respects
the most important for us. We have every reason to believe that
many of these doubtful and closely allied forms have permanently
retained their characters for a long time; for as long, as far as
we know, as have good and true species. Practically, when a naturalist
can unite by means of intermediate links any two forms, he treats
the one as a variety of the other; ranking the most common, but
sometimes the one first described, as the species, and the other
as the variety. But cases of great difficulty, which I will not
here enumerate, sometimes arise in deciding whether or not to rank
one form as a variety of another, even when they are closely connected
by intermediate links; nor will the commonly-assumed hybrid nature
of the intermediate forms always remove the difficulty. In very
many cases, however, one form is ranked as a variety of another,
not because the intermediate links have actually been found, but
because analogy leads the observer to suppose either that they do
now somewhere exist, or may formerly have existed; and here a wide
door for the entry of doubt and conjecture is opened.
Hence, in determining whether a form should be ranked as a species
or a variety, the opinion of naturalists having sound judgment and
wide experience seems the only guide to follow. We must, however,
in many cases, decide by a majority of naturalists, for few well-marked
and well-known varieties can be named which have not been ranked
as species by at least some competent judges.
That varieties of this doubtful nature are far from uncommon cannot
be disputed. Compare the several floras of Great Britain, of France,
or of the United States, drawn up by different botanists, and see
what a surprising number of forms have been ranked by one botanist
as good species, and by another as mere varieties. Mr. H. C. Watson,
to whom I lie under deep obligation for assistance of all kinds,
has marked for me 182 British plants, which are generally considered
as varieties, but which have all been ranked by botanists as species;
and, in making this list, he has omitted many trifling varieties,
which nevertheless have been ranked by some botanists as species,
and he has entirely omitted several highly polymorphic genera. Under
genera, including the most polymorphic forms, Mr. Babington gives
251 species, whereas Mr. Bentham gives only 112,- a difference of
139 doubtful forms! Amongst animals which unite for each birth,
and which are highly locomotive, doubtful forms, ranked by one zoologist
as a species and by another as a variety, can rarely be found within
the same country, but are common in separated areas. How many of
the birds and insects in North America and Europe, which differ
very slightly from each other, have been ranked by one eminent naturalist
as undoubted species, and by another as varieties, or, as they are
often called, geographical races! Mr. Wallace, in several valuable
papers on the various animals, especially on the Lepidoptera, inhabiting
the islands of the great Malayan archipelago, shows that they may
be classed under four heads, namely, as variable forms, as local
forms, as geographical races or sub-species, and as true representative
species. The first or variable forms vary much within the limits
of the same island. The local forms are moderately constant and
distinct in each separate island; but when all from the several
islands are compared together, the differences are seen to be so
slight and graduated, that it is impossible to define or describe
them, though at the same time the extreme forms are sufficiently
distinct. The geographical races or sub-species are local forms
completely fixed and isolated; but as they do not differ from each
other by strongly marked and important characters, "there is no
possible test but individual opinion to determine which of them
shall be considered as species and which as varieties." Lastly,
representative species fill the same place in the natural economy
of each island as do the local forms and sub-species; but as they
are distinguished from each other by a greater amount of difference
than that between the local forms and sub-species, they are almost
universally ranked by naturalists as true species. Nevertheless,
no certain criterion can possibly be given by which variable forms,
local forms, sub-species, and representative species can be recognised.
Many years ago, when comparing, and seeing others compare, the
birds from the closely neighbouring islands of the Galapagos Archipelago,
one with another, and with those from the American mainland, I was
much struck how entirely vague and arbitrary is the distinction
between species and varieties. On the islets of the little Madeira
group there are many insects which are characterised as varieties
in Mr. Wollaston's admirable work, but which would certainly be
ranked as distinct species by many entomologists. Even Ireland has
a few animals, now generally regarded as varieties, but which have
been ranked as species by some zoologists. Several experienced ornithologists
consider our British red grouse as only a strongly-marked race of
a Norwegian species, whereas the greater number rank it as an undoubted
species peculiar to Great Britain. A wide distance between the homes
of two doubtful forms leads many naturalists to rank them as distinct
species; but what distance, it has been well asked, will suffice;
if that between America and Europe is ample, will that between Europe
and the Azores, or Madeira, or the Canaries, or between the several
islets of these small archipelagos, be sufficient?
Mr. B. D. Walsh, a distinguished entomologist of the United States,
has described what he calls phytophagic varieties and phytophagic
species. Most vegetable-feeding insects live on one kind of plant
or on one group of plants; some feed indiscriminately on many kinds,
but do not in consequence vary. In several cases, however, insects
found living on different plants, have been observed by Mr. Walsh
to present in their larval or mature state, or in both states, slight,
though constant differences in colour, size, or in the nature of
their secretions. In some instances the males alone, in other instances
both males and females, have been observed thus to differ in a slight
degree. When the differences are rather more strongly marked, and
when both sexes and all ages are affected, the forms are ranked
by all entomologists as good species. But no observer can determine
for another, even if he can do so for himself, which of these phytophagic
forms ought to be called species and which varieties. Mr. Walsh
ranks the forms which it may be supposed would freely intercross,
as varieties; and those which appear to have lost this power, as
species. As the differences depend on the insects having long fed
on distinct plants, it cannot be expected that intermediate links
connecting the several forms should now be found. The naturalist
thus loses his best guide in determining whether to rank doubtful
forms as varieties or species. This likewise necessarily occurs
with closely allied organisms, which inhabit distinct continents
or islands. When, on the other hand, an animal or plant ranges over
the same continent, or inhabits many islands in the same archipelago,
and presents different forms in the different areas, there is always
a good chance that intermediate forms will be discovered which will
link together the extreme states, and these are then degraded to
the rank of varieties.
Some few naturalists maintain that animals never present varieties;
but then these same naturalists rank the slightest difference as
of specific value; and when the same identical form is met with
in two distant countries, or in two geological formations, they
believe that two distinct species are hidden under the same dress.
The term species thus comes to be a mere useless abstraction, implying
and assuming a separate act of creation. It is certain that many
forms, considered by highly-competent judges to be varieties, resemble
species so completely in character, that they have been thus ranked
by other highly-competent judges. But to discuss whether they ought
to be called species or varieties, before any definition of these
terms has been generally accepted, is vainly to beat the air.
Many of the cases of strongly-marked varieties or doubtful species
well deserve consideration; for several interesting lines of argument,
from geographical distribution, analogical variation, hybridism,
&c., have been brought to bear in the attempt to determine their
rank; but space does not here permit me to discuss them. Close investigation,
in many cases, will no doubt bring naturalists to agree how to rank
doubtful forms. Yet it must be confessed that it is in the best-known
countries that we find the greatest number of them. I have been
struck with the fact, that if any animal or plant in a state of
nature be highly useful to man, or from any cause closely attracts
his attention, varieties of it will almost universally be found
recorded. These varieties, moreover, will often be ranked by some
authors as species. Look at the common oak, how closely it has been
studied; yet a German author makes more than a dozen species out
of forms, which are almost universally considered by other botanists
to be varieties; and in this country the highest botanical authorities
and practical men can be quoted to show that the sessile and pedunculated
oaks are either good and distinct species or mere varieties.
I may here allude to a remarkable memoir lately published by A.
de Candolle, on the oaks of the whole world. No one ever had more
ample materials for the discrimination of the species, or could
have worked on them with more zeal and sagacity. He first gives
in detail all the many points of structure which vary in the several
species, and estimates numerically the relative frequency of the
variations. He specifies above a dozen characters which may be found
varying even on the same branch, sometimes according to age or development,
sometimes without any assignable reason. Such characters are not
of course of specific value, but they are, as Asa Gray has remarked
in commenting on this memoir, such as generally enter into specific
definitions. De Candolle then goes on to say that he gives the rank
of species to the forms that differ by characters never varying
on the same tree, and never found connected by intermediate states.
After this discussion, the result of so much labour, he emphatically
remarks: "They are mistaken, who repeat that the greater part of
our species are clearly limited, and that the doubtful species are
in a feeble minority. This seemed to be true, so long as a genus
was imperfectly known, and its species were founded upon a few specimens,
that is to say, were provisional. Just as we come to know them better,
intermediate forms flow in, and doubts as to specific limits augment."
He also adds that it is the best known species which present the
greater number of spontaneous varieties and sub-varieties. Thus
Quercus robur has twenty-eight varieties, all of which, excepting
six, are clustered round three sub-species, namely, Q. pedunculata,
sessiliflora, and pubescens. The forms which connect these three
sub-species are comparatively rare; and, as Asa Gray again remarks,
if these connecting forms which are now rare, were to become wholly
extinct, the three sub-species would hold exactly the same relation
to each other, as do the four or five provisionally admitted species
which closely surround the typical Quercus robur. Finally, De Candolle
admits that out of the 300 species, which will be enumerated in
his Prodromus as belonging to the oak family, at least two-thirds
are provisional species, that is, are not known strictly to fulfil
the definition above given of a true species. It should be added
that De Candolle no longer believes that species are immutable creations,
but concludes that the derivative theory is the most natural one,
"and the most accordant with the known facts in palaeontology, geographical
botany and zoology, of anatomical structure and classification."
When a young naturalist commences the study of a group of organisms
quite unknown to him, he is at first much perplexed in determining
what differences to consider as specific, and what as varietal;
for he knows nothing of the amount and kind of variation to which
the group is subject; and this shows, at least, how very generally
there is some variation. But if he confine his attention to one
class within one country, he will soon make up his mind how to rank
most of the doubtful forms. His general tendency will be to make
many species, for he will become impressed, just like the pigeon
or poultry fancier before alluded to, with the amount of difference
in the forms which he is continually studying; and he has little
general knowledge of analogical variation in other groups and in
other countries, by which to correct his first impressions. As he
extends the range of his observations, he will meet with more cases
of difficulty; for he will encounter a greater number of closely-allied
forms. But if his observations be widely extended, he will in the
end generally be able to make up his own mind: but he will succeed
in this at the expense of admitting much variation,- and the truth
of this admission will often be disputed by other naturalists. When
he comes to study allied forms brought from countries not now continuous,
in which case he cannot hope to find intermediate links, he will
be compelled to trust almost entirely to analogy, and his difficulties
will rise to a climax.
Certainly no clear line of demarcation has as yet been drawn between
species and sub-species- that is, the forms which in the opinion
of some naturalists come very near to, but do not quite arrive at,
the rank of species: or, again, between sub-species and well-marked
varieties, or between lesser varieties and individual differences.
These differences blend into each other by an insensible series;
and a series impresses the mind with the idea of an actual passage.
Hence I look at individual differences, though of small interest
to the systematist, as of the highest importance for us, as being
the first steps towards such slight varieties as are barely thought
worth recording in works on natural history. And I look at varieties
which are in any degree more distinct and permanent, as steps towards
more strongly-marked and permanent varieties; and at the latter,
as leading to sub-species, and then to species. The passage from
one stage of difference to another may, in many cases, be the simple
result of the nature of the organism and of the different physical
conditions to which it has long been exposed; but with respect to
the more important and adaptive characters, the passage from one
stage of difference to another may be safely attributed to the cumulative
action of natural selection, hereafter to be explained, and to the
effects of the increased use or disuse of parts. A well-marked variety
may therefore be called an incipient species; but whether this belief
is justifiable must be judged by the weight of the various facts
and considerations to be given throughout this work.
It need not be supposed that all varieties or incipient species
attain the rank of species. They may become extinct, or they may
endure as varieties for very long periods, as has been shown to
be the case by Mr. Wollaston with the varieties of certain fossil
land-shell in Madeira, and with plants by Gaston de Saporta. If
a variety were to flourish so as to exceed in numbers the parent
species, it would then rank as the species, and the species as the
variety; or it might come to supplant and exterminate the parent
species; or both might co-exist, and both rank as independent species.
But we shall hereafter return to this subject.
From these remarks it will be seen that I look at the term species
as one arbitrarily given, for the sake of convenience, to a set
of individuals closely resembling each other, and that it does not
essentially differ from the term variety, which is given to less
distinct and more fluctuating forms. The term variety, again, in
comparison with mere individual differences, is also applied arbitrarily,
for convenience' sake.

Guided by theoretical consideration, I thought that some interesting
results might be obtained in regard to the nature and relations
of the species which vary most, by tabulating all the varieties
in several well-worked floras. At first this seemed a simple task;
but Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I am much indebted for valuable advice
and assistance on this subject, soon convinced me that there were
many difficulties, as did subsequently Dr. Hooker, even in stronger
terms. I shall reserve for a future work the discussion of these
difficulties, and the tables of the proportional numbers of the
varying species. Dr. Hooker permits me to add that after having
carefully read my manuscript, and examined the tables, he thinks
that the following statements are fairly well established. The whole
subject, however, treated as it necessarily here is with much brevity,
is rather perplexing, and allusions cannot be avoided to the "struggle
for existence," "divergence of character," and other questions,
hereafter to be discussed.
Alphonse de Candolle and others have shown that plants which have
very wide ranges generally present varieties; and this might have
been expected, as they are exposed to diverse physical conditions,
and as they come into competition (which, as we shall hereafter
see, is an equally or more important circumstance) with different
sets of organic beings. But my tables further show that, in any
limited country, the species which are the most common, that is
abound most in individuals, and the species which are most widely
diffused within their own country (and this is a different consideration
from wide range, and to a certain extent from commonness), oftenest
give rise to varieties sufficiently well marked to have been recorded
in botanical works. Hence it is the most flourishing, or, as they
may be called, the dominant species,- those which range widely,
are the most diffused in their own country, and are the most numerous
in individuals,- which oftenest produce well-marked varieties, or,
as I consider them, incipient species. And this, perhaps, might
have been anticipated; for as varieties, in order to become in any
degree permanent, necessarily have to struggle with the other inhabitants
of the country, the species which are already dominant will be the
most likely to yield offspring, which, though in some slight degree
modified, still inherit those advantages that enabled their parents
to become dominant over their compatriots. In these remarks on predominance,
it should be understood that reference is made only to the forms
which come into competition with each other, and more especially
to the members of the same genus or class having nearly similar
habits of life. With respect to the number of individuals or commonness
of species, the comparison of course relates only to the members
of the same group. One of the higher plants may be said to be dominant
if it be more numerous in individuals and more widely diffused than
the other plants of the same country, which live under nearly the
same conditions. A plant of this kind is not the less dominant because
some conferva inhabiting the water or some parasitic fungus is infinitely
more numerous in individuals and more widely diffused. But if the
conferva or parasitic fungus exceeds its allies in the above respects,
it will then be dominant within its own class.

If the plants inhabiting a country, as described in any Flora,
be divided into two equal masses, all those in the larger genera
(i.e., those including many species) being placed on one side, and
all those in the smaller genera on the other side, the former will
be found to include a somewhat larger number of the very common
and much diffused or dominant species. This might have been anticipated;
for the mere fact of many species of the same genus inhabiting any
country, shows that there is something in the organic or inorganic
conditions of that country favourable to the genus; and, consequently,
we might have expected to have found in the larger genera or those
including many species, a larger proportional number of dominant
species. But so many causes tend to obscure this result, that I
am surprised that my tables show even a small majority on the side
of the larger genera. I will here allude to only two causes of obscurity.
Fresh-water and salt-loving plants generally have very wide ranges
and are much diffused, but this seems to be connected with the nature
of the stations inhabited by them, and has little or no relation
to the size of the genera to which the species belong. Again, plants
low in the scale of organisation are generally much more widely
diffused than plants higher in the scale; and here again there is
no close relation to the size of the genera. The cause of lowly-organised
plants ranging widely will be discussed in our chapter on Geographical
Distribution.
From looking at species as only strongly marked and well-defined
varieties, I was led to anticipate that the species of the larger
genera in each country would oftener present varieties, than the
species of the smaller genera; for wherever many closely related
species (i.e., species of the same genus) have been formed, many
varieties or incipient species ought, as a general rule, to be now
forming. Where many large trees grow, we expect to find saplings.
Where many species of a genus have been formed through variation,
circumstances have been favourable for variation; and hence we might
expect that the circumstances would generally be still favourable
to variation. On the other hand, if we look at each species as a
special act of creation, there is no apparent reason why more varieties
should occur in a group having many species, than in one having
few.
To test the truth of this anticipation I have arranged the plants
of twelve countries, and the coleopterous insects of two districts,
into two nearly equal masses, the species of the larger genera on
one side, and those of the smaller genera on the other side, and
it has invariably proved to be the case that a larger proportion
of the species on the side of the larger genera presented varieties,
than on the side of the smaller genera. Moreover, the species of
the large genera which present any varieties, invariably present
a larger average number of varieties than do the species of the
small genera. Both these results follow when another division is
made, and when all the least genera, with from only one to four
species, are altogether excluded from the tables. These facts are
of plain signification on the view that species are only strongly-marked
and permanent varieties; for wherever many species of the same genus
have been formed, or where, if we may use the expression, the manufactory
of species has been active, we ought generally to find the manufactory
still in action, more especially as we have every reason to believe
the process of manufacturing new species to be a slow one. And this
certainly holds true, if varieties be looked at as incipient species;
for my tables clearly show as a general rule that, wherever many
species of a genus have been formed, the species of that genus present
a number of varieties, that is of incipient species, beyond the
average. It is not that all large genera are now varying much, and
are thus increasing in the number of their species, or that no small
genera are now varying and increasing; for if this had been so,
it would have been fatal to my theory; inasmuch as geology plainly
tells us that small genera have in the lapse of time often increased
greatly in size; and that large genera have often come to their
maxima, declined, and disappeared. All that we want to show is,
that when many species of a genus have been formed, on an average
many are still forming; and this certainly holds good.
Many of the Species included within the Larger Genera resemble
Varieties in being very closely, but unequally, related to each
other, and in having restricted ranges
There are other relations between the species of large genera and
their recorded varieties which deserve notice. We have seen that
there is no infallible criterion by which to distinguish species
and well-marked varieties; and when intermediate links have not
been found between doubtful forms, naturalists are compelled to
come to a determination by the amount of difference between them,
judging by analogy whether or not the amount suffices to raise one
or both to the rank of species. Hence the amount of difference is
one very important criterion in settling whether two forms should
be ranked as species or varieties. Now Fries has remarked in regard
to plants, and Westwood in regard to insects, that in large genera
the amount of difference between the species is often exceedingly
small. I have endeavoured to test this numerically by averages,
and, as far as my imperfect results go, they confirm the view. I
have also consulted some sagacious and experienced observers, and,
after deliberation, they concur in this view. In this respect, therefore,
the species of the larger genera resemble varieties, more than do
the species of the smaller genera. Or the case may be put in another
way, and it may be said, that in the larger genera, in which a number
of varieties or incipient species greater than the average are now
manufacturing, many of the species already manufactured still to
a certain extent resemble varieties, for they differ from each other
by less than the usual amount of difference.
Moreover, the species of the larger genera are related to each
other, in the same manner as the varieties of any one species are
related to each other. No naturalist pretends that all the species
of a genus are equally distinct from each other; they may generally
be divided into sub-genera, or sections, or lesser groups. As Fries
has well remarked, little groups of species are generally clustered
like satellites around other species. And what are varieties but
groups of forms, unequally related to each other, and clustered
round certain forms- that is, round their parent-species. Undoubtedly
there is one most important point of difference between varieties
and species; namely, that the amount of difference between varieties,
when compared with each other or with their parent-species, is much
less than that between the species of the same genus. But when we
come to discuss the principle, as I call it, of Divergence of Character,
we shall see how this may be explained, and how the lesser differences
between varieties tend to increase into the greater differences
between species.
There is one other point which is worth notice. Varieties generally
have much restricted ranges: this statement is indeed scarcely more
than a truism, for, if a variety were found to have a wider range
than that of its supposed parent-species, their denominations would
be reversed. But there is reason to believe that the species which
are very closely allied to other species, and in so far resemble
varieties, often have much restricted ranges. For instance, Mr.
H. C. Watson has marked for me in the well-sifted London Catalogue
of Plants (4th edition) 63 plants which are therein ranked as species,
but which he considers as so closely allied to other species as
to be of doubtful value: these 63 reputed species range on an average
over 6.9 of the provinces into which Mr. Watson has divided Great
Britain. Now, in this same Catalogue, 53 acknowledged varieties
are recorded, and these range over 7.7 provinces; whereas, the species
to which these varieties belong range over 14.3 provinces. So that
the acknowledged varieties have nearly the same, restricted average
range, as have the closely allied forms, marked for me by Mr. Watson
as doubtful species, but which are almost universally ranked by
British botanists as good and true species.

Finally, varieties cannot be distinguished from species,- except,
first, by the discovery of intermediate linking forms; and, secondly,
by a certain indefinite amount of difference between them; for two
forms, if differing very little, are generally ranked as varieties,
notwithstanding that they cannot be closely connected; but the amount
of difference considered necessary to give to any two forms the
rank of species cannot be defined. In genera having more than the
average number of species in any country, the species of these genera
have more than the average number of varieties. In large genera
the species are apt to be closely, but unequally, allied together,
forming little clusters round other species. Species very closely
allied to other species apparently have restricted ranges. In all
these respects the species of large genera present a strong analogy
with varieties. And we can clearly understand these analogies, if
species once existed as varieties, and thus originated; whereas,
these analogies are utterly inexplicable if species are independent
creations.
We have, also, seen that it is the most flourishing or dominant
species of the larger genera within each class which on an average
yield the greatest number of varieties; and varieties, as we shall
hereafter see, tend to become converted into new and distinct species.
Thus the larger genera tend to become larger; and throughout nature
the forms of life which are now dominant tend to become still more
dominant by leaving many modified and dominant descendants. But
by steps hereafter to be explained, the larger genera also tend
to break u into smaller genera. And thus, the forms of life throughout
the universe become divided into groups subordinate to groups.

BEFORE entering on the subject of this chapter, I must make a few
preliminary remarks, to show how the struggle for existence bears
on Natural Selection. It has been seen in the last chapter that
amongst organic beings in a state of nature there is some individual
variability: indeed I am not aware that this has ever been disputed.
It is immaterial for us whether a multitude of doubtful forms be
called species or sub-species or varieties; what rank, for instance,
the two or three hundred doubtful forms of British plants are entitled
to hold, if the existence of any well-marked varieties be admitted.
But the mere existence of individual variability and of some few
well-marked varieties, though necessary as the foundation for the
work, helps us but little in understanding how species arise in
nature. How have all those exquisite adaptations of one part of
the organisation to another part, and to the conditions of life,
and of one organic being to another being, been perfected? We see
these beautiful co-adaptations most plainly in the woodpecker and
the mistletoe; and only a little less plainly in the humblest parasite
which clings to the hairs of a quadruped or feathers of a bird;
in the structure of the beetle which dives through the water; in
the plumed seed which is wafted by the gentlest breeze; in short,
we see beautiful adaptations everywhere and in every part of the
organic world.
Again, it may be asked, how is it that varieties, which I have
called incipient species, become ultimately converted into good
and distinct species which in most cases obviously differ from each
other far more than do the varieties of the same species? How do
those groups of species, which constitute what are called distinct
genera, and which differ from each other more than do the species
of the same genus, arise? All these results, as we shall more fully
see in the next chapter, follow from the struggle for life. Owing
to this struggle, variations, however slight and from whatever cause
proceeding, if they be in any degree profitable to the individuals
of a species, in their infinitely complex relations to other organic
beings and to their physical conditions of life, will tend to the
preservation of such individuals, and will generally be inherited
by the offspring. The offspring, also, will thus have a better chance
of surviving, for, of the many individuals of any species which
are periodically born, but a small number can survive. I have called
this principle, by which each slight variation, if useful, is preserved,
by the term Natural Selection, in order to mark its relation to
man's power of selection. But the expression often used by Mr. Herbert
Spencer of the Survival of the Fittest is more accurate, and is
sometimes equally convenient. We have seen that man by selection
can certainly produce great results, and can adapt organic beings
to his own uses, through the accumulation of slight but useful variations,
given to him by the hand of Nature. But Natural Selection, as we
shall hereafter see, is a power incessantly ready for action, and
is as immeasurably superior to man's feeble efforts, as the works
of Nature are to those of Art.
We will now discuss in a little more detail the struggle for existence.
In my future work this subject will be treated, as it well deserves,
at greater length. The elder De Candolle and Lyell have largely
and philosophically shown that all organic beings are exposed to
severe competition. In regard to plants, no one has treated this
subject with more spirit and ability than W. Herbert, Dean of Manchester,
evidently the result of his great horticultural knowledge. Nothing
is easier than to admit in words the truth of the universal struggle
for life, or more difficult- at least I have found it so- than constantly
to bear this conclusion in mind. Yet unless it be thoroughly engrained
in the mind, the whole economy of nature, with every fact on distribution,
rarity, abundance, extinction, and variation, will be dimly seen
or quite misunderstood. We behold the face of nature bright with
gladness, we often see superabundance of food; we do not see or
we forget, that the birds which are idly singing round us mostly
live on insects or seeds, and are thus constantly destroying life;
or we forget how largely these songsters, or their eggs, or their
nestlings, are destroyed by birds and beasts of prey; we do not
always bear in mind, that, though food may be now superabundant,
it is not so at all seasons of each recurring year.

I should premise that I use this term in a large and metaphorical
sense including dependence of one being on another, and including
(which is more important) not only the life of the individual, but
success in leaving progeny. Two canine animals, in a time of dearth
may be truly said to struggle with each other which shall get food
and live. But a plant on the edge of a desert is said to struggle
for life against the drought, though more properly it should be
said to be dependent on the moisture. A plant which annually produces
a thousand seeds, of which only one of an average comes to maturity,
may be more truly said to struggle with the plants of the same and
other kinds which already clothe the ground. The mistletoe is dependent
on the apple and a few other trees, but can only in a far-fetched
sense be said to struggle with these trees, for, if too many of
these parasites grow on the same tree, it languishes and dies. But
several seedling mistletoes, growing close together on the same
branch, may more truly be said to struggle with each other. As the
mistletoe is disseminated by birds, its existence depends on them;
and it may methodically be said to struggle with other fruit-bearing
plants, in tempting the birds to devour and thus disseminate its
seeds. In these several senses, which pass into each other, I use
for convenience' sake the general term of Struggle for Existence.

A struggle for existence inevitably follows from the high rate
at which all organic beings tend to increase. Every being, which
during its natural lifetime produces several eggs or seeds, must
suffer destruction during some period of its life, and during some
season or occasional year, otherwise, on the principle of geometrical
increase, its numbers would quickly become so inordinately great
that no country could support the product. Hence, as more individuals
are produced than can possibly survive, there must in every case
be a struggle for existence, either one individual with another
of the same species, or with the individuals of distinct species,
or with the physical conditions of life. It is the doctrine of Malthus
applied with manifold force to the whole animal and vegetable kingdoms;
for in this case there can be no artificial increase of food, and
no prudential restraint from marriage. Although some species may
be now increasing, more or less rapidly, in numbers, all cannot
do so, for the world would not hold them.
There is no exception to the rule that every organic being naturally
increases at so high a rate, that, if not destroyed, the earth would
soon be covered by the progeny of a single pair. Even slow-breeding
man has doubled in twenty-five years, and at this rate, in less
than a thousand years, there would literally not be standing-room
for his progeny. Linnaeus has calculated that if an annual plant
produced only two seeds- and there is no plant so unproductive as
this- and their seedlings next year produced two, and so on, then
in twenty years there should be a million plants. The elephant is
reckoned the slowest breeder of all known animals, and I have taken
some pains to estimate its probable minimum rate of natural increase;
it will be safest to assume that it begins breeding when thirty
years old, and goes on breeding till ninety years old, bringing
forth six young in the interval, and surviving till one hundred
years old; if this be so, after a period of from 740 to 750 years
there would be nearly nineteen million elephants alive, descended
from the first pair.
But we have better evidence on this subject than mere theoretical
calculations, namely, the numerous recorded cases of the astonishingly
rapid increase of various animals in a state of nature, when circumstances
have been favourable to them during two or three following seasons.
Still more striking is the evidence from our domestic animals of
many kinds which have run wild in several parts of the world; if
the statements of the rate of increase of slow-breeding cattle and
horses in South America, and latterly in Australia, had not been
well authenticated, they would have been incredible. So it is with
plants; cases could be given of introduced plants which have become
common throughout whole islands in a period of less than ten years.
Several of the plants, such as the cardoon and a tall thistle, which
are now the commonest over the whole plains of La Plata, clothing
square leagues of surface almost to the exclusion of every other
plant, have been introduced from Europe; and there are plants which
now range in India, as I hear from Dr. Falconer, from Cape Comorin
to the Himalaya, which have been imported from America since its
discovery. In such cases, and endless others could be given, no
one supposes that the fertility of the animals or plants has been
suddenly and temporarily increased in any sensible degree. The obvious
explanation is that the conditions of life have been highly favourable,
and that there has consequently been less destruction of the old
and young, and that nearly all the young have been enabled to breed.
Their geometrical ratio of increase, the result of which never fails
to be surprising, simply explains their extraordinarily rapid increase
and wide diffusion in their new homes.
In a state of nature almost every full-grown plant annually produces
seed, and amongst animals there are very few which do not annually
pair. Hence we may confidently assert, that all plants and animals
are tending to increase at a geometrical ratio,- that all would
rapidly stock every station in which they could anyhow exist,- and
that this geometrical tendency to increase must. be checked by destruction
at some period of life. Our familiarity with the larger domestic
animals tends, I think, to mislead us: we see no great destruction
falling on them, but we do not keep in mind that thousands are annually
slaughtered for food, and that in a state of nature an equal number
would have somehow to be disposed of.
The only difference between organisms which annually produce eggs
or seeds by the thousand, and those which produce extremely few,
is, that the slow-breeders would require a few more years to people,
under favourable conditions, a whole district, let it be ever so
large. The condor lays a couple of eggs and the ostrich a score,
and yet in the same country the condor may be the more numerous
of the two; the Fulmar petrel lays but one egg, yet it is believed
to be the most numerous bird in the world. One fly deposits hundreds
of eggs, and another, like the hippobosca, a single one; but this
difference does not determine how many individuals of the two species
can be supported in a district. A large number of eggs is of some
importance to those species which depend on a fluctuating amount
of food, for it allows them rapidly to increase in number. But the
real importance of a large number of eggs or seeds is to make up
for much destruction at some period of life; and this period in
the great majority of cases is an early one. If an animal can in
any way protect its own eggs or young, a small number may be produced,
and yet the average stock be fully kept up; but if many eggs or
young are destroyed, many must be produced, or the species will
become extinct. It would suffice to keep up the full number of a
tree, which lived on an average for a thousand years, if a single
seed were produced once in a thousand years, supposing that this
seed were never destroyed, and could be ensured to germinate in
a fitting place. So that, in all cases, the average number of any
animal or plant depends only indirectly on the number of its eggs
or seeds.
In looking at Nature, it is most necessary to keep the foregoing
considerations always in mind- never to forget that every single
organic being may be said to be striving to the utmost to increase
in numbers; that each lives by a struggle at some period of its
life; that heavy destruction inevitably falls either on the young
or old, during each generation or at recurrent intervals. Lighten
any cheek, mitigate the destruction ever so little, and the number
of the species will almost instantaneously increase to any amount.

The causes which cheek the natural tendency of each species to
increase are most obscure. Look at the most vigorous species; by
as much as it swarms in numbers, by so much will it tend to increase
still further. We know not exactly what the checks are even in a
single instance. Nor will this surprise any one who reflects how
ignorant we are on this head, even in regard to mankind, although
so incomparably better known than any other animal. This subject
of the checks to increase has been ably treated by several authors,
and I hope in a future work to discuss it at considerable length,
more especially in regard to the feral animals of South America.
Here I will make only a few remarks, just to recall to the reader's
mind some of the chief points. Eggs or very young animals seem generally
to suffer most, but this is not invariably the case. With plants
there is a vast destruction of seeds, but, from some observations
which I have made, it appears that the seedlings suffer most from
germinating in ground already thickly stocked with other plants.
Seedlings, also, are destroyed in vast numbers by various enemies;
for instance, on a piece of ground three feet long and two wide,
dug and cleared, and where there could be no choking from other
plants, I marked all the seedlings of our native weeds as they came
up, and out of 357 no less than 295 were destroyed, chiefly by slugs
and insects. If turf which has long been mown, and the case would
be the same with turf closely browsed by quadrupeds, be let to grow,
the more vigorous plants gradually kill the less vigorous, though
fully grown plants; thus out of twenty species growing on a little
plot of mown turf (three feet by four) nine species perished, from
the other species being allowed to grow up freely.
The amount of food for each species of course gives the extreme
limit to which each can increase; but very frequently it is not
the obtaining food, but the serving as prey to other animals, which
determines the average numbers of a species. Thus, there seems to
be little doubt that the stock of partridges, grouse, and hares
on any large estate depends chiefly on the destruction of vermin.
If not one head of game were shot during the next twenty years in
England, and, at the same time, if no vermin were destroyed, there
would, in all probability, be less game than at present, although
hundreds of thousands of game animals are now annually shot. On
the other hand, in some cases, as with the elephant, none are destroyed
by beasts of prey; for even the tiger in India most rarely dares
to attack a young elephant protected by its dam.
Climate plays an important part in determining the average number
of a species, and periodical seasons of extreme cold or drought
seem to be the most effective of all checks. I estimated (chiefly
from the greatly reduced numbers of nests in the spring) that the
winter of 1854-5 destroyed four-fifths of the birds in my own grounds;
and this is a tremendous destruction, when we remember that ten
per cent is an extraordinarily severe mortality from epidemics with
man. The action of climate seems at first sight to be quite independent
of the struggle for existence; but in so far as climate chiefly
acts in reducing food, it brings on the most severe struggle between
the individuals, whether of the same or of distinct species, which
subsist on the same kind of food. Even when climate, for instance,
extreme cold, acts directly, it will be the least vigorous individuals,
or those which have got least food through the advancing winter,
which will suffer most. When we travel from south to north, or from
a damp region to a dry, we invariably see some species gradually
getting rarer and rarer, and finally disappearing; and the change
of climate being conspicuous, we are tempted to attribute the whole
effect to its direct action. But this is a false view; we forget
that each species, even where it most abounds, is constantly suffering
enormous destruction at some period of its life, from enemies or
from competitors for the same place and food; and if these enemies
or competitors be in the least degree favoured by any slight change
of climate, they will increase in numbers; and as each area is already
fully stocked with inhabitants, the other species must decrease.
When we travel southward and see a species decreasing in numbers,
we may feel sure that the cause lies quite as much in other species
being favoured, as in this one being hurt. So it is when we travel
northward, but in a somewhat lesser degree, for the number of species
of all kinds, and therefore of competitors, decreases northwards;
hence in going northwards, or in ascending a mountain, we far oftener
meet with stunted forms, due to the directly injurious action of
climate, than we do in proceeding southwards or in descending a
mountain. When we reach the arctic regions, or snowcapped summits,
or absolute deserts, the struggle for life is almost exclusively
with the elements.
That climate acts in main part indirectly by favouring other species,
we clearly see in the prodigious number of plants which in our gardens
can perfectly well endure our climate, but which never become naturalised,
for they cannot compete with our native plants nor resist destruction
by our native animals.
When a species, owing to highly favourable circumstances, increases
inordinately in numbers in a small tract, epidemics- at least, this
seems generally to occur with our game animals- often ensue; and
here we have a limiting check independent of the struggle for life.
But even some of these so-called epidemics appear to be due to parasitic
worms, which have from some cause, possibly in part through facility
of diffusion amongst the crowded animals, been disproportionally
favoured: and here comes in a sort of struggle between the parasite
and its prey.
On the other hand, in many cases, a large stock of individuals
of the same species, relatively to the numbers of its enemies, is
absolutely necessary for its preservation. Thus we can easily raise
plenty of corn and rape-seed, &c., in our fields, because the
seeds are in great excess compared with the number of birds which
feed on them; nor can the birds, though having a super-abundance
of food at this one season, increase in number proportionally to
the supply of seed, as their numbers are checked during the winter;
but any one who has tried, knows how troublesome it is to get seed
from a few wheat or other such plants in a garden: I have in this
case lost every single seed. This view of the necessity of a large
stock of the same species for its preservation, explains, I believe,
some singular facts in nature, such as that of very rare plants
being sometimes extremely abundant, in the few spots where they
do exist; and that of some social plants being social, that is abounding
in individuals, even on the extreme verge of their range. For in
such cases, we may believe, that a plant could exist only where
the conditions of its life were so favourable that many could exist
together, and thus save the species from utter destruction. I should
add that the good effects of intercrossing, and the ill effects
of close interbreeding, no doubt come into play in many of these
cases; but I will not here enlarge on this subject.

Many cases are on record showing how complex and unexpected are
the checks and relations between organic beings, which have to struggle
together in the same country. I will give only a single instance,
which, though a simple one, interested me. In Staffordshire, on
the estate of a relation, where I had ample means of investigation,
there was a large and extremely barren heath, which had never been
touched by the hand of man; but several hundred acres of exactly
the same nature had been enclosed twenty-five years previously and
planted with Scotch fir. The change in the native vegetation of
the planted part of the heath was most remarkable, more than is
generally seen in passing from one quite different soil to another:
not only the proportional numbers of the heath-plants were wholly
changed, but twelve species of plants (not counting grasses and
carices) flourished in the plantations, which could not be found
on the heath. The effect on the insects must have been still greater,
for six insectivorous birds were very common in the plantations,
which were not to be seen on the heath; and the heath was frequented
by two or three distinct insectivorous birds. Here we see how potent
has been the effect of the introduction of a single tree, nothing
whatever else having been done, with the exception of the land having
been enclosed, so that cattle could not enter. But how important
an element enclosure is, I plainly saw near Farnham, in Surrey.
Here there are extensive heaths, with a few clumps of old Scotch
firs on the distant hilltops: within the last ten years large spaces
have been enclosed, and self-sown firs are now springing up in multitudes,
so close together that all cannot live. When I ascertained that
these young trees had not been sown or planted, I was so much surprised
at their numbers that I went to several points of view, whence I
could examine hundreds of acres of the unenclosed heath, and literally
I could not see a single Scotch fir, except the old planted clumps.
But on looking closely between the stems of the heath, I found a
multitude of seedlings and little trees which had been perpetually
browsed down by the cattle. In one square yard, at a point some
hundred yards distant from one of the old clumps, I counted thirty-two
little trees; and one of them, with twenty-six rings of growth,
had, during many years, tried to raise its head above the stems
of the heath, and had failed. No wonder that, as soon as the land
was enclosed, it became thickly clothed with vigorously growing
young firs. Yet the heath was so extremely barren and so extensive
that no one would ever have imagined that cattle would have so closely
and effectually searched it for food.
Here we see that cattle absolutely determine the existence of the
Scotch fir; but in several parts of the world insects determine
the existence of cattle. Perhaps Paraguay offers the most curious
instance of this; for here neither cattle nor horses nor dogs have
ever run wild, though they swarm southward and northward in a feral
state; and Azara and Rengger have shown that this is caused by the
greater number in Paraguay of a certain fly, which lays its eggs
in the navels of these animals when first born. The increase of
these flies, numerous as they are, must be habitually checked by
some means, probably by other parasitic insects. Hence, if certain
insectivorous birds were to decrease in Paraguay, the parasitic
insects would probably increase; and this would lessen the number
of the navel-frequenting flies- then cattle and horses would become
feral, and this would certainly greatly alter (as indeed I have
observed in parts of South America) the vegetation: this again would
largely affect the insects; and this, as we have just seen in Staffordshire,
the insectivorous birds, and so onwards in ever-increasing circles
of complexity. Not that under nature the relations will ever be
as simple as this. Battle within battle must be continually recurring
with varying success; and yet in the long run the forces are so
nicely balanced, that the face of nature remains for long periods
of time uniform, though assuredly the merest trifle would give the
victory to one organic being over another. Nevertheless, so profound
is our ignorance, and so high our presumption, that we marvel when
we hear of the extinction of an organic being; and as we do not
see the cause, we invoke cataclysms to desolate the world, or invent
laws on the duration of the forms of life!
I am tempted to give one more instance showing how plants and animals
remote in the scale of nature, are bound together by a web of complex
relations. I shall hereafter have occasion to show that the exotic
Lobelia fulgens is never visited in my garden by insects, and consequently,
from its peculiar structure, never sets a seed. Nearly all our orchidaceous
plants absolutely require the visits of insects to remove their
pollen-masses and thus to fertilise them. I find from experiments
that humble-bees are almost indispensable to the fertilisation of
the heartsease (Viola tricolor), for other bees do not visit this
flower. I have also found that the visits of bees are necessary
for the fertilisation of some kinds of clover; for instance, 90
heads of Dutch clover (Trifolium repens) yielded 2,290 seeds, but
20 other heads protected from bees produced not one. Again, 100
heads of red clover (T. pratense) produced 2,700 seeds, but the
same number of protected heads produced not a single seed. Humble-bees
alone visit red clover, as other bees cannot reach the nectar. It
has been suggested that moths may fertilise the clovers; but I doubt
whether they could do so in the case of the red clover, from their
weight not being sufficient to depress the wing petals. Hence we
may infer as highly probable that, if the whole genus of humble-bees
became extinct or very rare in England, the heartsease and red clover
would become very rare, or wholly disappear. The number of humble-bees
in any district depends in a great measure upon the number of field-mice,
which destroy their combs and nests; and Col. Newman, who has long
attended to the habits of humble-bees, believes that "more than
two-thirds of them are thus destroyed all over England." Now the
number of mice is largely dependent, as every one knows, on the
number of cats; and Col. Newman says, "Near villages and small towns
I have found the nests of humble-bees more numerous than elsewhere,
which I attribute to the number of cats that destroy the mice."
Hence it is quite credible that the presence of a feline animal
in large numbers in a district might determine, through the intervention
first of mice and then of bees, the frequency of certain flowers
in that district!
In the case of every species, many different checks, acting at
different periods of life, and during different seasons or years,
probably come into play; some one check or some few being generally
the most potent; but all will concur in determining the average
number or even the existence of the species. In some cases it can
be shown that widely-different checks act on the same species in
different districts. When we look at the plants and bushes clothing
an entangled bank, we are tempted to attribute their proportional
numbers and kinds to what we call chance. But how false a view is
this! Every one has heard that when an American forest is cut down
a very different vegetation springs up; but it has been observed
that ancient Indian ruins in the southern United States, which must
formerly have been cleared of trees, now display the same beautiful
diversity and proportion of kinds as in the surrounding virgin forest.
What a struggle must have gone on during long centuries between
the several kinds of trees each annually scattering its seeds by
the thousand; what war between insect and insect- between insects,
snails, and other animals with birds and beasts of prey- all striving
to increase, all feeding on each other, or on the trees, their seeds
and seedlings, or on the other plants which first clothed the ground
and thus checked the growth of the trees! Throw up a handful of
feathers, and all fall to the ground according to definite laws;
but how simple is the problem where each shall fall compared to
that of the action and reaction of the innumerable plants and animals
which have determined, in the course of centuries, the proportional
numbers and kinds of trees now growing on the old Indian ruins!
The dependency of one organic being on another, as of a parasite
on its prey, lies generally between beings remote in the scale of
nature. This is likewise sometimes the case with those which may
be strictly said to struggle with each other for existence, as in
the case of locusts and grass-feeding quadrupeds. But the struggle
will almost invariably be most severe between the individuals of
the same species, for they frequent the same districts, require
the same food, and are exposed to the same dangers. In the case
of varieties of the same species, the struggle will generally be
almost equally severe, and we sometimes see the contest soon decided:
for instance, if several varieties of wheat be sown together, and
the mixed seed be resown, some of the varieties which best suit
the soil or climate, or are naturally the most fertile, will beat
the others and so yield more seed, and will consequently in a few
years supplant the other varieties. To keep up a mixed stock of
even such extremely close varieties as the variously-coloured sweet
peas, they must be each year harvested separately, and the seed
then mixed in due proportion, otherwise the weaker kinds will steadily
decrease in number and disappear. So again with the varieties of
sheep; it has been asserted that certain mountain-varieties will
starve out other mountain-varieties, so that they cannot be kept
together. The same result has followed from keeping together different
varieties of the medicinal leech. It may even be doubted whether
the varieties of any of our domestic plants or animals have so exactly
the same strength, habits, and constitution, that the original proportions
of a mixed stock (crossing being prevented) could be kept up for
half-a-dozen generations, if they were allowed to struggle together,
in the same manner as beings in a state of nature, and if the seed
or young were not annually preserved in due proportion.

As the species of the same genus usually have, though by no means
invariably, much similarity in habits and constitution, and always
in structure, the struggle will generally be more severe between
them, if they come into competition with each other, than between
the species of distinct genera. We see this in the recent extension
over parts of the United States of one species of swallow having
caused the decrease of another species. The recent increase of the
missel-thrush in parts of Scotland has caused the decrease of the
song-thrush. How frequently we hear of one species of rat taking
the place of another species under the most different climates!
In Russia the small Asiatic cockroach has everywhere driven before
it its great congener. In Australia the imported hive-bee is rapidly
exterminating the small, stingless native bee. One species of charlock
has been known to supplant another species; and so in other cases.
We can dimly see why the competition should be most severe between
allied forms, which fill nearly the same place in the economy of
nature; but probably in no one case could we precisely say why one
species has been victorious over another in the great battle of
life.
A corollary of the highest importance may be deduced from the foregoing
remarks, namely, that the structure of every organic being is related,
in the most essential yet often hidden manner, to that of all the
other organic beings, with which it comes into competition for food
or residence, or from which it has to escape, or on which it preys.
This is obvious in the structure of the teeth and talons of the
tiger; and in that of the legs and claws of the parasite which clings
to the hair on the tiger's body. But in the beautifully plumed seed
of the dandelion, and in the flattened and fringed legs of the water-beetle,
the relation seems at first confined to the elements of air and
water. Yet the advantage of plumed seeds no doubt stands in the
closest relation to the land being already thickly clothed with
other plants; so that the seeds may be widely distributed and fall
on unoccupied ground. In the water-beetle, the structure of its
legs, so well adapted for diving, allows it to compete with other
aquatic insects, to hunt for its own prey, and to escape serving
as prey to other animals.
The store of nutriment laid up within the seeds of many plants
seems at first to have no sort of relation to other plants. But
from the strong growth of young plants produced from such seeds,
as peas and beans, when sown in the midst of long grass, it may
be suspected that the chief use of the nutriment in the seed is
to favour the growth of the seedlings, whilst struggling with other
plants growing vigorously all around.
Look at a plant in the midst of its range, why does it not double
or quadruple its numbers? We know that it can perfectly well withstand
a little more heat or cold, dampness or dryness, for elsewhere it
ranges into slightly hotter or colder, damper or drier districts.
In this case we can clearly see that if we wish in imagination to
give the plant the power of increasing in number, we should have
to give it some advantage over its competitors, or over the animals
which prey on it. On the confines of its geographical range, a change
of constitution with respect to climate would clearly be an advantage
to our plant; but we have reason to believe that only a few plants
or animals range so far, that they are destroyed exclusively by
the rigour of the climate. Not until we reach the extreme confines
of life, in the Arctic regions or on the borders of an utter desert,
will competition cease. The land may be extremely cold or dry, yet
there will be competition between some few species, or between the
individuals of the same species, for the warmest or dampest spots.
Hence we can see that when a plant or animal is placed in a new
country amongst new competitors, the conditions of its life will
generally be changed in an essential manner, although the climate
may be exactly the same as in its former home. If its average numbers
are to increase in its new home, we should have to modify it in
a different way to what we should have had to do in its native country;
for we should have to give it some advantage over a different set
of competitors or enemies.
It is good thus to try in imagination to give to any one species
an advantage over another. Probably in no single instance should
we know what to do. This ought to convince us of our ignorance on
the mutual relations of all organic beings; a conviction as necessary
as it is difficult to acquire. All that we can do, is to keep steadily
in mind that each organic being is striving to increase in a geometrical
ratio; that each at some period of its life, during some season
of the year, during each generation or at intervals, has to struggle
for life and to suffer great destruction. When we reflect on this
struggle, we may console ourselves with the full belief, that the
war of nature is not incessant, that no fear is felt, that death
is generally prompt, and that the vigorous, the healthy, and the
happy survive and multiply.

How will the struggle for existence, briefly discussed in the last
chapter, act in regard to variation? Can the principle of selection,
which we have seen is so potent in the hands of man, apply under
nature? I think we shall see that it can act most efficiently. Let
the endless number of slight variations and individual differences
occurring in our domestic productions, and, in a lesser degree,
in those under nature, be borne in mind; as well as the strength
of the hereditary tendency. Under domestication, it may be truly
said that the whole organisation becomes in some degree plastic.
But the variability, which we almost universally meet with in our
domestic productions, is not directly produced, as Hooker and Asa
Gray have well remarked, by man; he can neither originate varieties,
nor prevent their occurrence; he can preserve and accumulate such
as do occur. Unintentionally he exposes organic beings to new and
changing conditions of life, and variability ensues; but similar
changes of conditions might and do occur under nature. Let it also
be borne in mind how infinitely complex and close-fitting are the
mutual relations of all organic beings to each other and to their
physical conditions of life; and consequently what infinitely varied
diversities of structure might be of use to each being under changing
conditions of life. Can it, then, be thought improbable, seeing
that variations useful to man have undoubtedly occurred, that other
variations useful in some way to each being in the great and complex
battle of life, should occur in the course of many successive generations?
If such do occur, can we doubt (remembering that many more individuals
are born than can possibly survive) that individuals having any
advantage, however slight, over others, would have the best chance
of surviving and of procreating their kind? On the other hand, we
may feel sure that any variation in the least degree injurious would
be rigidly destroyed. This preservation of favourable individual
differences and variations, and the destruction of those which are
injurious, I have called Natural Selection, or the Survival of the
Fittest. Variations neither useful nor injurious would not be affected
by natural selection, and would be left either a fluctuating element,
as perhaps we see in certain polymorphic species, or would ultimately
become fixed, owing to the nature of the organism and the nature
of the conditions.
Several writers have misapprehended or objected to the term Natural
Selection. Some have even imagined that natural selection induces
variability, whereas it implies only the preservation of such variations
as arise and are beneficial to the being under its conditions of
life. No one objects to agriculturists speaking of the potent effects
of man's selection; and in this case the individual differences
given by nature, which man for some object selects, must of necessity
first occur. Others have objected that the term selection implies
conscious choice in the animals which become modified; and it has
even been urged that, as plants have no volition, natural selection
is not applicable to them! In the literal sense of the word, no
doubt, natural selection is a false term; but who ever objected
to chemists speaking of the elective affinities of the various elements?-
and yet an acid cannot strictly be said to elect the base with which
it in preference combines. It has been said that I speak of natural
selection as an active power or Deity; but who objects to an author
speaking of the attraction of gravity as ruling the movements of
the planets? Every one knows what is meant and is implied by such
metaphorical expressions; and they are almost necessary for brevity.
So again it is difficult to avoid personifying the word Nature;
but I mean by Nature, only the aggregate action and product of many
natural laws, and by laws the sequence of events as ascertained
by us. With a little familiarity such superficial objections will
be forgotten.
We shall best understand the probable course of natural selection
by taking the case of a country undergoing some slight physical
change, for instance, of climate. The proportional numbers of its
inhabitants will almost immediately undergo a change, and some species
will probably become extinct. We may conclude, from what we have
seen of the intimate and complex manner in which the inhabitants
of each country are bound together, that any change in the numerical
proportions of the inhabitants, independently of the change of climate
itself, would seriously affect the others. If the country were open
on its borders, new forms would certainly immigrate, and this would
likewise seriously disturb the relations of some of the former inhabitants.
let it be remembered how powerful the influence of a single introduced
tree or mammal has been shown to be. But in the case of an island,
or of a country partly surrounded by barriers, into which new and
better adapted forms could not freely enter, we should then have
places in the economy of nature which would assuredly be better
filled up, if some of the original inhabitants were in some manner
modified; for, had the area been open to immigration, these same
places would have been seized on by intruders. In such cases, slight
modifications, which in any way favoured the individuals of any
species, by better adapting them to their altered conditions, would
tend to be preserved; and natural selection would have free scope
for the work of improvement.
We have good reason to believe, as shown in the first chapter,
that changes in the conditions of life give a tendency to increased
variability; and in the foregoing cases the conditions have changed,
and this would manifestly be favourable to natural selection, by
affording a better chance of the occurrence of profitable variations.
Unless such occur, natural selection can do nothing. Under the term
of "variations," it must never be forgotten that mere individual
differences are included. As man can produce a great result with
his domestic animals and plants by adding up in any given direction
individual differences, so could natural selection, but far more
easily from having incomparably longer time for action. Nor do I
believe that any great physical change, as of climate, or any unusual
degree of isolation to check immigration, is necessary in order
that new and unoccupied places should be left, for natural selection
to fill up by improving some of the varying inhabitants. For as
all the inhabitants of each country are struggling together with
nicely balanced forces, extremely slight modifications in the structure
or habits of one species would often give it an advantage over others;
and still further modifications of the same kind would often still
further increase the advantage, as long as the species continued
under the same conditions of life and profited by similar means
of subsistence and defence. No country can be named in which all
the native inhabitants are now so perfectly adapted to each other
and to the physical conditions under which they live, that none
of them could be still better adapted or improved; for in all countries,
the natives have been so far conquered by naturalised productions,
that they have allowed some foreigners to take firm possession of
the land. And as foreigners have thus in every country beaten some
of the natives, we may safely conclude that the natives might have
been modified with advantage, so as to have better resisted the
intruders.
As man can produce, and certainly has produced, a great result
by his methodical and unconscious means of selection, what may not
natural selection effect? Man can act only on external and visible
characters: Nature, if I may be allowed to personify the natural
preservation or survival of the fittest, cares nothing for appearances,
except in so far as they are useful to any being. She can act on
every internal organ, on every shade of constitutional difference,
on the whole machinery of life. Man selects only for his own good:
Nature only for that of the being which she tends. Every selected
character is fully exercised by her, as is implied by the fact of
their selection. Man keeps the natives of many climates in the same
country; he seldom exercises each selected character in some peculiar
and fitting manner; he feeds a long and a short beaked pigeon on
the same food; he does not exercise a long-backed or long-legged
quadruped in any peculiar manner; he exposes sheep with long and
short wool to the same climate. He does not allow the most vigorous
males to struggle for the females. He does not rigidly destroy all
inferior animals, but protects during each varying season, as far
as lies in his power, all his productions. He often begins his selection
by some half-monstrous form; or at least by some modification prominent
enough to catch the eye or to be plainly useful to him. Under nature,
the slightest differences of structure or constitution may well
turn the nicely balanced scale in the struggle for life, and so
be preserved. How fleeting are the wishes and efforts of man! how
short his time! and consequently how poor will be his results, compared
with those accumulated by Nature during whole geological periods!
Can we wonder, then, that Nature's productions should be far "truer"
in character than man's productions; that they should be infinitely
better adapted to the most complex conditions of life, and should
plainly bear the stamp of far higher workmanship?
It may metaphorically be said that natural selection is daily and
hourly scrutinising, throughout the world, the slightest variations;
rejecting those that are bad, preserving and adding up all that
are good; silently and insensibly working, whenever and wherever
opportunity offers, at the improvement of each organic being in
relation to its organic and inorganic conditions of life. We see
nothing of these slow changes in progress, until the hand of time
has marked the lapse of ages, and then so imperfect is our view
into long-past geological ages, that we see only that the forms
of life are now different from what they formerly were.
In order that any great amount of modification should be effected
in a species, a variety when once formed must again, perhaps after
a long interval of time, vary or present individual differences
of the same favourable nature as before; and these must be again
preserved, and so onwards step by step. Seeing that individual differences
of the same kind perpetually recur, this can hardly be considered
as an unwarrantable assumption. But whether it is true, we can judge
only by seeing how far the hypothesis accords with and explains
the general phenomena of nature. On the other hand, the ordinary
belief that the amount of possible variation is a strictly limited
quantity is likewise a simple assumption.
Although natural selection can act only through and for the good
of each being, yet characters and structures, which we are apt to
consider as of very trifling importance, may thus be acted on. When
we see leaf-eating insects green, and bark-feeders mottled-grey;
the alpine ptarmigan white in winter, the red grouse the colour
of heather, we must believe that these tints are of service to these
birds and insects in preserving them from danger. Grouse, if not
destroyed at some period of their lives, would increase in countless
numbers; they are known to suffer largely from birds of prey; and
hawks are guided by eyesight to their prey- so much so, that on
parts of the Continent persons are warned not to keep white pigeons,
as being the most liable to destruction. Hence natural selection
might be effective in giving the proper colour to each kind of grouse,
and in keeping that colour, when once acquired, true and constant.
Nor ought we to think that the occasional destruction of an animal
of any particular colour would produce little effect: we should
remember how essential it is in a flock of white sheep to destroy
a lamb with the faintest trace of black. We have seen how the colour
of the hogs, which feed on the "paint-root" in Virginia, determines
whether they shall live or die. In plants, the down on the fruit
and the colour of the flesh are considered by botanists as characters
of the most trifling importance: yet we hear from an excellent horticulturist,
Downing, that in the United States, smooth-skinned fruits suffer
far more from a beetle, a Curculio, than those with down; that purple
plums suffer far more from a certain disease than yellow plums;
whereas another disease attacks yellow-fleshed peaches far more
than those with other coloured flesh. If, with all the aids of art,
these slight differences make a great difference in cultivating
the several varieties, assuredly, in a state of nature, where the
trees would have to struggle with other trees, and with a host of
enemies, such differences would effectually settle which variety,
whether a smooth or downy, a yellow or purple fleshed fruit, should
succeed.
In looking at many small points of difference between species,
which, as far as our ignorance permits us to judge, seem quite unimportant,
we must not forget that climate, food, &c., have no doubt produced
some direct effect. It is also necessary to bear in mind that, owing
to the law of correlation, when one part varies, and the variations
are accumulated through natural selection, other modifications,
often of the most unexpected nature, will ensue.
As we see that those variations which, under domestication, appear
at any particular period of life, tend to reappear in the offspring
at the same period;- for instance, in the shape, size, and flavour
of the seeds of the many varieties of our culinary and agricultural
plants; in the caterpillar and cocoon stages of the varieties of
the silk-worm; in the eggs of poultry, and in the colour of the
down of their chickens; in the horns of our sheep and cattle when
nearly adult;- so in a state of nature natural selection will be
enabled to act on and modify organic beings at any age, by the accumulation
of variations profitable at that age, and by their inheritance at
a corresponding age. If it profit a plant to have its seeds more
and more widely disseminated by the wind, I can see no greater difficulty
in this being effected through natural selection, than in the cotton-planter
increasing and improving by selection the down in the pods on his
cotton-trees. Natural selection may modify and adapt the larva of
an insect to a score of contingencies, wholly different from those
which concern the mature insect; and these modifications may affect,
through correlation, the structure of the adult. So, conversely,
modifications in the adult may affect the structure of the larva;
but in all cases natural selection will ensure that they shall not
be injurious: for if they were so, the species would become extinct.
Natural selection will modify the structure of the young in relation
to the parent, and of the parent in relation to the young. In social
animals it will adapt the structure of each individual for the benefit
of the whole community, if the community profits by the selected
change. What natural selection cannot do, is to modify the structure
of one species, without giving it any advantage, for the good Of
another species; and though statements to this effect may be found
in works of natural history, I cannot find one case which will bear
investigation. A structure used only once in an animal's life, if
of high importance to it, might be modified to any extent by natural
selection; for instance, the great jaws possessed by certain insects,
used exclusively for opening the cocoon- or the hard tip to the
beak of unhatched birds, used for breaking the egg. It has been
asserted, that of the best short-beaked tumbler-pigeons a greater
number perish in the egg than are able to get out of it; so that
fanciers assist in the act of hatching. Now if nature had to make
the beak of a full-grown pigeon very short for the bird's own advantage,
the process of modification would be very slow, and there would
be simultaneously the most rigorous selection of all the young birds
within the egg, which had the most powerful and hardest beaks, for
all with weak beaks would inevitably perish; or, more delicate and
more easily broken shells might be selected, the thickness of the
shell being known to vary like every other structure.
It may be well here to remark that with all beings there must be
much fortuitous destruction, which can have little or no influence
on the course of natural selection. For instance a vast number of
eggs or seeds are annually devoured, and these could be modified
through natural selection only if they varied in some manner which
protected them from their enemies. Yet many of these eggs or seeds
would perhaps, if not destroyed, have yielded individuals better
adapted to their conditions of life than any of these which happened
to survive. So again a vast number of mature animals and plants,
whether or not they be the best adapted to their conditions, must
be annually destroyed by accidental causes, which would not be in
the least degree mitigated by certain changes of structure or constitution
which would in other ways be beneficial to the species. But let
the destruction of the adults be ever so heavy, if the number which
can exist in any district be not wholly kept down by such causes,-
or again let the destruction of eggs or seeds be so great that only
a hundredth or a thousandth part are developed,- yet of those which
do survive, the best adapted individuals, supposing that there is
any variability in favourable direction, will tend to propagate
their kind in larger numbers than the less well adapted. If the
numbers be wholly kept down by the causes just indicated, as will
often have been the case, natural selection will be powerless in
certain beneficial directions; but this is no valid objection to
its efficiency at other times and in other ways; for we are far
from having any reason to suppose that many species ever undergo
modification and improvement at the same time in the same area.

Inasmuch as peculiarities often appear under domestication in one
sex and become hereditarily attached to that sex, so no doubt it
will be under nature. Thus it is rendered possible for the two sexes
to be modified through natural selection in relation to different
habits of life, as is sometimes the case; or for one sex to be modified
in relation to the other sex, as commonly occurs. This leads me
to say a few words on what I have called Sexual Selection. This
form of selection depends, not on a struggle for existence in relation
to other organic beings or to external conditions, but on a struggle
between the individuals of one sex, generally the males, for the
possession of the other sex. The result is not death to the unsuccessful
competitor, but few or no offspring. Sexual selection is, therefore,
less rigorous than natural selection. Generally, the most vigorous
males, those which are best fitted for their places in nature, will
leave most progeny. But in many cases, victory depends not so much
on general vigor, as on having special weapons, confined to the
male sex. A hornless stag or spurless cock would have a poor chance
of leaving numerous offspring. Sexual selection, by always allowing
the victor to breed, might surely give indomitable courage, length
to the spur, and strength to the wing to strike in the spurred leg,
in nearly the same manner as does the brutal cockfighter by the
careful selection of his best cocks. How low in the scale of nature
the law of battle descends, I know not; male alligators have been
described as fighting, bellowing, and whirling round, like Indians
in a war-dance, for the possession of the females; male salmons
have been observed fighting all day long; male stagbeetles sometimes
bear wounds from the huge mandibles of other males; the males of
certain hymenopterous insects have been frequently seen by that
inimitable observer M. Fabre, fighting for a particular female who
sits by, an apparently unconcerned beholder of the struggle, and
then retires with the conqueror. The war is, perhaps, severest between
the males of polygamous animals, and these seem oftenest provided
with special weapons. The males of carnivorous animals are already
well armed; though to them and to others, special means of defence
may be given through means of sexual selection, as the mane of the
lion, and the hooked jaw to the male salmon; for the shield may
be as important for victory, as the sword or spear.
Amongst birds, the contest is often of a more peaceful character.
All those who have attended to the subject, believe that there is
the severest rivalry between the males of many species to attract,
by singing, the females. The rock-thrush of Guiana, birds of paradise,
and some others, congregate; and successive males display with the
most elaborate care, and show off in the best manner, their gorgeous
plumage; they likewise perform strange antics before the females,
which, standing by as spectators, at last choose the most attractive
partner. Those who have closely attended to birds in confinement
well know that they often take individual preferences and dislikes:
thus Sir R. Heron has described how a pied peacock was eminently
attractive to all his hen birds. I cannot here enter on the necessary
details; but if man can in a short time give beauty and an elegant
carriage to his bantams, according to his standard of beauty, I
can see no good reason to doubt that female birds, by selecting,
during thousands of generations, the most melodious or beautiful
males, according to their standard of beauty, might produce a marked
effect. Some well-known laws, with respect to the plumage of male
and female birds, in comparison with the plumage of the young, can
partly be explained through the action of sexual selection on variations
occurring at different ages, and transmitted to the males alone
or to both sexes at corresponding ages; but I have not space here
to enter on this subject.
Thus it is, as I believe, that when the males and females of any
animal have the same general habits of life, but differ in structure,
colour, or ornament, such differences have been mainly caused by
sexual selection: that is, by individual males having had, in successive
generations, some slight advantage over other males, in their weapons,
means of defence, or charms, which they have transmitted to their
male offspring alone. Yet, I would not wish to attribute all sexual
differences to this agency: for we see in our domestic animals peculiarities
arising and becoming attached to the male sex, which apparently
have not been augmented through selection by man. The tuft of hair
on the breast of the wild turkey-cock cannot be of any use, and
it is doubtful whether it can be ornamental in the eyes of the female
bird; indeed, had the tuft appeared under domestication, it would
have been called a monstrosity.

In order to make it clear how, as I believe, natural selection
acts, I must beg permission to give one or two imaginary illustrations.
Let us take the case of a wolf, which preys on various animals,
securing some by craft, some by strength, and some by fleetness;
and let us suppose that the fleetest prey, a deer for instance,
had from any change in the country increased in numbers, or that
other prey had decreased in numbers, during that season of the year
when the wolf was hardest pressed for food. Under such circumstances
the swiftest and slimmest wolves would have the best chance of surviving
and so be preserved or selected,- provided always that they retained
strength to master their prey at this or some other period of the
year, when they were compelled to prey on other animals. I can see
no more reason to doubt that this would be the result, than that
man should be able to improve the fleetness of his greyhounds by
careful and methodical selection, or by that kind of unconscious
selection which follows from each man trying to keep the best dogs
without any thought of modifying the breed. I may add, that, according
to Mr. Pierce, there are two varieties of the wolf inhabiting the
Catskill Mountains, in the United States, one with a light greyhound-like
form, which pursues deer, and the other more bulky, with shorter
legs, which more frequently attacks the shepherd's flocks.
It should be observed that, in the above illustration, I speak
of the slimmest individual wolves, and not of any single strongly-marked
variation having been preserved. In former editions of this work
I sometimes spoke as if this latter alternative had frequently occurred.
I saw the great importance of individual differences, and this led
me fully to discuss the results of unconscious selection by man,
which depends on the preservation of all the more or less valuable
individuals, and on the destruction of the worst. I saw, also, that
the preservation in a state of nature of any occasional deviation
of structure, such as a monstrosity, would be a rare event; and
that, if at first preserved, it would generally be lost by subsequent
intercrossing with ordinary individuals. Nevertheless, until reading
an able and valuable article in the North British Review (1867),
I did not appreciate how rarely single variations, whether slight
or strongly-marked, could be. perpetuated. The author takes the
case of a pair of animals, producing during their lifetime two hundred
offspring, of which, from various causes of destruction, only two
on an average survive to procreate their kind. This is rather an
extreme estimate for most of the higher animals, but by no means
so for many of the lower organisms. He then shows that if a single
individual were born, which varied in some manner, giving it twice
as good a chance of life as that of the other individuals, yet the
chances would be strongly against its survival. Supposing it to
survive and to breed, and that half its young inherited the favourable
variation; still, as the reviewer goes on to show, the young would
have only a slightly better chance of surviving and breeding; and
this chance would go on decreasing in the succeeding generations.
The justice of these remarks cannot, I think, be disputed. If, for
instance, a bird of some kind could procure its food more easily
by having its beak curved, and if one were born with its beak strongly
curved, and which consequently flourished, nevertheless there would
be a very poor chance of this one individual perpetuating its kind
to the exclusion of the common form; but there can hardly be a doubt,
judging by what we see taking place under domestication, that this
result would follow from the preservation during many generations
of a large number of individuals with more or less strongly curved
beaks, and from the destruction of a still larger number with the
straightest beaks.
It should not, however, be overlooked that certain rather strongly
marked variations, which no one would rank as mere individual differences,
frequently recur owing to a similar organisation being similarly
acted on- of which fact numerous instances could be given with our
domestic productions. In such cases, if the varying individual did
not actually transmit to its offspring its newly-acquired character,
it would undoubtedly transmit to them, as long as the existing conditions
remained the same, a still stronger tendency to vary in the same
manner. There can also be little doubt that the tendency to vary
in the same manner has often been so strong that all the individuals
of the same species have been similarly modified without the aid
of any form of selection. Or only a third, fifth, or tenth part
of the individuals may have been thus affected, of which fact several
instances could be given. Thus Graba estimates that about one-fifth
of the guillemots in the Faroe Islands consist of a variety so well
marked, that it was formerly ranked as a distinct species under
the name of Uria lacrymans. In cases of this kind, if the variation
were of a beneficial nature, the original form would soon be supplanted
by the modified form, through the survival of the fittest.
To the effects of intercrossing in eliminating variations of all
kinds, I shall have to recur; but it may be here remarked that most
animals and plants keep to their proper homes, and do not needlessly
wander about; we see this even with migratory birds, which almost
always return to the same spot. Consequently each newly-formed variety
would generally be at first local, as seems to be the common rule
with varieties in a state of nature; so that similarly modified
individuals would soon exist in a small body together, and would
often breed together. If the new variety were successful in its
battle for life, it would slowly spread from a central district,
competing with and conquering the unchanged individuals on the margins
of an ever-increasing circle.
It may be worth while to give another and more complex illustration
of the action of natural selection. Certain plants excrete sweet
juice, apparently for the sake of eliminating something injurious
from the sap: this is effected, for instance, by glands at the base
of the stipules in some Leguminosae and at the backs of the leaves
of the common laurel. This juice, though small in quantity, is greedily
sought by insects; but their visits do not in any way benefit the
plant. Now, let us suppose that the juice or nectar was excreted
from the inside of the flowers of a certain number of plants of
any species. Insects in seeking the nectar would get dusted with
pollen, and would often transport it from one flower to another.
The flowers of two distinct individuals of the same species would
thus get crossed; and the act of crossing, as can be fully proved,
gives rise to vigorous seedlings which consequently would have the
best chance of flourishing and surviving The plants which produced
flowers with the largest glands or nectaries, excreting most nectar,
would oftenest be visited by insects, and would oftenest be crossed;
and so in the long run would gain the upper hand and form a local
variety. The flowers, also, which had their stamens and pistils
placed, in relation to the size and habits of the particular insects
which visited them, so as to favour in any degree the transportal
of the pollen, would likewise be favoured. We might have taken the
case of insects visiting flowers for the sake of collecting pollen
instead of nectar; and as pollen is formed for the sole purpose
of fertilisation, its destruction appears to be a simple loss to
the plant; yet if a little pollen were carried, at first occasionally
and then habitually, by the pollen-devouring insects from flower
to flower, and a cross thus effected, although nine-tenths of the
pollen were destroyed it might still be a great gain to the plant
to be thus robbed; and the individuals which produced more and more
pollen, and had larger anthers, would be selected.
When our plant, by the above process long continued, had been rendered
highly attractive to insects, they would, unintentionally on their
part, regularly carry pollen from flower to flower; and that they
do this effectually, I could easily show by many striking facts.
I will give only one, as likewise illustrating one step in the separation
of the sexes of plants. Some holly-trees bear only male flowers,
which have four stamens producing a rather small quantity of pollen,
and a rudimentary pistil; other holly-trees bear only female flowers;
these have a full-sized pistil, and four stamens with shrivelled
anthers, in which not a grain of pollen can be detected. Having
found a female tree exactly sixty yards from a male tree, I put
the stigmas of twenty flowers, taken from different branches, under
the microscope, and on all, without exception, there were a few
pollen grains, and on some a profusion. As the wind had set for
several days from the female to the male tree, the pollen could
not thus have been carried. The weather had been cold and boisterous,
and therefore not favourable to bees, nevertheless every female
flower which I examined had been effectually fertilised by the bees,
which had flown from tree to tree in search of nectar. But to return
to our imaginary case: as soon as the plant had been rendered so
highly attractive to insects that pollen was regularly carried from
flower to flower, another process might commence. No naturalist
doubts the advantage of what has been called the "physiological
division of labour"; hence we may believe that it would be advantageous
to a plant to produce stamens alone in one flower or on one whole
plant, and pistils alone in another flower or on another plant.
In plants under culture and placed under new conditions of life,
sometimes the male organs and sometimes the female organs become
more or less impotent; now if we suppose this to occur in ever so
slight a degree under nature, then, as pollen is already carried
regularly from flower to flower, and as a more complete separation
of the sexes of our plant would be advantageous on the principle
of the division of labour, individuals with this tendency more and
more increased, would be continually favoured or selected, until
at last a complete separation of the sexes might be effected. It
would take up too much space to show the various steps, through
dimorphism and other means, by which the separation of the sexes
in plants of various kinds is apparently now in progress; but I
may add that some of the species of holly in North America, are,
according to Asa Gray, in an exactly intermediate condition, or,
as he expresses it, are more or less dioeciously polygamous.
Let us now turn to the nectar-feeding insects; we may suppose the
plant, of which we have been slowly increasing the nectar by continued
selection, to be a common plant; and that certain insects depended
in main part on its nectar for food. I could give many facts showing
how anxious bees are to save time: for instance, their habit of
cutting holes and sucking the nectar at the bases of certain flowers,
which, with a very little more trouble, they can enter by the mouth.
Bearing such facts in mind, it may be believed that under certain
circumstances individual differences in the curvature or length
of the proboscis, &c., too slight to be appreciated by us, might
profit a bee or other insect, so that certain individuals would
be able to obtain their food more quickly than others; and thus
the communities to which they belonged would flourish and throw
off many swarms inheriting the same peculiarities. The tubes of
the corolla of the common red and incarnate clovers (Trifolium pratense
and incarnatum) do not on a hasty glance appear to differ in length;
yet the hive-bee can easily suck the nectar out of the incarnate
clover, but not out of the common red clover, which is visited by
humble-bees alone; so that whole fields of red clover offer in vain
an abundant supply of precious nectar to the hive-bee. That this
nectar is much liked by the hive-bee is certain; for I have repeatedly
seen, but only in the autumn, many hive-bees sucking the flowers
through holes bitten in the base of the tube by humble-bees. The
difference in the length of the corolla in the two kinds of clover,
which determines the visits of the hive-bee, must be very trifling;
for I have been assured that when red clover has been mown, the
flowers of the second crop are somewhat smaller, and that these
are visited by many hive-bees. I do not know whether this statement
is accurate; nor whether another published statement can be trusted,
namely, that the Ligurian bee which is generally considered a mere
variety of the common hive-bee, and which freely crosses with it,
is able to reach and suck the nectar of the red clover. Thus, in
a country where this kind of clover abounded, it might be a great
advantage to the hive-bee to have a slightly longer or differently
constructed proboscis. On the other hand, as the fertility of this
clover absolutely depends on bees visiting the flowers, if humble-bees
were to become rare in any country, it might be a great advantage
to the plant to have a, shorter or more deeply divided corolla,
so that the hive-bees should be enabled to suck its flowers. Thus
I can understand how a flower and a bee might slowly become, either
simultaneously or one after the other, modified and adapted to each
other in the most perfect manner, by the continued preservation
of all the individuals which presented slight deviations of structure
mutually favourable to each other.
I am well aware that this doctrine of natural selection, exemplified
in the above imaginary instances, is open to the same objections
which were first urged against Sir Charles Lyell's noble views on
"the modern changes of the earth, as illustrative of geology"; but
we now seldom hear the agencies which we see still at work, spoken
of as trifling or insignificant, when used in explaining the excavation
of the deepest valleys or the formation of long lines of inland
cliffs. Natural selection acts only by the preservation and accumulation
of small inherited modifications, each profitable to the preserved
being; and as modern geology has almost banished such views as the
excavation of a great valley by a single diluvial wave, so will
natural selection banish the belief of the continued creation of
new organic beings, or of any great and sudden modification in their
structure.

I must here introduce a short digression. In the case of animals
and plants with separated sexes, it is of course obvious that two
individuals must always (with the exception of the curious and not
well-understood cases of parthenogenesis) unite for each birth;
but in the case of hermaphrodites this is far from obvious. Nevertheless
there is reason to believe that with all hermaphrodites two individuals,
either occasionally or habitually, concur for the reproduction of
their kind. This view was long ago doubtfully suggested by Sprengel,
Knight and Kolreuter. We shall presently see its importance; but
I must here treat the subject with extreme brevity, though I have
the materials prepared for an ample discussion. All vertebrate animals,
all insects, and some other large groups of animals, pair for each
birth. Modern research has much diminished the number of supposed
hermaphrodites, and of real hermaphrodites a large number pair;
that is, two individuals regularly unite for reproduction, which
is all that concerns us. But still there are many hermaphrodite
animals which certainly do not habitually pair, and a vast majority
of plants are hermaphrodites. What reason, it may be asked, is there
for supposing in these cases that two individuals ever concur in
reproduction? As it is impossible here to enter on details, I must
trust to some general considerations alone.
In the first place, I have collected so large a body of facts,
and made so many experiments, showing, in accordance with the almost
universal belief of breeders, that with animals and plants a cross
between different varieties, or between individuals of the same
variety but of another strain, gives vigour and fertility to the
offspring; and on the other hand, that close interbreeding diminishes
vigour and fertility; that these facts alone incline me to believe
that it is a general law of nature that no organic being fertilises
itself for a perpetuity of generations; but that a cross with another
individual is occasionally- perhaps at long intervals of time- indispensable.
On the belief that this is a law of nature, we can, I think, understand
several large classes of facts, such as the following, which on
any other view are inexplicable. Every hybridizer knows how unfavourable
exposure to wet is to the fertilisation of a flower, yet what a
multitude of flowers have their anthers and stigmas fully exposed
to the weather! If an occasional cross be indispensable, notwithstanding
that the plant's own anthers and pistil stand so near each other
as almost to insure self-fertilisation, the fullest freedom for
the entrance of pollen from another individual will explain the
above state of exposure of the organs. Many flowers, on the other
hand, have their organs of fructification closely enclosed, as in
the great papilionaceous or pea-family; but these almost invariably
present beautiful and curious adaptations in relation to the visits
of insects. So necessary are the visits of bees to many papilionaceous
flowers, that their fertility is greatly diminished if these visits
be prevented. Now, it is scarcely possible for insects to fly from
flower and flower, and not to carry pollen from one to the other,
to the great good of the plant. Insects act like a camel-hair pencil,
and it is sufficient to ensure fertilisation, just to touch with
the same brush the anthers of one flower and then the stigma of
another; but it must not be supposed that bees would thus produce
a multitude of hybrids between distinct species; for if a plant's
own pollen and that from another species are placed on the same
stigma, the former is so prepotent that it invariably and completely
destroys, as has been shown by Gartner, the influence of the foreign
pollen.
When the stamens of a flower suddenly spring towards the pistil,
or slowly move one after the other towards it, the contrivance seems
adapted solely to ensure self-fertilisation; and no doubt it is
useful for this end: but the agency of insects is often required
to cause the stamens to spring forward, as Kolreuter has shown to
be the case with the barberry; and in this very genus, which seems
to have a special contrivance for self-fertilisation, it is well
known that, if closely allied forms or varieties are planted near
each other, it is hardly possible to raise pure seedlings, so largely
do they naturally cross. In numerous other cases, far from self-fertilisation
being favoured, there are special contrivances which effectually
prevent the stigma receiving pollen from its own flower, as I could
show from the works of Sprengel and others, as well as from my own
observations: for instance, in Lobelia fulgens, there is a really
beautiful and elaborate contrivance by which all the infinitely
numerous pollen-granules are swept out of the conjoined anthers
of each flower, before the stigma of that individual flower is ready
to receive them; and as this flower is never visited, at least in
my garden, by insects, it never sets a seed, though by placing pollen
from one flower on the stigma of another, I raise plenty of seedlings.
Another species of Lobelia which is visited by bees, seeds freely
in my garden. In very many other cases, though there is no special
mechanical contrivance to prevent the stigma receiving pollen from
the same flower, yet, as Sprengel, and more recently Hildebrand,
and others, have shown, and as I can confirm, either the anthers
burst before the stigma is ready for fertilisation, or the stigma
is ready before the pollen of that flower is ready, so that these
so-named dichogamous plants have in fact separated sexes, and must
habitually be crossed. So it is with the reciprocally dimorphic
and trimorphic plants previously alluded to. How strange are these
facts! How strange that the pollen and stigmatic surface of the
same flower, though placed so close together, as if for the very
purpose of self-fertilisation, should be in so many cases mutually
useless to each other! How simply are these facts explained on the
view of an occasional cross with a distinct individual being advantageous
or indispensable!
If several varieties of the cabbage, radish, onion, and of some
other plants, be allowed to seed near each other, a large majority
of the seedlings thus raised turn out, as I have found, mongrels:
for instance, I raised 233 seedling cabbages from some plants of
different varieties growing near each other, and of these only 78
were true to their kind, and some even of these were not perfectly
true. Yet the pistil of each cabbage-flower is surrounded not only
by its own six stamens but by those of the many other flowers on
the same plant; and the pollen of each flower readily gets on its
own stigma without insect agency; for I have found that plants carefully
protected from insects produce the full number of pods. How, then,
comes it that such a vast number of the seedlings are mongrelized?
It must arise from the pollen of a distinct variety having a prepotent
effect over the flower's own pollen; and that this is part of the
general law of good being derived from the intercrossing of distinct
individuals of the same species. When distinct species are crossed
the case is reversed, for a plant's own pollen is almost always
prepotent over foreign pollen; but to this subject we shall return
in a future chapter.
In the case of a large tree covered with innumerable flowers, it
may be objected that pollen could seldom be carried from tree to
tree, and at most only from flower to flower on the same tree; and
flowers on the same tree can be considered as distinct individuals
only in a limited sense. I believe this objection to be valid, but
that nature has largely provided against it by giving to trees a
strong tendency to bear flowers with separated sexes. When the sexes
are separated, although the male and female flowers may be produced
on the same tree, pollen must be regularly carried from flower to
flower; and this will give a better chance of pollen being occasionally
carried from tree to tree. That trees belonging to all Orders have
their sexes more often separated than other plants, I find to be
the case in this country; and at my request Dr. Hooker tabulated
the trees of New Zealand, and Dr. Asa Gray those of the United States,
and the result was as I anticipated. On the other hand, Dr. Hooker
informs me that the rule does not hold good in Australia but if
most of the Australian trees are dichogamous, the same result would
follow as if they bore flowers with separated sexes. I have made
these few remarks on trees simply to call attention to the subject.
Turning for a brief space to animals: various terrestrial species
are hermaphrodites, such as the land-mollusca and earth-worms; but
these all pair. As yet I have not found a single terrestrial animal
which can fertilise itself. This remarkable fact, which offers so
strong a contrast with terrestrial plants, is intelligible on the
view of an occasional cross being indispensable; for owing to the
nature of the fertilising element there are no means, analogous
to the action of insects and of the wind with plants, by which an
occasional cross could be effected with terrestrial animals without
the concurrence of two individuals. Of aquatic animals, there are
many self-fertilizing hermaphrodites; but here the currents of water
offer an obvious means for an occasional cross. As in the case of
flowers, I have as yet failed, after consultation with one of the
highest authorities, namely, Professor Huxley, to discover a single
hermaphrodite animal with the organs of reproduction so perfectly
enclosed that access from without, and the occasional influence
of a distinct individual, can be shown to be physically impossible.
Cirripedes long appeared to me to present, under this point of view,
a case of great difficulty; but I have been enabled, by a fortunate
chance, to prove that two individuals, though both are self-fertilising
hermaphrodites, do sometimes cross.
It must have struck most naturalists as a strange anomaly that,
both with animals and plants, some species of the same family and
even of the same genus, though agreeing closely with each other
in their whole organisation, are hermaphrodites, and some unisexual.
But if, in fact, all hermaphrodites do occasionally intercross,
the difference between them and unisexual species is, as far as
function is concerned, very small.
From these several considerations and from the many special facts
which I have collected, but which I am unable here to give, it appears
that with animals and plants an occasional intercross between distinct
individuals is a very general, if not universal, law of nature.

This is an extremely intricate subject. A great amount of variability,
under which term individual differences are always included, will
evidently be favourable. A large number of individuals, by giving
a better chance within any given period for the appearance of profitable
variations, will compensate for a lesser amount of variability in
each individual, and is, I believe, a highly important element of
success. Though Nature grants long periods of time for the work
of natural selection, she does not grant an indefinite period; for
as all organic beings are striving to seize on each place in the
economy of nature, if any one species does not become modified and
improved in a corresponding degree with its competitors, it will
be exterminated. Unless favourable variations be inherited by some
at least of the offspring, nothing can be effected by natural selection.
The tendency to reversion may often check or prevent the work; but
as this tendency has not prevented man from forming by selection
numerous domestic races, why should it prevail against natural selection?
In the case of methodical selection, a breeder selects for some
definite object, and if the individuals be allowed freely to intercross,
his work will completely fail. But when many men, without intending
to alter the breed, have a nearly common standard of perfection,
and all try to procure and breed from the best animals, improvement
surely but slowly follows from this unconscious process of selection,
notwithstanding that there is no separation of selected individuals.
Thus it will be under nature; for within a confined area, with some
place in the natural polity not perfectly occupied, all the individuals
varying in the right direction, though in different degrees, will
tend to be preserved. But if the area be large, its several districts
will almost certainly present different conditions of life; and
then, if the same species undergoes modification in different districts,
the newly-formed varieties will intercross on the confines of each.
But we shall see in the sixth chapter that intermediate varieties,
inhabiting intermediate districts, will in the long run generally
be supplanted by one of the adjoining varieties. Intercrossing will
chiefly affect those animals which unite for each birth and wander
much, and which do not breed at a very quick rate. Hence with animals
of this nature, for instance, birds, varieties will generally be
confined to separated countries; and this I find to be the case.
With hermaphrodite organisms which cross only occasionally, and
likewise with animals which unite for each birth, but which wander
little and can increase at a rapid rate, a new and improved variety
might be quickly formed on any one spot, and might there maintain
itself in a body and afterwards spread, so that the individuals
of the new variety would chiefly cross together. On this principle,
nurserymen always prefer saving seed from a large body of plants,
as the chance of intercrossing is thus lessened.
Even with animals which unite for each birth, and which do not
propagate rapidly, we must not assume that free intercrossing would
always eliminate the effects of natural selection; for I can bring
forward a considerable body of facts showing that within the same
area, two varieties of the same animal may long remain distinct,
from haunting different stations, from breeding at slightly different
seasons, or from the individuals of each variety preferring to pair
together.
Intercrossing plays a very important part in nature by keeping
the individuals of the same species, or of the same variety, true
and uniform in character. It will obviously thus act far more efficiently
with those animals which unite for each birth; but, as already stated,
we have reason to believe that occasional intercrosses take place
with all animals and plants. Even if these take place only at long
intervals of time, the young thus produced will gain so much in
vigour and fertility over the offspring from long-continued self-fertilisation,
that they will have a better chance of surviving and propagating
their kind; and thus in the long run the influence of crosses, even
at rare intervals, will be great. With respect to organic beings
extremely low in the scale, which do not propagate sexually, nor
conjugate, and which cannot possibly intercross, uniformity of character
can be retained by them under the same conditions of life, only
through the principle of inheritance, and through natural selection
which will destroy any individuals departing from the proper type.
If the conditions of life change and the form undergoes modification,
uniformity of character can be given to the modified offspring,
solely by natural selection preserving similar favourable variations.
Isolation, also, is an important element in the modification of
species through natural selection. In a confined or isolated area,
if not very large, the organic and inorganic conditions of life
will generally be almost uniform; so that natural selection will
tend to modify all the varying individuals of the same species in
the same manner. Intercrossing with the inhabitants of the surrounding
districts will, also, be thus prevented. Moritz Wagner has lately
published an interesting essay on this subject, and has shown that
the service rendered by isolation in preventing crosses between
newly-formed varieties is probably greater even than I supposed.
But from reasons already assigned I can by no means agree with this
naturalist, that migration and isolation are necessary elements
for the formation of new species. The importance of isolation is
likewise great in preventing, after any physical change in the conditions,
such as of climate, elevation of the land, &c., the immigration
of better adapted organisms; and thus new places in the natural
economy of the district will be left open to be filled up by the
modification of the old inhabitants. Lastly, isolation will give
time for a new variety to be improved at a slow rate; and this may
sometimes be of much importance. If, however, an isolated area be
very small, either from being surrounded by barriers, or from having
very peculiar physical conditions, the total number of the inhabitants
will be small; and this will retard the production of new species
through natural selection, by decreasing the chances of favourable
variations arising.
The mere lapse of time by itself does nothing, either for or against
natural selection. I state this because it has been erroneously
asserted that the element of time has been assumed by me to play
an all-important part in modifying species, as if all the forms
of life were necessarily undergoing change through some innate law.
Lapse of time is only so far important, and its importance in this
respect is great, that it gives a better chance of beneficial variations
arising and of their being selected, accumulated, and fixed. It
likewise tends to increase the direct action of the physical conditions
of life, in relation to the constitution of each organism.
If we turn to nature to test the truth of these remarks, and look
at any small isolated area, such as an oceanic island, although
the number of species inhabiting it is small, as we shall see in
our chapter on Geographical Distribution; yet of these species a
very large proportion are endemic,- that is, have been produced
there and nowhere else in the world. Hence an oceanic island at
first sight seems to have been highly favourable for the production
of new species. But we may thus deceive ourselves, for to ascertain
whether small isolated area, or a large open area like a continent
has been most favourable for the production of new organic forms,
we ought to make the comparison within equal times; and this we
are incapable of doing.
Although isolation is of great importance in the production of
new species, on the whole I am inclined to believe that largeness
of area is still more important, especially for the production of
species which shall prove capable of enduring for a long period,
and of spreading widely. Throughout a great and open area, not only
will there be a better chance of favourable variations, arising
from the large number of individuals of the same species there supported,
but the conditions of life are much more complex from the large
number of already existing species; and if some of these many species
become modified and improved, others will have to be improved in
a corresponding degree, or they will be exterminated. Each new form,
also, as soon as it has been much improved, will be able to spread
over the open and continuous area, and will thus come into competition
with many other forms. Moreover, great areas, though now continuous,
will often, owing to former oscillations of level, have existed
in a broken condition; so that the good effects of isolation will
generally, to a certain extent, have concurred. Finally, I conclude
that, although small isolated areas have been in some respects highly
favourable for the production of new species, yet that the course
of modification will generally have been more rapid on large areas;
and what is more important, that the new forms produced on large
areas, which already have been victorious over many competitors,
will be those that will spread most widely, and will give rise to
the greatest number of new varieties and species. They will thus
play a more important part in the changing history of the organic
world.
In accordance with this view, we can, perhaps, understand some
facts which will be again alluded to in our chapter on Geographical
Distribution; for instance, the fact of the productions of the smaller
continent of Australia now yielding before those of the larger Europaeo-Asiatic
area. Thus, also, it is that continental productions have everywhere
become so largely naturalised on islands. On a small island, the
race for life will have been less severe, and there will have been
less modification and less extermination. Hence, we can understand
how it is that the flora of Madeira, according to Oswald Heer, resembles
to a certain extent the extinct tertiary flora of Europe. All fresh-water
basins, taken together, make a small area compared with that of
the sea or of the land. Consequently, the competition between fresh-water
productions will have been less severe than elsewhere; new forms
will have been then more slowly produced, and old forms more slowly
exterminated. And it is in fresh-water basins that we find seven
genera of Ganoid fishes, remnants of a once preponderant order:
and in fresh water we find some of the most anomalous forms now
known in the world as the Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren which,
like fossils, connect to a certain extent orders at present widely
sundered in the natural scale. These anomalous forms may be called
living fossils; they have endured to the present day, from having
inhabited a confined area, and from having been exposed to less
varied, and therefore less severe, competition.
To sum up, as far as the extreme intricacy of the subject permits,
the circumstances favourable and unfavourable for the reduction
of new species through natural selection. I conclude that for terrestrial
productions a large continental area, which has undergone many oscillations
of level, will have been the most favourable for the production
of many new forms of life, fitted to endure for a long time and
to spread widely. Whilst the area existed as a continent, the inhabitants
will have been numerous in individuals and kinds, and will have
been subjected to severe competition. When converted by subsidence
into large separate islands, there will still have existed many
individuals of the same species on each island: intercrossing on
the confines of the range of each new species will have been checked:
after physical changes of any kind, immigration will have been prevented,
so that new places in the polity of each island will have had to
be filled up by the modification of the old inhabitants; and time
will have been allowed for the varieties in each to become well
modified and perfected. When, by renewed elevation, the islands
were reconverted into a continental area, there will again have
been very severe competition: the most favoured or improved varieties
will have been enabled to spread: there will have been much extinction
of the less improved forms, and the relative proportional numbers
of the various inhabitants of the reunited continent will again
have been changed; and again there will have been a fair field for
natural selection to improve still further the inhabitants, and
thus to produce new species.
That natural selection generally acts with extreme slowness I fully
admit. It can act only when there are places in the natural polity
of a district which can be better occupied by the modification of
some of its existing inhabitants. The occurrence of such places
will often depend on physical changes, which generally take place
very slowly, and on the immigration of better adapted forms being
prevented. As some few of the old inhabitants become modified, the
mutual relations of others will often be disturbed; and this will
create new places, ready to be filled up by better adapted forms,
but all this will take place very slowly. Although the individuals
of the same species differ in some slight degree from each other,
it would often be long before differences of the right nature in
various parts of the organisation might occur. The result would
often be greatly retarded by free intercrossing. Many will exclaim
that these several causes are amply sufficient to neutralise the
power of natural selection. I do not believe so. But I do believe
that natural selection will generally act very slowly, only at long
intervals of time, and only on a few of the inhabitants of the same
region. I further believe that these slow, intermittent results
accord well with what geology tells us of the rate and manner at
which the inhabitants of the world have changed.
Slow though the process of selection may be, if feeble man can
do much by artificial selection, I can see no limit to the amount
of change, to the beauty and complexity of the coadaptations between
all organic beings, one with another and with their physical conditions
of life, which may have been effected in the long course of time
through nature's power of selection, that is by the survival of
the fittest.

This subject will he more fully discussed in our chapter on Geology;
but it must here be alluded to from being intimately connected with
natural selection. Natural selection acts solely through the preservation
of variations in some way advantageous, which consequently endure.
Owing to the high geometrical rate of increase of all organic beings,
each area is already fully stocked with inhabitants; and it follows
from this, that as the favoured forms increase in number, so, generally,
will the less favoured decrease and become rare. Rarity, as geology
tells us, is the precursor to extinction. We can see that any form
which is represented by few individuals will run a good chance of
utter extinction, during great fluctuations in the nature of the
seasons, or from a temporary increase in the number of its enemies.
But we may go further than this; for, as new forms are produced,
unless we admit that specific forms can go on indefinitely increasing
in number, many old forms must become extinct. That the number of
specific forms has not indefinitely increased, geology plainly tells
us; and we shall presently attempt to show why it is that the number
of species throughout the world has not become immeasurably great.
We have seen that the species which are most numerous in individuals
have the best chance of producing favourable variations within any
given period. We have evidence of this, in the facts stated in the
second chapter showing that it is the common and diffused or dominant
species which offer the greatest number of recorded varieties. Hence,
rare species will be less quickly modified or improved within any
given period; they will consequently be beaten in the race for life
by the modified and improved descendants of the commoner species.
From these several considerations I think it inevitably follows,
that as new species in the course of time are formed through natural
selection, others will become rarer and rarer, and finally extinct.
The forms which stand in closest competition with those undergoing
modification and improvement will naturally suffer most. And we
have seen in the chapter on the Struggle for Existence that it is
the most closely-allied forms,- varieties of the same species, and
species of the same genus or of related genera,- which, from having
nearly the same structure, constitution, and habits, generally come
into the severest competition with each other; consequently, each
new variety or species, during the progress of its formation, will
generally press hardest on its nearest kindred, and tend to exterminate
them. We see the same process of extermination amongst our domesticated
productions, through the selection of improved forms by man. Many
curious instances could be given showing how quickly new breeds
of cattle, sheep, and other animals, and varieties of flowers, take
the place of older and inferior kinds. In Yorkshire, it is historically
known that the ancient black cattle were displaced by the long-horns,
and that these "were swept away by the shorthorns" (I quote the
words of an agricultural writer) "as if by some murderous pestilence."

The principle, which I have designated by this term, is of high
importance, and explains, as I believe, several important facts.
In the first place, varieties, even strongly-marked ones, though
having somewhat of the character of species- as is shown by the
hopeless doubts in many cases how to rank them- yet certainly differ
far less from each other than do good and distinct species. Nevertheless,
according to my view, varieties are species in the process of formation,
or are, as I have called them, incipient species. How, then, does
the lesser difference between varieties become augmented into the
greater difference between species? That this does habitually happen,
we must infer from most of the innumerable species throughout nature
presenting well-marked differences; whereas varieties, the supposed
prototypes and parents of future well-marked species, present slight
and ill-defined differences. Mere chance, as we may call it, might
cause one variety to differ in some character from its parents,
and the offspring of this variety again to differ from its parent
in the very same character and in a greater degree; but this alone
would never account for so habitual and large a degree of difference
as that between the species of the same genus.
As has always been my practice, I have sought light on this head
from our domestic productions. We shall here find something analogous.
It will be admitted that the production of races so different as
short-horn and Hereford cattle, race and cart horses, the several
breeds of pigeons, &c., could never have been effected by the
mere chance accumulation of similar variations during many successive
generations. In practice, a fancier is, for instance, struck by
a pigeon having a slightly shorter beak; another fancier is struck
by a pigeon having a rather longer beak; and on the acknowledged
principle that "fanciers do not and will not admire a medium standard,
but like extremes," they both go on (as has actually occurred with
the sub-breeds of the tumbler-pigeon) choosing and breeding from
birds with longer and longer beaks, or with shorter and shorter
beaks. Again, we may suppose that at an early period of history,
the men of one nation or district required swifter horses, whilst
those of another required stronger and bulkier horses. The early
differences would be very slight; but, in the course of time from
the continued selection of swifter horses in the one case, and of
stronger ones in the other, the differences would become greater,
and would be noted as forming two sub-breeds. Ultimately, after
the lapse of centuries, these sub-breeds would become converted
into two well-established and distinct breeds. As the differences
became greater, the inferior animals with intermediate characters,
being neither swift nor very strong, would not have been used for,
breeding, and will thus have tended to disappear. Here, then, we
see in man's productions the action of what may be called the principle
of divergence, causing differences, at first barely appreciable,
steadily to increase, and the breeds to diverge in character, both
from each other and from their common parent.
But how, it may be asked, can any analogous principle apply in
nature? I believe it can and does apply most efficiently (though
it was a long time before I saw how), from the simple circumstance
that the more diversified the descendants from any one species become
in structure, constitution, and habits, by so much will they be
better enabled to seize on many and widely diversified places in
the polity of nature, and so be enabled to increase in numbers.
We can clearly discern this in the case of animals with simple
habits. Take the case of a carnivorous quadruped, of which the number
that can be supported in any country has long ago arrived at its
full average. If its natural power of increase be allowed to act,
it can succeed in increasing (the country not undergoing any change
in conditions) only by its varying descendants seizing on places
at present occupied by other animals: some of them, for instance,
being enabled to feed on new kinds of prey, either dead or alive;
some inhabiting new stations, climbing trees, frequenting water,
and some perhaps becoming less carnivorous. The more diversified
in habits and structure the descendants of our carnivorous animals
become, the more places they will be enabled to occupy. What applies
to one animal will apply throughout all time to all animals- that
is, if they vary- for otherwise natural selection can effect nothing.
So it will be with plants. It has been experimentally proved, that
if a plot of ground be sown with one species of grass, and a similar
plot be sown with several distinct genera of grasses, a greater
number of plants and a greater weight of dry herbage can be raised
in the latter than in the former case. The same has been found to
hold good when one variety and several mixed varieties of wheat
have been sown on equal spaces of ground. Hence, if any one species
of grass were to go on varying, and the varieties were continually
selected which differed from each other in the same manner, though
in a very slight degree, as do the distinct species and genera of
grasses, a greater number of individual plants of this species,
including its modified descendants, would succeed in living on the
same piece of ground. And we know that each species and each variety
of grass is annually sowing almost countless seeds; and is thus
striving, as it may be said, to the utmost to increase in number.
Consequently, in the course of many thousand generations, the most
distinct varieties of any one species of grass would have the best
chance of succeeding and of increasing in numbers, and thus of supplanting
the less distinct varieties; and varieties, when rendered very distinct
from each other, take the rank of species.
The truth of the principle that the greatest amount of life can
be supported by great diversification of structure, is seen under
many natural circumstances. In an extremely small area, especially
if freely open to immigration, and where the contest between individual
and individual must be very severe, we always find great diversity
in its inhabitants. For instance, I found that a piece of turf,
three feet by four in size, which had been exposed for many years
to exactly the same conditions, supported twenty species of plants,
and these belonged to eighteen genera and to eight orders, which
shows how much these plants differed from each other. So it is with
the plants and insects on small and uniform islets: also in small
ponds of fresh water. Farmers find that they can raise most food
by a rotation of plants belonging to the most different orders:
nature follows what may be called a simultaneous rotation. Most
of the animals and plants which live close round any small piece
of ground, could live on it (supposing its nature not to be in any
way peculiar), and may be said to be striving to the utmost to live
there; but, it is seen, that where they come into the closest competition,
the advantages of diversification of structure, with the accompanying
differences of habit and constitution, determine that the inhabitants,
which thus jostle each other most closely, shall, as a general rule,
belong to what we call different genera and orders.
The same principle is seen in the naturalisation of plants through
man's agency in foreign lands. It might have been expected that
the plants which would succeed in becoming naturalised in any land
would generally have been closely allied to the indigenes; for these
are commonly looked at as specially created and adapted for their
own country. It might also, perhaps, have been expected that naturalised
plants would have belonged to a few groups more especially adapted
to certain stations in their new homes. But the case is very different;
and Alph. de Candolle has well remarked, in his great and admirable
work, that floras gain by naturalisation, proportionally with the
number of the native genera and species far more in new genera than
in new species. To give a single instance: in the last edition of
Dr. Asa Gray's Manual of the Flora of the Northern United States,
260 naturalized plants are enumerated, and these belong to 162 genera.
We thus see that these naturalised plants are of a highly diversified
nature. They differ, moreover, to a large extent, from the indigenes,
for out of the 162 naturalised genera, no less than 100 genera are
not there indigenous, and thus a large proportional addition is
made to the genera now living in the United States.
By considering the nature of the plants or animals which have in
any country struggled successfully with the indigenes and have there
become naturalised, we may gain some crude idea in what manner some
of the natives would have to be modified, in order to gain an advantage
over their compatriots; and we may at least infer that diversification
of structure, amounting to new generic differences, would be profitable
to them.
The advantage of diversification of structure in the inhabitants
of the same region is, in fact, the same as that of the physiological
division of labour in the organs of the same individual body- a
subject so well elucidated by Milne Edwards. No physiologist doubts
that a stomach adapted to digest vegetable matter alone, or flesh
alone, draws most nutriment from these substances. So in the general
economy of any land, the more widely and perfectly the animals and
plants are diversified for different habits of life, so will a greater
number of individuals be capable of there supporting themselves.
A set of animals, with their organisation but little diversified,
could hardly compete with a set more perfectly diversified in structure.
It may be doubted, for instance, whether the Australian marsupials,
which are divided into groups differing but little from each other,
and feebly representing, as Mr. Waterhouse and others have remarked,
our carnivorous, ruminant, and rodent mammals, could successfully
compete with these well-developed orders. In the Australian mammals,
we see the process of diversification in an early and incomplete
stage of development.

After the foregoing discussion, which has been much compressed,
we may assume that the modified descendants of any one species will
succeed so much the better as they become more diversified in structure,
and are thus enabled to encroach on places occupied by other beings.
Now let us see how this principle of benefit being derived from
divergence of character, combined with the principles of natural
selection and of extinction, tends to act.
The accompanying diagram (See diagram) will aid us in understanding
this rather perplexing subject. Let A to L represent the species
of a genus large in its own country; these species are supposed
to resemble each other in unequal degrees, as is so generally the
case in nature, and as is represented in the diagram by the letters
standing at unequal distances. I have said a large genus, because
as we saw in the second chapter, on an average more species vary
in large genera than in small genera; and the varying species of
the large genera present a greater number of varieties. We have,
also, seen that the species, which are the commonest and the most
widely diffused, vary more than do the rare and restricted species.
Let (A) be a common, widely-diffused, and varying species, belonging
to a genus large in its own country. The branching and diverging
lines of unequal lengths proceeding from (A), may represent its
varying offspring. The variations are supposed to be extremely slight,
but of the most diversified nature; they are not supposed all to
appear simultaneously, but often after long intervals of time, nor
are they an supposed to endure for equal periods. Only those variations
which are in some way profitable will be preserved or naturally
selected. And here the importance of the principle of benefit derived
from divergence of character comes in; for this will generally lead
to the most different or divergent variations (represented by the
outer lines) being preserved and accumulated by natural selection.
When a line reaches one of the horizontal lines, and is there marked
by a small numbered letter, a sufficient amount of variation is
supposed to have been accumulated to form it into a fairly well-marked
variety, such as would be thought worthy of record in a systematic
work.
The intervals between the horizontal lines in the diagram, may
represent each a thousand or more generations. After a thousand
generations, species (A) is supposed to have produced two fairly
well-marked varieties, namely a1 and m1. These two varieties will
generally still be exposed to the same conditions which made their
parents variable, and the tendency to variability is in itself hereditary;
consequently they will likewise tend to vary, and commonly in nearly
the same manner as did their parents. Moreover, these two varieties,
being only slightly modified forms, will tend to inherit those advantages
which made their parent (A) more numerous than most of the other
inhabitants of the same country; they will also partake of those
more general advantages which made the genus to which the parent-species
belonged, a large genus in its own country. And all these circumstances
are favourable to the production of new varieties.
If, then, these two varieties be variable, the most divergent of
their variations will generally be preserved during the next thousand
generations. And after this interval, variety a1 is supposed in
the diagram to have produced variety a2, which will, owing to the
principle of divergence, differ more from (A) than did variety a1.
Variety m1 is supposed to have produced two varieties, namely m2
and s2, differing from each other, and more considerably from their
common parent (A). We may continue the process by similar steps
for any length of time; some of the varieties, after each thousand
generations, producing only a single variety, but in a more and
more modified condition, some producing two or three varieties,
and some failing to produce any. Thus the varieties or modified
descendants of the common parent (A), will generally go on increasing
in number and diverging in character. In the diagram the process
is represented up to the ten-thousandth generation, and under a
condensed and simplified form up to the fourteen-thousandth generation.
But I must here remark that I do not suppose that the process ever
goes on so regularly as is represented in the diagram, though in
itself made somewhat irregular, nor that it goes on continuously;
it is far more probable that each form remains for long periods
unaltered, and then again undergoes modification. Nor do I suppose
that the most divergent varieties are invariably preserved: a medium
form may often long endure, and may or may not produce more than
one modified descendant; for natural selection will always act according
to the nature of the places which are either unoccupied or not perfectly
occupied by other beings; and this will depend on infinitely complex
relations. But as a general rule, the more diversified in structure
the descendants from any one species can be rendered, the more places
they will be enabled to seize on, and the more their modified progeny
will increase. In our diagram the line of succession is broken at
regular intervals by small numbered letters marking the successive
forms which have become sufficiently distinct to be recorded as
varieties. But these breaks are imaginary, and might have been inserted
anywhere, after intervals long enough to allow the accumulation
of a considerable amount of divergent variation.
As all the modified descendants from a common and widely-diffused
species, belonging to a large genus, will tend to partake of the
same advantages which made their parent successful in life, they
will generally go on multiplying in number as well as diverging
in character: this is represented in the diagram by the several
divergent branches proceeding from (A). The modified offspring from
the later and more highly improved branches in the lines of descent,
will, it is probable, often take the place of, and so destroy, the
earlier and less improved branches: this is represented in the diagram
by some of the lower branches not reaching to the upper horizontal
lines. In some cases no doubt the process of modification will be
confined to a single line of descent and the number of modified
descendants will not be increased; although the amount of divergent
modification may have been augmented. This case would be represented
in the diagram, if all the lines proceeding from (A) were removed,
excepting that from a1 to a10. In the same way the English race-horse
and English pointer have apparently both gone on slowly diverging
in character from their original stocks, without either having given
off any fresh branches or races.
After ten thousand generations, species (A) is supposed to have
produced three forms, a10, f10, and m10 which, from having diverged
in character during the successive generations, will have come to
differ largely, but perhaps unequally, from each other and from
their common parent. If we suppose the amount of change between
each horizontal line in our diagram to be excessively small, these
three forms may still be only well-marked varieties; but we have
only to suppose the steps in the process of modification to be more
numerous or greater in amount, to convert these three forms into
well-defined or at least into doubtful species. Thus the diagram
illustrates the steps by which the small differences distinguishing
varieties are increased into the larger differences distinguishing
species. By continuing the same process for a greater number of
generations (as shown in the diagram in a condensed and simplified
manner), we get eight species, marked by the letters between a14
and m14, all descended from (A). Thus, as I believe, species are
multiplied and genera are formed.
In a large genus it is probable that more than one species would
vary. In the diagram I have assumed that a second species (I) has
produced, by analogous steps, after ten thousand generations, either
two well-marked varieties (w10 and z10) or two species, according
to the amount of change supposed to be represented between the horizontal
lines. After fourteen thousand generations, six new species, marked
by the letters n14 to z14, are supposed to have. been produced.
In any genus, the species which are already very different in character
from each other, will generally tend to produce the greatest number
of modified descendants; for these will have the best chance of
seizing on new and widely different places in the polity of nature:
hence in the diagram I have chosen the extreme species (A), and
the nearly extreme species (I), as those which have largely varied,
and have given rise to new varieties and species. The other nine
species (marked by capital letters) of our original genus, may for
long but unequal periods continue to transmit unaltered descendants;
and this is shown in the diagram by the dotted lines unequally prolonged
upwards.
But during the process of modification, represented in the diagram,
another of our principles, namely that of extinction, will have
played an important part. As in each fully stocked country natural
selection necessarily acts by the selected form having some advantage
in the struggle for life over other forms, there will be a constant
tendency in the improved descendants of any one species to supplant
and exterminate in each stage of descent their predecessors and
their original progenitor. For it should be remembered that the
competition will generally be most severe between those forms which
are most nearly related to each other in habits, constitution, and
structure. Hence all the intermediate forms between the earlier
and later states, that is between the less and more improved states
of the same species, as well as the original parent-species itself,
will generally tend to become extinct. So it probably will be with
many whole collateral lines of descent, which will be conquered
by later and improved lines. If, however, the modified offspring
of a species get into some distinct country, or become quickly adapted
to some quite new station, in which offspring and progenitor do
not come into competition, both may continue to exist.
If, then, our diagram be assumed to represent a considerable amount
of modification, species (A) and all the earlier varieties will
have become extinct, being replaced by eight new species (a14 to
m14); and species (I) will be replaced by six (n14 to z14) new species.
But we may go further than this. The original species of our genus
were supposed to resemble each other in unequal degrees, as is so
generally the case in nature; species (A) being more nearly related
to B, C, and D, than to the other species; and species (I) more
to G, H, K, L, than to the others. These two species (A) and (I)
were also supposed to be very common and widely diffused species,
so that they must originally have had some advantage over most of
the other species of the genus. Their modified descendants, fourteen
in number at the fourteen-thousandth generation will probably have
inherited some of the same advantages: they have also been modified
and improved in a diversified manner at each stage of descent, so
as to have become adapted to many related places in the natural
economy of their country. It seems, therefore, extremely probable
that they will have taken the places of, and thus exterminated not
only their parents (A) and (I), but likewise some of the original
species which were most nearly related to their parents. Hence very
few of the original species will have transmitted offspring to the
fourteen-thousandth generation. We may suppose that only one, (F),
of the two species (E and F) which were least closely related to
the other nine original species, has transmitted descendants to
this late stage of descent.
The new species in our diagram descended from the original eleven
species, will now be fifteen in number. Owing to the divergent tendency
of natural selection, the extreme amount of difference in character
between species a14 and z14 will be much greater than that between
the most distinct of the original eleven species. The new species,
moreover, will be allied to each other in a widely different manner.
Of the eight descendants from (A) the three marked a14, q14, p14,
will be nearly related from having recently branched off from a10;
b14, and f14, from having diverged at an earlier period from a1,
will be in some degree distinct from the three first-named species;
and lastly, o14, e14, and m14, will be nearly related one to the
other, but, from having diverged at the first commencement of the
process of modification, will be widely different from the other
five species, and may constitute a sub-genus or a distinct genus.
The six descendants from (I) will form two sub-genera or genera.
But as the original species (I) differed largely from (A), standing
nearly at the extreme end of the original genus, the six descendants
from (I) will, owing to inheritance alone, differ considerably from
the eight descendants from (A); the two groups, moreover, are supposed
to have gone on diverging in different directions. The intermediate
species, also (and this is a very important consideration), which
connected the original species (A) and (I), have all become, excepting
(F), extinct, and have left no descendants. Hence the six new species
descended from (I), and the eight descendants from (A), will have
to be ranked as very distinct genera, or even as distinct sub-families.
Thus it is, as I believe, that two or more genera are produced
by descent with modification, from two or more species of the same
genus. And the two or more parent-species are supposed to be descended
from some one species of an earlier genus. In our diagram, this
is indicated by the broken lines, beneath the capital letters, converging
in sub-branches downwards towards a single point; this point represents
a species, the supposed progenitor of our several new sub-genera
and genera.
It is worth while to reflect for a moment on the character of the
new species F14, which is supposed not to have diverged much in
character, but to have retained the form of (F), either unaltered
or altered only in a slight degree. In this case, its affinities
to the other fourteen new species will be of a curious and circuitous
nature. Being descended from a form which stood between the parent-species
(A) and (I), now supposed to be extinct and unknown, it will be
in some degree intermediate in character between the two groups
descended from these two species. But as these two groups have gone
on diverging in character from the type of their parents, the new
species (F14) will not be directly intermediate between them, but
rather between types of the two groups; and every naturalist will
be able to call such cases before his mind.
In the diagram, each horizontal line has hitherto been supposed
to represent a thousand generations, but each may represent a million
or more generations; it may also represent a section of the successive
strata of the earth's crust including extinct remains. We shall,
when we come to our chapter on Geology, have to refer again to this
subject, and I think we shall then see that the diagram throws light
on the affinities of extinct beings, which, though generally belonging
to the same orders, families, or genera, with those now living,
yet are often, in some degree, intermediate in character between
existing groups; and we can understand this fact, for the extinct
species lived at various remote epochs when the branching lines
of descent had diverged less.
I see no reason to limit the process of modification, as now explained,
to the formation of genera alone. If, in the diagram, we suppose
the amount of change, represented by each successive group of diverging
lines to be great, the forms marked a14 to p14, those marked b14
and f14, and those marked o14 to m14, will form three very distinct
genera. We shall also have two very distinct genera descended from
(I), differing widely from the descendants of (A). These two groups
of genera will thus form two distinct families, or orders, according
to the amount of divergent modification supposed to be represented
in the diagram. And the two new families, or orders, are descended
from two species of the original genus, and these are supposed to
be descended from some still more ancient and unknown form.
We have seen that in each country it is the species belonging to
the larger genera which oftenest present varieties or incipient
species. This, indeed, might have been expected; for, as natural
selection acts through one form having some advantage over other
forms in the struggle for existence, it will chiefly act on those
which already have some advantage; and the largeness of any group
shows that its species have inherited from a common ancestor some
advantage in common. Hence, the struggle for the production of new
and modified descendants will mainly lie between the larger groups
which are all trying to increase in number. One large group will
slowly conquer another large group, reduce its numbers, and thus
lessen its chance of further variation and improvement. Within the
same large group, the later and more highly perfected sub-groups,
from branching out and seizing on many new places in the polity
of Nature, will constantly tend to supplant and destroy the earlier
and less improved sub-groups. Small and broken groups and sub-groups
will finally disappear. Looking to the future, we can predict that
the groups of organic beings which are now large and triumphant,
and which are least broken up, that is, which have as yet suffered
least extinction, will, for a long period, continue to increase.
But which groups will ultimately prevail, no man can predict; for
we know that many groups formerly most extensively developed, have
now become extinct. Looking still more remotely to the future, we
may predict that, owing to the continued and steady increase of
the larger groups, a multitude of smaller groups will become utterly
extinct, and leave no modified descendants; and consequently that,
of the species living at any one period, extremely few will transmit
descendants to a remote futurity. I shall have to return to this
subject in the chapter on Classification, but I may add that as,
according to this view, extremely few of the more ancient species
have transmitted descendants to the present day, and, as all the
descendants of the same species form a class, we can understand
how it is that there exist so few classes in each main division
of the animal and vegetable kingdoms. Although few of the most ancient
species have left modified descendants' yet, at remote geological
periods, the earth may have been almost as well peopled with species
of many genera, families, orders, and classes, as at the present
time.

Natural Selection acts exclusively by the preservation and accumulation
of variations, which are beneficial under the organic and inorganic
conditions to which each creature is exposed at all periods of life.
The ultimate result is that each creature tends to become more and
more improved in relation to its conditions. This improvement inevitable
leads to the gradual advancement of the organisation of the greater
number of living beings throughout the world. But here we enter
on a very intricate subject, for naturalists have not defined to
each other's satisfaction what is meant by an advance in organisation.
Amongst the vertebrata the degree of intellect and an approach in
structure to man clearly come into play. It might be thought that
the amount of change which the various parts and organs pass through
in their development from the embryo to maturity would suffice as
a standard of comparison; but there are cases, as with certain parasitic
crustaceans, in which several parts of the structure become less
perfect, so that the mature animal cannot be called higher than
its larva. Von Baer's standard seems the most widely applicable
and the best, namely, the amount of differentiation of the parts
of the same organic being, in the adult state as I should be inclined
to add, and their specialisation for different functions; or, as
Milne Edwards would express it, the completeness of the division
of physiological labour. But we shall see how obscure this subject
is if we look, for instance, to fishes, amongst which some naturalists
rank those as highest which, like the sharks, approach nearest to
amphibians; whilst other naturalists rank the common bony or teleostean
fishes as the highest, inasmuch as they are most strictly fish-like
and differ most from the other vertebrate classes. We see still
more plainly the obscurity of the subject by turning to plants,
amongst which the standard of intellect is of course quite excluded;
and here some botanists rank those plants as highest which have
every organ, as sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils, fully developed
in each flower; whereas other botanists, probably with more truth,
look at the plants which have their several organs much modified
and reduced in number as the highest.
If we take as the standard of high organisation, the amount of
differentiation and specialisation of the several organs in each
being when adult (and this will include the advancement of the brain
for intellectual purposes), natural selection clearly leads towards
this standard: for all physiologists admit that the specialisation
of organs, inasmuch as in this state they perform their functions
better, is an advantage to each being; and hence the accumulation
of variations tending towards specialisation is within the scope
of natural selection. On the other hand, we can see, bearing in
mind that all organic beings are striving to increase at a high
ratio and to seize on every unoccupied or less well occupied place
in the economy of nature, that it is quite possible for natural
selection gradually to fit a being to a situation in which several
organs would be superfluous or useless: in such cases there would
be retrogression in the scale of organisation. Whether organisation
on the whole has actually advanced from the remotest geological
periods to the present day will be more conveniently discussed in
our chapter on Geological Succession.
But it may be objected that if all organic beings thus tend to
rise in the scale, how is it that throughout the world a multitude
of the lowest forms still exist; and how is it that in each great
class some forms are far more highly developed than others? Why
have not the more highly developed forms everywhere supplanted and
exterminated the lower? Lamarck, who believed in an innate and inevitable
tendency towards perfection in all organic beings, seems to have
felt this difficulty so strongly, that he was led to suppose that
new and simple forms are continually being produced by spontaneous
generation. Science has not as yet proved the truth of this belief,
whatever the future may reveal. On our theory the continued existence
of lowly organisms offers no difficulty; for natural selection,
or the survival of the fittest, does not necessarily include progressive
development- it only takes advantage of such variations as arise
and are beneficial to each creature under its complex relations
of life. And it may be asked what advantage, as far as we can see,
would it be to an infusorian animalcule- to an intestinal worm-
or even to an earthworm, to be highly organised. If it were no advantage,
these forms would be left, by natural selection, unimproved or but
little improved, and might remain for indefinite ages in their present
lowly condition. And geology tells us that some of the lowest forms,
as the infusoria and rhizopods, have remained for an enormous period
in nearly their present state. But to suppose that most of the many
now existing low forms have not in the least advanced since the
first dawn of life would be extremely rash; for every naturalist
who has dissected some of the beings now ranked as very low in the
scale, must have been struck with their really wondrous and beautiful
organisation.
Nearly the same remarks are applicable if we look to the different
grades of organisation within the same great group; for instance,
in the vertebrata, to the co-existence of mammals and fish- amongst
mammalia, to the coexistence of man and the Ornithorhynchus- amongst
fishes, to the co-existence of the shark and the lancelet (Amphioxus),
which latter fish in the extreme simplicity of its structure approaches
the invertebrate classes. But mammals and fish hardly come into
competition with each other; the advancement of the whole class
of mammals, or of certain members in this class, to the highest
grade would not lead to their taking the place of fishes. Physiologists
believe that the brain must be bathed by warm blood to be highly
active, and this requires aerial respiration; so that warm-blooded
mammals when inhabiting the water lie under a disadvantage in having
to come continually to the surface to breathe. With fishes, members
of the shark family would not tend to supplant the lancelet; for
the lancelet, as I hear from Fritz Muller, has as sole companion
and competitor on the barren sandy shore of South Brazil, an anomalous
annelid. The three lowest orders of mammals, namely, marsupials,
edentata, and rodents, co-exist in South America in the same region
with numerous monkeys, and probably interfere little with each other.
Although organisation, on the whole, may have advanced and be still
advancing throughout the world, yet the scale will always present
many degrees of perfection; for the high advancement of certain
whole classes, or of certain members of each class, does not at
all necessarily lead to the extinction of those groups with which
they do not enter into close competition. In some cases, as we shall
hereafter see, lowly organised forms appear to have been preserved
to the present day, from inhabiting confined or peculiar stations,
where they have been subjected to less severe competition, and where
their scanty numbers have retarded the chance of favourable variations
arising.
Finally, I believe that many lowly organised forms now exist throughout
the world, from various causes. In some cases variations or individual
differences of a favourable nature may never have arisen for natural
selection to act on and accumulate. In no case, probably, has time
sufficed for the utmost possible amount of development. In some
few cases there has been what we must call retrogression of organisation.
But the main cause lies in the fact that under very simple conditions
of life a high organisation would be of no service,- possibly would
be of actual disservice, as being of a more delicate nature, and
more liable to be put out of order and injured.
Looking to the first dawn of life, when all organic beings, as
we may believe, presented the simplest structure, how, it has been
asked, could the first steps in the advancement or differentiation
of parts have arisen? Mr. Herbert Spencer would probably answer
that, as soon as simple unicellular organism came by growth or division
to be compounded of several cells, or became attached to any supporting
surface, his law "that homologous units of any order become differentiated
in proportion as their relations to incident forces" would come
into action. But as we have no facts to guide us, speculation on
the subject is almost useless. It is, however, an error to suppose
that there would be no struggle for existence, and, consequently,
no natural selection, until many forms had been produced: variations
in a single species inhabiting an isolated station might be beneficial,
and thus the whole mass of individuals might be modified, or two
distinct forms might arise. But, as I remarked towards the close
of the Introduction, no one ought to feel surprise at much remaining
as yet unexplained on the origin of species, if we make due allowance
for our profound ignorance on the mutual relations of the inhabitants
of the world at the present time, and still more so during past
ages.

Mr. H. C. Watson thinks that I have overrated the importance of
divergence of character (in which, however, he apparently believes)
and that convergence, as it may be called, has likewise played a
part. If two species, belonging to two distinct though allied genera,
had both produced a large number of new and divergent forms, it
is conceivable that these might approach each other so closely that
they would have all to be classed under the same genus; and thus
the descendants of two distinct genera would converge into one.
But it would in most cases be extremely rash to attribute to convergence
a close and general similarity of structure in the modified descendants
of widely distinct forms. The shape of a crystal is determined solely
by the molecular forces, and it is not surprising that dissimilar
substances should sometimes assume the same form; but with organic
beings we should bear in mind that the form of each depends on an
infinitude of complex relations, namely on the variations which
have arisen, these being due to causes far too intricate to be followed
out,- on the nature of the variations which have been preserved
or selected, and this depends on the surrounding physical conditions,
and in a still higher degree on the surrounding organisms with which
each being has come into competition,- and lastly, on inheritance
(in itself a fluctuating element) from innumerable progenitors,
all of which have had their forms determined through equally complex
relations. It is incredible that the descendants of two organisms,
which had originally differed in a marked manner, should ever afterwards
converge so closely as to lead to a near approach to identity throughout
their whole organisation. If this had occurred, we should meet with
the same form, independently of genetic connection, recurring in
widely separated geological formations; and the balance of evidence
is opposed to any such an admission.
Mr. Watson has also objected that the continued action of natural
selection, together with divergence of character, would tend to
make an indefinite number of specific forms. As far as mere inorganic
conditions are concerned, it seems probable that a sufficient number
of species would soon become adapted to all considerable diversities
of heat, moisture, &c.; but I fully admit that the mutual relations
of organic beings are more important; and as the number of species
in any country goes on increasing, the organic conditions of life
must become more and more complex. Consequently there seems at first
sight no limit to the amount of profitable diversification of structure,
and therefore no limit to the number of species which might be produced.
We do not know that even the most prolific area is fully stocked
with specific forms: at the Cape of Good Hope and in Australia,
which support such an astonishing number of species, many European
plants have become naturalised. But geology shows us, that from
an early part of the tertiary period the number of species of shells,
and that from the middle part of this same period the number of
mammals, has not greatly or at all increased. What then checks an
indefinite increase in the number of species? The amount of life
(I do not mean the number of specific forms) supported on an area
must have a limit, depending so largely as it does on physical conditions;
therefore, if an area be inhabited by very many species, each or
nearly each species will be represented by few individuals; and
such species will be liable to extermination from accidental fluctuations
in the nature of the seasons or in the number of their enemies.
The process of extermination in such cases would be rapid, whereas
the production of new species must always be slow. Imagine the extreme
case of as many species as individuals in England, and the first
severe winter or very dry summer would exterminate thousands on
thousands of species. Rare species, and each species will become
rare if the number of species in any country becomes indefinitely
increased, will, on the principle often explained, present within
a given period few favourable variations; consequently, the process
of giving birth to new specific forms would thus be retarded. When
any species becomes very rare, close interbreeding will help to
exterminate it; authors have thought that this comes into play in
accounting for the deterioration of the aurochs in Lithuania, of
red deer in Scotland, and of bears in Norway, &e. Lastly, and
this I am inclined to think is the most important element, a dominant
species, which has already beaten many competitors in its own home,
will tend to spread and supplant many others. Alph. de Candolle
has shown that those species which spread widely, tend generally
to spread very widely; consequently, they will tend to supplant
and exterminate several species in several areas, and thus cheek
the inordinate increase of specific forms throughout the world.
Dr. Hooker has recently shown that in the S.E. corner of Australia,
where, apparently, there are many invaders from different quarters
of the globe, the endemic Australian species have been greatly reduced
in number. How much weight to attribute to these several considerations
I will not pretend to say; but conjointly they must limit in each
country the tendency to an indefinite augmentation of specific forms.

If under changing conditions of life organic beings present individual
differences in almost every part of their structure, and this cannot
be disputed; if there be, owing to their geometrical rate of increase,
a severe struggle for life at some age, season, or year, and this
certainly cannot be disputed; then, considering the infinite complexity
of the relations of all organic beings to each other and to their
conditions of life, causing an infinite diversity in structure,
constitution, and habits, to be advantageous to them, it would be
a most extraordinary fact if no variations had ever occurred useful
to each being's own welfare, in the same manner as so many variations
have occurred useful to man. But if variations useful to any organic
being ever do occur, assuredly individuals thus characterised will
have the best chance of being preserved in the struggle for life;
and from the strong principle of inheritance, these will tend to
produce offspring similarly characterised. This principle of preservation,
or the survival of the fittest, I have called Natural Selection.
It leads to the improvement of each creature in relation to its
organic and inorganic conditions of life, and consequently, in most
cases, to what must be regarded as an advance in organisation. Nevertheless,
low and simple forms will long endure if well fitted for their simple
conditions of life.
Natural selection, on the principle of qualities being inherited
at corresponding ages, can modify the egg, seed, or young, as easily
as the adult. Amongst many animals, sexual selection will have given
its aid to ordinary selection, by assuring to the most vigorous
and best adapted males the greatest number of offspring. Sexual
selection will also give characters useful to the males alone, in
their struggles or rivalry with other males; and these characters
will be transmitted to one sex or to both sexes, according to the
form of inheritance which prevails.
Whether natural selection has really thus acted in adapting the
various forms of life to their several conditions and stations,
must be judged by the general tenor and balance of evidence given
in the following chapters. But we have already seen how it entails
extinction; and how largely extinction has acted in the world's
history, geology plainly declares. Natural selection also leads
to divergence of character; for the more organic beings diverge
in structure, habits, and constitution, by so much the more can
a large number be supported on the area,- of which we see proof
by looking to the inhabitants of any small spot, and to the productions
naturalised in foreign lands. Therefore, during the modification
of the descendants of any one species, and during the incessant
struggle of all species to increase in numbers, the more diversified
the descendants become, the better will be their chance of success
in the battle for life. Thus the small differences distinguishing
varieties of the same species, steadily tend to increase, till they
equal the greater differences between species of the same genus,
or even of distinct genera.
We have seen that it is the common, the widely-diffused and widely-ranging
species, belonging to the larger genera within each class, which
vary most; and these tend to transmit to their modified offspring
that superiority which now makes them dominant in their own countries.
Natural selection, as has just been remarked, leads to divergence
of character and to much extinction of the less improved and intermediate
forms of life. On these principles, the nature of the affinities,
and the generally well-defined distinctions between the innumerable
organic beings in each class throughout the world, may be explained.
It is a truly wonderful fact- the wonder of which we are apt to
overlook from familiarity- that all animals and all plants throughout
all time and space should be related to each other in groups, subordinate
to groups, in the manner which we everywhere behold- namely, varieties
of the same species most closely related, species of the same genus
less closely and unequally related, forming sections and sub-genera,
species of distinct genera much less closely related, and genera
related in different degrees, forming sub-families, families, orders,
sub-classes and classes. The several subordinate groups in any class
cannot be ranked in a single file, but seem clustered round points,
and these round other points, and so on in almost endless cycles.
If species had been independently created, no explanation would
have been possible of this kind of classification; but it is explained
through inheritance and the complex action of natural selection,
entailing extinction and divergence of character, as we have seen
illustrated in the diagram.
The affinities of all the beings of the same class have sometimes
been represented by a great tree. I believe this simile largely
speaks the truth. The green and budding twigs may represent existing
species; and those produced during former years may represent the
long succession of extinct species. At each period of growth all
the growing twigs have tried to branch out on all sides, and to
overtop and kill the surrounding twigs and branches, in the same
manner as species and groups of species have at all times overmastered
other species in the great battle for life. The limbs, divided into
great branches, and these into lesser and lesser branches, were
themselves once, when the tree was young, budding twigs, and this
connection of the former and present buds by ramifying branches
may well represent the classification of all extinct and living
species in groups subordinate to groups. Of the many twigs which
flourished when the tree was a mere bush, only two or three, now
grown into great branches, yet survive and bear the other branches;
so with the species which lived during long-past geological periods
very few have left living and modified descendants. From the first
growth of the tree, many a limb and branch has decayed and dropped
off; and these fallen branches of various sizes may represent those
whole orders, families, and genera which have now no living representatives,
and which are known to us only in a fossil state. As we here and
there see a thin straggling branch springing from, a fork low down
in a tree, and which by some chance has been favoured and is still
alive on its summit, so we occasionally see an animal like the Ornithorhynchus
or Lepidosiren, which in some small degree connects by its affinities
two large branches of life, and which has apparently been saved
from fatal competition by having inhabited a protected station.
As buds give rise by growth to fresh buds, and these, if vigorous,
branch out and overtop on all sides many a feebler branch, so by
generation I believe it has been with the great Tree of Life, which
fills with its dead and broken branches the crust of the earth,
and covers the surface with its everbranching and beautiful ramifications.
I HAVE hitherto sometimes spoken as if the variations- so common
and multiform with organic beings under domestication, and in a
lesser degree with those under nature- were due to chance. This,
of course, is a wholly incorrect expression, but it serves to acknowledge
plainly our ignorance of the cause of each particular variation.
Some authors believe it to be as much the function of the reproductive
system to produce individual differences, or slight deviations of
structure, as to make the child like its parents. But the fact of
variations and monstrosities occurring much more frequently under
domestication than under nature, and the greater variability of
species having wider ranges than of those with restricted ranges,
lead to the conclusion that variability is generally related to
the conditions of life to which each species has been exposed during
several successive generations. In the first chapter I attempted
to show that changed conditions act in two ways, directly on the
whole organisation or on certain parts alone, and indirectly through
the reproductive system. In all cases there are two factors, the
nature of the organism, which is much the most important of the
two, and the nature of the conditions. The direct action of changed
conditions leads to definite or indefinite results. In the latter
case the organisation seems to become plastic, and we have much
fluctuating variability. In the former case the nature of the organism
is such that it yields readily, when subjected to certain conditions,
and all, or nearly all the individuals become modified in the same
way.
It is very difficult to decide how far changed conditions, such
as of climate, food, &c., have acted in a definite manner. There
is reason to believe that in the course of time the effects have
been greater than can be proved by clear evidence. But we may safely
conclude that the innumerable complex co-adaptations of structure,
which we see throughout nature between various organic beings, cannot
be attributed simply to such action. In the following cases the
conditions seem to have produced some slight definite effect: E.
Forbes asserts that shells at their southern limit, and when living
in shallow water, are more brightly coloured than those of the same
species from further north or from a greater depth; but this certainly
does not always hold good. Mr. Gould believes that birds of the
same species are more brightly coloured under a clear atmosphere,
than when living near the coast or on islands, and Wollaston is
convinced that residence near the sea affects the colours of insects.
Moquin-Tandon gives a list of plants which, when growing near the
sea-shore, have their leaves in some degree fleshy, though not elsewhere
fleshy. These slightly varying organisms are interesting in as far
as they present characters analogous to those possessed by the species
which are confined to similar conditions.
When a variation is of the slightest use to any being, we cannot
tell how much to attribute to the accumulative action of natural
selection, and how much to the definite action of the conditions
of life. Thus, it is well known to furriers that animals of the
same species have thicker and better fur the further north they
live; but who can tell how much of this difference may be due to
the warmest-clad individuals having been favoured and preserved
during many generations, and how much to the action of the severe
climate? for it would appear that climate has some direct action
on the hair of our domestic quadrupeds.
Instances could be given of similar varieties being produced from
the same species under external conditions of life as different
as can well be conceived; and, on the other hand, of dissimilar
varieties being produced under apparently the same external conditions.
Again, innumerable instances are known to every naturalist, of species
keeping true, or not varying at all, although living under the most
opposite climates. Such considerations as these incline me to lay
less weight on the direct action of the surrounding conditions,
than on a tendency to vary, due to causes of which we are quite
ignorant.
In one sense the conditions of life may be said, not only to cause
variability, either directly or indirectly, but likewise to include
natural selection, for the conditions determine whether this or
that variety shall survive. But when man is the selecting agent,
we clearly see that the two elements of change are distinct; variability
is in some manner excited, but it is the will of man which accumulates
the variations in certain directions; and it is this latter agency
which answers to the survival of the fittest under nature.

From the facts alluded to in the first chapter, I think there can
be no doubt that use in our domestic animals has strengthened and
enlarged certain parts, and disuse diminished them; and that such
modifications are inherited. Under free nature, we have no standard
of comparison, by which to judge of the effects of long-continued
use or disuse, for we know not the parent-forms; but many animals
possess structures which can be best explained by the effects of
disuse. As Professor Owen has remarked, there is no greater anomaly
in nature than a bird that cannot fly; yet there are several in
this state. The logger-headed duck of South America can only flap
along the surface of the water, and has its wings in nearly the
same condition as the domestic Aylesbury duck: it is a remarkable
fact that the young birds, according to Mr. Cunningham, can fly,
while the adults have lost this power. As the larger ground-feeding
birds seldom take flight except to escape danger, it is probable
that the nearly wingless condition of several birds, now inhabiting
or which lately inhabited several oceanic islands, tenanted by no
beast of prey, has been caused by disuse. The ostrich indeed inhabits
continents, and is exposed to danger from which it cannot escape
by flight, but it can defend itself by kicking its enemies, as efficiently
as many quadrupeds. We may believe that the progenitor of the ostrich
genus had habits like those of the bustard, and that, as the size
and weight of its body were increased during successive generations,
its legs were used more, and its wings less, until they became incapable
of flight.
Kirby has remarked (and I have observed the same fact) that the
anterior tarsi, or feet, of many male dung-feeding beetles are often
broken off; he examined seventeen specimens in his own collection,
and not one had even a relic left. In the Onites apelles the tarsi
are so habitually lost, that the insect has been described as not
having them. In some other genera they are present, but in a rudimentary
condition. In the Ateuchus, or sacred beetle of the Egyptians, they
are totally deficient. The evidence that accidental mutilations
can be inherited is at present not decisive; but the remarkable
cases observed by Brown-Sequard in guinea-pigs, of the inherited
effects of operations, should make us cautious in denying this tendency.
Hence it will perhaps be safest to look at the entire absence of
the anterior tarsi in Ateuchus, and their rudimentary condition
in some other genera, not as cases of inherited mutilations, but
as due to the effects of long-continued disuse; for as many dung-feeding
beetles are generally found with their tarsi lost, this must happen
early in life; therefore the tarsi cannot be of much importance
or be much used by these insects.
In some cases we might easily put down to disuse modifications
of structure which are wholly, or mainly, due to natural selection.
Mr. Wollaston has discovered the remarkable fact that 200 beetles,
out of the 550 species (but more are now known) inhabiting Madeira,
are so far deficient in wings that they cannot fly; and that, of
the twenty-nine endemic genera, no less than twenty-three have all
their species in this condition! Several facts, namely, that beetles
in many parts of the world are frequently blown to sea and perish;
that the beetles in Madeira, as observed by Mr. Wollaston, lie much
concealed, until the wind lulls and the sun shines; that the proportion
of wingless beetles is larger on the exposed Desertas than in Madeira
itself; and especially the extraordinary fact, so strongly insisted
on by Mr. Wollaston, that certain large groups of beetles, elsewhere
excessively numerous, which absolutely require the use of their
wings, are here almost entirely absent;- these several considerations
make me believe that the wingless condition of so many Madeira beetles
is mainly due to the action of natural selection, combined probably
with disuse. For during many successive generations each individual
beetle which flew least, either from its wings having been ever
so little less perfectly developed or from indolent habit, will
have had the best chance of surviving from not being blown out to
sea; and, on the other hand, those beetles which most readily took
to flight would oftenest have been blown to sea, and thus destroyed.
The insects in Madeira which are not ground-feeders, and which,
as certain flower-feeding coleoptera and lepidoptera, must habitually
use their wings to gain their subsistence, have, as Mr. Wollaston
suspects, their wings not at all reduced, but even enlarged. This
is quite compatible with the action of natural selection. For when
a new insect first arrived on the island, the tendency of natural
selection to enlarge or to reduce the wings, would depend on whether
a greater number of individuals were saved by successfully battling
with the winds, or by giving up the attempt and rarely or never
flying. As with mariners shipwrecked near a coast, it would have
been better for the good swimmers if they had been able to swim
still further, whereas it would have been better for the bad swimmers
if they had not been able to swim at all and had stuck to the wreck.
The eyes of moles and of some burrowing rodents are rudimentary
in size, and in some cases are quite covered by skin and fur. This
state of the eyes is probably due to gradual reduction from disuse,
but aided perhaps by natural selection. In South America, a burrowing
rodent, the tucotuco, or Ctenomys, is even more subterranean in
its habits than the mole; and I was assured by a Spaniard, who had
often caught them, that they were frequently blind. One which I
kept alive was certainly in this condition, the cause, as appeared
on dissection, having been inflammation of the nictitating membrane.
As frequent inflammation of the eyes must be injurious to any animal,
and as eyes are certainly not necessary to animals having subterranean
habits, a reduction in their size, with the adhesion of the eyelids
and growth of fur over them, might in such case be an advantage;
and if so, natural selection would aid the effects of disuse.
It is well known that several animals, belonging to the most different
classes, which inhabit the caves of Carniola and of Kentucky, are
blind. in some of the crabs the foot-stalk for the eye remains,
though the eye is gone;- the stand for the telescope is there, though
the telescope with its glasses has been lost. As it is difficult
to imagine that eyes, though useless, could be in any way injurious
to animals living in darkness, their loss may be attributed to disuse.
In one of the blind animals, namely, the cave-rat (Noetoma), two
of which were captured by Professor Silliman at above half a mile
distance from the mouth of the cave, and therefore not in the profoundest
depths, the eyes were lustrous and of large size; and these animals,
as I am informed by Professor Silliman, after having been exposed
for about a month to a graduated light, acquired a dim perception
of objects.
It is difficult to imagine conditions of life more similar than
deep limestone caverns under a nearly similar climate; so that,
in accordance with the old view of the blind animals having been
separately created for the American and European caverns, very close
similarity in their organisation and affinities might have been
expected. This is certainly not the case if we look at the two whole
faunas; and with respect to the insects alone, Schiodte has remarked,
"We are accordingly prevented from considering the entire phenomenon
in any other light than something purely local, and the similarity
which is exhibited in a few forms between the Mammoth cave (in Kentucky)
and the caves in Carniola, otherwise than as a very plain expression
of that analogy which subsists generally between the fauna of Europe
and of North America." On my view we must suppose that American
animals, having in most cases ordinary powers of vision, slowly
migrated by successive generations from the outer world into the
deeper and deeper recesses of the Kentucky caves, as did European
animals into the caves of Europe. We have some evidence of this
gradation of habit; for, as Schiodte remarks, "We accordingly look
upon the subterranean faunas as small ramifications which have penetrated
into the earth from the geographically limited faunas of the adjacent
tracts, and which, as they extended themselves into darkness, have
been accommodated to surrounding circumstances. Animals not far
remote from ordinary forms, prepare the transition from light to
darkness. Next follow those that are constructed for twilight; and,
last of all, those destined for total darkness, and whose formation
is quite peculiar." These remarks of Schiodte's it should be understood,
apply not to the same, but to distinct species. By the time that
an animal had reached, after numberless generations, the deepest
recesses, disuse will on this view have more or less perfectly obliterated
its eyes, and natural selection will often have effected other changes,
such as an increase in the length of the antennae or palpi, as a
compensation for blindness. Notwithstanding such modifications,
we might expect still to see in the cave-animals of America, affinities
to the other inhabitants of that continent, and in those of Europe
to the inhabitants of the European continent. And this is the case
with some of the American cave-animals, as I hear from Professor
Dana; and some, of the European cave insects are very closely allied
to those of the surrounding country. It would be difficult to give
any rational explanation of the affinities of the blind cave-animals
to the other inhabitants of the two continents on the ordinary view
of their independent creation. That several of the inhabitants of
the caves of the Old and New Worlds should be closely related, we
might expect from the well-known relationship of most of their other
productions. As a blind species of Bathyscia is found in abundance
on shady rocks far from caves, the loss of vision in the cave-species
of this one genus has probably had no relation to its dark habitation;
for it is natural that an insect already deprived of vision should
readily become adapted to dark caverns. Another blind genus (Anophthaimus)
offers this remarkable peculiarity, that the species, as Mr. Murray
observes, have not as yet been found anywhere except in caves; yet
those which inhabit the several eaves of Europe and America are
distinct; but it is possible that the progenitors of these several
species, whilst they were furnished with eyes, may formerly have
ranged over both continents, and then have become extinct, excepting
in their present secluded abodes. Far from feeling surprise that
some of the cave-animals should be very anomalous, as Agassiz has
remarked in regard to the blind fish, the Amblyopsis, and as is
the case with blind Proteus with reference to the reptiles of Europe,
I am only surprised that more wrecks of ancient life have not been
preserved, owing to the less severe competition to which the scanty
inhabitants of these dark abodes will have been exposed.

Habit is hereditary with plants, as in the period of flowering,
in the time of sleep, in the amount of rain requisite for seeds
to germinate, &c., and this leads me to say a few words on acclimatisation.
As it is extremely common for distinct species belonging to the
same genus to inhabit hot and cold countries, if it be true that
all the species of the same genus are descended from a single parent-form,
acclimatisation must be readily effected during a long course of
descent. It is notorious that each species is adapted to the climate
of its own home: species from an arctic or even from a temperate
region cannot endure a tropical climate, or conversely. So again,
many succulent plants cannot endure a damp climate. But the degree
of adaptation of species to the climates under which they live is
often overrated. We may infer this from our frequent inability to
predict whether or not an imported plant will endure our climate,
and from the number of plants and animals brought from different
countries which are here perfectly healthy. We have reason to believe
that species in a state of nature are closely limited in their ranges
by the competition of other organic beings quite as much as, or
more than, by adaptation to particular climates. But whether or
not this adaptation is in most cases very close, we have evidence
with some few plants, of their becoming, to a certain extent, naturally
habituated to different temperatures; that is, they become acclimatised:
thus the pines and rhododendrons, raised from seed collected by
Dr. Hooker from the same species growing at different heights on
the Himalaya, were found to possess in this country different constitutional
powers of resisting cold. Mr. Thwaites informs me that he has observed
similar facts in Ceylon; analogous observations have been made by
Mr. H. C. Watson on European species of plants brought from the
Azores to England; and I could give other cases. In regard to animals,
several authentic instances could be adduced of species having largely
extended, within historical times, their range from warmer to cooler
latitudes, and conversely; but we do not positively know that these
animals were strictly adapted to their native climate, though in
all ordinary cases we assume such to be the case; nor do we know
that they have subsequently become specially acclimatised to their
new homes, so as to be better fitted for them than they were at
first.
As we may infer that our domestic animals were originally chosen
by uncivilised man because they were useful and because they bred
readily under confinement, and not because they were subsequently
found capable of far-extended transportation, the common and extraordinary
capacity in our domestic animals of not only withstanding the most
different climates, but of being perfectly fertile (a far severer
test) under them, may be used as an argument that a large proportion
of other animals now in a state of nature could easily be brought
to bear widely different climates. We must not, however, push the
foregoing argument too far, on account of the probable origin of
some of our domestic animals from several wild stocks; the blood,
for instance, of a tropical and arctic wolf may perhaps be mingled
in our domestic breeds. The rat and mouse cannot be considered as
domestic animals, but they have been transported by man to many
parts of the world, and now have a far wider range than any other
rodent; for they live under the cold climate of Faroe in the north
and of the Falklands in the south, and on many an island in the
torrid zones. Hence adaptation to any special climate may be looked
at as a quality readily grafted on an innate wide flexibility of
constitution, common to most animals. On this view, the capacity
of enduring the most different climates by man himself and by his
domestic animals, and the fact of the extinct elephant and rhinoceros
having formerly endured a glacial climate, whereas the living species
are now all tropical or sub-tropical in their habits, ought not
to be looked at as anomalies, but as examples of a very common flexibility
of constitution, brought, under peculiar circumstances, into action.
How much of the acclimatisation of species to any peculiar climate
is due to mere habit, and how much to the natural selection of varieties
having different innate constitutions, and how much to both means
combined, is an obscure question. That habit or custom has some
influence, I must believe, both from analogy and from the incessant
advice given in agricultural works, even in the ancient encyclopaedias
of China, to be very cautious in transporting animals from one district
to another. And as it is not likely that man should have succeeded
in selecting so many breeds and sub-breeds with constitutions specially
fitted for their own districts, the result must, I think, be due
to habit. On the other hand, natural selection would inevitably
tend to preserve those individuals which were born with constitutions
best adapted to any country which they inhabited. In treatises on
many kinds of cultivated plants, certain varieties are said to withstand
certain climates better than others; this is strikingly shown in
works on fruit-trees published in the United States, in which certain
varieties are habitually recommended for the northern and others
for the southern States; and as most of these varieties are of recent
origin, they cannot owe their constitutional differences to habit.
The case of the Jerusalem artichoke, which is never propagated in
England by seed, and of which consequently new varieties have not
been produced, has even been advanced, as proving that acclimatisation
cannot be effected, for it is now as tender as ever it was! The
case, also, of the kidney-bean has been often cited for a similar
purpose, and with much greater weight; but until someone will sow,
during a score of generations, his kidney-beans so early that a
very large proportion are destroyed by frost, and then collect seed
from the few survivors, with care to prevent accidental crosses,
and then again get seed from these seedlings, with the same precautions,
the experiment cannot be said to have been tried. Nor let it be
supposed that differences in the constitution of seedling kidney-beans
never appear, for an account has been published how much more hardy
some seedlings are than others; and of this fact I have myself observed
striking instances.
On the whole, we may conclude that habit, or use and disuse, have,
in some cases, played a considerable part in the modification of
the constitution and structure; but that the effects have often
been largely combined with, and sometimes overmastered by, the natural
selection of innate variations.

I mean by this expression that the whole organisation is so tied
together during its growth and development, that when slight variations
in any one part occur, and are accumulated through natural selection,
other parts become modified. This is a very important subject, most
imperfectly understood, and no doubt wholly different classes of
facts may be here easily confounded together. We shall presently
see that simple inheritance often gives the false appearance of
correlation. One of the most obvious real cases is, that variations
of structure arising in the young or larvae naturally tend to affect
the structure of the mature animal. The several parts of the body
which are homologous, and which, at an early embryonic period, are
identical in structure, and which are necessarily exposed to similar
conditions, seem eminently liable to vary in a like manner: we see
this in the right and left sides of the body varying in the same
manner; in the front and hind legs, and even in the jaws and limbs,
varying together, for the lower jaw is believed by some anatomists
to be homologous with the limbs. These tendencies, I do not doubt,
may be mastered more or less completely by natural selection; thus
a family of stags once existed with an antler only on one side;
and if this had been of any great use to the breed, it might probably
have been rendered permanent by selection.
Homologous parts, as has been remarked by some authors, tend to
cohere; this is often seen in monstrous plants: and nothing is more
common than the union of homologous parts in normal structures,
as in the union of the petals into a tube. Hard parts seem to affect
the form of adjoining soft parts; it is believed by some authors
that with birds the diversity in the shape of the pelvis causes
the remarkable diversity in the shape of their kidneys. Others believe
that the shape of the pelvis in the human mother influences by pressure
the shape of the head of the child. In snakes, according to Schlegel,
the form of the body and the manner of swallowing determine the
position and form of several of the most important viscera.
The nature of the bond is frequently quite obscure. Isidore Geoffroy
St-Hilaire has forcibly remarked that certain malconformations frequently,
and that others rarely, co-exist, without our being able assign
any reason. What can be more singular than the relation in cats
between complete whiteness and blue eyes with deafness, or between
the tortoise-shell colour and the female sex; or in pigeons between
their feathered feet and skin betwixt the outer toes, or between
the presence of more or less down on the young pigeon when first
hatched, with the future colour of its plumage; or, again, the relation
between the hair and teeth in the naked Turkish dog, though here
no doubt homology comes into play? With respect to this latter case
of correlation, I think it can hardly be accidental, that the two
orders of mammals which are most abnormal in their dermal covering,
viz., Cetacea (whales) and Edentata (armadilloes, scaly ant-eaters,
&c.,) are likewise on the whole the most abnormal in their teeth;
but there are so many exceptions to this rule, as Mr. Mivart has
remarked, that it has little value.
I know of no case better adapted to show the importance of the
laws of correlation and variation, independently of utility and
therefore of natural selection, than that of the difference between
the outer and inner flowers in some compositous and timbelliferous
plants. Every one is familiar with the difference between the ray
and central florets of, for instance, the daisy, and this difference
is often accompanied with the partial or complete abortion of the
reproductive organs. But in some of these plants, the seeds also
differ in shape and sculpture. These differences have sometimes
been attributed to the pressure of the involuera on the florets,
or to their mutual pressure, and the shape of the seeds in the ray-florets
of some Compositae countenances this idea; but with the Umbelliferae,
it is by no means, as Dr. Hooker informs me, the species with the
densest heads which most frequently differ in their inner and outer
flowers. It might have been thought that the development of the
ray-petals by drawing nourishment from the reproductive organs causes
their abortion; but this can hardly be the sole cause, for in some
Compositae the seeds of the outer and inner florets differ, without
any difference in the corolla. Possibly these several differences
may be connected with the different flow of nutriment towards the
central and external flowers: we know, at least, that with irregular
flowers, those nearest to the axis are most subject to peloria,
that is to become abnormally symmetrical. I may add, as an instance
of this fact, and as a striking case of correlation, that in many
pelargoniums, the two upper petals in the central flower of the
truss often lose their patches of darker colour; and when this occurs,
the adherent nectary is quite aborted; the central flower thus becoming
peloric or regular. When the colour is absent from only one of the
two upper petals, the nectary is not quite aborted but is much shortened.
With respect to the development of the corolla, Sprengel's idea
that the ray-florets serve to attract insects, whose agency is highly
advantageous or necessary for the fertilisation of these plants,
is highly probable; and if so, natural selection may have come into
play. But with respect to the seeds, it seems impossible that their
differences in shape, which are not always correlated with any difference
in the corolla, can be in any way beneficial: yet in the Umbelliferae
these differences are of such apparent importance- the seeds being
sometimes orthospermous in the exterior flowers and coelospermous
in the central flowers,- that the elder De Candolle founded his
main divisions in the order on such characters. Hence modifications
of structure, viewed by systematists as of high value, may be wholly
due to the laws of variation and correlation, without being, as
far as we can judge, of the slightest service to the species.
We may often falsely attribute to correlated variation structures
which are common to whole groups of species, and which in truth
are simply due to inheritance; for an ancient progenitor may have
acquired through natural selection some one modification in structure,
and, after thousands of generations, some other and independent
modification; and these two modifications, having been transmitted
to a whole group of descendants with diverse habits, would naturally
be thought to be in some necessary manner correlated. Some other
correlations are apparently due to the manner in which natural selection
can alone act. For instance, Alph. de Candolle has remarked that
winged seeds are never found in fruits which do not open; I should
explain this rule by the impossibility of seeds gradually becoming
winged through natural selection, unless the capsules were open;
for in this case alone could the seeds, which were a little better
adapted to be wafted by the wind, gain an advantage over others
less well fitted for wide dispersal.

The elder Geoffroy and Goethe propounded, at about the same time,
their law of compensation or balancement of growth; or, as Goethe
expressed it, "In order to spend on one side, nature is forced to
economise on the other side." I think this holds true to a certain
extent with our domestic productions: if nourishment flows to one
part or organ in excess, it rarely flows, at least in excess, to
another part; thus it is difficult to get a cow to give much milk
and to fatten readily. The same varieties of the cabbage do not
yield abundant and nutritious foliage and a copious supply of oil-bearing
seeds. When the seeds in our fruits become atrophied, the fruit
itself gains largely in size and quality. In our poultry, a large
tuft of feathers on the head is generally accompanied by a diminished
comb, and a large beard by diminished wattles. With species in a
state of nature it can hardly be maintained that the law is of universal
application; but many good observers, more especially botanists,
believe in its truth. I will not, however, here give any instances,
for I see hardly any way of distinguishing between the effects,
on the one hand, of a part being largely developed through natural
selection and another and adjoining part being reduced by this same
process or by disuse, and, on the other hand the actual withdrawal
of nutriment from one part owing to the excess of growth in another
and adjoining part.
I suspect, also, that some of the cases of compensation which have
been advanced, and likewise some other facts, may be merged under
a more general principle, namely, that natural selection is continually
trying to economise every part of the organization. If under changed
conditions of life a structure, before useful, becomes less useful,
its diminution will be favoured, for it will profit the individual
not to have its nutriment wasted in building up an useless structure.
I can only thus understand a fact with which I was much struck when
examining cirripedes, and of which many analogous instances could
be given: namely, that when a cirripede is parasitic within another
cirripede and is thus protected, it loses more or less completely
its own shell or carapace. This is the case with the male Ibla,
and in a truly extraordinary manner with the Proteolepas: for the
carapace in all other cirripedes consists of the three highly-important
anterior segments of the head enormously developed, and furnished
with great nerves and muscles; but in the parasitic and protected
Proteolepas, the whole anterior part of the head is reduced to the
merest rudiment attached to the bases of the prehensile antennae.
Now the saving of a large and complex structure, when rendered superfluous,
would be a decided advantage to each successive individual of the
species; for in the struggle for life to which every animal is exposed,
each would have a better chance of supporting itself, by less nutriment
being wasted.
Thus, as I believe, natural selection will tend in the long run
to reduce any part of the organisation, as soon as it becomes, through
changed habits, superfluous, without by any means causing some other
part to be largely developed in a corresponding degree. And, conversely,
that natural selection may perfectly well succeed in largely developing
an organ without requiring as a necessary compensation the reduction
of some adjoining part.

It seems to be a rule, as remarked by the younger Geoffroy, both
with varieties and species, that when any part or organ is repeated
many times in the same individual (as the vertebrae in snakes, and
the stamens in polyandrous flowers) the number is variable; whereas
the same part or organ, when it occurs in lesser numbers, is constant.
The same author as well as some botanists have further remarked
that multiple parts are extremely liable to vary in structure. As
"vegetable repetition," to use Prof. Owen's expression, is a sign
of low organisation, the foregoing statements accord with the common
opinion of naturalists, that beings which stand low in the scale
of nature are more variable than those which are higher. I presume
that lowness here means that the several parts of the organisation
have been but little specialised for particular functions; and as
long as the same part has to perform diversified work, we can perhaps
see why it should remain variable, that is, why natural selection
should not have preserved or rejected each little deviation of form
as carefully as when the part has to serve for some one special
purpose. In the same way, a knife which has to cut all sorts of
things may be of almost any shape; whilst a tool for some particular-purpose
must be of some particular shape. Natural selection, it should never
be forgotten, can act solely through and for the advantage of each
being.
Rudimentary parts, as it is generally admitted, are apt to be highly
variable. We shall have to recur to this subject; and I will here
only add that their variability seems to result from their uselessness,
and consequently from natural selection having had no power to check
deviations in their structure.
A Part developed in any Species in an extraordinary degree or manner,
in comparison with the same Part in allied Species, tends to be
highly variable
Several years ago I was much struck by a remark, to the above effect,
made by Mr. Waterhouse. Professor Owen, also, seems to have come
to a nearly similar conclusion. It is hopeless to attempt to convince
any one of the truth of the above proposition without giving the
long array of facts which I have collected, and which cannot possibly
be here introduced. I can only state my conviction that it is a
rule of high generality. I am aware of several causes of error,
but I hope that I have made due allowance for them. It should be
understood that the rule by no means applies to any part, however
unusually developed, unless it be unusually developed in one species
or in a few species in comparison with the same part in many closely
allied species. Thus, the wing of a bat is a most abnormal structure
in the class of mammals, but the rule would not apply here, because
the whole group of bats possesses wings; it would apply only if
some one species had wings developed in a remarkable manner in comparison
with the other species of the same genus. The rule applies very
strongly in the case of secondary sexual characters, when displayed
in any unusual manner. The term, secondary sexual characters, used
by Hunter, relates to characters which are attached to one sex,
but are not directly connected with the act of reproduction. The
rule applies to males and females; but more rarely to the females,
as they seldom offer remarkable secondary sexual characters. The
rule being so plainly applicable in the case of secondary sexual
characters, may be due to the great variability of these characters,
whether or not displayed in any unusual manner- of which fact I
think there can be little doubt. But that our rule is not confined
to secondary sexual characters is clearly shown in the case of hermaphrodite
cirripedes; I particularly attended to Mr. Waterhouse's remark,
whilst investigating this Order, and I am fully convinced that the
rule almost always holds good. I shall, in a future work, give a
list of all the more remarkable cases; I will here give only one,
as it illustrates the rule in its largest application. The opereular
valves of sessile cirripedes (rock barnacles) are, in every sense
of the word, very important structures, and they differ extremely
little even in distinct genera; but in the several species of one
genus, Pyrgoma, these valves present a marvelous amount of diversification;
the homologous valves in the different species being sometimes wholly
unlike in shape; and the amount of variation in the individuals
of the same species is so great, that it is no exaggeration to state
that the varieties of the same species differ more from each other
in the characters derived from these important organs, than do the
species belonging to other distinct genera.
As with birds the individuals of the same species, inhabiting the
same country, vary extremely little, I have particularly attended
to them; and the rule certainly seems to hold good in this class.
I cannot make out that it applies to plants, and this would have
seriously shaken my belief in its truth, had not the great variability
in plants made it particularly difficult to compare their relative
degrees of variability.
When we see any part or organ developed in a remarkable degree
or manner in a species, the fair presumption is that it is of high
importance to that species: nevertheless it is in this case eminently
liable to variation. Why should this be so? On the view that each
species has been independently created, with all its parts as we
now see them, I can see no explanation. But on the view that groups
of species are descended from some other species, and have been
modified through natural selection, I think we can obtain some light.
First let me make some preliminary remarks. If, in our domestic
animals, any part or the whole animal be neglected, and no selection
be applied, that part (for instance, the comb in the Dorking fowl)
or the whole breed will cease to have a uniform character: and the
breed may be said to be degenerating. In rudimentary organs, and
in those which have been but little specialised for any particular
purpose, and perhaps in polymorphic groups, we see a nearly parallel
case; for in such cases natural selection either has not or cannot
have come into full play, and thus the organisation is left in a
fluctuating condition. But what here more particularly concerns
us is, that those points in our domestic animals, which at the present
time are undergoing rapid change by continued selection, are also
eminently liable to variation. Look at the individuals of the same
breed of the pigeon, and see what a prodigious amount of difference
there is in the beaks of tumblers, in the beaks and wattle of carriers,
in the carriage and tail of fantails, &c., these being the points
now mainly attended to by English fanciers. Even in the same sub-breed,
as in that of the short-faced tumbler, it is notoriously difficult
to breed nearly perfect birds, many departing widely from the standard.
There may truly be said to be a constant struggle going on between,
on the one hand, the tendency to reversion to a less perfect state,
as well as an innate tendency to new variations, and, on the other
hand, the power of steady selection to keep the breed true. In the
long run selection gains the day, and we do not expect to fail so
completely as to breed a bird as coarse as a common tumbler pigeon
from a good short-faced strain. But as long as selection is rapidly
going on, much variability in the parts undergoing modification
may always be expected.
Now let us turn to nature. When a part has been developed in an
extraordinary manner in any one species, compared with the other
species of the same genus, we may conclude that this part has undergone
an extraordinary amount of modification since the period when the
several species branched off from the common progenitor of the genus.
This period will seldom be remote in any extreme degree, as species
rarely endure for more than one geological period. An extraordinary
amount of modification implies an unusually large and long-continued
amount of variability, which has continually been accumulated by
natural selection for the benefit of the species. But as the variability
of the extraordinarily developed part or organ has been so great
and long-continued within a period not excessively remote, we might,
as a general rule, still expect to find more variability in such
parts than in other parts of the organisation which have remained
for a much longer period nearly constant. And this, I am convinced,
is the case. That the struggle between natural selection on the
one hand, and the tendency to reversion and variability on the other
hand, will in the course of time cease; and that the most abnormally
developed organs may be made constant, I see no reason to doubt.
Hence, when an organ, however abnormal it may be, has been transmitted
in approximately the same condition to many modified descendants,
as in the case of the wing of the bat, it must have existed, according
to our theory, for an immense period in nearly the same state; and
thus it has come not to be more variable than any other structure.
It is only in those cases in which the modification has been comparatively
recent and extraordinarily great that we ought to find the generative
variability, as it may be called, still present in a high degree.
For in this case the variability will seldom as yet have been fixed
by the continued selection of the individuals varying in the required
manner and degree, and by the continued rejection of those tending
to revert to a former and less modified condition.

The principle discussed under the last heading may be applied to
our present subject. It is notorious that specific characters are
more variable than generic. To explain by a simple example what
is meant: if in a large genus of plants some species had blue flowers
and some had red, the colour would be only a specific character,
and no one would be surprised at one of the blue species varying
into red, or conversely; but if all the species had blue flowers,
the colour would become a generic character, and its variation would
be a more unusual circumstance. I have chosen this example because
the explanation which most naturalists would advance is not here
applicable, namely, that specific characters are more variable than
generic, because they are taken from parts of less physiological
importance than those commonly used for classing genera. I believe
this explanation is partly, yet only indirectly, true; I shall,
however, have to return to this point in the chapter on Classification.
It would be almost superfluous to adduce evidence in support of
the statement, that ordinary specific characters are more variable
than generic; but with respect to important characters I have repeatedly
noticed in works on natural history, that when an author remarks
with surprise that some important organ or part, which is generally
very constant throughout a large group of species, differs considerably
in closely-allied species, it is often variable in the individuals
of the same species. And this fact shows that a character, which
is generally of generic value, when it sinks in value and becomes
only of specific value, often becomes variable, though its physiological
importance may remain the same. Something of the same kind applies
to monstrosities: at least Isidore Geoffroy St-Hilaire apparently
entertains no doubt that the more an organ normally differs in the
different species of the same group, the more subject it is to anomalies
in the individuals.
On the ordinary view of each species having been independently
created, why should that part of the structure, which differs from
the same part in other independently-created species of the same
genus, be more variable than those parts which are closely alike
in the several species? I do not see that any explanation can be
given. But on the view that species are only strongly marked and
fixed varieties, we might expect often to find them still continuing
to vary in those parts of their structure which have varied within
a moderately recent period, and which have thus come to differ.
Or to state the case in another manner:- the points in which all
the species of a genus resemble each other, and in which they differ
from allied genera, are called generic characters; and these characters
may be attributed to inheritance from a common progenitor, for it
can rarely have happened that natural selection will have modified
several distinct species, fitted to more or less widely-different
habits, in exactly the same manner: and as these so-called generic
characters have been inherited from before the period when the several
species first branched off from their common progenitor, and subsequently
have not varied or come to differ in any degree, or only in a slight
degree, it is not probable that they should vary at the present
day. On the other hand, the points in which species differ from
other species of the same genus are called specific characters;
and as these specific characters have varied and come to differ
since the period when the species branched off from a common progenitor,
it is probable that they should still often be in some degree variable,-
at least more variable than those parts of the organisation which
have for a very long period remained constant.
Secondary Sexual Characters Variable.- I think it will be admitted
by naturalists, without my entering on details, that secondary sexual
characters are highly variable. It will also be admitted that species
of the same group differ from each other more widely in their secondary
sexual characters, than in other parts of their organisation: compare,
for instance, the amount of difference between the males of gallinaceous
birds, in which secondary sexual characters are strongly displayed,
with the amount of difference between the females. The cause of
the original variability of these characters is not manifest; but
we can see why they should not have been rendered as constant and
uniform as others, for they are accumulated by sexual selection,
which is less rigid in its action than ordinary selection, as it
does not entail death, but only gives fewer off-spring to the less
favoured males. Whatever the cause may be of the variability of
secondary sexual characters, as they are highly variable, sexual
selection will have had a wide scope for action, and may thus have
succeeded in giving to the species of the same group a greater amount
of difference in these than in other respects.
It is a remarkable fact, that the secondary differences between
the two sexes of the same species are generally displayed in the
very same parts of the organisation in which the species of the
same genus differ from each other. Of this fact I will give in illustration
the two first instances which happen to stand on my list; and as
the differences in these cases are of a very unusual nature, the
relation can hardly be accidental. The same number of joints in
the tarsi is a character common to very large groups of beetles,
but in the Engidoe, as Westwood has remarked, the number varies
greatly; and the number likewise differs in the two sexes of the
same species. Again in the fossorial hymenoptera, the neuration
of the wings is a character of the highest importance, because common
to large groups; but in certain genera the neuration differs in
the different species, and likewise in the two sexes of the same
species. Sir J. Lubbock has recently remarked, that several minute
crustaceans offer excellent illustrations of this law. "In Pontella,
for instance, the sexual characters are afforded mainly by the anterior
antennae and by the fifth pair of legs: the specific differences
also are principally given by these organs." This relation has a
clear meaning on my view: I look at all the species of the same
genus as having as certainly descended from a common progenitor,
as have the two sexes of any one species. Consequently, whatever
part of the structure of the common progenitor, or of its early
descendants, became variable, variations of this part would, it
is highly probable, be taken advantage of by natural and sexual
selection, in order to fit the several species to their several
places in the economy of nature, and likewise to fit the two sexes
of the same species to each other, or to fit the males to struggle
with other males for the possession of the females.
Finally, then, I conclude that the greater variability of specific
characters, or those which distinguish species from species, than
of generic characters, or those which are possessed by all the species;-
that the frequent extreme variability of any part which is developed
in a species in an extraordinary manner in comparison with the same
part in its congeners; and the slight degree of variability in a
part, however extraordinarily it may be developed, if it be common
to a whole group of species;- that the great variability of secondary
sexual characters, and their great difference in closely allied
species;- that secondary sexual and ordinary specific differences
are generally displayed in the same parts of the organisation,-
are all principles closely connected together. All being mainly
due to the species of the same group being the descendants of common
progenitor, from whom they have inherited much in common,- to parts
which have recently and largely varied being more likely still to
go on varying than parts which have long been inherited and have
not varied,- to natural selection having more or less completely,
according to the lapse of time, overmastered the tendency to reversion
and to further variability,- to sexual selection being less rigid
than ordinary selection,- and to variations in the same parts having
been accumulated by natural and sexual selection, and having been
thus adapted for secondary sexual, and for ordinary purposes.
Distinct Species present analagous Variations, so that a Variety
of one Species often assumes a Character proper to an Allied Species,
or reverts to some of the Characters of an early Progenitor.- These
propositions will be most readily understood by looking to our domestic
races. The most distinct breeds of the pigeon, in countries widely
apart, present sub-varieties with reversed feathers on the head,
and with feathers on the feet,- characters not possessed by the
aboriginal rock-pigeon; these then are analogous variations in two
or more distinct races. The frequent presence of fourteen or even
sixteen tail-feathers in the pouter may be considered as a variation
representing the normal structure of another race, the fan-tail.
I presume that no one will doubt that all such analogous variations
are due to the several races of the pigeon having inherited from
a common parent the same constitution and tendency to variation,
when acted on by similar unknown influences. In the vegetable kingdom
we have a case of analogous variation, in the enlarged stems, or
as commonly called roots, of the Swedish turnip and Rutabaga, plants
which several botanists rank as varieties produced by cultivation
from a common parent: if this be not so, the case will then be one
of analogous variation in two so-called distinct species; and to
these a third may be added, namely, the common turnip. According
to the ordinary view of each species having been independently created,
we should have to attribute this similarity in the enlarged stems
of these three plants, not to the vera causa of community of descent,
and a consequent tendency to vary in a like manner, but to three
separate yet closely related acts of creation. Many similar cases
of analogous variation have been observed by Naudin in the great
gourd-family, and by various authors in our cereals. Similar cases
occurring with insects under natural conditions have lately been
discussed with much ability by Mr. Walsh, who has grouped them under
his law of Equable Variability.
With pigeons, however, we have another case, namely, the occasional
appearance in all the breeds, of slaty-blue birds with two black
bars on the wings, white loins, a bar at the end of the tail, with
the outer feathers externally edged near their basis with white.
As all these marks are characteristic of the parent rock-pigeon,
I presume that no one will doubt that this is a case of reversion,
and not of a new yet analogous variation appearing in the several
breeds. We may, I think, confidently come to this conclusion, because,
as we have seen, these coloured marks are eminently liable to appear
in the crossed offspring of two distinct and differently coloured
breeds; and in this case there is nothing in the external conditions
of life to cause the reappearance of the slaty-blue, with the several
marks, beyond the influence of the mere act of crossing on the laws
of inheritance.
No doubt it is a very surprising fact that characters should reappear
after having been lost for many, probably for hundreds of generations.
But when a breed has been crossed only once by some other breed,
the offspring occasionally show for many generations a tendency
to revert in character to the foreign breed- some say, for a dozen
or even a score of generations. After twelve generations, the proportion
of blood, to use a common expression, from one ancestor, is only
1 in 2048; and yet, as we see, it is generally believed that a tendency
to reversion is retained by this remnant of foreign blood. In a
breed which has not been crossed, but in which both parents have
lost some character which their progenitor possessed, the tendency,
whether strong or weak, to reproduce the lost character might, as
was formerly remarked, for all that we can see to the contrary,
be transmitted for almost any number of generations. When a character
which has been lost in a breed, reappears after a great number of
generations, the most probable hypothesis is, not that one individual
suddenly takes after an ancestor removed by some hundred generations,
but that in each successive generation the character in question
has been lying latent, and at last, under unknown favourable conditions,
is developed. With the barb-pigeon, for instance, which very rarely
produces a blue bird, it is probable that there is a latent tendency
in each generation to produce blue plumage. The abstract improbability
of such a tendency being transmitted through a vast number of generations,
is not greater than that of quite useless or rudimentary organs
being similarly transmitted. A mere tendency to produce a rudiment
is indeed sometimes thus inherited.
As all the species of the same genus are supposed to be descended
from a common progenitor, it might be expected that they would occasionally
vary in an analogous manner; so that the varieties of two or more
species would resemble each other, or that a variety of one species
would resemble in certain characters another and distinct species,-
this other species being, according to our view, only a well marked
and permanent variety. But characters exclusively due to analogous
variation would probably be of an unimportant nature, for the preservation
of all functionally important characters will have been determined
through natural selection, in accordance with the different habits
of the species. It might further be expected that the species of
the same genus would occasionally exhibit reversions to long lost
characters. As, however, we do not know the common ancestors of
any natural group, we cannot distinguish between reversionary and
analogous characters. If, for instance, we did not know that the
parent rock-pigeon was not feather-footed or turn-crowned, we could
not have told, whether such characters in our domestic breeds were
reversions or only analogous variations; but we might have inferred
that the blue colour was a case of reversion from the number of
the markings, which are correlated with this tint, and which would
not probably have all appeared together from simple variation. More
especially we might have inferred this, from the blue colour and
the several marks so often appearing when differently coloured breeds
are crossed. Hence, although under nature it must generally be left
doubtful, what cases are reversions to formerly existing characters,
and what are new but analogous variations, yet we ought, on our
theory, sometimes to find the varying offspring of a species assuming
characters which are already present in other members of the same
group. And this undoubtedly is the case.
The difficulty in distinguishing variable species is largely due
to the varieties mocking, as it were, other species of the same
genus. A considerable catalogue, also, could be given of forms intermediate
between two other forms, which themselves can only doubtfully be
ranked as species; and this shows, unless all these closely allied
forms be considered as independently created species, that they
have in varying assumed some of the characters of the others. But
the best evidence of analogous variations is afforded by parts or
organs which are generally constant in character, but which occasionally
vary so as to resemble, in some degree, the same part or organ in
an allied species. I have collected a long list of such cases; but
here, as before, I lie under the great disadvantage of not being
able to give them. I can only repeat that such cases certainly occur,
and seem to me very remarkable.
I will, however, give one curious and complex case, not indeed
as affecting any important character, but from occurring in several
species of the same genus, partly under domestication and partly
under nature. It is a case almost certainly of reversion. The ass
sometimes has very distinct transverse bars on its legs, like those
on the legs of the zebra: it has been asserted that these are plainest
in the foal, and, from inquiries which I have made, I believe this
to be true. The stripe on the shoulder is sometimes double, and
is very variable in length and outline. A white ass, but not an
albino, has been described without either spinal or shoulder stripe:
and these stripes are sometimes very obscure, or actually quite
lost, in dark-coloured asses. The koulan of Pallas is said to have
been seen with a double shoulder-stripe. Mr. Blyth has seen a specimen
of the hemionus with a distinct shoulder-stripe, though it properly
has none; and I have been informed by Colonel Poole that the foals
of this species are generally striped on the legs, and faintly on
the shoulder. The quagga, though so plainly barred like a zebra
over the body, is without bars on the legs; but Dr. Gray has figured
one specimen with very distinct zebra-like bars on the hocks.
With respect to the horse, I have collected cases in England of
the spinal stripe in horses of the most distinct breeds, and of
all colours: transverse bars on the legs are not rare in duns, mouse-duns,
and in one instance in a chestnut a faint shoulder-stripe may sometimes
be seen in duns, and I have seen a trace in a bay horse. My son
made a careful examination and sketch for me of a dun Belgian cart-horse
with a double stripe on each shoulder and with leg-stripes; I have
myself seen a dun Devonshire pony, and a small dun Welsh pony has
been carefully described to me, both with three parallel stripes
on each shoulder.
In the north-west part of India the kattywar breed of horses is
so generally striped, that, as I hear from Colonel Poole, who examined
this breed for the Indian Government, a horse without stripes is
not considered as purely-bred. The spine is always striped; the
legs are generally barred; and the shoulder-stripe, which is sometimes
double and sometimes treble, is common; the side of the face, moreover,
is sometimes striped. The stripes are often plainest in the foal;
and sometimes quite disappear in old horses. Colonel Poole has seen
both gray and bay kattywar horses striped when first foaled. I have
also reason to suspect, from information given me by Mr. W. W. Edwards,
that with the English race-horse the spinal stripe is much commoner
in the foal than in the fullgrown animal. I have myself recently
bred a foal from a bay mare (offspring of a Turkoman horse and a
Flemish mare) by a bay English race-horse; this foal when a week
old was marked on its hinder quarters and on its forehead with numerous,
very narrow, dark, zebra-like bars, and its legs were feebly striped:
all the stripes soon disappeared completely. Without here entering
on further details, I may state that I have collected cases of leg
and shoulder stripes in horses of very different breeds in various
countries from Britain to eastern China; and from Norway in the
north to the Malay Archipelago in the south. In all parts of the
world these stripes occur far oftenest in duns and mouse-duns; by
the term dun a large range of colour is included, from one between
brown and black to a close approach to cream-colour.
I am aware that Colonel Hamilton Smith, who has written on this
subject, believes that the several breeds of the horse are descended
from several aboriginal species- one of which, the dun, was striped;
and that the above described appearances are an due to ancient crosses
with the dun stock. But this view may be safely rejected; for it
is highly improbable that the heavy Belgian cart-horse, Welsh ponies,
Norwegian cobs, the lanky kattywar race, &c., inhabiting the
most distant parts of the world, should all have been crossed with
one supposed aboriginal stock.
Now let us turn to the effects of crossing the several species
of the horse-genus. Rollin asserts, that the common mule from the
ass and horse is particularly apt to have bars on its legs; according
to Mr. Gosse, in certain parts of the United States about nine out
of ten mules have striped legs. I once saw a mule with its legs
so much striped that any one might have thought that it was a hybrid-zebra;
and Mr. W. C. Martin, in his excellent treatise on the horse, has
given a figure of a similar mule. In four coloured drawings, which
I have seen, of hybrids between the ass and zebra, the legs were
much more plainly barred than the rest of the body; and in one of
them there was a double shoulder-stripe. In Lord Morton's famous
hybrid, from a chestnut mare and male quagga, the hybrid, and even
the pure offspring subsequently produced from the same mare by a
black Arabian sire, were much more plainly barred across the legs
than is even the pure quagga. Lastly, and this is another most remarkable
case, a hybrid has been figured by Dr. Gray (and he informs me that
he knows of a second case) from the ass and the hemionus; and this
hybrid, though the ass only occasionally has stripes on its legs
and the hemionus has none and has not even a shoulder-stripe, nevertheless
had all four legs barred, and had three short shoulder-stripes,
like those on the dun Devonshire and Welsh ponies, and even had
some zebra-like stripes on the sides of its face. With respect to
this last fact, I was so convinced that not even a stripe of colour
appears from what is commonly called chance, that I was led solely
from the occurrence of the face-stripes on this hybrid from the
ass and hemionus to ask Colonel Poole whether such face-stripes
ever occurred in the eminently striped kattywar breed of horses,
and was, as we have seen, answered in the affirmative.
What now are we to say to these several facts? We see several distinct
species of the horse-genus becoming, by simple variation, striped
on the legs like a zebra, or striped on the shoulders like an ass.
In the horse we see this tendency strong whenever a dun tint appears-
a tint which approaches to that of the general colouring of the
other species of the genus. The appearance of the stripes is not
accompanied by any change of form or by any other new character.
We see this tendency to become striped most strongly displayed in
hybrids from between several of the most distinct species. Now observe
the case of the several breeds of pigeons: they are descended from
a pigeon (including two or three sub-species or geographical races)
of bluish colour, with certain bars and other marks; and when any
breed assumes by simple variation a bluish tint, these bars and
other marks invariably reappear; but without any other change of
form or character. When the oldest and truest breeds of various
colours are crossed, we see a strong tendency for the blue tint
and bars and marks to reappear in the mongrels. I have stated that
the most probable hypothesis to account for the reappearance of
very ancient characters, is- that there is a tendency in the young
of each successive generation to produce the long-lost character,
and that this tendency, from unknown causes, sometimes prevails.
And we have just seen that in several species of the horse-genus
the stripes are either plainer or appear more commonly in the young
than in the old. Call the breeds of pigeons, some of which have
bred true for centuries, species; and how exactly parallel is the
case with that of the species of the horse-genus! For myself, I
venture confidently to look back thousands on thousands of generations,
and I see an animal striped like a zebra, but perhaps otherwise
very differently constructed, the common parent of our domestic
horse (whether or not it be descended from one or more wild stocks),
of the ass, the hemionus, quagga, and zebra.
He who believes that each equine species was independently created,
will, I presume, assert that each species has been created with
a tendency to vary, both under nature and under domestication, in
this particular manner, so as often to become striped like the other
species of the genus; and that each has been created with a strong
tendency, when crossed with species inhabiting distant quarters
of the world, to produce hybrids resembling in their stripes, not
their own parents, but other species of the genus. To admit this
view is, as it seems to me, to reject a real for an unreal, or at
least for an unknown, cause. It makes the works of God a mere mockery
and deception; I would almost as soon believe, with the old and
ignorant cosmogonists, that fossil shells had never lived, but had
been created in stone so as to mock the shells living on the seashore.
Summary.- Our ignorance of the laws of variation is profound. Not
in one case out of a hundred can we pretend to assign any reason
why this or that part has varied. But whenever we have the means
of instituting a comparison, the same laws appear to have acted
in producing the lesser differences between varieties of the same
species, and the greater differences between species of the same
genus. Changed conditions generally induce mere fluctuating variability,
but sometimes they cause direct and definite effects; and these
may become strongly marked in the course of time, though we have
not sufficient evidence on this head. Habit in producing constitutional
peculiarities and use in strengthening and disuse in weakening and
diminishing organs, appear in many cases to have been potent in
their effects. Homologous parts tend to vary in the same manner,
and homologous parts tend to cohere. Modifications in hard parts
and in external parts sometimes affect softer and internal parts.
When one part is largely developed, perhaps it tends to draw nourishment
from the adjoining parts; and every part of the structure which
can be saved without detriment will be saved. Changes of structure
at an early age may affect parts subsequently developed; and many
cases of correlated variation, the nature of which we are unable
to understand, undoubtedly occur. Multiple parts are variable in
number and in structure, perhaps arising from such parts not having
been closely specialised for any particular function, so that their
modifications have not been closely cheeked by natural selection.
It follows probably from this same cause, that organic beings low
in the scale are more variable than those standing higher in the
scale, and which have their whole organisation more specialised.
Rudimentary organs, from being useless, are not regulated by natural
selection, and hence are variable. Specific characters- that is,
the characters which have, come to differ since the several species
of the same genus branched off from a common parent- are more variable
than generic characters, or those which have long been inherited,
and have not differed from this same period. In these remarks we
have referred to special parts or organs being still variable, because
they have recently varied and thus come to differ; but we have also
seen in the second chapter that the same principle applies to the
whole individual; for in a district where many species of a genus
are found- that is, where there has been much former variation and
differentiation, or where the manufactory of new specific forms
has been actively at work- in that district and amongst these species,
we now find, on an average, most varieties. Secondary sexual characters
are highly variable, and such characters differ much in the species
of the same group. Variability in the same parts of the organisation
has generally been taken advantage of in giving secondary sexual
differences to the two sexes of the same species, and specific differences
to the several species of the same genus. Any part or organ developed
to an extraordinary size or in an extraordinary manner, in comparison
with the same part or organ in the allied species, must have gone
through an extraordinary amount of modification since the genus
arose; and thus we can understand why it should often still be variable
in a much higher degree than other parts; for variation is a long-continued
and slow process, and natural selection will in such cases not as
yet have had time to overcome the tendency to further variability
and to reversion to a less modified state. But when a species with
any extraordinarily-developed organ has become the parent of many
modified descendants- which on our view must be a very slow process,
requiring long lapse of time- in this case, natural selection has
succeeded in giving a fixed character to the organ, in however extraordinary
a manner it may have been developed. Species inheriting nearly the
same constitution from a common parent, and exposed to similar influences,
naturally tend to present analogous variations, or these same species
may occasionally revert to some of the characters of their ancient
progenitors. Although new and important modifications may not arise
from reversion and analogous variation, such modifications will
add to the beautiful and harmonious diversity of nature.
Whatever the cause may be of each slight difference between the
offspring and their parents- and a cause for each must exist- we
have reason to believe that it is the steady accumulation of beneficial
differences which has given rise to all the more important modifications
of structure in relation to the habits of each species.
LONG before the reader has arrived at this part of my work, a crowd
of difficulties will have occurred to him. Some of them are so serious
that to this day I can hardly reflect on them without being in some
degree staggered; but, to the best of my judgment, the greater number
are only apparent, and those that are real are not, I think, fatal
to the theory.
These difficulties and objections may be classed under the following
heads:- First, why, if species have descended from other species
by fine gradations, do we not everywhere see innumerable transitional
forms? Why is not all nature in confusion, instead of the species
being, as we see them, well defined?
Secondly, is it possible that an animal having, for instance, the
structure and habits of a bat, could have been formed by the modification
of some other animal with widely different habits and structure?
Can we believe that natural selection could produce, on the one
hand, an organ of trifling importance, such as the tail of a giraffe,
which serves as a fly-flapper, and, on the other hand, an organ
so wonderful as the eye?
Thirdly, can instincts be acquired and modified through natural
selection? What shall we say to the instinct which leads the bee
to make cells, and which has practically anticipated the discoveries
of profound mathematicians?
Fourthly, how can we account for species, when crossed, being sterile
and producing sterile offspring, whereas, when varieties are crossed,
their fertility is unimpaired?
The two first heads will here be discussed; some miscellaneous
objections in the following chapter; Instinct and Hybridism in the
two succeeding chapters.
On the Absence or Rarity of Transitional Varieties.- As natural
selection acts solely by the preservation of profitable modifications,
each new form will tend in a fully-stocked country to take the place
of, and finally to exterminate, its own less improved parent-form
and other less favoured forms with which it comes into competition.
Thus extinction and natural selection go hand in hand. Hence, if
we look at each species as descended from some unknown form, both
the parent and all the transitional varieties will generally have
been exterminated by the very process of the formation and perfection
of the new form.
But, as by this theory innumerable transitional forms must have
existed, why do we not find them embedded in countless numbers in
the crust of the earth? It will be more convenient to discuss this
question in the chapter on the Imperfection of the Geological Record;
and I will here only state that I believe the answer mainly lies
in the record being incomparably less perfect than is generally
supposed. The crust of the earth is a vast museum; but the natural
connections have been imperfectly made, and only at long intervals
of time.
But it may be urged that when several closely-allied species inhabit
the same territory, we surely ought to find at the present time
many transitional forms. Let us take a simple case: in travelling
from north to south over a continent, we generally meet at successive
intervals with closely allied or representative species, evidently
filling nearly the same place in the natural economy of the land.
These representative species often meet and interlock; and as the
one becomes rarer and rarer, the other becomes more and more frequent,
till the one replaces the other. But if we compare these species
where they intermingle, they are generally as absolutely distinct
from each other in every detail of structure as are specimens taken
from the metropolis inhabited by each. By my theory these allied
species are descended from a common parent; and during the process
of modification, each has become adapted to the conditions of life
of its own region, and has supplanted and exterminated its original
parent-form and all the transitional varieties between its past
and present states. Hence we ought not to expect at the present
time to meet with numerous transitional varieties in each region,
though they must have existed there, and may be embedded there in
a fossil condition. But in the intermediate region, having intermediate
conditions of life, why do we not now find closely-linking intermediate
varieties? This difficulty for a long time quite confounded me.
But I think it can be in large part explained.
In the first place we should be extremely cautious in inferring,
because an area is now continuous, that it has been continuous during
a long period. Geology would lead us to believe that most continents
have been broken up into islands even during the later tertiary
periods; and in such islands distinct species might have been separately
formed without the possibility of intermediate varieties existing
in the intermediate zones. By changes in the form of the land and
of climate, marine areas now continuous must often have existed
within recent times in a far less continuous and uniform condition
than at present. But I will pass over this way of escaping from
the difficulty; for I believe that many perfectly defined species
have been formed on strictly continuous areas; though I do not doubt
that the formerly broken condition of areas now continuous, has
played an important part in the formation of new species, more especially
with freely-crossing and wandering animals.
In looking at species as they are now distributed over a wide area,
we generally find them tolerably numerous over a large territory,
then becoming somewhat abruptly rarer and rarer on the confines,
and finally disappearing. Hence the neutral territory between two
representative species is generally narrow in comparison with the
territory proper to each. We see the same fact in ascending mountains,
and sometimes it is quite remarkable how abruptly, as Alph. de Candolle
has observed, a common alpine species disappears. The same fact
has been noticed by E. Forbes in sounding the depths of the sea
with the dredge. To those who look at climate and the physical conditions
of life as the all-important elements of distribution, these facts
ought to cause surprise, as climate and height or depth graduate
away insensibly. But when we bear in mind that almost every species,
even in its metropolis, would increase immensely in numbers, were
it not for other competing species; that nearly all either prey
on or serve as prey for others; in short, that each organic being
is either directly or indirectly related in the most important manner
to other organic beings,- we see that the range of the inhabitants
of any country by no means exclusively depends on insensibly changing
physical conditions, but in a large part on the presence of other
species, on which it lives, or by which it is destroyed, or with
which it comes into competition; and as these species are already
defined objects, not blending one into another by insensible gradations,
the range of any one species, depending as does on the range of
others, will tend to be sharply defined. Moreover, each species
on the confines of its range, where it exists in lessened numbers,
will, during fluctuations in the number of its enemies or of its
prey, or in the nature of the seasons, be extremely liable to utter
extermination; and thus its geographical range will come to be still
more sharply defined.
As allied or representative species, when inhabiting a continuous
area, are generally distributed in such a manner that each has a
wide range, with a comparatively narrow neutral territory between
them, in which they become rather suddenly rarer and rarer; then,
as varieties do not essentially differ from species, the same rule
will probably apply to both; and if we take a varying species inhabiting
a very large area, we shall have to adapt two varieties to two large
areas, and a third variety to a narrow intermediate zone. The intermediate
variety, consequently, will exist in lesser numbers from inhabiting
a narrow and lesser area; and practically, as far as I can make
out, this rule holds good with varieties in a state of nature. I
have met with striking instances of the rule in the case of varieties
intermediate between well-marked varieties in the genus Balanus.
And it would appear from information given me by Mr. Watson, Dr.
Asa Gray, and Mr. Wollaston, that generally, when varieties intermediate
between two other forms occur, they are much rarer numerically than
the forms which they connect. Now, if we may trust these facts and
inferences, and conclude that varieties linking two other varieties
together generally have existed in lesser numbers than the forms
which they connect, then we can understand why intermediate varieties
should not endure for very long periods:- why, as a general rule,
they should be exterminated and disappear, sooner than the forms
which they originally linked together.
For any form existing in lesser numbers would, as already remarked,
run a greater chance of being exterminated than one existing in
large numbers; and in this particular case the intermediate form
would be eminently liable to the inroads of closely-allied forms
existing on both sides of it. But it is a far more important consideration,
that during the process of further modification, by which two varieties
are supposed to be converted and perfected into two distinct species,
the two which exist in larger numbers, from inhabiting larger areas,
will have a great advantage over the intermediate variety, which
exists in smaller numbers in a narrow and intermediate zone. For
forms existing in larger numbers will have a better chance, within
any given period, of presenting further favourable variations for
natural selection to seize on, than will the rarer forms which exist
in lesser numbers. Hence, the more common forms, in the race for
life, will tend to beat and supplant the less common forms, for
these will be more slowly modified and improved. It is the same
principle which, as I believe, accounts for the common species in
each country, as shown in the second chapter, presenting on an average
a greater number of well-marked varieties than do the rarer species.
I may illustrate what I mean by supposing three varieties of sheep
to be kept, one adapted to an extensive mountainous region; a second
to a comparatively narrow, hilly tract; and a third to the wide
plains at the base; and that the inhabitants are all trying with
equal steadiness and skill to improve their stocks by selection;
the chances in this case will be strongly in favour of the great
holders on the mountains or on the plains, improving their breeds
more quickly than the small holders on the intermediate narrow,
hilly tract; and consequently the improved mountain or plain breed
will soon take the place of the less improved hill breed; and thus
the two breeds, which originally existed in greater numbers, will
come into close contact with each other, without the interposition
of the supplanted, intermediate hill variety.
To sum up, I believe that species come to be tolerably well-defined
objects, and do not at any one period present an inextricable chaos
of varying and intermediate links; first, because new varieties
are very slowly formed, for variation is a slow process, and natural
selection can do nothing until favourable individual differences
or variations occur, and until a place in the natural polity of
the country can be better filled by some modification of some one
or more of its inhabitants. And such new places will depend on slow
changes of climate, or on the occasional immigration of new inhabitants,
and, probably, in a still more important degree, on some of the
old inhabitants becoming slowly modified, with the new forms thus
produced, and the old ones acting and reacting on each other. So
that, in any one region and at any one time, we ought to see only
a few species presenting slight modifications of structure in some
degree permanent; and this assuredly we do see.
Secondly, areas now continuous must often have existed within the
recent period as isolated portions, in which many forms, more especially
amongst the classes which unite for each birth and wander much,
may have separately been rendered sufficiently distinct to rank
as representative species. In this, case, intermediate varieties
between the several representative species and their common parent,
must formerly have existed within each isolated portion of the land,
but these links during the process of natural selection will have
been supplanted and exterminated, so that they will no longer be
found in a living state.
Thirdly, when two or more varieties have been formed in different
portions of a strictly continuous area, intermediate varieties will,
it is probable, at first have been formed in the intermediate zones,
but they will generally have had a short duration. For these intermediate
varieties will, from reasons already assigned (namely from what
we know of the actual distribution of closely allied or representative
species, and likewise of acknowledged varieties), exist in the intermediate
zones in lesser numbers than the varieties which they tend to connect.
From this cause alone the intermediate varieties will be liable
to accidental extermination; and during the process of further modification
through natural selection, they will almost certainly be beaten
and supplanted by the forms which they connect; for these from existing
in greater numbers will, in the aggregate, present more varieties,
and thus be further improved through natural selection and gain
further advantages.
Lastly, looking not to any one time, but to all time, if my theory
be true, numberless intermediate varieties, linking closely together
all the species of the same group, must assuredly have existed;
but the very process of natural selection constantly tends, as has
been so often remarked, to exterminate the parent-forms and the
intermediate links. Consequently evidence of their former existence
could be found only amongst fossil remains, which are preserved,
as we shall attempt to show in a future chapter, in an extremely
imperfect and intermittent record.
On the Origin and Transitions of Organic Beings with peculiar Habits
and Structure.- It has been asked by the opponents of such views
as I hold, how, for instance, could a land carnivorous animal have
been converted into one with aquatic habits; for how could the animal
in its transitional state have subsisted? It would be easy to show
that there now exist carnivorous animals presenting close intermediate
grades from strictly terrestrial to aquatic habits; and as each
exists by a struggle for life, it is clear that each must be well
adapted to its place in nature. Look at the Mustela vision of North
America, which has webbed feet, and which resembles an otter in
its fur, short legs, and form of tail. During the summer this animal
dives for and preys on fish, but during the long winter it leaves
the frozen waters, and preys, like other pole-cats, on mice and
land animals. If a different case had been taken, and it had been
asked how an insectivorous quadruped could possibly have been converted
into a flying bat, the question would have been far more difficult
to answer. Yet I think such difficulties have little weight.
Here, as on other occasions, I lie under a heavy disadvantage,
for, out of the many striking cases which I have collected, I can
only give one or two instances of transitional habits and structures
in allied species; and of diversified habits, either constant or
occasional, in the same species. And it seems to me that nothing
less than a long list of such cases is sufficient to lessen the
difficulty in any particular case like that of the bat.
Look at the family of squirrels; here we have the finest gradation
from animals with their tails only slightly flattened, and from
others, as Sir J. Richardson has remarked, with the posterior part
of their bodies rather wide and with the skin on their flanks rather
full, to the so-called flying squirrels; and flying squirrels have
their limbs and even the base of the tail united by a broad expanse
of skin, which serves as a parachute and allows them to glide through
the air to an astonishing distance from tree to tree. We cannot
doubt that each structure is of use to each kind of squirrel in
its own country, by enabling it to escape birds or beasts of prey,
to collect food more quickly, or, as there is reason to believe,
to lessen the danger from occasional falls. But it does not follow
from this fact that the structure of each squirrel is the best that
it is possible to conceive under all possible conditions. Let the
climate and vegetation change, let other competing rodents or new
beasts of prey immigrate, or old ones become modified, and all analogy
would lead us to believe that some at least of the squirrels would
decrease in numbers or become exterminated, unless they also become
modified and improved in structure in a corresponding manner. Therefore,
I can see no difficulty, more especially under changing conditions
of life, in the continued preservation of individuals with fuller
and fuller flank membranes, each modification being, useful, each
being propagated, until, by the accumulated effects of this process
of natural selection, a perfect so-called flying squirrel was produced.
Now look at the Galeopithecus or so-called flying lemur, which
formerly was ranked amongst bats, but is now believed to belong
to the Insectivora. An extremely wide flank membrane stretches from
the corners of the jaw to the tail, and includes the limbs with
the elongated fingers. This flank-membrane is furnished with an
extensor muscle. Although no graduated links of structure, fitted
for gliding through the air, now connect the Galeopithecus with
the other Insectivora, yet there is no difficulty in supposing that
such links formerly existed, and that each was developed in the
same manner as with the less perfectly gliding squirrels; each grade
of structure having been useful to its possessor. Nor can I see
any insuperable difficulty in further believing that the membrane
connected fingers and fore-arm of the Galeopithecus might have been
greatly lengthened by natural selection; and this, as far as the
organs of flight are concerned, would have converted the animal
into a bat. In certain bats in which the wing-membrane extends from
the top of the shoulder to the tail and includes the hind-legs,
we perhaps see traces of an apparatus originally fitted for gliding
through the air rather than for flight.
If about a dozen genera of birds were to become extinct, who would
have ventured to surmise that birds might have existed which used
their wings solely as flappers, like the logger-headed duck (Micropterus
of Eyton); as fins in the water and as front-legs on the land, like
the penguin; as sails, like the ostrich; and functionally for no
purpose, like the Apteryx? Yet the structure of each of these birds
is good for it, under the conditions of life to which it is exposed,
for each has to live by a struggle; but it is not necessarily the
best possible under all possible conditions. It must not be inferred
from these remarks that any of the grades of wing-structure here
alluded to, which perhaps may all be the result of disuse, indicate
the steps by which birds actually acquired their perfect power of
flight; but they serve to show what diversified means of transition
are at least possible.
Seeing that a few members of such water-breathing classes as the
Crustacea and Mollusca are adapted to live on the land; and seeing
that we have flying birds and mammals, flying insects of the most
diversified types, and formerly had flying reptiles, it is conceivable
that flying-fish, which now glide far through the air, slightly
rising and turning by the aid of their fluttering fins, might have
been modified into perfectly winged animals. If this had been effected,
who would have ever imagined that in an early transitional state
they had been the inhabitants of the open ocean, and had used their
incipient organs of flight exclusively, as far as we know, to escape
being devoured by other fish?
When we see any structure highly perfected for any particular habit,
as the wings of a bird for flight, we should bear in mind that animals
displaying early transitional grades of the structure will seldom
have survived to the present day, for they will have been supplanted
by their successors, which were gradually rendered more perfect
through natural selection. Furthermore, we may conclude that transitional
states between structures fitted for very different habits of life
will rarely have been developed at an early period in great numbers
and under many subordinate forms. Thus, to return to our imaginary
illustration of the flying-fish, it does not seem probable that
fishes capable of true flight would have been developed under many
subordinate forms, for taking prey of many kinds in many ways, on
the land and in the water, until their organs of flight had come
to a high stage of perfection, so as to have given them a decided
advantage over other animals in the battle for life. Hence the chance
of discovering species with transitional grades of structure in
a fossil condition will always be less, from their having existed
in lesser numbers, than in the case of species with fully developed
structures.
I will now give two or three instances both of diversified and
of changed habits in the individuals of the same species. In either
case it would be easy for natural selection to adapt the structure
of the animal to its changed habits, or exclusively to one of its
several habits. It is, however, difficult to decide, and immaterial
for us, whether habits generally change first and structure afterwards;
or whether slight modifications of structure lead to changed habits;
both probably often occurring almost simultaneously. Of cases of
changed habits it will suffice merely to allude to that of the many
British insects which now feed on exotic plants, or exclusively
on artificial substances. Of diversified habits innumerable instances
could be given: I have often watched a tyrant flycatcher (Saurophagus
sulphuratus) in South America, hovering over one spot and then proceeding
to another, like a kestrel, and at other times standing stationary
on the margin of water, and then dashing into it like a kingfisher
at a fish. In our own country the larger titmouse (Parus major)
may be seen climbing branches, almost like a creeper; it sometimes,
like a shrike, kills small birds by blows on the head; and I have
many times seen and heard it hammering the seeds of the yew on a
branch, and thus breaking them like a nuthatch. In North America
the black bear was seen by Hearne swimming for hours with widely
open mouth, thus catching, almost like a whale, insects in the water.
As we sometimes see individuals following habits different from
those proper to their species and to the other species of the same
genus, we might expect that such individuals would occasionally
give rise to new species, having anomalous habits, and with their
structure either slightly or considerably modified from that of
their type. And such instances occur in nature. Can a more striking
instance of adaptation be given than that of a woodpecker for climbing
trees and seizing insects in the chinks of the bark? Yet in North
America there are woodpeckers which feed largely on fruit, and others
with elongated wings which chase insects on the wing. On the plains
of La Plata, where hardly a tree grows, there is a woodpecker (Colaptes
campestris) which has two toes before and two behind, a long pointed
tongue, pointed tail-feathers, sufficiently stiff to support the
bird in a vertical position on a post, but not so stiff as in the
typical woodpeckers, and a straight strong beak. The beak, however,
is not so straight or so strong as in the typical woodpeckers, but
it is strong enough to bore into wood. Hence this Colaptes in all
the essential parts of its structure is a woodpecker. Even in such
trifling characters as the colouring, the harsh tone of the voice,
and undulatory flight, its close blood-relationship to our common
woodpecker is plainly declared; yet, as I can assert, not only from
my own observation, but from those of the accurate Azara, in certain
large districts it does not climb trees, and it makes its nest in
holes in banks! In certain other districts, however, this same woodpecker,
as Mr. Hudson states, frequents trees, and bores holes in the trunk
for its nest. I may mention as another illustration of the varied
habits of this genus, that a Mexican Colaptes has been described
by De Saussure as boring holes into hard wood in order to lay up
a store of acorns.
Petrels are the most aerial and oceanic of birds, but in the quiet
sounds of Tierra del Fuego, the Puffinuria berardi, in its general
habits, in its astonishing power of diving, in its manner of swimming
and of flying when made to take flight, would be mistaken by any
one for an auk or a grebe; nevertheless it is essentially a petrel,
but with many parts of its organisation profoundly modified in relation
to its new habits of life; whereas the woodpecker of La Plata has
had its structure only slightly modified. In the case of the waterouzel,
the acutest observer by examining its dead body would never have
suspected its subaquatic habits; yet this bird, which is allied
to the thrush family, subsists by diving- using its wings under
water, and grasping stones with its feet. All the members of the
great order of hymenopterous insects are terrestrial excepting the
genus Proctotrupes, which Sir John Lubbock has discovered to be
aquatic in its habits; it often enters the water and dives about
by the use not of its legs but of its wings, and remains as long
as four hours beneath the surface; yet it exhibits no modification
in structure in accordance with its abnormal habits.
He who believes that each being has been created as we now see
it, must occasionally have felt surprise when he has met with an
animal having habits and structure not in agreement. What can be
plainer than that the webbed feet of ducks and geese are formed
for swimming? Yet there are upland geese with webbed feet which
rarely go near the water; and no one except Audubon has seen the
frigate-bird, which has all its four toes webbed, alight on the
surface of the ocean. On the other hand, grebes and coots are eminently
aquatic, although their toes are only bordered by membrane. What
seems plainer than that the long toes, not furnished with membrane,
of the Grallatores are formed for walking over swamps and floating
plants?- the water-hen and landrail are members of this order, yet
the first is nearly as aquatic as the coot, and the second nearly
as terrestrial as the quail or partridge. In such cases, and many
others could be given, habits have changed without a corresponding
change of structure. The webbed feet of the upland goose may be
said to have become almost rudimentary in function, though not in
structure. In the frigate-bird, the deeply scooped membrane between
the toes shows that structure has begun to change.
He who believes in separate and innumerable acts of creation may
say, that in these cases it has pleased the Creator to cause a being
of one type to take the place of one belonging to another type;
but this seems to me only re-stating the fact in dignified language.
He who believes in the struggle for existence and in the principle
of natural selection, will acknowledge that every organic being
is constantly endeavouring to increase in numbers; and that if any
one being varies ever so little, either in habits or structure,
and thus gains an advantage over some other inhabitant of the same
country, it will seize on the place of that inhabitant, however
different that may be from its own place. Hence it will cause him
no surprise that there should be geese and frigatebirds with webbed
feet, living on the dry land and rarely alighting on the water;
that there should be long-toed corncrakes, living in meadows instead
of in swamps; that there should be woodpeckers where hardly a tree
grows; that there should be diving thrushes and diving Hymenoptera,
and petrels with the habits of auks.

To suppose that the eye with all its inimitable contrivances for
adjusting the focus to different distances, for admitting different
amounts of light, and for the correction of spherical and chromatic
aberration, could have been formed by natural selection, seems,
I freely confess, absurd in the highest degree. When it was first
said that the sun stood still and the world turned round, the common
sense of mankind declared the doctrine false; but the old saying
of Vox populi, vox Dei, as every philosopher knows, cannot be trusted
in science. Reason tells me, that if numerous gradations from a
simple and imperfect eye to one complex and perfect can be shown
to exist, each grade being useful to its possessor, as is certainly
the case; if further, the eye ever varies and the variations be
inherited, as is likewise certainly the case and if such variations
should be useful to any animal under changing conditions of life,
then the difficulty of believing that a perfect and complex eye
could be formed by natural selection, though insuperable by our
imagination, should not be considered as subversive of the theory.
How a nerve comes to be sensitive to light, hardly concerns us more
than how life itself originated; but I may remark that, as some
of the lowest organisms, in which nerves cannot be detected, are
capable of perceiving light, it does not seem impossible that certain
sensitive elements in their sarcode should become aggregated and
developed into nerves, endowed with this special sensibility.
In searching for the gradations through which an orgain in any
species has been perfected, we ought to look exclusively to its
lineal progenitors; but this is scarcely ever possible, and we are
forced to look to other species and genera of the same group, that
is to the collateral descendants from the same parent-form, in order
to see what gradations are possible, and for the chance of some
gradations having been transmitted in an unaltered or little altered
condition. But the state of the same organ in distinct classes may
incidentally throw light on the steps by which it has been perfected.
The simplest organ which can be called an eye consists of an optic
nerve, surrounded by pigment-cells, and covered by translucent skin,
but without any lens or other refractive body. We may, however,
according to M. Jourdain, descend even a step lower and find aggregates
of pigment-cells, apparently serving as organs of vision, without
any nerves, and resting merely on sarcodic tissue. Eyes of the above
simple nature are not capable of distinct vision, and serve only
to distinguish light from darkness. In certain star-fishes, small
depressions in the layer of pigment which surrounds the nerve are
filled, as described by the author just quoted, with transparent
gelatinous matter, projecting with a convex surface, like the cornea
in the higher animals. He suggests that this serves not to form
an image, but only to concentrate the luminous rays and render their
perception more easy. In this concentration of the rays we gain
the first and by far the most important step towards the formation
of a true, picture-forming eye; for we have only to place the naked
extremity of the optic nerve, which in some of the lower animals
lies deeply buried in the body, and in some near the surface, at
the right distance from the concentrating apparatus, and an image
will be formed on it.
In the great class of the Articulata, we may start from an optic
nerve simply coated with pigment, the latter sometimes forming a
sort of pupil, but destitute of a lens or other optical contrivance.
With insects it is now known that the numerous facets on the cornea
of their great compound eyes form true lenses, and that the cones
include curiously modified nervous filaments. But these organs in
the Articulata are so much diversified that Muller formerly made
three main classes with seven subdivisions, besides a fourth main
class of aggregated simple eyes.
When we reflect on these facts, here given much too briefly, with
respect to the wide, diversified, and graduated range of structure
in the eyes of the lower animals; and when we bear in mind how small
the number of all living forms must be in comparison with those
which have become extinct, the difficulty ceases to be very great
in believing that natural selection may have converted the simple
apparatus of an optic nerve, coated with pigment and invested by
transparent membrane, into an optical instrument as perfect as is
possessed by any member of the articulate class.
He who will go thus far, ought not to hesitate to go one step further,
if he finds on finishing this volume that large bodies of facts,
otherwise inexplicable, can be explained by the theory of modification
through natural selection; he ought to admit that a structure even
as perfect as an eagle's eye might thus be formed, although in this
case he does not know the transitional states. It has been objected
that in order to modify the eye and still preserve it as a perfect
instrument, many changes would have to be effected simultaneously,
which, it is assumed, could not be done through natural selection;
but as I have attempted to show in my work on the variation of domestic
animals, it is not necessary to suppose that the modifications were
all simultaneous, if they were extremely slight and gradual. Different
kinds of modification would, also, serve for the same general purpose:
as Mr. Wallace has remarked, "if a lens has too short or too long
a focus, it may be amended either by an alteration of curvature,
or an alteration of density; if the curvature be irregular, and
the rays do not converge to a point, then any increased regularity
of curvature will be an improvement. So the contraction of the iris
and the muscular movements of the eye are neither of them essential
to vision, but only improvements which might have been added and
perfected at any stage of the construction of the instrument." Within
the highest division of the animal kingdom, namely, the Vertebrata,
we can start from an eye so simple, that it consists, as in the
lancelet, of a little sack of transparent skin, furnished with a
nerve and lined with pigment, but destitute of any other apparatus.
In fishes and reptiles, as Owen has remarked, "the range of gradations
of dioptric structures is very great." It is a significant fact
that even in man, according to the high authority of Virchow, the
beautiful crystalline lens is formed in the embryo by an accumulation
of epidermic cells, lying in a sack-like fold of the skin; and the
vitreous body is formed from embryonic sub-cutaneous tissue. To
arrive, however, at a just conclusion regarding the formation of
the eye, with all its marvellous yet not absolutely perfect characters,
it is indispensable that the reason should conquer the imagination;
but I have felt the difficulty far too keenly to be surprised at
others hesitating to extend the principle of natural selection to
so startling a length.
It is scarcely possible to avoid comparing the eye with a telescope.
We know that this instrument has been perfected by the long-continued
efforts of the highest human intellects; and we naturally infer
that the eye has been formed by a somewhat analogous process. But
may not this inference be presumptuous? Have we any right to assume
that the Creator works by intellectual powers like those of man?
If we must compare the eye to an optical instrument, we ought in
imagination to take a thick layer of transparent tissue, with spaces
filled with fluid, and with a nerve sensitive to light beneath,
and then suppose every part of this layer to be continually changing
slowly in density, so as to separate into layers of different densities
and thicknesses, placed at different distances from each other,
and with the surfaces of each layer slowly changing in form. Further
we must suppose that there is a power, represented by natural selection
or the survival of the fittest, always intently watching each slight
alteration in the transparent layers; and carefully preserving each
which, under varied circumstances, in any way or in any degree,
tends to produce a distincter image. We must suppose each new state
of the instrument to be multiplied by the million; each to be preserved
until a better one is produced, and then the old ones to be all
destroyed. In living bodies, variation will cause the slight alterations,
generation will multiply them almost infinitely, and natural selection
will pick out with unerring skill each improvement. Let this process
go on for millions of years; and during each year on millions of
individuals of many kinds; and may we not believe that a living
optical instrument might thus be formed as superior to one of glass,
as the works of the Creator are to those of man?

If it could be demonstrated that any complex organ existed, which
could not possibly have been formed by numerous, successive, slight
modifications, my theory would absolutely break down. But I can
find out no such case. No doubt many organs exist of which we do
not know the transitional grades, more especially if we look to
much-isolated species, round which, according to the theory, there
has been much extinction. Or again, if we take an organ common to
all the members of a class, for in this latter case the organ must
have been originally formed at a remote period, since which all
the many members of the class have been developed; and in order
to discover the early transitional grades through which the organ
has passed, we should have to look to very ancient ancestral forms,
long since become extinct.
We should be extremely cautious in concluding that an organ could
not have been formed by transitional gradations of some kind. Numerous
cases could be given amongst the lower animals of the same organ
performing at the same time wholly distinct functions; thus in the
larva of the dragon-fly and in the fish Cobitis the alimentary canal
respires, digests, and excretes. In the Hydra, the animal may be
turned inside out, and the exterior surface will then digest and
the stomach respire. In such cases natural selection might specialise,
if any advantage were thus gained, the whole or part of an organ,
which had previously performed two functions, for one function alone,
and thus by insensible steps greatly change its nature. Many plants
are known which regularly produce at the same time differently constructed
flowers; and if such plants were to produce one kind alone, a great
change would be effected with comparative suddenness in the character
of the species. It is, however, probable that the two sorts of flowers
borne by the same plant were originally differentiated by finely
graduated steps, which may still be followed in some few cases.
Again, two distinct organs, or the same organ under two very different
forms, may simultaneously perform in the same individual the same
function, and this is an extremely important means of transition:
to give one instance,- there are fish with gills or branchiae that
breathe the air dissolved in the water, at the same time that they
breathe free air in their swimbladders, this latter organ being
divided by highly vascular partitions and having a ductus pneumaticus
for the supply of air. To give another instance from the vegetable
kingdom: plants climb by three distinct means, by spirally twining,
by clasping a support with their sensitive tendrils, and by the
emission of aerial rootlets; these three means are usually found
in distinct groups, but some few species exhibit two of the means,
or even all three, combined in the same individual. In all such
cases one of the two organs might readily be modified and perfected
so as to perform all the work, being aided during the progress of
modification by the other organ; and then this other organ might
be modified for some other and quite distinct purpose, or be wholly
obliterated.
The illustration of the swimbladder in fishes is a good one, because
it shows us clearly the highly important fact that an organ originally
constructed for one purpose, namely, flotation, may be converted
into one for a widely different purpose, namely, respiration. The
swimbladder has, also, been worked in as an accessory to the auditory
organs of certain fishes. All physiologists admit that the swimbladder
is homologous, or "ideally similar" in position and structure with
the lungs of the higher vertebrate animals: hence there is no reason
to doubt that the swimbladder has actually been converted into lungs,
or an organ used exclusively for respiration.
According to this view it may be inferred that all vertebrate animals
with true lungs are descended by ordinary generation from an ancient
and unknown prototype, which was furnished with a floating apparatus
or swimbladder. We can thus, as I infer from Owen's interesting
description of these parts, understand the strange fact that every
particle of food and drink & which we swallow has to pass over
the orifice of the trachea, with some risk of falling into the lungs,
notwithstanding the beautiful contrivance by which the glottis is
closed. In the higher Vertebrate the branchiae have wholly disappeared-
but in the embryo the slits on the sides of the neck and the loop-like
course of the arteries still mark their former position. But it
is conceivable that the now utterly lost branchiae might have been
gradually worked in by natural selection for some distinct purpose:
for instance, Landois has shown that the wings of insects are developed
from the tracheae; it is therefore highly probable that in this
great class organs which once served for respiration have been actually
converted into organs for flight.
In considering transitions of organs, it is so important to bear
in mind the probability of conversion from one function to another,
that I will give another instance. Pedunculated cirripedes have
two minute folds of skin, called by me the ovigerous frena, which
serve, through the means of a sticky secretion, to retain the eggs
until they are hatched within the sack. These cirripedes have no
branchiae, the whole surface of the body and of the sack, together
with the small frena, serving for respiration. The Balanidae or
sessile cirripedes, on the other hand, have no ovigerous frena,
the eggs lying loose at the bottom of the sack, within the well-enclosed
shell; but they have, in the same relative position with the frena,
large, much-folded membranes, which freely communicate with the
circulatory lacunae of the sack and body, and which have been considered
by all naturalists to act as branchiae. Now I think no one will
dispute that the ovigerous frena in the one family are strictly
homologous with the branchiae of the other family; indeed, they
graduate into each other. Therefore it need not be doubted that
the two little folds of skin, which originally served as ovigerous
frena, but which, likewise, very slightly aided in the act of respiration,
have been gradually converted by natural selection into branchiae
simply through an increase in their size and the obliteration of
their adhesive glands. If all pedunculated cirripedes had become
extinct, and they have suffered far more extinction than have sessile
cirripedes, who would ever have imagined that the branchiae in this
latter family had originally existed as organs for preventing the
ova from being washed out of the sack?
There is another possible mode of transition, namely, through the
acceleration or retardation of the period of reproduction. This
has lately been insisted on by Prof. Cope and others in the United
States. It is now known that some animals are capable of reproduction
at a very early age, before they have acquired their perfect characters;
and if this power became thoroughly well developed in a species,
it seems probable that the adult stage of development would sooner
or later be lost; and in this case, especially if the larva differed
much from the mature form, the character of the species would be
greatly changed and degraded. Again, not a few animals, after arriving
at maturity, go on changing in character during nearly their whole
lives. With mammals, for instance, the form of the skull is often
much altered with age, of which Dr. Murie has given some striking
instances with seals; every one knows how the horns of stags become
more and more branched, and the plumes of some birds become more
finely developed, as they grow older. Prof. Cope states that the
teeth of certain lizards change much in shape with advancing years;
with crustaceans not only many trivial, but some important parts
assume a new character, as recorded by Fritz Muller, after maturity.
In all such cases,- and many could be given,- if the age for reproduction
were retarded, the character of the species, at least in its adult
state, would be modified; nor is it improbable that the previous
and earlier stages of development would in some cases be hurried
through and finally lost. Whether species have often or ever been
modified through this comparatively sudden mode of transition, I
can form no opinion; but if this has occurred, it is probable that
the differences between the young and the mature, and between the
mature and the old, were primordially acquired by graduated steps.

Although we must be extremely cautious in concluding that any organ
could not have been produced by successive, small, transitional
gradations, yet undoubtedly serious cases of difficulty occur.
One of the most serious is that of neuter insects, which are often
differently constructed from either the males or fertile females;
but this case will be treated of in the next chapter. The electric
organs of fishes offer another case of special difficulty; for it
is impossible to conceive by, what steps these wondrous organs have
been produced. But this is not surprising, for we do not even know
of what use they are. In the Gymnotus and torpedo they no doubt
serve as powerful means of defence, and perhaps for securing prey;
yet in the ray, as observed by Matteucci, an analogous organ in
the tail manifests but little electricity, even when the animal
is greatly irritated; so little, that it can hardly be of any use
for the above purposes. Moreover, in the ray, besides the organ
just referred to, there is, as Dr. R. McDonnell has shown, another
organ near the head, not known to be electrical, but which appears
to be the real homologue of the electric battery in the torpedo.
It is generally admitted that there exists between these organs
and ordinary muscle a close analogy, in intimate structure, in the
distribution of the nerves, and in the manner in which they are
acted on by various reagents. It should, also, be especially observed
that muscular contraction is accompanied by an electrical discharge;
and, as Dr. Radcliffe insists, "in the electrical apparatus of the
torpedo during rest, there would seem be a charge in every respect
like that which is met with in muscle and nerve during rest, and
the discharge of the torpedo, instead of being peculiar, may be
only another form of the discharge which depends upon the action
of muscle and motor nerve." Beyond this we cannot at present go
in the way of explanation; but as we know so little about the uses
of these organs, and as we know nothing about the habits and structure
of the progenitors of the existing electric fishes, it would be
extremely bold to maintain that no serviceable transitions are possible
by which these organs might have been gradually developed.
These organs appear at first to offer another and far more serious
difficulty; for they occur in about a dozen kinds of fish, of which
several are widely remote in their affinities. When the same organ
is found in several members of the same class, especially if in
members having very different habits of life, we may generally attribute
its presence to inheritance from a common ancestor; and its absence
in some of the members to loss through disuse or natural selection.
So that, if the electric organs had been inherited from some one
ancient progenitor, we might have expected that all electric fishes
would have been specially related to each other; but this is far
from the case. Nor does geology at all lead to the belief that most
fishes formerly possessed electric organs, which their modified
descendants have now lost. But when we look at the subject more
closely, we find in the several fishes provided with electric organs,
that these are situated in different parts of the body,- that they
differ in construction, as in the arrangement of the plates, and,
according to Pacini, in the process or means by which the electricity
is excited- and lastly, in being supplied with nerves proceeding
from different sources, and this is perhaps the most important of
all the differences. Hence in the several fishes furnished with
electric organs, these cannot be considered as homologous, but only
as analogous in function. Consequently there is no reason to suppose
that they have been inherited from a common progenitor; for had
this been the case they would have closely resembled each other
in all respects. Thus the difficulty of an organ, apparently the
same, arising in several remotely allied species, disappears, leaving
only the lesser yet still great difficulty; namely, by what graduated
steps these organs have been developed in each separate group of
fishes.
The luminous organs which occur in a few insects, belonging to
widely different families, and which are situated in different parts
of the body, offer, under our present state of ignorance, a difficulty
almost exactly parallel with that of the electric organs. Other
similar cases could be given; for instance in plants, the very curious
contrivance of a mass of pollen-grains, borne on a foot-stalk with
an adhesive gland, is apparently the same in Orchis and Asclepias,-
genera almost as remote as is possible amongst flowering plants;
but here again the parts are not homologous. In all cases of beings,
far removed from each other in the scale of organisation, which
are furnished with similar and peculiar organs, it will be found
that although the general appearance and function of the organs
may be the same, yet fundamental differences between them can always
be detected. For instance, the eyes of cephalopods or cuttle-fish
and of vertebrate animals appear wonderfully alike; and in such
widely sundered groups no part of this resemblance can be due to
inheritance from a common progenitor. Mr. Mivart has advanced this
case as one of special difficulty, but I am unable to see the force
of his argument. An organ for vision must be formed of transparent
tissue, and must include some sort of lens for throwing an image
at the back of a darkened chamber. Beyond this superficial resemblance,
there is hardly any real similarity between the eyes of cuttle-fish
and vertebrates, as may be seen by consulting Hensen's admirable
memoir on these organs in the Cephalopoda. It is impossible for
me here to enter on details, but I may specify a few of the points
of difference. The crystalline lens in the higher cuttle-fish consists
of two parts, placed one behind the other like two lenses, both
having a very different structure and disposition to what occurs
in the vertebrata. The retina is wholly different, with an actual
inversion of the elemental parts, and with a large nervous ganglion
included within the membranes of the eye. The relations of the muscles
are as different as it is possible to conceive, and so in other
points. Hence it is not a little difficult to decide how far even
the same terms ought to be employed in describing the eyes of the
Cephalopoda and Vertebrata. It is, of course, open to any one to
deny that the eye in either case could have been developed through
the natural selection of successive slight variations; but if this
be admitted in the one case, it is clearly possible in the other;
and fundamental differences of structure in the visual organs of
two groups might have been anticipated, in accordance with this
view of their manner of formation. As two men have sometimes independently
hit on the same invention, so in the several foregoing cases it
appears that natural selection, working for the good of each being,
and taking advantage of all favourable variations, has produced
similar organs, as far as function is concerned, in distinct organic
beings, which owe none of their structure in common to inheritance
from a common progenitor.
Fritz Muller, in order to test the conclusions arrived at in this
volume, has followed out with much care a nearly similar line of
argument. Several families of crustaceans include a few species,
possessing an air-breathing apparatus and fitted to live out of
the water. In two of these families, which were more especially
examined by Muller and which are nearly related to each other, the
species agree most closely in all important characters; namely,
in their sense organs, circulating system, in the position of the
tufts of hair within their complex stomachs, and lastly in the whole
structure of the water-breathing branchiae, even to the microscopical
hooks by which they are cleansed. Hence it might have been expected
that in the few species belonging to both families which live on
the land, the equally important air-breathing apparatus would have
been the same; for why should this one apparatus, given for the
same purpose, have been made to differ, whilst all the other important
organs were closely similar or rather identical?
Fritz Muller argues that this close similarity in so many points
of structure must, in accordance with the views advanced by me,
be accounted for by inheritance from a common progenitor. But as
the vast majority of the species in the above two families, as well
as most other crustaceans, are aquatic in their habits, it is improbable
in the highest degree, that their common progenitor should have
been adapted for breathing air was thus led carefully to examine
the apparatus in the air-breathing species; and he found it to differ
in each in several important points, as in the position of the orifices,
in the manner in which they are opened and closed, and in some accessory
details. Now such differences are intelligible, and might even have
been expected, on the supposition that species belonging to distinct
families had slowly become adapted to live more and more out of
water, and to breathe the air. For these species, from belonging
to distinct families, would have differed to a certain extent, and
in accordance with the principle that the nature of each variation
depends on two factors, viz., the nature of the organism and that
of the surrounding conditions, their variability assuredly would
not have been exactly the same. Consequently natural selection would
have had different materials or variations to work on, in order
to arrive at the same functional result; and the structures thus
acquired would almost necessarily have differed. On the hypothesis
of separate acts of creation the whole case remains unintelligible.
This line of argument seems to have had great weight in leading
Fritz Muller to accept the views maintained by me in this volume.
Another distinguished zoologist, the late Professor Claparide,
has argued in the same manner, and has arrived at the same result.
He shows that there are parasitic mites (Acaridae), belonging to
distinct sub-families and families, which are furnished with hair-claspers.
These organs must have been independently developed, as they could
not have been inherited from a common progenitor; and in the several
groups they are formed by the modification of the fore-legs,- of
the hind-legs,- of the maxillae or lips,- and of appendages on the
under side of the hind part of the body.
In the foregoing cases, we see the same end gained and the same
function performed, in beings not at all or only remotely allied,
by organs in appearance, though not in development, closely similar.
On the other hand, it is a common rule throughout nature that the
same end should be gained, even sometimes in the case of closely-related
beings, by the most diversified means. How differently constructed
is the feathered wing of a bird and the membrane-covered wing of
a bat; and still more so the four wings of a butterfly, the two
wings of a fly, and the two wings with the elytra of a beetle. Bivalve
shells are made to open and shut, but on what a number of patterns
is the hinge constructed,- from the long row of neatly interlocking
teeth in a Nucula to the simple ligament of a Mussel! Seeds are
disseminated by their minuteness,- by their capsule being converted
into a light balloon-like envelope,- by being embedded in pulp or
flesh, formed of the most diverse parts, and rendered nutritious,
as well as conspicuously coloured, so as to attract and be devoured
by birds,- by having hooks and grapnels of many kinds and serrated
arms, so as to adhere to the fur of quadrupeds,- and by being furnished
with wings and plumes, as different in shape as they are elegant
in structure, so as to be wafted by every breeze. I will give one
other instance; for this subject of the same end being gained by
the most diversified means well deserves attention. Some authors
maintain that organic beings have been formed in many ways for the
sake of mere variety, almost like toys in a shop, but such a view
of nature is incredible. With plants having separated sexes, and
with those in which, though hermaphrodites, the pollen does not
spontaneously fall on the stigma, some aid is necessary for their
fertilisation. With several kinds this is effected by the pollen-grains,
which are light and incoherent, being blown by the wind through
mere chance on to the stigma; and this is the simplest plan which
can well be conceived. An almost equally simple, though very different,
plan occurs in many plants in which a symmetrical flower secretes
a few drops of nectar, and is consequently visited by insects; and
these carry the pollen from the anthers to the stigma.
From this simple stage we may pass through an inexhaustible number
of contrivances, all for the same purpose and effected in essentially
the same manner, but entailing changes in every part of the flower.
The nectar may be stored in variously shaped receptacles, with the
stamens and pistils modified in many ways, sometimes forming trap-like
contrivances, and sometimes capable of neatly adapted movements
through irritability or elasticity. From such structures we may
advance till we come to such a case of extraordinary adaptation
as that lately described by Dr. Cruger in the Coryanthes. This orchid
has part of its labellum or lower lip hollowed out into a great
bucket, into which drops of almost pure water continually fall from
two secreting horns which stand above it; and when the bucket is
half full, the water overflows by a spout on one side. The basal
part of the labellum stands over the bucket, and is itself hollowed
out into a sort of chamber with two lateral entrances; within this
chamber there are curious fleshy ridges. The most ingenious man,
if he had not witnessed what takes place, could never have imagined
what purpose all these parts serve. But Dr. Cruger saw crowds of
large humble-bees visiting the gigantic flowers of this orchid,
not in order to suck nectar, but to gnaw off the ridges within the
chamber above the bucket; in doing this they frequently pushed each
other into the bucket, and their wings being thus wetted they could
not fly away, but were compelled to crawl out through the passage
formed by the spout or overflow. Dr. Cruger saw a "continual procession"
of bees thus crawling out of their involuntary bath. The passage
is narrow, and is roofed over by the column, so that a bee, in forcing
its way out, first rubs its back against the viscid stigma and then
against the viscid glands of the pollen-masses. The pollen-masses
are thus glued to the back of the be which first happens to crawl
out through the passage of a lately expanded flower, and are thus
carried away. Dr. Cruger sent me a flower in spirits of wine, with
a bee which he had killed before it had quite crawled out with a
pollen-mass still fastened to its back. When the bee, thus provided,
flies to another flower, or to the same flower a second time, and
is pushed by its comrades into the bucket and then crawls out by
the passage, the pollen-mass necessarily comes first into contact
with the viscid stigma, and adheres to it, and the flower is fertilised.
Now at last we see the full use of every part of the flower, of
the water-secreting horns, of the bucket half full of water, which
prevents the bees from flying away, and forces them to crawl out
through the spout, and rub against the properly placed viscid pollen-masses
and the viscid stigma.
The construction of the flower in another closely allied orchid,
namely the Catasetum, is widely different, though serving the same
end; and is equally curious. Bees visit these flowers, like those
of the Coryanthes, in order to gnaw the labellum; in doing this
they inevitably touch a long, tapering, sensitive projection, or,
as I have called it, the antenna. This antenna, when touched, transmits
a sensation or vibration to a certain membrane which is instantly
ruptured; this sets free a spring by which the pollen-mass is shot
forth, like an arrow, in the right direction, and adheres by its
viscid extremity to the back of the bee. The pollen-mass of the
male plant (for the sexes are separate in this orchid) is thus carried
to the flower of the female plant where it is brought into contact
with the stigma, which is viscid enough to break certain elastic
threads, and retaining the pollen, fertilisation is effected.
How, it may be asked, in the foregoing and in innumerable other
instances, can we understand the graduated scale of complexity and
the multifarious means for gaining the same end. The answer no doubt
is, as already remarked, that when two forms vary, which already
differ from each other in some slight degree, the variability will
not be of the same exact nature, and consequently the results obtained
through natural selection for the same general purpose will not
be the same. We should also bear in mind that every highly developed
organism has passed through many changes; and that each modified
structure tends to be inherited, so that each modification will
not readily be quite lost, but may be again and again further altered.
Hence the structure of each part of each species, for whatever purpose
it may serve, is the sum of many inherited changes, through which
the species has passed during its successive adaptations to changed
habits and conditions of life.
Finally then, although in many cases it is most difficult even
to conjecture by what transitions organs have arrived at their present
state; yet, considering how small the proportion of living and known
forms is to the extinct and unknown, I have been astonished how
rarely an organ can be named, towards which no transitional grade
is known to lead. It certainly is true, that new organs appearing
as if created for some special purpose, rarely or never appear in
any being;- as indeed is shown by that old, but somewhat exaggerated,
canon in natural history of "Natura non facit saltum." We meet with
this admission in the writings of almost every experienced naturalist;
or as Milne Edwards has well expressed it, Nature is prodigal in
variety, but niggard in innovation. Why, on the theory of Creation,
should there be so much variety and so little real novelty? Why
should all the parts and organs of many independent beings, each
supposed to have been separately created for its proper place in
nature, be so commonly linked together by graduated steps? Why should
not Nature take a sudden leap from structure to structure? On the
theory of natural selection, we can clearly understand why she should
not; for natural selection acts only by taking advantage of slight
successive variations; she can never take a great and sudden leap,
but must advance by short and sure, though slow steps.

As natural selection acts by life and death,- by the survival of
the fittest, and by the destruction of the less well-fitted individuals,-
I have sometimes felt great difficulty in understanding the origin
or formation of parts of little importance; almost as great, though
of a very different kind, as in the case of the most perfect and
complex organs.
In the first place, we are much too ignorant in regard to the whole
economy of any one organic being, to say what slight modifications
would be of importance or not. In a former chapter I have given
instances of very trifling characters, such as the down on fruit
and the colour of its flesh, the colour of the skin and hair of
quadrupeds, which, from being correlated with constitutional differences
or from determining the attacks of insects, might assuredly be acted
on by natural selection. The tail of the giraffe looks like an artificially
constructed fly-flapper; and it seems at first incredible that this
could have been adapted for its present purpose by successive slight
modifications, each better and better fitted, for so trifling an
object as to drive away flies; yet we should pause before being
too positive even in this case, for we know that the distribution
and existence of cattle and other animals in South America absolutely
depend on their power of resisting the attacks of insects: so that
individuals which could by any means defend themselves from these
small enemies, would be able to range into new pastures and thus
gain a great advantage. It is not that the larger quadrupeds are
actually destroyed (except in some rare cases) by flies, but they
are incessantly harassed and their strength reduced, so that they
are more subject to disease, or not so well enabled in a coming
dearth to search for food, or to escape from beasts of prey.
Organs now of trifling importance have probably in some cases been
of high importance to an early progenitor, and, after having been
slowly perfected at a former period, have been transmitted to existing
species in nearly the same state, although now of very slight use;
but any actually injurious deviations in their structure would of
course have been checked by natural selection. Seeing how important
an organ of locomotion the tail is in most aquatic animals, its
general presence and use for many purposes in so many land animals,
which in their lungs or modified swimbladders betray their aquatic
origin, may perhaps be thus accounted for. A well-developed tail
having been formed in an aquatic animal, it might subsequently come
to be worked in for all sorts of purposes,- as a fly-flapper, an
organ of prehension, or as an aid in turning, as in the case of
the dog, though the aid in this latter respect must be slight, for
the hare, with hardly any tail, can double still more quickly.
In the second place, we may easily err in attributing importance
to characters, and in believing that they have been developed through
natural selection. We must by no means overlook the effects of the
definite action of changed conditions of life,- of so-called spontaneous
variations, which seem to depend in a quite subordinate degree on
the nature of the conditions,- of the tendency to reversion to long-lost
characters,- of the complex laws of growth, such as of correlation,
compensation, of the pressure of one part on another, &c.,-
and finally of sexual selection, by which characters of use to one
sex are often gained and then transmitted more or less perfectly
to the other sex, though of no use to this sex. But structures thus
indirectly gained, although at first of no advantage to a species,
may subsequently have been taken advantage of by its modified descendants,
under new conditions of life and newly acquired habits.
If green woodpeckers alone had existed, and we did not know that
there were many black and pied kinds, I dare say that we should
have thought that the green colour was a beautiful adaptation to
conceal this tree-frequenting bird from its enemies; and consequently
that it was a character of importance, and had been acquired through
natural selection; as it is, the colour is probably in chief part
due to sexual selection. A trailing palm in the Malay Archipelago
climbs the loftiest trees by the aid of exquisitely constructed
hooks clustered around the ends of the branches, and this contrivance,
no doubt, is of the highest service to the plant; but as we see
nearly similar hooks on many trees which are not climbers, and which,
as there is reason to believe from the distribution of the thorn-bearing
species in Africa and South America, serve as a defence against
browsing quadrupeds, so the spikes on the palm may at first have
been developed for this object, and subsequently have been improved
and taken advantage of by the plant, as it underwent further modification
and became a climber. The naked skin on the head of a vulture is
generally considered as a direct adaptation for wallowing in putridity;
and so it may be, or it may possibly be due to the direct action
of putrid matter; but we should be very cautious in drawing any
such inference, when we see that the skin on the head of the clean-feeding
male turkey is likewise naked. The sutures in the skull? of young
mammals have been advanced as a beautiful adaptation for aiding
parturition, and no doubt they facilitate, or may be indispensable
for this act; but as sutures occur in the skulls of young birds
and reptiles, which have only to escape from a broken egg, we may
infer that this structure has arisen from the laws of growth, and
has been taken advantage of in the parturition of the higher animals.
We are profoundly ignorant of the cause of each slight variation
or individual difference; and we are immediately made conscious
of this by reflecting on the differences between the breeds of our
domesticated animals in different countries,- more especially in
the less civilised countries where there has been but little methodical
selection. Animals kept by savages in different countries often
have to struggle for their own subsistence, and are exposed to a
certain extent to natural selection, and individuals with slightly
different constitutions would succeed best under different climates.
With cattle susceptibility to the attacks of flies is correlated
with colour, as is the liability to be poisoned by certain plants;
so that even colour would be thus subjected to the action of natural
selection. Some observers are convinced that a damp climate affects
the growth of the hair, and that with the hair the horns are correlated.
Mountain breeds always differ from lowland breeds; and a mountainous
country would probably affect the hind limbs from exercising them
more, and possibly even the form of the pelvis; and then by the
law of homologous variation, the front limbs and the head would
probably be affected. The shape, also, of the pelvis might affect
by pressure the shape of certain parts of the young in the womb.
The laborious breathing necessary in high regions tends, as we have
good reason to believe, to increase the size of the chest; and again
correlation would come into play. The effects of lessened exercise
together with abundant food on the whole organisation is probably
still more important; and this, as H. von Nathusius has lately shown
in his excellent treatise, is apparently one chief cause of the
great modification which the breeds of swine have undergone. But
we are far too ignorant to speculate on the relative importance
of the several known and unknown causes of variation; and I have
made these remarks only to show that, if we are unable to account
for the characteristic differences of our several domestic breeds,
which nevertheless are generally admitted to have arisen through
ordinary generation from one or a few parent-stocks, we ought not
to lay too much stress on our ignorance of the precise cause of
the slight analogous differences between true species.

The foregoing remarks lead me to say a few words on the protest
lately made by some naturalists, against the utilitarian doctrine
that every detail of structure has been produced for the good of
its possessor. They believe that many structures have been created
for the sake of beauty, to delight man or the Creator (but this
latter point is beyond the scope of scientific discussion), or for
the sake of mere variety, a view already discussed. Such doctrines,
if true, would be absolutely fatal to my theory. I fully admit that
many structures are now of no direct use to their possessors, and
may never have been of any use to their progenitors; but this does
not prove that they were formed solely for beauty or variety. No
doubt the definite action of changed conditions, and the various
causes of modifications, lately specified, have all produced an
effect, probably a great effect, independently of any advantage
thus gained. But a still more important consideration is that the
chief part of the organisation of every living creature is due to
inheritance; and consequently, though each being assuredly is well
fitted for its place in nature, many structures have now no very
close and direct relation to present habits of life. Thus, we can
hardly believe that the webbed feet of the upland goose or of the
frigate-bird are of special use to these birds; we cannot believe
that the similar bones in the arm of the monkey, in the fore-leg
of the horse, in the wing of the bat, and in the flipper of the
seal, are of special use to these animals. We may safely attribute
these structures to inheritance. But webbed feet no doubt were as
useful to the progenitor of the upland goose and of the frigate-bird,
as they now are to the most aquatic of living birds. So we may believe
that the progenitor of the seal did not possess a flipper, but a
foot with five toes fitted for walking or grasping; but we may further
venture to believe that the several bones in the limbs of the monkey,
horse, and bat, were originally developed, on the principle of utility,
probably through the reduction of more numerous bones in the fin
of some ancient fish-like progenitor of the whole class. It is scarcely
possible to decide how much allowance ought to be made for such
causes of change, as the definite action of external conditions,
so-called spontaneous variations, and the complex laws of growth;
but with these important exceptions, we may conclude that the structure
of every living creature either now is, or was formerly, of some
direct or indirect use to its possessor.
With respect to the belief that organic beings have been created
beautiful for the delight of man,- a belief which it has been pronounced
is subversive of my whole theory,- I may first remark that the sense
of beauty obviously depends on the nature of the mind, irrespective
of any real quality in the admired object; and that the idea of
what is beautiful, is not innate or unalterable. We see this, for
instance, in the men of different races admiring an entirely different
standard of beauty in their women. If beautiful objects had been
created solely for man's gratification, it ought to be shown that
before man appeared, there was less beauty on the face of the earth
than since he came on the stage. Were the beautiful volute and cone
shells of the Eocene epoch, and the gracefully sculptured ammonites
of the Secondary period, created that man might ages afterwards
admire them in his cabinet? Few objects are more beautiful than
the minute siliceous cases of the diatomaceae: were these created
that they might be examined and admired under the higher powers
of the microscope? The beauty in this latter case, and in many others,
is apparently wholly due to symmetry of growth. Flowers rank amongst
the most beautiful productions of nature; but they have been rendered
conspicuous in contrast with the green leaves, and in consequence
at the same time beautiful, so that they may be easily observed
by insects. I have come to this conclusion from finding it an invariable
rule that when a flower is fertilised by the wind it never has a
gaily-coloured corolla. Several plants habitually produce two kinds
of flowers; one kind open and coloured so as to attract insects;
the other closed, not coloured, destitute of nectar, and never visited
by insects. Hence we may conclude that, if insects had not been
developed on the face of the earth, our plants would not have been
decked with beautiful flowers, but would have produced only such
poor flowers as we see on our fir, oak, nut and ash trees, on grasses,
spinach, docks, and nettles, which are all fertilised through the
agency of the wind. A similar line of argument holds good with fruits;
that a ripe strawberry or cherry is as pleasing to the eye as to
the palate,- that the gaily-coloured fruit of the spindle-wood tree
and the scarlet berries of the holly are beautiful objects,- will
be admitted by every one. But this beauty serves merely as a guide
to birds and beasts, in order that the fruit may be devoured and
the matured seeds disseminated: I infer that this is the case from
having as yet found no exception to the rule that seeds are always
thus disseminated when embedded within a fruit of any kind (that
is within a fleshy or pulpy envelope), if it be coloured of any
brilliant tint, or rendered conspicuous by being white or black.
On the other hand, I willingly admit that a great number of male
animals, as all our most gorgeous birds, some fishes, reptiles,
and mammals, and a host of magnificently coloured butterflies, have
been rendered beautiful for beauty's sake; but this has been effected
through sexual selection, that is, by the more beautiful males having
been continually preferred by the females, and not for the delight
of man. So it is with the music of birds. We may infer from all
this that a nearly similar taste for beautiful colours and for musical
sounds runs through a large part of the animal kingdom. When the
female is as beautifully coloured as the male, which is not rarely
the case with birds and butterflies, the cause apparently lies in
the colours acquired through sexual selection having been transmitted
to both sexes, instead of to the males alone. How the sense of beauty
in its simplest form- that is, the reception of a peculiar kind
of pleasure from certain colours, forms, and sounds- was first developed
in the mind of man and of the lower animals, is a very obscure subject.
The same sort of difficulty is presented, if we enquire how it is
that certain flavours and odours give pleasure, and others displeasure.
Habit in all these cases appears to have come to a certain extent
into play; but there must be some fundamental cause in the constitution
of the nervous system in each species.
Natural selection cannot possibly produce any modification in a
species exclusively for the good of another species; though throughout
nature one species incessantly takes advantage of, and profits by,
the structures of others. But natural selection can and does often
produce structures for the direct injury of other animals, as we
see in the fang of the adder, and in the ovipositor of the ichneumon,
by which its eggs are deposited in the living bodies of other insects.
If it could be proved that any part of the structure of any one
species had been formed for the exclusive good of another species,
it would annihilate my theory, for such could not have been produced
through natural selection. Although many statements may be found
in works on natural history to this effect, I cannot find even one
which seems to me of any weight. It is admitted that the rattlesnake
has a poison-fang for its own defence, and for the destruction of
its prey; but some authors suppose that at the same time it is furnished
with a rattle for its own injury, namely, to warn its prey. I would
almost as soon believe that the cat curls the end of its tail when
preparing to spring, in order to warn the doomed mouse. It is a
much more probable view that the rattlesnake uses its rattle, the
cobra expands its frill, and the puff-adder swells whilst hissing
so loudly and harshly, in order to alarm the many birds and beasts
which are known to attack even the most venomous species. Snakes
act on the same principle which makes the hen ruffle her feathers
and expand her wings when a dog approaches her chickens; but I have
not space here to enlarge on the many ways by which animals endeavour
to frighten away their enemies.
Natural selection will never produce in a being any structure more
injurious than beneficial to that being, for natural selection acts
solely by and for the good of each. No organ will be formed, as
Paley has remarked, for the purpose of causing pain or for doing
an injury to its possessor. If a fair balance be struck between
the good and evil caused by each part, each will be found on the
whole advantageous. After the lapse of time, under changing conditions
of life, if any part comes to be injurious, it will be modified;
or if it be not so, the being Will become extinct as myriads have
become extinct.
Natural selection tends only to make each organic being as perfect
as, or slightly more perfect than, the other inhabitants of the
same country with which it comes into competition. And we see that
this is the standard of perfection attained under nature. The endemic
productions of New Zealand, for instance, are perfect one compared
with another; but they are now rapidly yielding before the advancing
legions of plants and animals introduced from Europe. Natural selection
will not produce absolute perfection, nor do we always meet, as
far as we can judge, with this high standard under nature. The correction
for the aberration of light is said by Muller not to be perfect
even in that most perfect organ, the human eye. Helmholtz, whose
judgment no one will dispute, after describing in the strongest
terms the wonderful powers of the human eye, adds these remarkable
words: "That which we have discovered in the way of inexactness
and imperfection in the optical machine and in the image on the
retina, is as nothing in comparison with the incongruities which
we have just come across in the domain of the sensations. One might
say that nature has taken delight in accumulating contradictions
in order to remove all foundation from the theory of a pre-existing
harmony between the external and internal worlds." If our reason
leads us to admire with enthusiasm a multitude of inimitable contrivances
in nature, this same reason tells us, though we may easily err on
both sides, that some other contrivances are less perfect. Can we
consider the sting of the bee as perfect, which, when used against
many kinds of enemies, cannot be withdrawn, owing to the backward
serratures, and thus inevitably causes the death of the insect by
tearing out its viscera?
If we look at the sting of the bee, as having existed in a remote
progenitor, as a boring and serrated instrument, like that in so
many members of the same great order, and which has since been modified
but not perfected for its present purpose, with the poison originally
adapted for some other object, such as to produce galls, since intensified,
we can perhaps understand how it is that the use of the sting should
so often cause the insect's own death: for if on the whole the power
of stinging be useful to the social community, it will fulfil all
the requirements of natural selection, though it may cause the death
of some few members. If we admire the truly wonderful power of scent
by which the males of many insects find their females, can we admire
the production for this single purpose of thousands of drones, which
are utterly useless to the community for any other purpose, and
which are ultimately slaughtered by their industrious and sterile
sisters? It may be difficult, but we ought to admire the savage
instinctive hatred of the queen-bee, which urges her to destroy
the young queens, her daughters, as soon as they are born, or to
perish herself in the combat; for undoubtedly this is for the good
of the community; and maternal love or maternal hatred, though the
latter fortunately is most rare, is all the same to the inexorable
principle of natural selection. If we admire the several ingenious
contrivances, by which orchids and many other plants are fertilised
through insect agency, can we consider as equally perfect the elaboration
of dense clouds of pollen by our fir trees, so that a few granules
may be wafted by chance on to the ovules?

We have in this chapter discussed some of the difficulties and
objections which may be urged against the theory. Many of them are
serious; but I think that in the discussion light has been thrown
on several facts, which on the belief of independent acts of creation
are utterly obscure. We have seen that species at any one period
are not indefinitely variable, and are not linked together by a
multitude of intermediate gradations, partly because the process
of natural selection is always very slow, and at any one time acts
only on a few forms; and partly because the very process of natural
selection implies the continual supplanting and extinction of preceding
and intermediate gradations. Closely allied species, now living
on a continuous area, must often have been formed when the area
was not continuous, and when the conditions of life did not insensibly
graduate away from one part to another. When two varieties are formed
in two districts of a continuous area, an intermediate variety will
often be formed, fitted for an intermediate zone; but from reasons
assigned, the intermediate variety will usually exist in lesser
numbers than the two forms which it connects; consequently the two
latter, during the course of further modification, from existing
in greater numbers, will have a great advantage over the less numerous
intermediate variety, and will thus generally succeed in supplanting
and exterminating it.
We have seen in this chapter how cautious we should be in concluding
that the most different habits of life could not graduate into each
other; that a bat, for instance, could not have been formed by natural
selection from an animal which at first only glided through the
air.
We have seen that a species under new conditions of life may change
its habits; or it may have diversified habits, with some very unlike
those of its nearest congeners. Hence we can understand, bearing
in mind that each organic being is trying to live wherever it can
live, how it has arisen that there are upland geese with webbed
feet, ground woodpeckers, diving thrushes, and petrels with the
habits of auks.
Although the belief that an organ so perfect as the eye could have
been formed by natural selection, is enough to stagger any one;
yet in the case of any organ, if we know of a long series of gradations
in complexity, each good for its possessor, then, under changing
conditions of life, there is no logical impossibility in the acquirement
of any conceivable degree of perfection through natural selection.
In the cases in which we know of no intermediate or transitional
states, we should be extremely cautious in concluding that none
can have existed, for the metamorphoses of many organs show what
wonderful changes in function are at least possible. For instance,
a swimbladder has apparently been converted into an air-breathing
lung. The same organ having performed simultaneously very different
functions, and then having been in part or in whole specialised
for one function; and two distinct organs having performed at the
same time the same function, the one having been perfected whilst
aided by the other, must often have largely facilitated transitions.
We have seen that in two beings widely remote from each other in
the natural scale, organs serving for the same purpose and in external
appearance closely similar may have been separately and independently
formed; but when such organs are closely examined, essential differences
in their structure can almost always be detected; and this naturally
follows from the principle of natural selection. On the other hand,
the common rule throughout nature is infinite diversity of structure
for gaining the same end; and this again naturally follows from
the same great principle.
In many cases we are far too ignorant to be enabled to assert that
a part or organ is so unimportant for the welfare of a species,
that modifications in its structure could not have been slowly accumulated
by means of natural selection. In many other cases, modifications
are probably the direct result of the laws of variation or of growth,
independently of any good having been thus gained. But even such
structures have often, as we may feel assured, been subsequently
taken advantage of, and still further modified, for the good of
species under new conditions of life. We may, also, believe that
a part formerly of high importance has frequently been retained
(as the tail of an aquatic animal by its terrestrial descendants),
though it has become of such small importance that it could not,
in its present state, have been acquired by means of natural selection.
Natural selection can produce nothing in one species for the exclusive
good or injury of another; though it may well produce parts, organs,
and excretions highly useful or even indispensable, or again highly
injurious to another species, but in all cases at the same time
useful to the possessor. In each well-stocked country natural selection
acts through the competition of the inhabitants, and consequently
leads to success in the battle for life, only in accordance with
the standard of that particular country. Hence the inhabitants of
one country, generally the smaller one, often yield to the inhabitants
of another and generally the larger country. For in the larger country
there will have existed more individuals and more diversified forms,
and the competition will have been severer, and thus the standard
of perfection will have been rendered higher. Natural selection
will not necessarily lead to absolute perfection; nor, as far as
we can judge by our limited faculties, can absolute perfection be
everywhere predicated.
On the theory of natural selection we can clearly understand the
full meaning of that old canon in natural history, "Natura non facit
saltum." This canon, if we look to the present inhabitants alone
of the world, is not strictly correct; but if we include all those
of past times, whether known or unknown, it must on this theory
be strictly true.
It is generally acknowledged that all organic beings have been
formed on two great laws: Unity of Type, and the Conditions of Existence.
By unity of type is meant that fundamental agreement in structure
which we see in organic beings of the same class, and which is quite
independent of their habits of life. On my theory, unity of type
is explained by unity of descent. The expression of conditions of
existence, so often insisted on by the illustrious Cuvier, is fully
embraced by the principle of natural selection. For natural selection
acts by either now adapting the varying parts of each being to its
organic and inorganic conditions of life; or by having adapted them
during past periods of time: the adaptations being aided in many
cases by the increased use or disuse of parts, being affected by
the direct action of the external conditions of life, and subjected
in all cases to the several laws of growth and variation. Hence,
in fact, the law of the Conditions of Existence is the higher law;
as it includes, through the inheritance of former variations and
adaptations, that of Unity of Type.
I WILL devote this chapter to the consideration of various miscellaneous
objections which have been advanced against my views, as some of
the previous discussions may thus be made clearer; but it would
be useless to discuss all of them, as many have been made by writers
who have not taken the trouble to understand the subject. Thus a
distinguished German naturalist has asserted that the weakest part
of my theory is, that I consider all organic beings as imperfect:
what I have really said is, that all are not as perfect as they
might have been in relation to their conditions; and this is shown
to be the case by so many native forms in many quarters of the world
having yielded their places to intruding foreigners. Nor can organic
beings, even if they were at any one time perfectly adapted to their
conditions of life, have remained so, when their conditions changed,
unless they themselves likewise changed; and no one will dispute
that the physical conditions of each country, as well as the numbers
and kinds of its inhabitants, have undergone many mutations.
A critic has lately insisted, with some parade of mathematical
accuracy, that longevity is a great advantage to all species, so
that he who believes in natural selection "must arrange his genealogical
tree" in such a manner that all the descendants have longer lives
than their progenitors! Cannot our critic conceive that a biennial
plant or one of the lower animals might range into a cold climate
and perish there every winter; and yet, owing to advantages gained
through natural selection, survive from year to year by means of
its seeds or ova? Mr. E. Ray Lankester has recently discussed this
subject, and he concludes, as far as its extreme complexity allows
him to form a judgment, that longevity is generally related to the
standard of each species in the scale of organisation, as well as
to the amount of expenditure in reproduction and in general activity.
And these conditions have, it is probable, been largely determined
through natural selection.
It has been argued that, as none of the animals and plants of Egypt,
of which we know anything, have changed during the last three or
four thousand years, so probably have none in any part of the world.
But, as Mr. G. H. Lewes has remarked, this line of argument proves
too much, for the ancient domestic races figured on the Egyptian
monuments, or embalmed, are closely similar or even identical with
those now living; yet all naturalists admit that such races have
been produced through the modification of their original types.
The many animals which have remained unchanged since the commencement
of the glacial period, would have been an incomparably stronger
case, for these have been exposed to great changes of climate and
have migrated over great distances; whereas, in Egypt, during the
last several thousand years, the conditions of life, as far as we
know, have remained absolutely uniform. The fact of little or no
modification having been effected since the glacial period would
have been of some avail against those who believe in an innate and
necessary law of development, but is powerless against the doctrine
of natural selection or the survival of the fittest, which implies
that when variations or individual differences of a beneficial nature
happen to arise, these will be preserved; but this will be effected
only under certain favourable circumstances.
The celebrated palaeontologist, Bronn, at the close of his German
translation of this work, asks, how, on the principle of natural
selection, can a variety live side by side with the parent species?
If both have become fitted for slightly different habits of life
or conditions, they might live together; and if we lay on one side
polymorphic species, in which the variability seems to be of a peculiar
nature, and all mere temporary variations, such as size, albinism,
&c., the more permanent varieties are generally found, as far
as I can discover, inhabiting distinct stations,- such as high land
or low land, dry or moist districts. Moreover, in the case of animals
which wander much about and cross freely, their varieties seem to
be generally confined to distinct regions.
Bronn also insists that distinct species never differ from each
other in single characters, but in many parts; and he asks, how
it always comes that many parts of the organisation should have
been modified at the same time through variation and natural selection
. " But there is no necessity for supposing that all the parts of
any being have been simultaneously modified. The most striking modifications,
excellently adapted for some purpose, might, as was formerly remarked,
be acquired by successive variations, if slight, first in one part
and then in another; and as they would be transmitted all together,
they would appear to us as if they had been simultaneously developed.
The best answer, however, to the above objection is afforded by
those domestic races which have been modified, chiefly through man's
power of selection, for some special purpose. Look at the race and
dray horse, or at the greyhound and mastiff. Their whole frames
and even their mental characteristics have been modified; but if
we could trace each step in the history of their transformation,-
and the latter steps can be traced,- we should not see great and
simultaneous changes, but first one part and then another slightly
modified and improved. Even when selection has been applied by man
to some one character alone,- of which our cultivated plants offer
the best instances,- it will invariably be found that although this
one part, whether it be the flower, fruit, or leaves, has been greatly
changed, almost all the other parts have been slightly modified.
This may be attributed partly to the principle of correlated growth,
and partly to so-called spontaneous variation.
A much more serious objection has been urged by Bronn, and recently
by Broca, namely, that many characters appear to be of no service
whatever to their possessors, and therefore cannot have been influenced
through natural selection. Bronn adduces the length of the ears
and tails in the different species of hares and mice,- the complex
folds of enamel in the teeth of many animals, and a multitude of
analogous cases. With respect to plants, this subject has been discussed
by Nageli in an admirable essay. He admits that natural selection
has effected much, but he insists that the families of plants differ
chiefly from each other in morphological characters, which appear
to be quite unimportant for the welfare of the species. He consequently
believes in an innate tendency towards progressive and more perfect
development. He specifies the arrangement of the cells in the tissues,
and of the leaves on the axis, as cases in which natural selection
could not have acted. To these may be added the numerical divisions
in the parts of the flower, the position of the ovules, the shape
of the seed, when not of any use for dissemination, &c.
There is much force in the above objection. Nevertheless, we ought,
in the first place, to be extremely cautious in pretending to decide
what structures now are, or have formerly been, use to each species.
In the second place, it should always be borne in mind that when
part is modified, so will be other parts, through certain dimly
seen causes, such as an increased or diminished flow of nutriment
to a part, mutual pressure, an early developed part affecting one
subsequently developed, and so forth,- as well as through other
causes which lead to the many mysterious cases of correlation, which
we do not in the least understand. These agencies may be all grouped
together, for the sake of brevity, under the expression of the laws
of growth. In the third place, we have to allow for the direct and
definite action of changed conditions of life, and for so-called
spontaneous variations, in which the nature of the conditions apparently
plays a quite subordinate part. Bud-variations, such as the appearance
of a moss-rose on a common rose, or of a nectarine on a peach tree
offer good instances of spontaneous variations; but even in these
cases, if we bear in mind the power of a minute drop of poison in
producing complex galls, we ought not to feel too sure that the
above variations are not the effect of some local change in the
nature of the sap, due to some change in the conditions. There must
be some efficient cause for each slight individual difference, as
well as for more strongly marked variations which occasionally arise;
and if the unknown cause were to act persistently, it is almost
certain that all the individuals of the species would be similarly
modified.
In the earlier editions of this work I underrated, as it now seems
probable, the frequency and importance of modifications due to spontaneous
variability. But it is impossible to attribute to this cause the
innumerable structures which are so well adapted to the habits of
life of each species. I can no more believe in this than that the
well-adapted form of a race-horse or greyhound, which before the
principle of selection by man was well understood, excited so much
surprise in the minds of the older naturalists, can thus be explained.
It may be worth while to illustrate some of the foregoing remarks.
With respect to the assumed inutility of various parts and organs,
it is hardly necessary to observe that even in the higher and best-known
animals many structures exist, which are so highly developed that
no one doubts that they are of importance, yet their use has not
been, or has only recently been, ascertained. As Bronn gives the
length of the ears and tail in the several species of mice as instances,
though trifling ones, of differences in structure which can be of
no special use, I may mention that, according to Dr. Schobl, the
external ears of the common mouse are supplied in an extraordinary
manner with nerves, so that they no doubt serve as tactile organs;
hence the length of the ears can hardly be quite unimportant. We
shall, also, presently see that the tail is a highly useful prehensile
organ to some of the species; and its use would be much influenced
by its length.
With respect to plants, to which on account of Nageli's essay I
shall confine myself in the following remarks, it will be admitted
that the flowers of orchids present a multitude of curious structures,
which a few years ago would have been considered as mere morphological
differences without any special function; but they are now known
to be of the highest importance for the fertilisation of the species
through the aid of insects, and have probably been gained through
natural selection. No one until lately would have imagined that
in dimorphic and trimorphic plants the different lengths of the
stamens and pistils, and their arrangement, could have been of any
service, but now we know this to be the case.
In certain whole groups of plants the ovules stand erect, and in
others they are suspended; and within the same ovarium of some few
plants, one ovule holds the former and a second ovule the latter
position. These positions seem at first purely morphological, or
of no physiological signification; but Dr. Hooker informs me that
within the same ovarium, the upper ovules alone in some cases, and
in other cases the lower ones alone are fertilised; and he suggests
that this probably depends on the direction in which the pollen-tubes
enter the ovarium. If so, the position of the ovules, even when
one is erect and the other suspended within the same ovarium, would
follow from the selection of any slight deviations in position which
favoured their fertilisation, and the production of seed.
Several plants belonging to distinct orders habitually produce
flowers of two kinds,- the one open of the ordinary structure, the
other closed and imperfect. These two kinds of flowers sometimes
differ wonderfully in structure, yet may be seen to graduate into
each other on the same plant. The ordinary and open flowers can
be intercrossed; and the benefits which certainly are derived from
this process are thus secured. The closed and imperfect flowers
are, however, manifestly of high importance, as they yield with
the utmost safety a large stock of seed, with the expenditure of
wonderfully little pollen. The two kinds of flowers often differ
much, as just stated, in structure. The petals in the imperfect
flowers almost always consist of mere rudiments, and the pollen-grains
are reduced in diameter. In Ononis columnae five of the alternate
stamens are rudimentary; and in some species of Viola three stamens
are in this state, two retaining their proper function, but being
of very small size. In six out of thirty of the closed flowers in
an Indian violet (name unknown, for the plants have never produced
with me perfect flowers), the sepals are reduced from the normal
number of five to three. In one section of the Malpighiaceae the
closed flowers, according to A. de Jussieu, are still further modified,
for the five stamens which stand opposite to the sepals are all
aborted, sixth stamen standing opposite to a petal being alone developed;
and this stamen is not present in the ordinary flowers of these
species; the style is aborted; and the ovaria are reduced from three
to two. Now although natural selection may well have had the power
to prevent some of the flowers from expanding, and to reduce the
amount of pollen, when rendered by the closure of the flowers superfluous,
yet hardly any of the above special modifications can have been
thus determined, but must have followed from the laws of growth,
including the functional inactivity of parts, during the progress
of the reduction of the pollen and the closure of the flowers.
It is so necessary to appreciate the important effects of the laws
of growth, that I will give some additional cases of another kind,
namely of differences in the same part or organ, due to differences
in relative position on the same plant. In the Spanish chestnut,
and in certain fir-trees, the angles of divergence of the leaves
differ, according to Schacht, in the nearly horizontal and in the
upright branches. In the common rue and some other plants, one flower,
usually the central or terminal one, opens first, and has five sepals
and petals, and five divisions to the ovarium; whilst all the other
flowers on the plant are tetramerous. In the British Adoxa the uppermost
flower generally has two calyx-lobes with the other organs tetramerous,
whilst the surrounding flowers generally have three calyx-lobes
with the other organs pentamerous. In many Compositae and Umbelliferae
(and in some other plants) the circumferential flowers have their
corollas much more developed than those of the centre; and this
seems often connected with the abortion of the reproductive organs.
It is a more curious fact, previously referred to, that the achenes
or seeds of the circumference and centre sometimes differ greatly
in form, colour, and other characters. In Carthamus and some other
Compositae the central achenes alone are furnished with a pappus;
and in Hyoseris the same head yields achenes of three different
forms. In certain Umbelliferae the exterior seeds, according to
Tausch, are orthospermous, and the central one coelospermous, and
this is a character which was considered by De Candolle to be in
other species of the highest systematic importance. Prof. Braun
mentions a Fumariaceous genus, in which the flowers in the lower
part of the spike bear oval, ribbed, one-seeded nutlets; and in
the upper part of the spike, lanceolate, two-valved, and two-seeded
siliques. In these several cases, with the exception of that of
the well developed rayflorets, which are of service in making the
flowers conspicuous to insects, natural selection cannot, as far
as we can judge, have come into play, or only in a quite subordinate
manner. All these modifications follow from the relative position
and inter-action of the parts; and it can hardly be doubted that
if all the flowers and leaves on the same plant had been subjected
to the same external and internal condition, as are the flowers
and leaves in certain positions, all would have been modified in
the same manner.
In numerous other cases we find modifications of structure, which
are considered by botanists to be generally of a highly important
nature, affecting only some of the flowers on the same plant, or
occurring on distinct plants, which grow close together under the
same conditions. As these variations seem of no special use to the
plants, they cannot have been influenced by natural selection. Of
their cause we are quite ignorant; we cannot even attribute them,
as in the last class of cases, to any proximate agency, such as
relative position. I will give only a few instances. It is so common
to observe on the same plant, flowers indifferently tetramerous,
pentamerous, &c., that I need not give examples; but as numerical
variations are comparatively rare when the parts are few, I may
mention that, according to De Candolle, the flowers of Papaver bracteatum
offer either two sepals with four petals (which is the common type
with poppies), or three sepals with six petals. The manner in which
the petals are folded in the bud is in most groups a very constant
morphological character; but Professor Asa Gray states that with
some species of Mimulus, the aestivation is almost as frequently
that of the Rhinanthideae as of the Antirrhinideae, to which latter
tribe the genus belongs. Auguste de Saint-Hilaire gives the following
cases: the genus Zanthoxylon belongs to a division of the Rutacese
with a single ovary, but in some species flowers may be found on
the same plant, and even in the same panicle, with either one or
two ovaries. In Helianthemum the capsule has been described as unilocular
or trilocular; and in H. mutabile, "Une lame, plus ou moins large,
s'etend entre le pericarpe et le placenta." In the flowers of Saponaria
officinalis, Dr. Masters has observed instances of both marginal
and free central placentation. Lastly, Saint-Hilaire found towards
the southern extreme of the range of Gomphia oleaeformis two forms
which he did not at first doubt were distinct species, but he subsequently
saw them growing on the same bush; and he then adds, "Voila donc
dans un meme individu des loges et un style qui se rattachent tantot
a un axe verticale et tantot a un gynobase."
We thus see that with plants many morphological changes may be
attributed to the laws of growth and the inter-action of parts,
independently of natural selection. But with respect to Nageli's
doctrine of an innate tendency towards perfection or progressive
development, can it be said in the case of these strongly pronounced
variations, that the plants have been caught in the act of progressing
towards a higher state of development? On the contrary, I should
infer from the mere fact of the parts in question differing or varying
greatly on the same plant, that such modifications were of extremely
small importance to the plants themselves, of whatever importance
they may generally be to us for our classifications. The acquisition
of a useless part can hardly be said to raise an organism in the
natural scale; and in the case of the imperfect, closed flowers
above described, if any new principle has to be invoked, it must
be one of retrogression rather than of progression; and so it must
be with many parasitic and degraded animals. We are ignorant of
the exciting cause of the above specified modifications; but if
the unknown cause were to act almost uniformly for a length of time,
we may infer that the result would be almost uniform; and in this
case all the individuals of the species would be modified in the
same manner.
From the fact of the above characters being unimportant for the
welfare of the species, any slight variations which occurred in
them would not have been accumulated and augmented through natural
selection. A structure which has been developed through long-continued
selection, when it ceases to be of service to a species, generally
becomes variable, as we see with rudimentary organs; for it will
no longer be regulated by this same power of selection. But when,
from the nature of the organism and of the conditions, modifications
have been induced which are unimportant for the welfare of the species,
they may be, and apparently often have been, transmitted in nearly
the same state to numerous, otherwise modified, descendants. It
cannot have been of much importance to the greater number of mammals,
birds, or reptiles, whether they were clothed with hair, feathers,
or scales; yet hair has been transmitted to almost all mammals,
feathers to all birds, and scales to all true reptiles. A structure,
whatever it may be, which is common to many allied forms, is ranked
by us as of high systematic importance, and consequently is often
assumed to be of high vital importance to the species. Thus, as
I am inclined to believe, differences, which we consider as important-
such as the arrangement of the leaves, the divisions of the flower
or of the ovarium, the position of the ovules, &c.- first appeared
in many cases as fluctuating variations, which sooner or later became
constant through the nature of the organism and of the surrounding
conditions, as well as through the intercrossing of distinct individuals,
but not through natural selection; for as these morphological characters
do not affect the welfare of the species, any slight deviations
in them could not have been governed or accumulated through this
latter agency. It is a strange result which we thus arrive at, namely
that characters of slight vital importance to the species, are the
most important to the systematist; but, as we shall hereafter see
when we treat of the genetic principle of classification, this is
by no means so paradoxical as it may at first appear.
Although we have no good evidence of the existence in organic beings
of an innate tendency towards progressive development, yet this
necessarily follows, as I have attempted to show in the fourth chapter,
through the continued action of natural selection. For the best
definition which has ever been given of a high standard of organisation,
is the degree to which the parts have been specialised or differentiated;
and natural selection tends towards this end, inasmuch as the parts
are thus enabled to perform their functions more efficiently.
A distinguished zoologist, Mr. St. George Mivart, has recently
collected all the objections which have ever been advanced by myself
and others against the theory of natural selection, as propounded
by Mr. Wallace and myself, and has illustrated them with admirable
art and force. When thus marshalled, they make a formidable array;
and as it forms no part of Mr. Mivart's plan to give the various
facts and considerations opposed to his conclusions, no slight effort
of reason and memory is left to the reader, who may wish to weigh
the evidence on both sides. When discussing special cases, Mr. Mivart
passes over the effects of the increased use and disuse of parts,
which I have always maintained to be highly important, and have
treated in my Variation under Domestication at greater length than,
as I believe, any other writer. He likewise often assumes that I
attribute nothing to variation, independently of natural selection,
whereas in the work just referred to I have collected a greater
number of well-established cases than can be found in any other
work known to me. My judgment may not be trustworthy, but after
reading with care Mr. Mivart's book, and comparing each section
with what I have said on the same head, I never before felt so strongly
convinced of the general truth of the conclusions here arrived at,
subject, of course, in so intricate a subject, to much partial error.
All Mr. Mivart's objections will be, or have been, considered in
the present volume. The one new point which appears to have struck
many readers is, "that natural selection is incompetent to account
for the incipient stages of useful structures." This subject is
intimately connected with that of the gradation of characters, often
accompanied by a change of function,- for instance, the conversion
of a swimbladder into lungs,- points which were discussed in the
last chapter under two headings. Nevertheless, I will here consider
in some detail several of the cases advanced by Mr. Mivart, selecting
those which are the most illustrative, as want of space prevents
me from considering all.
The giraffe, by its lofty stature, much elongated neck, fore-legs,
head and tongue, has its whole frame beautifully adapted for browsing
on the higher branches of trees. It can thus obtain food beyond
the reach of the other Ungulata or hoofed animals inhabiting the
same country; and this must be a great advantage to it during dearths.
The Niata cattle in S. America show us how small a difference in
structure may make, during such periods, a great difference in preserving
an animal's life. These cattle can browse as well as others on grass,
but from the projection of the lower jaw they cannot, during the
often recurrent droughts, browse on the twigs of trees, reeds, &c.,
to which food the common cattle and horses are then driven; so that
at these times the Niatas perish, if not fed by their owners. Before
coming to Mr. Mivart's objections, it may be well to explain once
again how natural selection will act in all ordinary cases. Man
has modified some of his animals, without necessarily having attended
to special points of structure, by simply preserving and breeding
from the fleetest individuals, as with the race-horse and greyhound,
or as with the game-cock, by breeding from the victorious birds.
So under nature with the nascent giraffe the individuals which were
the highest browsers, and were able during dearths to reach even
an inch or two above the others, will often have been preserved;
for they will have roamed over the whole country in search of food.
That the individuals of the same species often differ slightly in
the relative lengths of all their parts may be seen in many works
of natural history, in which careful measurements are given. These
slight proportional differences, due to the laws of growth and variation,
are not of the slightest use or importance to most species. But
it will have been otherwise with the nascent giraffe, considering
its probable habits of life; for those individuals which had some
one part or several parts of their bodies rather more elongated
than usual, would generally have survived. These will have intercrossed
and left offspring, either inheriting the same bodily peculiarities,
or with a tendency to vary again in the same manner; whilst the
individuals, less favoured in the same respects, will have been
the most liable to perish.
We here see that there is no need to separate single pairs, as
man does, when he methodically improves a breed: natural selection
will preserve and thus separate all the superior individuals, allowing
them freely to intercross, and will destroy all the inferior individuals.
By this process long-continued, which exactly corresponds with what
I have called unconscious selection by man, combined no doubt in
a most important manner with the inherited effects of the increased
use of parts, it seems to me almost certain that an ordinary hoofed
quadruped might be converted into a giraffe.
To this conclusion Mr. Mivart brings forward two objections. One
is that the increased size of the body would obviously require an
increased supply of food, and he considers it as "very problematical
whether the disadvantages thence arising would not, in times of
scarcity, more than counterbalance the advantages." But as the giraffe
does actually exist in large numbers in S. Africa, and as some of
the largest antelopes in the world, taller than an ox, abound there,
why should we doubt that, as far as size is concerned, intermediate
gradations could formerly have existed there, subjected as now to
severe dearths. Assuredly the being able to reach, at each stage
of increased size, to a supply of food, left untouched by the other
hoofed quadrupeds of the country, would have been of some advantage
to the nascent giraffe. Nor must we overlook the fact, that increased
bulk would act as a protection against almost all beasts of prey
excepting the lion; and against this animal, its tall neck,- and
the taller the better,- would, as Mr. Chauncey Wright has remarked,
serve as a watch-tower. It is from this cause, as Sir S. Baker remarks,
that no animal is more difficult to stalk than the giraffe. This
animal also uses its long neck as a means of offence or defence,
by violently swinging his head armed with stump-like horns. The
preservation of each species can rarely be determined by any one
advantage, but by the union of all, great and small.
Mr. Mivart then asks (and this is his second objection), if natural
selection be so potent, and if high browsing be so great an advantage,
why has not any other hoofed quadruped acquired a long neck and
lofty stature, besides the giraffe, and, in a lesser degree, the
camel, guanaeo, and macrauchenia? Or, again, why has not any member
of the group acquired a long proboscis? With respect to S. Africa,
which was formerly inhabited by numerous herds of the giraffe, the
answer is not difficult, and can best be given by an illustration.
In every meadow in England in which trees grow, we see the lower
branches trimmed or planed to an exact level by the browsing of
the horses or cattle; and what advantage would it be, for instance,
to sheep, if kept there, to acquire slightly longer necks? In every
district some one kind of animal will almost certainly be able to
browse higher than the others; and it is almost equally certain
that this one kind alone could have its neck elongated for this
purpose, through natural selection and the effects of increased
use. In S. Africa the competition for browsing on the higher branches
of the acacias and other trees must be between giraffe and giraffe,
and not with the other ungulate animals.
Why, in other quarters of the world, various animals belonging
to this same order have not acquired either an elongated neck or
a proboscis, cannot be distinctly answered; but it is as unreasonable
to expect a distinct answer to such a question, as why some event
in the history of mankind did not occur in one country, whilst it
did in another. We are ignorant with respect to the conditions which
determine the numbers and range of each species; and we cannot even
conjecture what changes of structure would be favourable to its
increase in some new country. We can, however, see in a general
manner that various causes might have interfered with the development
of a long neck or proboscis. To reach the foliage at a considerable
height (without climbing, for which hoofed animals are singularly
ill-constructed) implies greatly increased bulk of body; and we
know that some areas support singularly few large quadrupeds, for
instance S. America, though it is so luxuriant; whilst S. Africa
abounds with them to an unparalleled degree. Why this should be
so, we do not know; nor why the later tertiary periods should have
been so much more favourable for their existence than the present
time. Whatever the causes may have been, we can see that certain
districts and times would have been much more favourable than others
for the development of so large a quadruped as the giraffe.
In order that an animal should acquire some structure specially
and largely developed, it is almost indispensable that several other
parts should be modified and co-adapted. Although every part of
the body varies slightly, it does not follow that the necessary
parts should always vary in the right direction and to the right
degree. With the different species of our domesticated animals we
know that the parts vary in a different manner and degree; and that
some species are much more variable than others. Even if the fitting
variations did arise, it does not follow that natural selection
would be able to act on them, and produce a structure which apparently
would be beneficial to the species. For instance, if the number
of individuals existing in a country is determined chiefly through
destruction by beasts of prey,- by external or internal parasites,
&c.,- as seems often to be the case, then natural selection
will be able to do little, or will be greatly retarded, in modifying
any particular structure for obtaining food. Lastly, natural selection
is a slow process, and the same favourable conditions must long
endure in order that any marked effect should thus be produced.
Except by assigning such general and vague reasons, we cannot explain
why, in many quarters of the world, hoofed quadrupeds have not acquired
much elongated necks or other means for browsing on the higher branches
of trees.
Objections of the same nature as the foregoing have been advanced
by man writers. In each case various causes, besides the general
ones just indicated, have probably interfered with the acquisition
through natural selection of structures, which it is thought would
be beneficial to certain species. One writer asks, why has not the
ostrich acquired the power of flight? But a moment's reflection
will show what an enormous supply of food would be necessary to
give to this bird of the desert force to move its huge body through
the air. Oceanic islands are inhabited by bats and seals, but by
no terrestrial mammals; yet as some of these bats are peculiar species,
they must have long inhabited their present homes. Therefore Sir
C. Lyell asks, and assigns certain reasons in answer, why have not
seals and bats given birth on such islands to forms fitted to live
on the land? But seals would necessarily be first converted into
terrestrial carnivorous animals of considerable size, and bats into
terrestrial insectivorous animals; for the former there would be
no prey; for the bats ground-insects would serve as food, but these
would already be largely preyed on by the reptiles or birds, which
first colonise and abound on most oceanic islands. Gradations of
structure, with each stage beneficial to a changing species, will
be favoured only under certain peculiar conditions. A strictly terrestrial
animal, by occasionally hunting for food in shallow water, then
in streams or lakes, might at last be converted into an animal so
thoroughly aquatic as to brave the open ocean. But seals would not
find on oceanic islands the conditions favourable to their gradual
reconversion into a terrestrial form. Bats, as formerly shown, probably
acquired their wings by at first gliding through the air from tree
to tree, like the so-called flying squirrels, for the sake of escaping
from their enemies, or for avoiding falls; but when the power of
true flight had once been acquired, it would never be reconverted
back, at least for the above purposes, into the less efficient power
of gliding through the air. Bats might, indeed, like many birds,
have had their wings greatly reduced in size, or completely lost,
through disuse; but in this case it would be necessary that they
should first have acquired the power of running quickly on the ground,
by the aid of their hind legs alone, so as to compete with birds
or other ground animals; and for such a change a bat seems singularly
ill-fitted. These conjectural remarks have been made merely to show
that a transition of structure, with each step beneficial, is a
highly complex affair; and that there is nothing strange in a transition
not having occurred in any particular case.
Lastly, more than one writer has asked, why have some animals had
their mental powers more highly developed than others, as such development
would be advantageous to an? Why have not apes acquired the intellectual
powers of man? Various causes could be assigned; but as they are
conjectural, and their relative probability cannot be weighed, it
would be useless to give them. A definite answer to the latter question
ought not to be expected, seeing that no one can solve the simpler
problem why, of two races of savages, one has risen higher in the
scale of civilisation than the other; and this apparently implies
increased brain-power.
We will return to Mr. Mivart's other objections. Insects often
resemble for the sake of protection various objects, such as green
or decayed leaves, dead twigs, bits of lichen, flowers, spines,
excrement of birds, and living insects; but to this latter point
I shall hereafter recur. The resemblance is often wonderfully close,
and is not confined to colour, but extends to form, and even to
the manner in which the insects hold themselves. The caterpillars
which project motionless like dead twigs from the bushes on which
they feed, offer an excellent instance of a resemblance of this
kind. The cases of the imitation of such objects as the excrement
of birds, are rare and exceptional. On this head, Mr. Mivart remarks,
"As, according to Mr. Darwin's theory, there is a constant tendency
to indefinite variation, and as the minute incipient variations
will be in all directions, they must tend to neutralise each other,
and at first to form such unstable modifications that it is difficult,
if not impossible, to see how such indefinite oscillations of infinitesimal
beginnings can ever build up a sufficiently appreciable resemblance
to a leaf, bamboo, or other object, for Natural Selection to seize
upon and perpetuate."
But in all the foregoing cases the insects in their original state
no doubt presented some rude and accidental resemblance to an object
commonly found in the stations frequented by them. Nor is this at
all improbable, considering the almost infinite number of surrounding
objects and the diversity in form and colour of the hosts of insects
which exist. As some rude resemblance is necessary for the first
start, we can understand how it is that the larger and higher animals
do not (with the exception, as far as I know, of one fish) resemble
for the sake of protection special objects, but only the surface
which commonly surrounds them, and this chiefly in colour. Assuming
that an insect originally happened to resemble in some degree a
dead twig or a decayed leaf, and that it varied slightly in many
ways, then all the variations which rendered the insect at all more
like any such object, and thus favoured its escape, would be preserved,
whilst other variations would be neglected and ultimately lost;
or, if they rendered the insect at all less like the imitated object,
they would be eliminated. There would indeed be force in Mr. Mivart's
objection, if we were to attempt to account for the above resemblances,
independently of natural selection, through mere fluctuating variability;
but as the case stands there is none.
Nor can I see any force in Mr. Mivart's difficulty with respect
to "the last touches of perfection in the mimicry"; as in the case
given by Mr. Wallace, of a walking-stick insect (Ceroxylus laceratus),
which resembles "a stick grown over by a creeping moss or jungermannia."
So close was this resemblance, that a native Dyak maintained that
the foliaceous excrescences were really moss. Insects are preyed
on by birds and other enemies, whose sight is probably sharper than
ours, and every grade in resemblance which aided an insect to escape
notice or detection, would tend towards its preservation; and the
more perfect the resemblance so much the better for the insect.
Considering the nature of the differences between the species in
the group which includes the above Ceroxylus, there is nothing improbable
in this insect having varied in the irregularities on its surface,
and in these having become more or less green-coloured; for in every
group the characters which differ in the several species are the
most apt to vary, whilst the generic characters, or those common
to all the species, are the most constant.
The Greenland whale is one of the most wonderful animals in the
world, and the baleen, or whale-bone, one of its greatest peculiarities.
The baleen consists of a row, on each side of the upper jaw, of
about 300 plates or laminae, which stand close together transversely
to the longer axis of the mouth. Within the main row there are some
subsidiary rows. The extremities and inner margins of all the plates
are frayed into stiff bristles, which clothe the whole gigantic
palate, and serve to strain or sift the water, and thus to secure
the minute prey on which these great animals subsist. The middle
and longest lamina in the Greenland whale is ten, twelve, or even
fifteen feet in length; but in the different species of cetaceans
there are gradations in length; the middle lamina being in one species,
according to Scoresby, four feet, in another three, in another eighteen
inches, and in the Balaenoptera rostrata only about nine inches
in length. The quality of the whale-bone also differs in the different
species.
With respect to the baleen, Mr. Mivart remarks that if it "had
once attained such a size and development as to be at all useful,
then its preservation and augmentation within serviceable limits
would be promoted by natural selection alone. But how to obtain
the beginning of such useful development?" In answer, it may be
asked, why should not the early progenitors of the whales with baleen
have possessed a mouth constructed something like the lamellated
beak of a duck? Ducks, like whales, subsist by sifting the mud and
water; and the family has sometimes been called Criblatores, or
sifters. I hope that I may not be misconstrued into saying that
the progenitors of whales did actually possess mouths lamellated
like the beak of a duck. I wish only to show that this is not incredible,
and that the immense plates of baleen in the Greenland whale might
have been developed from such lamellae by finely graduated steps,
each of service to its possessor.
The beak of a shoveller-duck (Spatula elypedta) is a more beautiful
and complex structure than the mouth of a whale. The upper mandible
is furnished on each side (in the specimen examined by me) with
a row or comb formed of 188 thin, elastic lamellae, obliquely bevelled
so as to be pointed, and placed transversely to the longer axis
of the mouth. They arise from the palate, and are attached by flexible
membrane to the sides of the mandible. Those standing towards the
middle are the longest, being about one-third of an inch in length,
and they project .14 of an inch beneath the edge. At their bases
there is a short subsidiary row of obliquely transverse lamellae.
In these several respects they resemble the plates of baleen in
the mouth of a whale. But towards the extremity of the beak they
differ much, as they project inwards, instead of straight downwards.
The entire head of the shoveller, though incomparably less bulky,
is about one-eighteenth of the length of the head of a moderately
large Balaenoptera rostrata, in which species the baleen is only
nine inches long; so that if we were to make the head of the shoveller
as long as that of the Balaenoptera, the lamellae would be six inches
in length,- that is, two-thirds of the length of the baleen in this
species of whale. The lower mandible of the shoveller-duck is furnished
with lamellae of equal length with those above, but finer; and in
being thus furnished it differs conspicuously from the lower jaw
of a whale, which is destitute of baleen. On the other hand the
extremities of these lower lamellae are frayed into fine bristly
points, so that they thus curiously resemble the plates of baleen.
In the genus Prion, a member of the distinct family of the petrels,
the upper mandible alone is furnished with lamellae, which are well
developed and project beneath the margin; so that the beak of this
bird resembles in this respect the mouth of a whale.
From the highly developed structure of the shoveller's beak we
may proceed (as I have learnt from information and specimens sent
to me by Mr. Salvin), without any great break, as far as fitness
for sifting is concerned, through the beak of the Merganetta armata,
and in some respects through that of the Aix sponsa, to the beak
of the common duck. In this latter species, the lamellae are much
coarser than in the shoveller, and are firmly attached to the sides
of the mandible; they are only about 50 in number on each side,
and do not project at all beneath the margin. They are square-topped,
and are edged with translucent hardish tissue, as if for crushing
food. The edges of the lower mandible are crossed by numerous fine
ridges, which project very little. Although the beak is thus very
inferior as a sifter to that of the shoveller, yet this bird, as
every one knows, constantly uses it for this purpose. There are
other species, as I hear from Mr. Salvin, in which the lamellae
are considerably less developed than in the common duck; but I do
not know whether they use their beaks for sifting the water.
Turning to another group of the same family: in the Egyptian goose
(Chenalopex) the beak closely resembles that of the common ducks;
but the lamellae are not so numerous, nor so distinct from each
other, nor do they project so much inwards; yet this goose, as I
am informed by Mr. E. Bartlett, "uses its bill like a duck by throwing
the water out at the corners." Its chief food, however, is grass,
which it crops like the common goose. In this latter bird, the lamellae
of the upper mandible are much coarser than in the common duck,
almost confluent, about 27 in number on each side, and terminating
upwards in teeth-like knobs. The palate is also covered with hard
rounded knobs. The edges of the lower mandible are serrated with
teeth much more prominent, coarser, and sharper than in the duck.
The common goose does not sift the water, but uses its beak exclusively
for tearing or cutting herbage, for which purpose it is so well
fitted, that it can crop grass closer than almost any other animal.
There are other species of geese, as I hear from Mr. Bartlett, in
which the lamellae are less developed than in the common goose.
We thus see that a member of the duck family, with a beak constructed
like that of the common goose and adapted solely for grazing, or
even a member with a beak having less well-developed lamellae, might
be converted by small changes into a species like the Egyptian goose,-
this into one like the common duck,- and, lastly, into one like
the shoveller, provided with a beak almost exclusively adapted for
sifting the water; for this bird could hardly use any part of its
beak, except the hooked tip, for seizing or tearing solid food.
The beak of a goose, as I may add, might also be converted by small
changes into one provided with prominent, recurved teeth, like those
of the merganser (a member of the same family), serving for the
widely different purpose of securing live fish.
Returning to the whales: the Hyperoodon bidens is destitute of
true teeth in an efficient condition, but its palate is roughened,
according to Lacepide, with small, unequal, hard points of horn.
There is, therefore, nothing improbable in supposing that some early
cetacean form was provided with similar points of horn on the palate,
but rather more regularly placed, and which, like the knobs on the
beak of the goose, aided it in seizing or tearing its food. If so,
it will hardly be denied that the points might have been converted
through variation and natural selection into lamellae as well developed
as those of the Egyptian goose, in which case they would have been
used both for seizing objects and for sifting the water; then into
lamellae like those of the domestic duck; and so onwards, until
they became as well constructed as those of the shoveller, in which
case they would have served exclusively as a sifting apparatus.
From this stage, in which the lamellae would be two-thirds of the
length of the plates of baleen in the Balaenoptera rostrata, gradations,
which may be observed in still-existing cetaceans, lead us onwards
to the enormous plates of baleen in the Greenland whale. Nor is
there the least reason to doubt that each step in this scale might
have been as serviceable to certain ancient cetaceans, with the
functions of the parts slowly changing during the progress of development,
as are the gradations in the beaks of the different existing members
of the duck family. We should bear in mind that each species of
duck is subjected to a severe struggle for existence, and that the
structure of every part of its frame must be well adapted to its
conditions of life.
The Pleuronectidae, or flat-fish, are remarkable for their asymmetrical
bodies. They rest on one side,- in the greater number of species
on the left, but in some on the right side; and occasionally reversed
adult specimens occur. The lower, or resting-surface, resembles
at first sight the ventral surface of an ordinary fish: it is of
a white colour, less developed in many ways than the upper side,
with the lateral fins often of smaller size. But the eyes offer
the most remarkable peculiarity; for they are both placed on the
upper side of the head. During early youth, however, they stand
opposite to each other, and the whole body is then symmetrical,
with both sides equally coloured. Soon the eye proper to the lower
side begins to glide slowly round the head to the upper side; but
does not pass right through the skull, as was formerly thought to
be the case. It is obvious that unless the lower eye did thus travel
round, it could not be used by the fish whilst lying in its habitual
position on one side. The lower eye would, also, have been liable
to be abraded by the sandy bottom. That the Pleuronectidae are admirably
adapted by their flattened and asymmetrical structure for their
habits of life, is manifest from several species, such as soles,
flounders, &c., being extremely common. The chief advantages
thus gained seem to be protection from their enemies, and facility
for feeding on the ground. The different members, however, of the
family present, as Schiodte remarks, "a long series of forms exhibiting
a gradual transition from Hippoglossus pinguis, which does not in
any considerable degree alter the shape in which it leaves the ovum,
to the soles, which are entirely thrown to one side."
Mr. Mivart has taken up this case, and remarks that a sudden spontaneous
transformation in the position of the eyes is hardly conceivable,
in which I quite agree with him. He then adds: "If the transit was
gradual, then how such transit of one eye a minute fraction of the
journey towards the other side of the head could benefit the individual
is, indeed, far from clear. It seems, even, that such an incipient
transformation must rather have been injurious." But he might have
found an answer to this objection in the excellent observations
published in 1867 by Malm. The Pleuronectidae whilst very young
and still symmetrical, with their eyes standing on opposite sides
of the head, cannot long retain a vertical position, owing to the
excessive depth of their bodies, the small size of their lateral
fins, and to their being destitute of a swimbladder. Hence soon
growing tired, they fall to the bottom on one side. Whilst thus
at rest they often twist, as Malm observed, the lower eye upwards,
to see above them; and they do this so vigorously that the eye is
pressed hard against the upper part of the orbit. The forehead between
the eyes consequently becomes, as could be plainly seen, temporarily
contracted in breadth. On one occasion Malm saw a young fish raise
and depress the lower eye through an angular distance of about seventy
degrees.
We should remember that the skull at this early age is cartilaginous
and flexible, so that it readily yields to muscular action. It is
also known with the higher animals, even after early youth, that
the skull yields and is altered in shape, if the skin or muscles
be permanently contracted through disease or some accident. With
long-eared rabbits, if one ear lops forwards and downwards, its
weight drags forward all the bones of the skull on the same side,
of which I have given a figure. Malm states that the newly-hatched
young of perches, salmon, and several other symmetrical fishes,
have the habit of occasionally resting on one side at the bottom;
and he has observed that they often then strain their lower eyes
so as to look upwards; and their skulls are thus rendered rather
crooked. These fishes, however, are soon able to hold themselves
in a vertical position, and no permanent effect is thus produced.
With the Pleuronectidae, on the other hand, the older they grow
the more habitually they rest on one side, owing to the increasing
flatness of their bodies, and a permanent effect is thus produced
on the form of the head, and on the position of the eyes. Judging
from analogy, the tendency to distortion would no doubt be increased
through the principle of inheritance. Schiodte believes, in opposition
to some other naturalists, that the Pleuronectidae are not quite
symmetrical even in the embryo; and if this be so, we could understand
how it is that certain species, whilst young, habitually fall over
and rest on the left side, and other species on the right side.
Malm adds, in confirmation of the above view, that the adult Trachypterus
arcticus, which is not a member of the Pleuronectidae, rests on
its left side at the bottom, and swims diagonally through the water;
and in this fish, the two sides of the head are said to be somewhat
dissimilar. Our great authority on fishes, Dr. Gunther, concludes
his abstract of Malm's paper, by remarking that "the author gives
a very simple explanation of the abnormal condition of the pleuronectoids."
We thus see that the first stages of the transit of the eye from
one side of the head to the other, which Mr. Mivart considers would
be injurious, may be attributed to the habit, no doubt beneficial
to the individual and to the species, of endeavouring to look upwards
with both eyes, whilst resting on one side at the bottom. We may
also attribute to the inherited effects of use the fact of the mouth
in several kinds of flat-fish being bent towards the lower surface,
with the jaw bones stronger and more effective on this, the eyeless
side of the head, than on the other, for the sake, as Dr. Traquair
supposes, of feeding with ease on the ground. Disuse, on the other
hand, will account for the less developed condition of the whole
inferior half of the body, including the lateral fins; though Yarrel
thinks that the reduced size of these fins is advantageous to the
fish, as "there is so much less room for their action, than with
the larger fins above." Perhaps the lesser number of teeth in the
proportion of four to seven in the upper halves of the two jaws
of the plaice, to twenty-five to thirty in the lower halves, may
likewise be accounted for by disuse. From the colourless state of
the ventral surface of most fishes and of many other animals, we
may reasonably suppose that the absence of colour in flat-fish on
the side, whether it be the right or left, which is undermost, is
due to the exclusion of light. But it cannot be supposed that the
peculiar speckled appearance of the upper side of the sole, so like
the sandy bed of the sea, or the power in some species, as recently
shown by Pouchet, of changing their colour in accordance with the
surrounding surface, or the presence of bony tubercles on the upper
side of the turbot, are due to the action of the light. Here natural
selection has probably come into play, as well as in adapting the
general shape of the body of these fishes, and many other peculiarities,
to their habits of life. We should keep in mind, as I have before
insisted, that the inherited effects of the increased use of parts,
and perhaps of their disuse, will be strengthened by natural selection.
For all spontaneous variations in the right direction will thus
be preserved; as will those individuals which inherit in the highest
degree the effects of the increased and beneficial use of any part.
How much to attribute in each particular case to the effects of
use, and how much to natural selection, it seems impossible to decide.
I may give another instance of a structure which apparently owes
its origin exclusively to use or habit. The extremity of the tail
in some American monkeys has been converted into a wonderfully perfect
prehensile organ, and serves as a fifth hand. A reviewer who agrees
with Mr. Mivart in every detail, remarks on this structure: "It
is impossible to believe that in any number of ages the first slight
incipient tendency to grasp could preserve the lives of the individuals
possessing it, or favour their chance of having and of rearing offspring."
But there is no necessity for any such belief. Habit, and this almost
implies that some benefit great or small is thus derived, would
in all probability suffice for the work. Brehm saw the young of
an African monkey (Cercopithecus) clinging to the under surface
of their mother by their hands, and at the same time they hooked
their little tails round that of their mother. Professor Henslow
kept in confinement some harvest mice (Mus messorius) which do not
possess a structurally prehensile tail; but he frequently observed
that they curled their tails round the branches of a bush placed
in the cage, and thus aided themselves in climbing. I have received
an analogous account from Dr. Gunther, who has seen a mouse thus
suspend itself. If the harvest mouse had been more strictly arboreal,
it would perhaps have had its tail rendered structurally prehensile,
as is the case with some members of the same order. Why Cereopithecus,
considering its habits whilst young, has not become thus provided,
it would be difficult to say. It is, however, possible that the
long tail of this monkey may be of more service to it as a balancing
organ in making its prodigious leaps, than as a prehensile organ.
The mammary glands are common to the whole class of mammals, and
are indispensable for their existence; they must, therefore, have
been developed at an extremely remote period, and we can know nothing
positively about their manner of development. Mr. Mivart asks: "Is
it conceivable that the young of any animal was ever saved from
destruction by accidentally sucking a drop of scarcely nutritious
fluid from an accidentally hypertrophied cutaneous gland of its
mother? And even if one was so, what chance was there of the perpetuation
of such a variation?" But the case is not here put fairly. It is
admitted by most evolutionists that mammals are descended from a
marsupial form; and if so, the mammary glands will have been at
first developed within the marsupial sack. In the case of the fish
(Hippocampus) the eggs are hatched, and the young are reared for
a time, within a sack of this nature; and an American naturalist,
Mr. Lockwood, believes from what he has seen of the development
of the young, that they are nourished by a secretion from the cutaneous
glands of the sack. Now with the early progenitors of mammals, almost
before they deserved to be thus designated, is it not at least possible
that the young might have been similarly nourished? And in this
case, the individuals which secreted a fluid, in some degree or
manner the most nutritious, so as to partake of the nature of milk,
would in the long run have reared a larger number of well-nourished
offspring, than would the individuals which secreted a poorer fluid;
and thus the cutaneous glands, which are the homologues of the mammary
glands, would have been improved or rendered more effective. It
accords with the widely extended principle of specialisation, that
the glands over a certain space of the sack should have become more
highly developed than the remainder; and they would then have formed
a breast, but at first without a nipple as we see in the Ornithorhynchus,
at the base of the mammalian series. Through what agency the glands
over a certain space became more highly specialised than the others,
I will not pretend to decide, whether in part through compensation
of growth, the effects of use, or of natural selection.
The development of the mammary glands would have been of no service,
and could not have been effected through natural selection, unless
the young at the same time were able to partake of the secretion.
There is no greater difficulty in understanding how young mammals
have instinctively learnt to suck the breast, than in understanding
how unhatched chickens have learnt to break the egg-shell by tapping
against it with their specially adapted beaks; or how a few hours
after leaving the shell they have learnt to pick up grains of food.
In such cases the most probable solution seems to be, that the habit
was at first acquired by practice at a more advanced age, and afterwards
transmitted to the offspring at an earlier age. But the young kangaroo
is said not to suck, only to cling to the nipple of its mother,
who has the power of injecting milk into the mouth of her helpless,
half-formed offspring. On this head, Mr. Mivart remarks: "Did no
special provision exist, the young one must infallibly be choked
by the intrusion of the milk into the windpipe. But there is a special
provision. The larynx is so elongated that it rises up into the
posterior end of the nasal passage, and is thus enabled to give
free entrance to the air for the lungs, while the milk passes harmlessly
on each side of this elongated larynx, and so safely attains the
gullet behind it." Mr. Mivart then asks how did natural selection
remove in the adult kangaroo (and in most other mammals, on the
assumption that they are descended from a marsupial form), "this
at least perfectly innocent and harmless structure?" It may be suggested
in answer that the voice, which is certainly of high importance
to many animals, could hardly have been used with full force as
long as the larynx entered the nasal passage; and Professor Flower
has suggested to me that this structure would have greatly interfered
with an animal swallowing solid food.
We will now turn for a short space to the lower divisions of the
animal kingdom. The Echinodermata (star-fishes, sea-urchins, &c.)
are furnished with remarkable organs, called pedicellariae, which
consist, when well developed, of a tridactyle forceps- that is,
of one formed of three serrated arms, neatly fitting together and
placed on the summit of a flexible stem, moved by muscles. These
forceps can firmly seize hold of any object; and Alexander Agassiz
has seen an Echinus or sea-urchin rapidly passing particles of excrement
from forceps to forceps down certain lines of its body, in order
that its shell should not be fouled. But there is no doubt that
besides removing dirt of all kinds, they subserve other functions;
and one of these apparently is defence.
With respect to these organs, Mr. Mivart, as on so many previous
occasions, asks: "What would be the utility of the first rudimentary
beginnings of such structures, and how could such incipient buddings
have ever preserved the life of a single Echinus?" He adds, "Not
even the sudden development of the snapping action could have been
beneficial without the freely moveable stalk, nor could the latter
have been efficient without the snapping jaws, yet no minute merely
indefinite variations could simultaneously evolve these complex
co-ordinations of structure; to deny this seems to do no less than
to affirm a startling paradox." Paradoxical as this may appear to
Mr. Mivart, tridactyle forcepses, immovably fixed at the base, but
capable of a snapping action, certainly exist on some starfishes;
and this is intelligible if they serve, at least in part, as a means
of defence. Mr. Agassiz, to whose great kindness I am indebted for
much information on the subject, informs me that there are other
star-fishes, in which one of the three arms of the forceps is reduced
to a support for the other two; and again, other genera in which
the third arm is completely lost. In Echinoneus, the shell is described
by M. Perrier as bearing two kinds of pedicellariae, one resembling
those of Echinus, and the other those of Spatangus; and such cases
are always interesting as affording the means of apparently sudden
transitions, through the abortion of one of the two states of an
organ.
With respect to the steps by which these curious organs have been
evolved, Mr. Agassiz infers from his own researches and those of
Muller, that both in star-fishes and sea-urchins the pedicellariae
must undoubtedly be looked at as modified spines. This may be inferred
from their manner of development in the individual, as well as from
a long and perfect series of gradations in different species and
genera, from simple granules to ordinary spines, to perfect tridactyle
pedicellariae. The gradations extend even to the manner in which
ordinary spines and pedicellariae with their supporting calcareous
rods are articulated to the shell. In certain genera of star-fishes,
"the very combinations needed to show that the pedicellariae are
only modified branching spines" may be found. Thus we have fixed
spines, with three equidistant, serrated, moveable branches, articulated
to near their bases; and higher up, on the same spine, three other
moveable branches. Now when the latter arise from the summit of
a spine they form in fact a rude tridactyle pedicellaria, and such
may be seen on the same spine together with the three lower branches.
In this case the identity in nature between the arms of the pedicellariae
and the moveable branches of a spine, is unmistakable. It is generally
admitted that the ordinary spines serve as a protection; and if
so, there can be no reason to doubt that those furnished with serrated
and moveable branches likewise serve for the same purpose; and they
would thus serve still more effectively as soon as by meeting together
they acted as a prehensile or snapping apparatus. Thus every gradation,
from an ordinary fixed spine to a fixed pedicellaria, would be of
service.
In certain genera of star-fishes these organs, instead of being
fixed or borne on an immoveable support, are placed on the summit
of a flexible and muscular, though short, stem; and in this case
they probably subserve some additional function besides defence.
In the sea-urchins the steps can be followed by which a fixed spine
becomes articulated to the shell, and is thus rendered moveable.
I wish I had space here to give a fuller abstract of Mr. Agassiz's
interesting observations on the development of the pedicellariae.
All possible gradations, as he adds, may likewise be found between
the pedicellariae of the star-fishes and the hooks of the ophiurians,
another group of Echinodermata; and again between the pedicellariae
of sea-urchins and the anchors of the Holothuriae, also belonging
to the same great class.
Certain compound animals, or zoophytes as they have been termed,
namely the Polyzoa, are provided with curious organs called avicularia.
These differ much in structure in the different species. In their
most perfect condition, they curiously resemble the head and beak
of a vulture in miniature, seated on a neck and capable of movement,
as is likewise the lower jaw or mandible. In one species observed
by me all the avicularia on the same branch often moved simultaneously
backwards and forwards, with the lower jaw widely open, through
an angle of about 90 degrees, in the course of five seconds; and
their movement caused the whole polyzoary to tremble. When the jaws
are touched with a needle they seize it so firmly that the branch
can thus be shaken.
Mr. Mivart adduces this case, chiefly on account of the supposed
difficulty of organs, namely the avicularia of the Polyzoa and the
pedicellariae of the Echinodermata, which he considers as "essentially
similar," having been developed through natural selection in widely
distinct divisions of the animal kingdom. But, as far as structure
is concerned, I can see no similarity between tridactyle pedicellariae
and avicularia. The latter resemble somewhat more closely the chelae
or pincers of crustaceans; and Mr. Mivart might have adduced with
equal appropriateness this resemblance as a special difficulty;
or even their resemblance to the head and beak of a bird. The avicularia
are believed by Mr. Busk, Dr. Smitt, and Dr. Nitsche- naturalists
who have carefully studied this group- to be homologous with the
zooids and their cells which compose the zoophyte; the moveable
lip or lid of the cell corresponding with the lower and moveable
mandible of the avicularium. Mr. Busk, however, does not know of
any gradations now existing between a zooid and an avicularium.
It is therefore impossible to conjecture by what serviceable gradations
the one could have been converted into the other: but it by no means
follows from this that such gradations have not existed.
As the chelae of crustaceans resemble in some degree the avicularia
of Polyzoa, both serving as pincers, it may be worth while to show
that with the former a long series of serviceable gradations still
exists. In the first and simplest stage, the terminal segment of
a limb shuts down either on the square summit of the broad penultimate
segment, or against one whole side; and is thus enabled to catch
hold of an object; but the limb still serves as an organ of locomotion.
We next find one corner of the broad penultimate segment slightly
prominent, sometimes furnished with irregular teeth; and against
these the terminal segment shuts down. By an increase in the size
of this projection, with its shape, as well as that of the terminal
segment, slightly modified and improved, the pincers are rendered
more and more perfect, until we have at last an instrument as efficient
as the chelae of a lobster; and all these gradations can be actually
traced.
Besides the avicularia, the Polyzoa possess curious organs called
vibracula. These generally consist of long bristles, capable of
movement and easily excited. In one species examined by me the vibracula
were slightly curved and serrated along the outer margin; and all
of them on the same polyzoary often moved simultaneously; so that,
acting like long oars, they swept a branch rapidly across the object-glass
of my microscope. When a branch was placed on its face, the vibracula
became entangled, and they made violent efforts to free themselves.
They are supposed to serve as a defence, and may be seen, as Mr.
Busk remarks, "to sweep slowly and carefully over the surface of
the polyzoary, removing what might be noxious to the delicate inhabitants
of the cells when their tentacula are protruded." The avicularia,
like the vibracula, probably serve for defence, but they also catch
and kill small living animals, which it is believed are afterwards
swept by the currents within reach of the tentacula of the zooids.
Some species are provided with avicularia and vibracula; some with
avicularia alone, and a few with vibracula alone.
It is not easy to imagine two objects more widely different in
appearance than a bristle or vibraculum, and an avicularium like
the head of a bird; yet they are almost certainly homologous and
have been developed from the same common source, namely a zooid
with its cell. Hence we can understand how it is that these organs
graduate in some cases, as I am informed by Mr. Busk, into each
other. Thus with the avicularia of several species of Lepralia,
the moveable mandible is so much produced and is so like a bristle,
that the presence of the upper or fixed beak alone serves to determine
even its avicularian nature. The vibracula may have been directly
developed from the lips of the cells, without having passed through
the avicularian stage; but it seems more probable that they have
passed through this stage, as during the early stages of the transformation,
the other parts of the cell with the included zooid could hardly
have disappeared at once. In many cases the vibracula have a grooved
support at the base, which seems to represent the fixed beak; though
this support in some species is quite absent. This view of the development
of the vibracula, if trustworthy, is interesting; for supposing
that all the species provided with avicularia had become extinct,
no one with the most vivid imagination would ever have thought that
the vibracula had originally existed as part of an organ, resembling
a bird's head or an irregular box or hood. It is interesting to
see two such widely different organs developed from a common origin;
and as the moveable lip of the cell serves as a protection to the
zooid, there is no difficulty in believing that all the gradations,
by which the lip became converted first into the lower mandible
of an avicularium and then into an elongated bristle, likewise served
as a protection in different ways and under different circumstances.
In the vegetable kingdom Mr. Mivart only alludes to two cases,
namely the structure of the flowers of orchids, and the movements
of climbing plants. With respect to the former, he says, "The explanation
of their origin is deemed thoroughly unsatisfactory- utterly insufficient
to explain the incipient, infinitesimal beginnings of structures
which are of utility only when they are considerably developed."
As I have fully treated this subject in another work, I will here
give only a few details on one alone of the most striking peculiarities
of the flowers of orchids, namely their pollinia. A pollinium when
highly developed consists of a mass of pollen-grains, affixed to
an elastic footstalk or caudicle, and this to a little mass of extremely
viscid matter. The pollinia are by this means transported by insects
from one flower to the stigma of another. In some orchids there
is no caudicle to the pollen-masses, and the grains are merely tied
together by fine threads; but as these are not confined to orchids,
they need not here be considered; yet I may mention that at the
base of the orchidaceous series, in Cypripedium, we can see how
the threads were probably first developed. In other orchids the
threads cohere at one end of the pollen-masses; and this forms the
first or nascent trace of a caudicle. That this is the origin of
the caudicle, even when of considerable length and highly developed,
we have good evidence in the aborted pollen-grains which can sometimes
be detected embedded within the central and solid parts.
With respect to the second chief peculiarity, namely the little
mass of viscid matter attached to the end of the caudicle, a long
series of gradations can be specified, each of plain service to
the plant. In most flowers belonging to other orders the stigma
secretes a little viscid matter. Now in certain orchids similar
viscid matter is secreted, but in much larger quantities by one
alone of the three stigmas; and this stigma, perhaps in consequence
of the copious secretion, is rendered sterile. When an insect visits
a flower of this kind, it rubs off some of the viscid matter and
thus at the same time drags away some of the pollen-grains. From
this simple condition, which differs but little from that of a multitude
of common flowers, there are endless gradations,- to species in
which the pollen-mass terminates in a very short, free caudicle,-
to others in which the caudicle becomes firmly attached to the viscid
matter, with the sterile stigma itself much modified. In this latter
case we have a pollinium in its most highly developed and perfect
condition. He who will carefully examine the flowers of orchids
for himself will not deny the existence of the above series of gradations-
from a mass of pollen-grains merely tied together by threads, with
the stigma differing but little from that of an ordinary flower,
to a highly complex pollinium, admirably adapted for transportal
by insects; nor will he deny that all the gradations in the several
species are admirably adapted in relation to the general structure
of each flower for its fertilisation by different insects. In this,
and in almost every other case, the enquiry may be pushed further
backwards; and it may be asked how did the stigma of an ordinary
flower become viscid, but as we do not know the full history of
any one group of beings, it is as useless to ask, as it is hopeless
to attempt answering, such questions.
We will now turn to climbing plants. These can be arranged in a
long series, from those which simply twine round a support, to those
which I have called leaf-climbers, and to those provided with tendrils.
In these two latter classes the stems have generally, but not always,
lost the power of twining, though they retain the power of revolving,
which the tendrils likewise possess. The gradations from leaf-climbers
to tendril-bearers are wonderfully close, and certain plants may
be indifferently placed in either class. But in ascending the series
from simple twiners to leaf-climbers, an important quality is added,
namely sensitiveness to a touch, by which means the foot-stalks
of the leaves or flowers, or these modified and converted into tendrils,
are excited to bend round and clasp the touching object. He who
will read my memoir on these plants will, I think, admit that all
the many gradations in function and structure between simple twiners
and tendril-bearers are in each case beneficial in a high degree
to the species. For instance, it is clearly a great advantage to
a twining plant to become a leaf-climber; and it is probable that
every twiner which possessed leaves with long foot-stalks would
have been developed into a leaf-climber if the footstalks had possessed
in any slight degree the requisite sensitiveness to a touch.
As twining is the simplest means of ascending a support, and forms
the basis of our series, it may naturally be asked how did plants
acquire this power in an incipient degree, afterwards to be improved
and increased through natural selection. The power of twining depends,
firstly, on the stems whilst young being extremely flexible (but
this is a character common to many plants which are not climbers);
and, secondly, on their continually bending to all points of the
compass, one after the other in succession, in the same order. By
this movement the stems are inclined to all sides, and are made
to move round and round. As soon as the lower part of a stem strikes
against any object and is stopped, the upper part still goes on
bending and revolving, and thus necessarily twines round and up
the support. The revolving movement ceases after the early growth
of each shoot. As in many widely separated families of plants, single
species and single genera possess the power of revolving, and have
thus become twiners, they must have independently acquired it, and
cannot have inherited it from a common progenitor. Hence I was led
to predict that some slight tendency to a movement of this kind
would be found to be far from uncommon with plants which did not
climb; and that this had afforded the basis for natural selection
to work on and improve. When I made this prediction, I knew of only
one imperfect case, namely, of the young flower-peduncles of a Maurandia
which revolved slightly and irregularly, like the stems of twining
plants, but without making any use of this habit. Soon afterwards
Fritz Muller discovered that the young stems of an Alisima and of
a Linum,- plants which do not climb and are widely separated in
the natural system,- revolved plainly, though irregularly; and he
states that he has reason to suspect that this occurs with some
other plants. These slight movements appear to be of no service
to the plants in question; anyhow, they are not of the least use
in the way of climbing, which is the point that concerns us. Nevertheless
we can see that if the stems of these plants had been flexible,
and if under the conditions to which they are exposed it had profited
them to ascend to a height, then the habit of slightly and irregularly
revolving might have been increased and utilised through natural
selection, until they had become converted into well-developed twining
species.
With respect to the sensitiveness of the footstalks of the leaves
and flowers, and of tendrils, nearly the same remarks are applicable
as in the case of the revolving movements of twining plants. As
a vast number of species, belonging to widely distinct groups, are
endowed with this kind of sensitiveness, it ought to be found in
a nascent condition in many plants which have not become climbers.
This is the case: I observed that the young flower-peduncles of
the above Maurandia curved themselves a little toward the side which
was touched. Morren found in several species of Oxalis that the
leaves and their foot-stalks moved, especially after exposure to
a hot sun, when they were gently and repeatedly touched, or when
the plant was shaken. I repeated these observations on some other
species of Oxalis with the same result; in some of them the movement
was distinct, but was best seen in the young leaves; in others it
was extremely slight. It is a more important fact that according
to the high authority of Hofmeister, the young shoots and leaves
of all plants move after being shaken; and with climbing plants
it is, as we know, only during the early stages of growth that the
foot-stalks and tendrils are sensitive.
It is scarcely possible that the above slight movements, due to
a touch or shake, in the young and growing organs of plants, can
be of any functional importance to them. But plants possess, in
obedience to various stimuli, powers of movement, which are of manifest
importance to them; for instance, towards and more rarely from the
light,- in opposition to, and more rarely in the direction of, the
attraction of gravity. When the nerves and muscles of an animal
are excited by galvanism or by the absorption of strychnine, the
consequent movements may be called an incidental result, for the
nerves and muscles have not been rendered specially sensitive to
these stimuli. So with plants it appears that, from having the power
of movement in obedience to certain stimuli, they are excited in
an incidental manner by a touch, or by being shaken. Hence there
is no great difficulty in admitting that in the case of leaf-climbers
and tendril-bearers, it is this tendency which has been taken advantage
of and increased through natural selection. It is, however, probable,
from reasons which I have assigned in my memoir, that this will
have occurred only with plants which had already acquired the power
of revolving, and had thus become twiners.
I have already endeavoured to explain how plants became twiners,
namely, by the increase of a tendency to slight and irregular revolving
movements, which were at first of no use to them; this movement,
as well as that due to a touch or shake, being the incidental result
of the power of moving, gained for other and beneficial purposes.
Whether, during the gradual development of climbing plants, natural
selection has been aided by the inherited effects of use, I will
not pretend to decide; but we know that certain periodical movements,
for instance the so-called sleep of plants, are governed by habit.
I have now considered enough, perhaps more than enough, of the
cases, selected with care by a skilful naturalist, to prove that
natural selection is incompetent to account for the incipient stages
of useful structures; and I have shown, as I hope, that there is
no great difficulty on this head. A good opportunity has thus been
afforded for enlarging a little on gradations of structure, often
associated with changed functions,- an important subject which was
not treated at sufficient length in the former editions of this
work. I will now briefly recapitulate the foregoing cases.
With the giraffe, the continued preservation of the individuals
of some extinct high-reaching ruminant, which had the longest necks,
legs, &c., and could browse a little above the average height,
and the continued destruction of those which could not browse so
high, would have sufficed for the production of this remarkable
quadruped; but the prolonged use of all the parts together with
inheritance will have aided in an important manner in their co-ordination.
With the many insects which imitate various objects, there is no
improbability in the belief that an accidental resemblance to some
common object was in each case the foundation for the work of natural
selection, since perfected through the occasional preservation of
slight variations which ma de the resemblance at all closer; and
this will have been carried on as long as the insect continued to
vary, and as long as a more and more perfect resemblance led to
its escape from sharp-sighted enemies. In certain species of whales
there is a tendency to the formation of irregular little points
of horn on the palate; and it seems to be quite within the scope
of natural selection to preserve all favourable variations, until
the points were converted first into lamellated knobs or teeth,
like those on the beak of a goose,- then into short lamellae, like
those of the domestic ducks,- and then into lamellae, as perfect
as those of the shoveller-duck,- and finally into the gigantic plates
of baleen, as in the mouth of the Greenland whale. In the family
of the ducks, the lamellae are first used as teeth, then partly
as teeth, and partly as a sifting apparatus, and at last almost
exclusively for this latter purpose.
With such structures as the above lamellae of horn or whalebone,
habit or use can have done little or nothing, as far as we can judge,
towards their development. On the other hand, the transportal of
the lower eye of a flat-fish to the upper side of the head, and
the formation of a prehensile tail, may be attributed almost wholly
to continued use, together with inheritance. With respect to the
mammae of the higher animals, the most probable conjecture is that
primordially the cutaneous glands over the whole surface of a marsupial
sack secreted a nutritious fluid; and that these glands were improved
in function through natural selection, and concentrated into a confined
area, in which case they would have formed a mamma. There is no
more difficulty in understanding how the branched spines of some
ancient echinoderm, which served as a defence, became developed
through natural selection into tridactyle pedicellariae, than in
understanding the development of the pincers of crustaceans, through
slight, serviceable modifications in the ultimate and penultimate
segments of a limb, which was at first used solely for locomotion.
In the avicularia and vibracula of the Polyzoa we have organs widely
different in appearance developed from the same source; and with
the vibracula we can understand how the successive gradations might
have been of service. With the pollinia of orchids, the threads
which originally served to tie together the pollen-grains, can be
traced cohering into caudicles; and the steps can likewise be followed
by which viscid matter, such as that secreted by the stigmas of
ordinary flowers, and still subserving nearly but not quite the
same purpose, became attached to the free ends of the caudicles;-
all these gradations being of modest benefit to the plants in question.
With respect to climbing plants, I need not repeat what has been
so lately said.
It has often been asked, if natural selection be so potent, why
has not this or that structure been gained by certain species, to
which it would apparently have been advantageous? But it is unreasonable
to expect a precise answer to such questions, considering our ignorance
of the past history of each species, and of the conditions which
at the present day determine its numbers and range. In most cases
only general reasons, but in some few cases special reasons, can
be assigned. Thus to adapt a species to new habits of life, many
co-ordinated modifications are almost indispensable, and it may
often have happened that the requisite parts did not vary in the
right manner or to the right degree. Many species must have been
prevented from increasing in numbers through destructive agencies,
which stood in no relation to certain structures, which we imagine
would have been gained through natural selection from appearing
to us advantageous to the species. In this case, as the struggle
for life did not depend on such structures, they could not have
been acquired through natural selection. In many cases complex and
long-enduring conditions, often of a peculiar nature, are necessary
for the development of a structure; and the requisite conditions
may seldom have concurred. The belief that any given structure,
which we think, often erroneously, would have been beneficial to
a species, would have been gained under all circumstances through
natural selection, is opposed to what we can understand of its manner
of action. Mr. Mivart does not deny that natural selection has effected
something; but he considers it as "demonstrably insufficient" to
account for the phenomena which I explain by its agency. His chief
arguments have now been considered, and the others will hereafter
be considered. They seem to me to partake little of the character
of demonstration, and to have little weight in comparison with those
in favour of the power of natural selection, aided by the other
agencies often specified. I am bound to add, that some of the facts
and arguments here used by me, have been advanced for the same purpose
in an able article lately published in the Medico-Chirurgical Review.
At the present day almost all naturalists admit evolution under
some form. Mr. Mivart believes that species change through "an internal
force or tendency," about which it is not pretended that anything
is known. That species have a capacity for change will be admitted
by all evolutionists; but there is no need, as it seems to me, to
invoke any internal force beyond the tendency to ordinary variability,
which through the aid of selection by man has given rise to many
well-adapted domestic races, and which through the aid of natural
selection would equally well give rise by graduated steps to natural
races or species. The final result will generally have been, as
already explained, an advance, but in some few cases a retrogression,
in organisation.
Mr. Mivart is further inclined to believe, and some naturalists
agree with him, that new species manifest themselves "with suddenness
and by modifications appearing at once." For instance, he supposes
that the differences between the extinct three-toed Hipparion and
the horse arose suddenly. He thinks it difficult to believe that
the wing of a bird "was developed in any other way than by a comparatively
sudden modification of a marked and important kind"; and apparently
he would extend the same view to the wings of bats and pterodactyles.
This conclusion, which implies great breaks or discontinuity in
the series, appears to me improbable in the highest degree.
Every one who believes in slow and gradual evolution, will of course
admit that specific changes may have been as abrupt and as great
as any single variation which we meet with under nature, or even
under domestication. But as species are more variable when domesticated
or cultivated than under their natural conditions, it is not probable
that such great and abrupt variations have often occurred under
nature, as are known occasionally to arise under domestication.
Of these latter variations several may be attributed to reversion;
and the characters which thus reappear were, it is probable, in
many cases at first gained in a gradual manner. A still greater
number must be called monstrosities, such as six-fingered men, porcupine
men, Ancon sheep, Niata cattle, &c.; and as they are widely
different in character from natural species, they throw very little
light on our subject. Excluding such cases of abrupt variations,
the few which remain would at best constitute, if found in a state
of nature, doubtful species, closely related to their parental types.
My reasons for doubting whether natural species have changed as
abruptly as have occasionally domestic races, and for entirely disbelieving
that they have changed in the wonderful manner indicated by Mr.
Mivart, are as follows. According to our experience, abrupt and
strongly marked variations occur in our domesticated productions,
singly and at rather long intervals of time. If such occurred under
nature, they would be liable, as formerly explained, to be lost
by accidental causes of destruction and by subsequent inter-crossing;
and so it is known to be under domestication, unless abrupt variations
of this kind are specially preserved and separated by the care of
man. Hence in order that a new species should suddenly appear in
the manner supposed by Mr. Mivart, it is almost necessary to believe,
in opposition to all analogy, that several wonderfully changed individuals
appeared simultaneously within the same district. This difficulty,
as in the case of unconscious selection by man, is avoided on the
theory of gradual evolution, through the preservation of a large
number of individuals, which varied more or less in any favourable
direction, and of the destruction of a large number which varied
in an opposite manner.
That many species have been evolved in an extremely gradual manner,
there can hardly be a doubt. The species and even the genera of
many large natural families are so closely allied together, that
it is difficult to distinguish not a few of them. On every continent
in proceeding from north to south, from lowland to upland, &c.,
we meet with a host of closely related or representative species;
as we likewise do on certain distinct continents, which we have
reason to believe were formerly connected. But in making these and
the following remarks, I am compelled to allude to subjects hereafter
to be discussed. Look at the many outlying islands round a continent,
and see how many of their inhabitants can be raised only to the
rank of doubtful species. So it is if we look to past times, and
compare the species which have just passed away with those still
living within the same areas; or if we compare the fossil species
embedded in the sub-stages of the same geological formation. It
is indeed manifest that multitudes of species are related in the
closest manner to other species that still exist, or have lately
existed; and it will hardly be maintained that such species have
been developed in an abrupt or sudden manner. Nor should it be forgotten,
when we look to the special parts of allied species, instead of
to distinct species, that numerous and wonderfully fine gradations
can be traced, connecting together widely different structures.
Many large groups of facts are intelligible only on the principle
that species have been evolved by very small steps: for instance,
the fact that the species included in the larger genera are more
closely related to each other, and present a greater number of varieties
than do the species in the smaller genera. The former are also grouped
in little clusters, like varieties round species, and they present
other analogies with varieties, as was shown in our second chapter.
On this same principle we can understand how it is that specific
characters are more variable than generic characters; and how the
parts which are developed in an extraordinary degree or manner are
more variable than other parts of the same species. Many analogous
facts, all pointing in the same direction, could be added.
Although very many species have almost certainly been produced
by steps not greater than those separating fine varieties; yet it
may be maintained that some have been developed in a different and
abrupt manner. Such an admission, however, ought not to be made
without strong evidence being assigned. The vague and in some respects
false analogies, as they have been shown to be by Mr. Chauncey Wright,
which have been advanced in favour of this view, such as the sudden
crystallisation of inorganic substances, or the falling of a facetted
spheroid from one facet to another, hardly deserve consideration.
One class of facts, however, namely, the sudden appearance of new
and distinct forms of life in our geological formations, supports
at first sight the belief in abrupt development. But the value of
this evidence depends entirely on the perfection of the geological
record, in relation to periods remote in the history of the world.
If the record is as fragmentary as many geologists strenuously assert,
there is nothing strange in new forms appearing as if suddenly developed.
Unless we admit transformations as prodigious as those advocated
by Mr. Mivart, such as the sudden development of the wings of birds
or bats, or the sudden conversion of a Hipparion into a horse, hardly
any light is thrown by the belief in abrupt modifications on the
deficiency of connecting links in our geological formations. But
against the belief in such abrupt changes, embryology enters a strong
protest. It is notorious that the wings of birds and bats, and the
legs of horses or other quadrupeds, are undistinguishable at an
early embryonic period, and that they become differentiated by insensibly
fine steps. Embryological resemblances of all kinds can be accounted
for, as we shall hereafter see, by the progenitors of our existing
species having varied after early youth, and having transmitted
their newly acquired characters to their offspring, at a corresponding
age. The embryo is thus left almost unaffected, and serves as a
record of the past condition of the species. Hence it is that existing
species during the early stages of their development so often resemble
ancient and extinct forms belonging to the same class. On this view
of the meaning of embryological resemblances, and indeed on any
view, it is incredible that an animal should have undergone such
momentous and abrupt transformations, as those above indicated;
and yet should not bear even a trace in its embryonic condition
of any sudden modification; every detail in its structure being
developed by insensibly fine steps.
He who believes that some ancient form was transformed suddenly
through an internal force or tendency into, for instance, one furnished
with wings, will be almost compelled to assume, in opposition to
all analogy, that many individuals varied simultaneously. It cannot
be denied that such abrupt and great changes of structure are widely
different from those which most species apparently have undergone.
He will further be compelled to believe that many structures beautifully
adapted to all the other parts of the same creature and to the surrounding
conditions, have been suddenly produced; and of such complex and
wonderful co-adaptations, he will not be able to assign a shadow
of an explanation. He will be forced to admit that these great and
sudden transformations have left no trace of their action on the
embryo. To admit all this is, as it seems to me, to enter into the
realms of miracle, and to leave those of Science.
MANY instincts are so wonderful that their development will probably
appear to the reader a difficulty sufficient to overthrow my whole
theory. I may here premise that I have nothing to do with the origin
of the mental powers, any more than I have with that of life itself.
We are concerned only with the diversities of instinct and of the
other mental faculties in animals of the same class.
I will not attempt any definition of instinct. It would be easy
to show that several distinct mental actions are commonly embraced
by this term; but every one understands what is meant, when it is
said that instinct impels the cuckoo to migrate and to lay her eggs
in other birds' nests. An action, which we ourselves require experience
to enable us to perform, when performed by an animal, more especially
by a very young one, without experience, and when performed by many
individuals in the same way, without their knowing for what purpose
it is performed, is usually said to be instinctive. But I could
show that none of these characters are universal. A little dose
of judgment or reason, as Pierre Huber expresses it, often comes
into play, even with animals low in the scale of nature.
Frederic Cuvier and several of the older metaphysicians have compared
instinct with habit. This comparison gives, I think, an accurate
notion of the frame of mind under which an instinctive action is
performed, but not necessarily of its origin. How unconsciously
many habitual actions are performed, indeed not rarely in direct
opposition to our conscious will! Yet they may be modified by the
will or reason. Habits easily become associated with other habits,
with certain periods of time, and states of the body. When once
acquired, they often remain constant throughout life. Several other
points of resemblance between instincts and habits could be pointed
out. As in repeating a well-known song, so in instincts, one action
follows another by a sort of rhythm; if a person be interrupted
in a song, or in repeating anything by rote, he is generally forced
to go back to recover the habitual train of thought; so P. Huber
found it was with a caterpillar, which makes a very complicated
hammock; for if he took a caterpillar which had completed its hammock
up to, say, the sixth stage of construction, and put it into a hammock
completed up only to the third stage, the caterpillar simply reperformed
the fourth, fifth, and sixth stages of construction. if, however,
a caterpillar were taken out of a hammock made up, for instance,
to the third stage, and were put into one finished up to the sixth
stage, so that much of its work was already done for it, far from
deriving any benefit from this, it was much embarrassed, and in
order to complete its hammock, seemed forced to start from the third
stage, where it had left off, and thus tried to complete the already
finished work.
If we suppose any habitual action to become inherited- and it can
be shown that this does sometimes happen- then the resemblance between
what originally was a habit and an instinct becomes so close as
not to be distinguished. If Mozart, instead of playing the pianoforte
at three years old with wonderfully little practice, had played
a tune with no practice at all, he might truly be said to have done
so instinctively. But it would be a serious error to suppose that
the greater number of instincts have been acquired by habit in one
generation, and then transmitted by inheritance to succeeding generations.
It can be clearly shown that the most wonderful instincts with which
we are acquainted, namely, those of the hive-bee and of many ants,
could not possibly have been acquired by habit.
It will be universally admitted that instincts are as important
as corporeal structures for the welfare of each species, under its
present conditions of life. Under changed conditions of life, it
is at least possible that slight modifications of instinct might
be profitable to a species; and if it can be shown that instincts
do vary ever so little, then I can see no difficulty in natural
selection preserving and continually accumulating variations of
instinct to any extent that was profitable. It is thus, as I believe,
that all the most complex and wonderful instincts have originated.
As modifications of corporeal structure arise from, and are increased
by, use or habit, and are diminished or lost by disuse, so I do
not doubt it has been with instincts. But I believe that the effects
of habit are in many cases of subordinate importance to the effects
of the natural selection of what may be called spontaneous variations
of instincts;- that is of variations produced by the same unknown
causes which produce slight deviations of bodily structure.
No complex instinct can possibly be produced through natural selection,
except by the slow and gradual accumulation of numerous slight,
yet profitable, variations. Hence, as in the case of corporeal structures,
we ought to find in nature, not the actual transitional gradations
by which each complex instinct has been acquired- for these could
be found only in the lineal ancestors of each species- but we ought
to find in the collateral lines of descent some evidence of such
gradations; or we ought at least to be able to show that gradations
of some kind are possible; and this we certainly can do. I have
been surprised to find, making allowance for the instincts of animals
having been but little observed except in Europe and North America,
and for no instinct being known amongst extinct species, how very
generally gradations, leading to the most complex instincts, can
be discovered. Changes of instinct may sometimes be facilitated
by the same species having different instincts at different periods
of life, or at different seasons of the year, or when placed under
different circumstances, &c; in which case either the one or
the other instinct might be preserved by natural selection. And
such instances of diversity of instinct in the same species can
be shown to occur in nature.
Again, as in the case of corporeal structure, and conformably to
my theory, the instinct of each species is good for itself, but
has never, as far as we can judge, been produced for the exclusive
good of others. One of the strongest instances of an animal apparently
performing an action for the sole good of another, with which I
am acquainted, is that of aphides voluntarily yielding, as was first
observed by Huber, their sweet excretion to ants: that they do so
voluntarily, the following facts show. I removed all the ants from
a group of about a dozen aphides on a dock-plant, and prevented
their attendance during several hours. After this interval, I felt
sure that the aphides would want to excrete. I watched them for
some time through a lens, but not one excreted; I then tickled and
stroked them with a hair in the same manner, as well as I could,
as the ants do with their antennae; but not one excreted. Afterwards
I allowed an ant to visit them, and it immediately seemed, by its
eager way of running about, to be well aware what a rich flock it
had discovered; it then began to play with its antennae on the abdomen
first of one aphis and then of another; and each, as soon as it
felt the antennae, immediately lifted up its abdomen and excreted
a limpid drop of sweet juice, which was eagerly devoured by the
ant. Even the quite young aphides behaved in this manner, showing
that the action was instinctive, and not the result of experience.
It is certain, from the observations of Huber, that the aphides
show no dislike to the ants: if the latter be not present they are
at last compelled to eject their excretion. But as the excretion
is extremely viscid, it is no doubt a convenience to the aphides
to have it removed; therefore probably they do not excrete solely
for the good of the ants. Although there is no evidence that any
animal performs an action for the exclusive good of another species,
yet each tries to take advantage of the instincts of others, as
each takes advantage of the weaker bodily structure of other species.
So again instincts cannot be considered as absolutely perfect; but
as details on this and other such points are not indispensable,
they may be here passed over.
As some degree of variation in instincts under a state of nature,
and the inheritance of such variations, are indispensable for the
action of natural selection, as many instances as possible ought
to be given; but want of space prevents me. I can only assert that
instincts certainly do vary- for instance, the migratory instinct,
both in extent and direction, and in its total loss. So it is with
the nests of birds, which vary partly in dependence on the situations
chosen, and on the nature and temperature of the country inhabited,
but often from causes wholly unknown to us: Audubon has given several
remarkable cases of differences in the nests of the same species
in the northern and southern United States. Why, it has been asked,
if instinct be variable, has it not granted to the bee "the ability
to use some other material when wax was deficient"? But what other
natural material could bees use? They will work, as I have seen,
with wax hardened with vermilion or softened with lard. Andrew Knight
observed that his bees, instead of laboriously collecting propolis,
used a cement of wax and turpentine, with which he had covered decorticated
trees. It has lately been shown that bees, instead of searching
for pollen, will gladly use a very different substance, namely oatmeal.
Fear of any particular enemy is certainly an instinctive quality,
as may be seen in nestling birds, though it is strengthened by experience,
and by the sight of fear of the same enemy in other animals. The
fear of man is slowly acquired, as I have elsewhere shown, by the
various animals which inhabit desert islands; and we see an instance
of this even in England, in the greater wildness of all our large
birds in comparison with our small birds; for the large birds have
been most persecuted by man. We may safely attribute the greater
wildness of our large birds to this cause; for in uninhabited islands
large birds are not more fearful than small; and the magpie, so
wary in England, is tame in Norway, as is the hooded crow in Egypt.
That the mental qualities of animals of the same kind, born in
a state of nature, vary much, could be shown by many facts. Several
cases could also be adduced of occasional and strange habits in
wild animals, which, if advantageous to the species, might have
given rise, through natural selection, to new instincts. But I am
well aware that these general statements, without the facts in detail,
will produce but a feeble effect on the reader's mind. I can only
repeat my assurance, that I do not speak without good evidence.

The possibility, or even probability, of inherited variations of
instinct in a state of nature will be strengthened by briefly considering
a few cases under domestication. We shall thus be enabled to see
the part which habit and the selection of so-called spontaneous
variations have played in modifying the mental qualities of our
domestic animals. It is notorious how much domestic animals vary
in their mental qualities. With cats, for instance, one naturally
takes to catching rats, and another mice, and these tendencies are
known to be inherited. One cat, according to Mr. St. John, always
brought home gamebirds, another hares or rabbits, and another hunted
on marshy ground and almost nightly caught woodcocks or snipes.
A number of curious and authentic instances could be given of various
shades of disposition and of taste, and likewise of the oddest tricks,
associated with certain frames of mind or periods of time, being
inherited. But let us look to the familiar case of the breeds of
the dogs: it cannot be doubted that young pointers (I have myself
seen a striking instance) will sometimes point and even back other
dogs the very first time that they are taken out; retrieving is
certainly in some degree inherited by retrievers; and a tendency
to run round, instead of at, a flock of sheep, by shepherd dogs.
I cannot see that these actions, performed without experience by
the young, and in nearly the same manner by each individual, performed
with eager delight by each breed, and without the end being known-
for the young pointer can no more know that he points to aid his
master, than the white butterfly knows why she lays her eggs on
the leaf of the cabbage- I cannot see that these actions differ
essentially from true instincts. If we were to behold one kind of
wolf, when young and without any training, as soon as it scented
its prey, stand motionless like a statue, and then slowly crawl
forward with a peculiar gait; and another kind of wolf rushing round,
instead of at, a herd of deer, and driving them to a distant point,
we should assuredly call these actions instinctive. Domestic instincts,
as they may be called, are certainly far less fixed than natural
instincts; but they have been acted on by far less rigorous selection,
and have been transmitted for an incomparably shorter period, under
less fixed conditions of life.
How strongly these domestic instincts, habits, and dispositions
are inherited, and how curiously they become mingled, is well shown
when different breeds of dogs are crossed. Thus it is known that
a cross with a bull-dog has affected for many generations the courage
and obstinacy of greyhounds; and a cross with a greyhound has given
to a whole family of shepherd-dogs a tendency to hunt hares. These
domestic instincts, when thus tested by crossing, resemble natural
instincts, which in a like manner become curiously blended together,
and for a long period exhibit traces of the instincts of either
parent: for example, Le Roy describes a dog, whose great-grandfather
was a wolf, and this dog showed a trace of its wild parentage only
in one way, by not coming in a straight line to his master, when
called.
Domestic instincts are sometimes spoken of as actions which have
become inherited solely from long-continued and compulsory habit,
but this is not true. No one would ever have thought of teaching,
or probably could have taught, the tumbler-pigeon to tumble,- an
action which, as I have witnessed, is performed by young birds,
that have never seen a pigeon tumble. We may believe that some one
pigeon showed a slight tendency to this strange habit, and that
the long-continued selection of the best individuals in successive
generations made tumblers what they now are; and near Glasgow there
are house-tumblers, as I hear from Mr. Brent, which cannot fly eighteen
inches high without going head over heels. It may be doubted whether
any one would have thought of training a dog to point, had not some
one dog naturally shown a tendency in this line; and this is known
occasionally to happen, as I once saw, in a pure terrier: the act
of pointing is probably, as many have thought, only the exaggerated
pause of an animal preparing to spring on its prey. When the first
tendency to point was once displayed, methodical selection and the
inherited effects of compulsory training in each successive generation
would soon complete the work; and unconscious selection is still
in progress, as each man tries to procure, without intending to
improve the breed, dogs which stand and hunt best. On the other
hand, habit alone in some cases has sufficed; hardly any animal
is more difficult to tame than the young of the wild rabbit; scarcely
any animal is tamer than the young of the tame rabbit; but I can
hardly suppose that domestic rabbits have often been selected for
tameness alone; so that we must attribute at least the greater part
of the inherited change from extreme wildness to extreme tameness,
to habit and long-continued close confinement.
Natural instincts are lost under domestication: a remarkable instance
of this is seen in those breeds of fowls which very rarely or never
become "broody," that is, never wish to sit on their eggs. Familiarity
alone prevents our seeing how largely and how permanently the minds
of our domestic animals have been modified. It is scarcely possible
to doubt that the love of man has become instinctive in the dog.
All wolves, foxes, jackals, and species of the cat genus, when kept
tame, are most eager to attack poultry, sheep, and pigs; and this
tendency has been found incurable in dogs which have been brought
home as puppies from countries such as Tierra del Fuego and Australia,
where the savages do not keep these domestic animals. How rarely,
on the other hand, do our civilised dogs, even when quite young,
require to be taught not to attack poultry, sheep, and pigs! No
doubt they occasionally do make an attack, and are then beaten;
and if not cured, they are destroyed; so that habit and some degree
of selection have probably concurred in civilising by inheritance
our dogs. On the other hand, young chickens have lost, wholly by
habit, that fear of the dog and cat which no doubt was originally
instinctive with them; for I am informed by Captain Hutton that
the young chickens of the parent-stock, the Gallus bankiva, when
reared in India under a hen, are at first excessively wild. So it
is with young pheasants reared in England under a hen. It is not
that chickens have lost all fear, but fear only of dogs and cats,
for if the hen gives the danger-chuckle, they will run (more especially
young turkeys) from under her, and conceal themselves in the surrounding
grass or thickets; and this is evidently done for the instinctive
purpose of allowing as we see in wild ground-birds, their mother
to fly away. But this instinct retained by our chickens has become
useless under domestication, for the mother-hen has almost lost
by disuse the power of flight.
Hence, we may conclude, that under domestication instincts have
been acquired, and natural instincts have been lost, partly by habit,
and partly by man selecting and accumulating, during successive
generations, peculiar mental habits and actions, which at first
appeared from what we must in our ignorance call an accident. In
some cases compulsory habit alone has sufficed to produce inherited
mental changes; in other cases, compulsory habit has done nothing,
and all has been the result of selection, pursued both methodically
and unconsciously: but in most cases habit and selection have probably
concurred.

We shall, perhaps, best understand how instincts in a state of
nature have become modified by selection by considering a few cases.
I will select only three,- namely, the instinct which leads the
cuckoo to lay her eggs in other birds' nests; the slave-making instinct
of certain ants; and the cell-making power of the hive-bee. These
two latter instincts have generally and justly been ranked by naturalists
as the most wonderful of all known instincts.
Instincts of the Cuckoo.- It is supposed by some naturalists that
the more immediate cause of the instinct of the cuckoo is, that
she lays her eggs, not daily, but at intervals of two or three days;
so that, if she were to make her own nest and sit on her own eggs
those first laid would have to be left for some time unincubated,
or there would be eggs and young birds of different ages in the
same nest. If this were the case, the process of laying and hatching
might be inconveniently long, more especially as she migrates at
a very early period; and the first hatched young would probably
have to be fed by the male alone. But the American cuckoo is in
this predicament; for she makes her own nest, and has eggs and young
successively hatched, all at the same time. It has been both asserted
and denied that the American cuckoo occasionally lays her eggs in
other birds' nests; but I have lately heard from Dr. Merrell, of
Iowa, that he once found in Illinois a young cuckoo together with
a young jay in the nest of a blue jay (Garrulus cristatus); and
as both were nearly full feathered, there could be no mistake in
their identification. I could also give several instances of various
birds which have been known occasionally to lay their eggs in other
birds' nests. Now let us suppose that the ancient progenitor of
our European cuckoo had the habits of the American cuckoo, and that
she occasionally laid an egg in another bird's nest. If the old
bird profited by this occasional habit through being enabled to
migrate earlier or through any other cause; or if the young were
made more vigorous by advantage being taken of the mistaken instinct
of another species than when reared by their own mother, encumbered
as she could hardly fail to be by having eggs and young of different
ages at the same time; then the old birds or the fostered young
would gain an advantage. And analogy would lead us to believe, that
the young thus reared would be apt to follow by inheritance the
occasional and aberrant habit of their mother, and in their turn
would be apt to lay their eggs in other birds' nests, and thus be
more successful in rearing their young. By a continued process of
this nature, I believe that the strange instinct of our cuckoo has
been generated. It has, also, recently been ascertained on sufficient
evidence, by Adolf Muller, that the cuckoo occasionally lays her
eggs on the bare ground, sits on them, and feeds her young. This
rare event is probably a case of reversion to the long-lost, aboriginal
instinct of nidification.
It has been objected that I have not noticed other related instincts
and adaptations of structure in the cuckoo, which are spoken of
as necessarily co-ordinated. But in all cases, speculation on an
instinct known to us only in a single species, is useless, for we
have hitherto had no facts to guide us. Until recently the instincts
of the European and of the nonparasitic American cuckoo alone were
known. now, owing to Mr. Ramsay's observations, we have learnt something
about three Australian species, which lay their eggs in other birds'
nests. The chief points to be referred to are three: first, that
the common cuckoo, with rare exceptions, lays only one egg in a
nest, so that the large and voracious young bird receives ample
food. Secondly, that the eggs are remarkably small, not exceeding
those of the skylark,- a bird about one-fourth as large as the cuckoo.
That the small size of the egg is a real cause of adaptation we
may infer from the fact of the non-parasitic American cuckoo laying
full-sized eggs. Thirdly, that the young cuckoo, soon after birth,
has the instinct, the strength, and a properly shaped back for ejecting
its foster-brothers, which then perish from cold and hunger. This
has been boldly called a beneficent arrangement, in order that the
young cuckoo may get sufficient food, and that its foster-brothers
may perish before they had acquired much feeling!
Turning now to the Australian species; though these birds generally
lay only one egg in a nest, it is not rare to find two or even three
eggs in the same nest. In the bronze cuckoo the eggs vary greatly
in size, from eight to ten times in length. Now if it had been of
an advantage to this species to have laid eggs even smaller than
those now laid, so as to have deceived certain foster-parents, or,
as is more probable, to have been hatched within a shorter period
(for it is asserted that there is a relation between the size of
eggs and the period of their incubation), then there is no difficulty
in believing that a race or species might have been formed which
would have laid smaller and smaller eggs; for these would have been
more safely hatched and reared. Mr. Ramsay remarks that two of the
Australian cuckoos, when they lay their eggs in an open nest, manifest
a decided preference for nests containing eggs similar in colour
to their own. The European species apparently manifests some tendency
towards a similar instinct, but not rarely departs from it, as is
shown by her laying her dull and pale-coloured eggs in the nest
of the Hedge-warbler with bright greenish-blue eggs. Had our cuckoo
invariably displayed the above instinct, it would assuredly have
been added to those which it is assumed must all have been acquired
together. The eggs of the Australian bronze cuckoo vary, according
to Mr. Ramsay, to an extraordinary degree in colour; so that in
this respect, as well as in size, natural selection might have secured
and fixed any advantageous variation.
In the case of the European cuckoo, the offspring of the foster-parents
are commonly ejected from the nest within three days after the cuckoo
is hatched; and as the latter at this age is in a most helpless
condition, Mr. Gould was formerly inclined to believe that the act
of ejection was performed by the foster-parents themselves. But
he has now received a trustworthy account of a young cuckoo which
was actually seen, whilst still blind and not able even to hold
up its own head, in the act of ejecting its foster-brothers. One
of these was replaced in the nest by the observer, and was again
thrown out. With respect to the means by which this strange and
odious instinct was acquired, if it were of great importance for
the young cuckoo, as is probably the case, to receive as much food
as possible soon after birth, I can see no special difficulty in
its having gradually acquired, during successive generations, the
blind desire, the strength, and structure necessary for the work
of ejection; for those young cuckoos which had such habits and structure
best developed would be the most securely reared. The first step
towards the acquisition of the proper instinct might have been more
unintentional restlessness on the part of the young bird, when somewhat
advanced in age and strength; the habit having been afterwards improved,
and transmitted to an earlier age. I can see no more difficulty
in this, than in the unhatched young of other birds acquiring the
instinct to break through their own shells;- or than in young snakes
acquiring in their upper jaws, as Owen has remarked, a transitory
sharp tooth for cutting through the tough egg-shell. For if each
part is liable to individual variations at all ages, and the variations
tend to be inherited at a corresponding or earlier age,- propositions
which cannot be disputed,- then the instincts and structure of the
young could be slowly modified as surely as those of the adult;
and both cases must stand or fall together with the whole theory
of natural selection.
Some species of Molothrus, a widely distinct genus of American
birds, allied to our starlings, have parasitic habits like those
of the cuckoo; and the species present an interesting gradation
in the perfection of their instincts. The sexes of Molothrus badius
are stated by an excellent observer, Mr. Hudson, sometimes to live
promiscuously together in flocks, and sometimes to pair. They either
build a nest of their own, or seize on one belonging to some other
bird, occasionally throwing out the nestlings of the stranger. They
either lay their eggs in the nest thus appropriated, or oddly enough
build one for themselves on the top of it. They usually sit on their
own eggs and rear their own young; but Mr. Hudson says it is probable
that they are occasionally parasitic, for he has seen the young
of this species following old birds of a distinct kind and clamouring
to be fed by them. The parasitic habits of another species of Molothrus,
the M. bonariensis, are much more highly developed than those of
the last, but are still far from perfect. This bird, as far as it
is known, invariably lays its eggs in the nests of strangers; but
it is remarkable that several together sometimes commence to build
an irregular untidy nest of their own, placed in singularly ill-adapted
situations, as on the leaves of a large thistle. They never, however,
as far as Mr. Hudson has ascertained, complete a nest for themselves.
They often lay so many eggs- from fifteen to twenty- in the same
foster-nest, that few or none can possibly be hatched. They have,
moreover, the extraordinary habit of pecking holes in the eggs,
whether of their own species or of their foster-parents, which they
find in the appropriated nests. They drop also many eggs on the
bare ground, which are thus wasted. A third species, the M. pecoris
of North America, has acquired instincts as perfect as those of
the cuckoo, for it never lays more than one egg in a foster-nest,
so that the young bird is securely reared. Mr. Hudson is a strong
disbeliever in evolution, but he appears to have been so much struck
by the imperfect instincts of the Molothrus bonariensis that he
quotes my words, and asks, "Must we consider these habits, not as
especially endowed or created instincts, but as small consequences
of one general law, namely, transition?"
Various birds, as has already been remarked, occasionally lay their
eggs in the nest of other birds. This habit is not very uncommon
with the Gallinaceae, and throws some light on the singular instinct
of the ostrich. In this family several hen-birds unite and lay first
a few eggs in one nest and then in another; and these are hatched
by the males. This instinct may probably be accounted for by the
fact of the hens laying a large number of eggs, but, as with the
cuckoo, at intervals of two or three days. The instinct, however,
of the American ostrich, as in the case of the Molothrus bonariensis,
has not as yet been perfected; for a surprising number of eggs lie
strewed over the plains, so that in one day's hunting I picked up
no less than twenty lost and wasted eggs.
Many bees are parasitic, and regularly lay their eggs in the nests
of other kinds of bees. This case is more remarkable than that of
the cuckoo; for these bees have not only had their instincts but
their structure modified in accordance with their parasitic habits;
for they do not possess the pollen-collecting apparatus which would
have been indispensable if they had stored up food for their own
young. Some species of Sphegidea (wasp-like insects) are likewise
parasitic; and M. Fabre has lately shown good reason for believing
that, although the Tachytes nigra generally makes its own burrow
and stores it with paralysed prey for its own larvae, yet that,
when this insect finds a burrow already made and stored by another
species, it takes advantage of the prize and becomes for the occasion
parasitic. In this case, as with that of the Molothrus or cuckoo,
I can see no difficulty in natural selection making an occasional
habit permanent, if of advantage to the species, and if the insect
whose nest and stored food are feloniously appropriated, be not
thus exterminated.
Slave-making instinct.- This remarkable instinct was first discovered
in the Formica (Polyerges) rufescens by Pierre Huber, a better observer
even than his celebrated father. This ant is absolutely dependent
on its slaves; without their aid, the species would certainly become
extinct in a single year. The males and fertile female do no work
of any kind, and the workers or sterile females, though most energetic
and courageous in capturing slaves, do no other work. They are incapable
of making their own nests, or of feeding their own larvae. When
the old nest is found inconvenient, and they have to migrate, it
is the slaves which determine the migration, and actually carry
their masters in their jaws. So utterly helpless are the masters,
that when Huber shut up thirty of them without a slave, but with
plenty of the food which they like best, and with their own larvae
and pupae to stimulate them to work, they did nothing; they could
not even feed themselves, and many perished of hunger. Huber then
introduced a single slave (F. fusca), and she instantly set to work,
fed and saved the survivors; made some cells and tended the larvae,
and put all to rights. What can be more extraordinary than these
well-ascertained facts? If we had not known of any other slave-making
ant, it would have been hopeless to speculate how so wonderful an
instinct could have been perfected.
Another species, Formica sanguinea, was likewise first discovered
by P. Huber to be a slave-making ant. This species is found in the
southern parts of England, and its habits have been attended to
by Mr. F. Smith, of the British Museum, to whom I am much indebted
for information on this and other subjects. Although fully trusting
to the statements of Huber and Mr. Smith, I tried to approach the
subject in a sceptical frame of mind, as any one may well be excused
for doubting the existence of so extraordinary an instinct as that
of making slaves. Hence, I will give the observations which I made
in some little detail. I opened fourteen nests of F. sanguinea,
and found a few slaves in all. Males and fertile females of the
slave species (F. fusca) are found only in their own proper communities,
and have never been observed in the nests of F. sanguinea. The slaves
are black and not above half the size of their red masters, so that
the contrast in their appearance is great. When the nest is slightly
disturbed, the slaves occasionally come out, and like their masters
are much agitated and defend the nest: when the nest is much disturbed,
and the larvae and pupae are exposed, the slaves work energetically
together with their masters in carrying them away to a place of
safety. Hence, it is clear, that the slaves feel quite at home.
During the months of June and July, on three successive years, I
watched for many hours several nests in Surrey and Sussex, and never
saw a slave either leave or enter a nest. As, during these months,
the slaves are very few in number, I thought that they might behave
differently when more numerous; but Mr. Smith informs me that he
has watched the nests at various hours during May, June, and August,
both in Surrey and Hampshire, and has never seen the slaves, though
present in large numbers in August, either leave or enter the nest.
Hence he considers them as strictly household slaves. The masters,
on the other hand, may be constantly seen bringing in materials
for the nest, and food of all kinds. During the year 1860, however,
in the month of July, I came across a community with an unusually
large stock of slaves, and I observed a few slaves mingled with
their masters leaving the nest, and marching along the same road
to a tall Scotch-fir-tree, twenty-five yards distant, which they
ascended together, probably in search of aphides or cocci. According
to Huber, who had ample opportunities for observation, the slaves
in Switzerland habitually work with their masters in making the
nest, and they alone open and close the doors in the morning and
evening; and, as Huber expressly states, their principal office
is to search for aphides. This difference in the usual habits of
the masters and slaves in the two countries, probably depends merely
on the slaves being captured in greater numbers in Switzerland than
in England.
One day I fortunately witnessed a migration of F. sanguinea from
one nest to another, and it was a most interesting spectacle to
behold the masters carefully carrying their slaves in their jaws
instead of being carried by them, as in the case of F. rufescens.
Another day my attention was struck by about a score of the slave-makers
haunting the same spot, and evidently not in search of food; they
approached and were vigorously repulsed by an independent community
of the slave-species (F. fusca); sometimes as many as three of these
ants clinging to the legs of the slavemaking F. sanguinea. The latter
ruthlessly killed their small opponents, and carried their dead
bodies as food to their nest, twenty-nine yards distant; but they
were prevented from getting any pupae to rear as slaves. I then
dug up a small parcel of the pupae of F. fusca from another nest,
and put them down on a bare spot near the place of combat; they
were eagerly seized and carried off by the tyrants, who perhaps
fancied that, after all, they had been victorious in their late
combat.
At the same time I laid on the same place a small parcel of the
pupae of another species, F. flava, with a few of these little yellow
ants still clinging to the fragments of their nest. This species
is sometimes, though rarely, made into slaves, as has been described
by Mr. Smith. Although so small a species, it is very courageous,
and I have seen it ferociously attack other ants. In one instance
I found to my surprise an independent community of F. flava under
a stone beneath a nest of the slavemaking F. sanguinea; and when
I had accidentally disturbed both nests, the little ants attacked
their big neighbours with surprising courage. Now I was curious
to ascertain whether F. sanguinea could distinguish the pupae of
F. fusca, which they habitually make into slaves, from those of
the little and furious F. flava, which they rarely capture, and
it was evident that they did at once distinguish them; for we have
seen that they eagerly and instantly seized the pupae of F. fusca,
whereas they were much terrified when they came across the pupae
or even the earth from the nest, of F. flava, and quickly ran away;
but in about a quarter of an hour, shortly after all the little
yellow ants had crawled away, they took heart and carried off the
pupae.
One evening I visited another community of F. sanguinea, and found
a number of these ants returning home and entering their nests,
carrying the dead bodies of F. fusca (showing that it was not a
migration) and numerous pupae. I traced a long file of ants burthened
with booty, for about forty yards back, to a very thick clump of
heath, whence I saw the last individual of F. sanguinea emerge,
carrying a pupa; but I was not able to find the desolated nest in
the thick heath. The nest, however, must have been close at hand,
for two or three individuals of F. fusca were rushing about in the
greatest agitation, and one was perched motionless with its own
pupa in its mouth on the top of a spray of heath, an image of despair
over its ravaged home.
Such are the facts, though they did not need confirmation by me,
in regard to the wonderful instinct of making slaves. Let it be
observed what a contrast the instinctive habits of F. sanguinea
present with those of the continental F. rufescens. The latter does
not build its own nest, does not determine its own migrations, does
not collect food for itself or its young, and cannot even feed itself:
it is absolutely dependent on its numerous slaves. Formica sanguinea,
on the other hand, possesses much fewer slaves, and in the early
part of the summer extremely few: the masters determine when and
where a new nest shall be formed, and when they migrate, the masters
carry the slaves. Both in Switzerland and England the slaves seem
to have the exclusive care of the larvae, and the masters alone
go on slave-making expeditions. In Switzerland the slaves and masters
work together, making and bringing materials for the nest both,
but chiefly the slaves, tend, and milk, as it may be called, their
aphides; and thus both collect food for the community. In England
the masters alone usually leave the nest to collect building materials
and food for themselves, their slaves and larvae. So that the masters
in this country receive much less service from their slaves than
they do in Switzerland.
By what steps the instinct of F. sanguinea originated I will not
pretend to conjecture. But as ants which are not slave-makers will,
as I have seen, carry off the pupae of other species, if scattered
near their nests, it is possible that such pupae originally stored
as food might become developed; and the foreign ants thus unintentionally
reared would then follow their proper instincts, and do what work
they could. If their presence proved useful to the species which
had seized them- if it were more advantageous to this species to
capture workers than to procreate them- the habit of collecting
pupae, originally for food, might by natural selection be strengthened
and rendered permanent for the very different purpose of raising
slaves. When the instinct was once acquired, if carried out to a
much less extent even than in our British F. sanguinea, which, as
we have seen, is less aided by its slaves than the same species
in Switzerland, natural selection might increase and modify the
instinct- always supposing each modification to be of use to the
species- until an ant was formed as abjectly dependent on its slaves
as is the Formica rufescens.
Cell-making instinct of the Hive-Bee.- I will not here enter on
minute details on this subject, but will merely give an outline
of the conclusions at which I have arrived. He must be a dull man
who can examine the exquisite structure of a comb, so beautifully
adapted to its end, without enthusiastic admiration. We hear from
mathematicians that bees have practically solved a recondite problem,
and have made their cells of the proper shape to hold the greatest
possible amount of honey, with the least possible consumption of
precious wax in their construction. It has been remarked that a
skilful workman with fitting tools and measures, would find it very
difficult to make cells of wax of the true form, though this is
effected by a crowd of bees working in a dark hive. Granting whatever
instincts you please, it seems at first quite inconceivable how
they can make all the necessary angles and planes, or even perceive
when they are correctly made. But the difficulty is not nearly so
great as it at first appears: all this beautiful work can be shown,
I think, to follow from a few simple instincts.
I was led to investigate this subject by Mr. Waterhouse, who has
shown that the form of the cell stands in close relation to the
presence of adjoining cells; and the following view may, perhaps,
be considered only as a modification of this theory. Let us look
to the great principle of gradation, and see whether Nature does
not reveal to us her method of work. At one end of a short series
we have humble-bees, which use their old cocoons to hold honey,
sometimes adding to them short tubes of wax, and likewise making
separate and very irregular rounded cells of wax. At the other end
of the series we have the cells of the hive-bee, placed in a double
layer: each cell, as is well known, is an hexagonal prism, with
the basal edges of its six sides bevelled so as to join an inverted
pyramid, of three rhombs. These rhombs have certain angles, and
the three which form the pyramidal base of a single cell on one
side of the comb enter into the composition of the bases of three
adjoining cells on the opposite side. In the series between the
extreme perfection of the cells of the hive-bee and the simplicity
of those of the humble-bee we have the cells of the Mexican Melipona
domestica, carefully described and figured by Pierre Huber. The
Melipona itself is intermediate in structure between the hive and
humble-bee, but more nearly related to the latter; it forms a nearly
regular waxen comb of cylindrical cells, in which the young are
hatched, and, in addition, some large cells of wax for holding honey.
These latter cells are nearly spherical and of nearly equal sizes,
and are aggregated into an irregular mass. But the important point
to notice is, that these cells are always made at that degree of
nearness to each other that they would have intersected or broken
into each other if the spheres had been completed; but this is never
permitted, the bees building perfectly flat walls of wax between
the spheres which thus tend to intersect. Hence, each cell consists
of an outer spherical portion, and of two, three, or more flat surfaces,
according as the cell adjoins two, three, or more other cells. When
one cell rests on three other cells, which, from the spheres being
nearly of the same size, is very frequently and necessarily the
case, the three flat surfaces are united into a pyramid; and this
pyramid, as Huber has remarked, is manifestly a gross imitation
of the three-sided pyramidal base of the cell of the hive-bee. As
in the cells of the hive-bee, so here, the three plane surfaces
in any one cell necessarily enter into the construction of three
adjoining cells. It is obvious that the Melipona saves wax, and
what is more important, labour, by this manner of building; for
the flat walls between the adjoining cells are not double, but are
of the same thickness as the outer spherical portions, and yet each
flat portion forms a part of two cells.
Reflecting on this case, it occurred to me that if the Melipona
had made its spheres at some given distance from each other, and
had made them of equal sizes and had arranged them symmetrically
in a double layer, the resulting structure would have been as perfect
as the comb of the hive-bee. Accordingly I wrote to Professor Miller
of Cambridge, and this geometer has kindly read over the following
statement, drawn up from his information, and tells me that it is
strictly correct:-
If a number of equal squares be described with their centres placed
in two parallel layers; with the centre of each sphere at the distance
of radius X the square root of 2, or radius X 1.41421 (or at some
lesser distance), from the centres of the six surrounding spheres
in the same layer; and at the same distance from the centres of
the adjoining spheres in the other and parallel layer; then, if
planes of intersection between the several spheres in both layers
be formed, there will result a double layer of hexagonal prisms
united together by pyramidal bases formed of three rhombs; and the
rhombs and the sides of the hexagonal prisms will have every angle
identically the same with the best measurements which have been
made of the cells of the hive-bee. But I hear from Prof. Wyman,
who has made numerous careful measurements, that the accuracy of
the workmanship of the bee has been greatly exaggerated; so much
so, that whatever the typical form of the cell may be, it is rarely,
if ever, realised.
Hence we may safely conclude that, if we could slightly modify
the instincts already possessed by the Melipona, and in themselves
not very wonderful, this bee would make a structure as wonderfully
perfect as that of the hive-bee. We must suppose that Melipona to
have the power of forming her cells truly spherical, and of equal
sizes, and this would not be very surprising, seeing that she already
does so to a certain extent, and seeing what perfectly cylindrical
burrows many insects make in wood, apparently by turning round on
a fixed point. We must suppose the Melipona to arrange her cells
in level layers, as she already does her cylindrical cells; and
we must further suppose, and this is the greatest difficulty, that
she can somehow judge accurately at what distance to stand from
her fellow-labourers when several are making their spheres; but
she is already so far enabled to judge of distance, that she always
describes her spheres so as to intersect to a certain extent; and
then she unites the points of intersection by perfectly flat surfaces.
By such modifications of instincts which in themselves are not very
wonderful,- hardly more wonderful than those which guide a bird
to make its nest,- I believe that the hive-bee has acquired, through
natural selection, her inimitable architectural powers.
But this theory can be tested by experiment. Following the example
of Mr. Tegetmeier, I separated two combs, and put between them a
long, thick, rectangular strip of wax: the bees instantly began
to excavate minute circular pits in it; and as they deepened these
little pits, they made them wider and wider until they were converted
into shallow basins, appearing to the eye perfectly true or parts
of a sphere, and of about the diameter of a cell. It was most interesting
to observe that, wherever several bees had begun to excavate these
basins near together, they had begun their work at such a distance
from each other, that by the time the basins had acquired the above
stated width (i.e. about the width of an ordinary cell), and were
in depth about one-sixth of the diameter of the sphere of which
they formed a part, the rims of the basins intersected or broke
into each other. As soon as this occurred, the bees ceased to excavate,
and began to build up flat walls of wax on the lines of intersection
between the basins, so that each hexagonal prism was built upon
the scalloped edge of a smooth basin, instead of on the straight
edges of a three-sided pyramid as in the case of ordinary cells.
I then put into the hive, instead of a thick, rectangular piece
of wax, a thin and narrow, knife-edged ridge, coloured with vermilion.
The bees instantly began on both sides to excavate little basins
near to each other, in the same way as before; but the ridge of
wax was so thin, that the bottoms of the basins, if they had been
excavated to the same depth as in the former experiment, would have
broken into each other from the opposite sides. The bees, however,
did not suffer this to happen, and they stopped their excavations
in due time; so that the basins, as soon as they had been a little
deepened, came to have flat bases; and these flat bases, formed
by thin little plates of the vermilion wax left ungnawed, were situated,
as far as the eye could judge, exactly along the planes of imaginary
intersection between the basins on the opposite sides of the ridge
of wax. In some parts, only small portions, in other parts, large
portions of a rhombic plate were thus left between the opposed basins,
but the work, from the unnatural state of things, had not been neatly
performed. The bees must have worked at very nearly the same rate
in circularly gnawing away and deepening the basins on both sides
of the ridge of vermilion wax, in order to have thus succeeded in
leaving flat plates between the basins, by stopping work at the
planes of intersection.
Considering how flexible thin wax is, I do not see that there is
any difficulty in the bees, whilst at work on the two sides of a
strip of wax, perceiving when they have gnawed the wax away to the
proper thinness, and then stopping their work. In ordinary combs
it has appeared to me that the bees do not always succeed in working
at exactly the same rate from the opposite sides; for I have noticed
half-completed rhombs at the base of a just commenced cell, which
were slightly concave on one side, where I suppose that the bees
had excavated too quickly, and convex on the opposed side where
the bees had worked less quickly. In one well-marked instance, I
put the comb back into the hive, and allowed the bees to go on working
for a short time, and again examined the cell, and I found that
the rhombic plate had been completed, and had become perfectly flat:
it was absolutely impossible, from the extreme thinness of the little
plate, that they could have effected this by gnawing away the convex
side; and I suspect that the bees in such cases stand on opposite
sides and push and bend the ductile and warm wax (which as I have
tried is easily done) into its proper intermediate plane, and thus
flatten it.
From the experiment of the ridge of vermilion wax we can see that,
if the bees were to build for themselves a thin wall of wax, they
could make their cells of the proper shape, by standing at the proper
distance from each other, by excavating at the same rate, and by
endeavouring to make equal spherical hollows, but never allowing
the spheres to break into each other. Now bees, as may be clearly
seen by examining the edge of a growing comb, do make a rough, circumferential
wall or rim all round the comb; and they gnaw this away from the
opposite sides, always working circularly as they deepen each cell.
They do not make the whole three-sided pyramidal base of any one
cell at the same time, but only that one rhombic plate which stands
on the extreme growing margin, or the two plates, as the case may
be; and they never complete the upper edges of the rhombic plates,
until the hexagonal walls are commenced. Some of these statements
differ from those made by the justly celebrated elder Huber, but
I am convinced of their accuracy; and if I had space, I would show
that they are conformable with my theory.
Huber's statement that the very first cell is excavated out of
a little parallel-sided wall of wax, is not, as far as I have seen,
strictly correct; the first commencement having always been a little
hood of wax; but I will not here enter on details. We see how important
a part excavation plays in the construction of the cells; but it
would be a great error to suppose that the bees cannot build up
a rough wall of wax in the proper position- that is, along the plane
of intersection between two adjoining spheres. I have several specimens
showing clearly that they can do this. Even in the rude circumferential
rim or wall of wax round a growing comb, flexures may sometimes
be observed, corresponding in position to the planes of the rhombic
basal plates of future cells. But the rough wall of wax has in every
case to be finished off, by being largely gnawed away on both sides.
The manner in which the bees build is curious; they always make
the first rough wall from ten to twenty times thicker than the excessively
thin finished wall of the cell, which will ultimately be left. We
shall understand how they work, by supposing masons first to pile
up a broad ridge of cement, and then to begin cutting it away equally
on both sides near the ground, till a smooth, very thin wall is
left in the middle; the masons always piling up the cut-away cement,
and adding fresh cement on the summit of the ridge. We shall thus
have a thin wall steadily growing upward but always crowned by a
gigantic coping. From all the cells, both those just commenced and
those completed, being thus crowned by a strong coping of wax, the
bees can cluster and crawl over the comb without injuring the delicate
hexagonal walls. These walls, as Professor Miller has kindly ascertained
for me, vary greatly in thickness; being, on an average of twelve
measurements made near the border of the comb, 1/352nd of an inch
in thickness; whereas the basal rhomboidal plates are thicker, nearly
in the proportion of three to two, having a mean thickness, from
twenty-one measurements, of 1/229th of an inch. By the above singular
manner of building, strength is continually given to the comb, with
the utmost ultimate economy of wax.
It seems at first to add to the difficulty of understanding how
the cells are made, that a multitude of bees all work together;
one bee after working a short time at one cell going to another,
so that, as Huber has stated, a score of individuals work even at
the commencement of the first cell. I was able practically to show
this fact, by covering the edges of the hexagonal walls of a single
cell, or the extreme margin of the circumferential rim of a growing
comb, with an extremely thin layer of melted vermilion wax; and
I invariably found that the colour was most delicately diffused
by the bees- as delicately as a painter could have done it with
his brush- by atoms of the coloured wax having been taken from the
spot on which it had been placed, and worked into the growing edges
of the cells all round. The work of construction seems to be a sort
of balance struck between many bees, all instinctively standing
at the same relative distance from each other, all trying to sweep
equal spheres, and then building up, or leaving ungnawed, the planes
of intersection between these spheres. It was really curious to
note in cases of difficulty, as when two pieces of comb met at an
angle, how often the bees would pull down and rebuild in different
ways the same cell, sometimes recurring to a shape which they had
at first rejected.
When bees have a place on which they can stand in their proper
positions for working,- for instance, on a slip of wood, placed
directly under the middle of a comb growing downwards, so that the
comb has to be built over one face of the slip- in this case the
bees can lay the foundations of one wall of a new hexagon, in its
strictly proper place, projecting beyond the other completed cells.
It suffices that the bees should be enabled to stand at their proper
relative distances from each other and from the walls of the last
completed cells, and then, by striking imaginary spheres, they can
build up a wall intermediate between two adjoining spheres; but,
as far as I have seen, they never gnaw away and finish off the angles
of a cell till a large part both of that cell and of the adjoining
cells has been built. This capacity in bees of laying down under
certain circumstances a rough wall in its proper place between two
just-commenced cells, is important, as it bears on a fact, which
seems at first subversive of the foregoing theory; namely, that
the cells on the extreme margin of wasp-combs are sometimes strictly
hexagonal; but I have not space here to enter on this subject. Nor
does there seem to me any great difficulty in a single insect (as
in the case of a queen-wasp) making hexagonal cells, if she were
to work alternately on the inside and outside of two or three cells
commenced at the same time, always standing at the proper relative
distance from the parts of the cells just begun, sweeping spheres
or cylinders, and building up intermediate planes.
As natural selection acts only by the accumulation of slight modifications
of structure or instinct, each profitable to the individual under
its conditions of life, it may reasonably be asked, how a long and
graduated succession of modified architectural instincts, all tending
towards the present perfect plan of construction, could have profited
the progenitors of the hive-bee? I think the answer is not difficult:
cells constructed like those of the bee or the wasp gain in strength,
and save much in labour and space, and in the materials of which
they are constructed. With respect to the formation of wax, it is
known that bees are often hard pressed to get sufficient nectar,
and I am informed by Mr. Tegetmeier that it has been experimentally
proved that from twelve to fifteen pounds of dry sugar are consumed
by a hive of bees for the secretion of a pound of wax; so that a
prodigious quantity of fluid nectar must be collected and consumed
by the bees in a hive for the secretion of the wax necessary for
the construction of their combs. Moreover, many bees have to remain
idle for many days during the process of secretion. A large store
of honey is indispensable to support a large stock of bees during
the winter; and the security of the hive is known mainly to depend
on a large number of bees being supported. Hence the saving of wax
by largely saving honey and the time consumed in collecting the
honey must be an important element of success to any family of bees.
Of course the success of the species may be dependent on the number
of its enemies, or parasites, or on quite distinct causes, and so
be altogether independent of the quantity of honey which the bees
can collect. But let us suppose that this latter circumstance determined,
as it probably often has determined, whether a bee allied to our
humble-bees could exist in large numbers in any country; and let
us further suppose that the community lived through the winter,
and consequently required a store of honey: there can in this case
be no doubt that it would be an advantage to our imaginary humble-bee
if a slight modification in her instincts led her to make her waxen
cells near together, so as to intersect a little; for a wall in
common even to two adjoining cells would save some little labour
and wax. Hence it would continually be more and more advantageous
to our humble-bees, if they were to make their cells more and more
regular, nearer together, and aggregated into a mass, like the cells
of the Melipona; for in this case a large part of the bounding surface
of each cell would serve to bound the adjoining cells, and much
labour and wax would be saved. Again, from the same cause, it would
be advantageous to the Melipona, if she were to make her cells closer
together, and more regular in every way than at present; for then,
as we have seen, the spherical surfaces would wholly disappear and
be replaced by plane surfaces; and the Melipona would make a comb
as perfect as that of the hive-bee. Beyond this stage of perfection
in architecture, natural selection could not lead; for the comb
of the hive-bee, as far as we can see, is absolutely perfect in
economising labour and wax.
Thus, as I believe, the most wonderful of all known instincts,
that of the hive-bee, can be explained by natural selection having
taken advantage of numerous, successive, slight modifications of
simpler instincts; natural selection having, by slow degrees, more
and more perfectly led the bees to sweep equal spheres at a given
distance from each other in a double layer, and to build up and
excavate the wax along the planes of intersection; the bees, of
course, no more knowing that they swept their spheres at one particular
distance from each other, than they know what are the several angles
of the hexagonal prisms and of the basal rhombic plates; the motive
power of the process of natural selection having been the construction
of cells of due strength and of the proper size and shape for the
larvae, this being effected with the greatest possible economy of
labour and wax; that individual swarm which thus made the best cells
with least labour, and least waste of honey in the secretion of
wax, having succeeded best, and having transmitted their newly-acquired
economical instincts to new swarms, which in their turn will have
had the best chance of succeeding in the struggle for existence.

It has been objected to the foregoing view of the origin of instincts
that "the variations of structure and of instinct must have been
simultaneous and accurately adjusted to each other, as a modification
in the one without an immediate corresponding change in the other
would have been fatal." The force of this objection rests entirely
on the assumption that the changes in the instincts and structure
are abrupt. To take as an illustration the case of the larger titmouse
(Parus major) alluded to in a previous chapter; this bird often
holds the seeds of the yew between its feet on a branch, and hammers
with its beak till it gets at the kernel. Now what special difficulty
would there be in natural selection preserving all the slight individual
variations in the shape of the beak, which were better and better
adapted to break open the seeds, until a beak was formed, as well
constructed for this purpose as that of the nuthatch, at the same
time that habit, or compulsion, or spontaneous variations of taste,
led the bird to become more and more of a seed-eater? In this case
the beak is supposed to be slowly modified by natural selection,
subsequently to, but in accordance with, slowly changing habits
or taste; but let the feet of the titmouse vary and grow larger
from correlation with the beak, or from any other unknown cause,
and it is not improbable that such larger feet would lead the bird
to climb more and more until it acquired the remarkable climbing
instinct and power of the nuthatch. In this case a gradual change
of structure is supposed to lead to changed instinctive habits.
To take one more case: few instincts are more remarkable than that
which leads the swift of the Eastern Islands to make its nest wholly
of inspissated saliva. Some birds build their nests of mud, believed
to be moistened with saliva; and one of the swifts of North America
makes its nest (as I have seen) of sticks agglutinated with saliva,
and even with flakes of this substance. Is it then very improbable
that the natural selection of individual swifts, which secreted
more and more saliva, should at last produce a species with instincts
leading it to neglect other materials, and to make its nest exclusively
of inspissated saliva? And so in other cases. It must, however,
be admitted that in many instances we cannot conjecture whether
it was instinct or structure which first varied.
No doubt many instincts of very difficult explanation could be
opposed to the theory of natural selection- cases, in which we cannot
see how an instinct could have originated; cases, in which no intermediate
gradations are known to exist; cases of instincts of such trifling
importance, that they could hardly have been acted on by natural
selection; cases of instincts almost identically the same in animals
so remote in the scale of nature, that we cannot account for their
similarity by inheritance from a common progenitor, and consequently
must believe that they were independently acquired through natural
selection. I will not here enter on these several cases, but will
confine myself to one special difficulty, which at first appeared
to me insuperable, and actually fatal to the whole theory. I allude
to the neuters or sterile females in insect-communities; for these
neuters often differ widely in instinct and in structure from both
the males and fertile females, and yet, from being sterile, they
cannot propagate their kind.
The subject well deserves to be discussed at great length, but
I will here take only a single case, that of working or sterile
ants. How the workers have been rendered sterile is a difficulty;
but not much greater than that of any other striking modification
of structure; for it can be shown that some insects and other articulate
animals in a state of nature occasionally become sterile; and if
such insects had been social, and it had been profitable to the
community that a number should have been annually born capable of
work, but incapable of procreation, I can see no especial difficulty
in this having been effected through natural selection. But I must
pass over this preliminary difficulty. The great difficulty lies
in the working ants differing widely from both the males and the
fertile females in structure, as in the shape of the thorax, and
in being destitute of wings and sometimes of eyes, and in instinct.
As far as instinct alone is concerned, the wonderful difference
in this respect between the workers and the perfect females, would
have been better exemplified by the hive-bee. If a working ant or
other neuter insect had been an ordinary animal, I should have unhesitatingly
assumed that all its characters had been slowly acquired through
natural selection; namely, by individuals having been born with
slight profitable modifications, which were inherited by the offspring;
and that these again varied and again were selected, and so onwards.
But with the working ant we have an insect differing greatly from
its parents, yet absolutely sterile; so that it could never have
transmitted successively acquired modifications of structure or
instinct to its progeny. It may well be asked how is it possible
to reconcile this case with the theory of natural selection?
First, let it be remembered that we have innumerable instances,
both in our domestic productions and in those in a state of nature,
of all sorts of differences of inherited structure which are correlated
with certain ages, and with either sex. We have differences correlated
not only with one sex, but with that short period when the reproductive
system is active, as in the nuptial plumage of many birds, and in
the hooked jaws of the male salmon. We have even slight differences
in the horns of different breeds of cattle in relation to an artificially
imperfect state of the male sex; for oxen of certain breeds have
longer horns than the oxen of other breeds, relatively to the length
of the horns in both the bulls and cows of these same breeds. Hence
I can see no great difficulty in any character becoming correlated
with the sterile condition of certain members of insect communities:
the difficulty lies in understanding how such correlated modifications
of structure could have been slowly accumulated by natural selection.
This difficulty, though appearing insuperable, is lessened, or,
as I believe, disappears, when it is remembered that selection may
be applied to the family, as well as to the individual, and may
thus gain the desired end. Breeders of cattle wish the flesh and
fat to be well marbled together: an animal thus characterised has
been slaughtered, but the breeder has gone with confidence to the
same stock and has succeeded. Such faith may be placed in the power
of selection, that a breed of cattle, always yielding oxen with
extraordinarily long horns, could, it is probable, be formed by
carefully watching which individual bulls and cows, when matched,
produced oxen with the longest horns; and yet no ox would ever have
propagated its kind. Here is a better and real illustration: according
to M. Verlot, some varieties of the double annual Stock from having
been long and carefully selected to the right degree, always produce
a large proportion of seedlings bearing double and quite sterile
flowers; but they likewise yield some single and fertile plants.
These latter, by which alone the variety can be propagated, may
be compared with the fertile male and female ants, is ants, and
the double sterile plants with the neuters of the same community.
As with the varieties of the stock, so with social insects, selection
has been applied to the family, and not to the individual, for the
sake of gaining a serviceable end. Hence we may conclude that slight
modifications of structure or of instinct, correlated with the sterile
condition of certain members of the community, have proved advantageous:
consequently the fertile males and females have flourished, and
transmitted to their fertile offspring a tendency to produce sterile
members with the same modifications. This process must have been
repeated many times, until that prodigious amount of difference
between the fertile and sterile females of the same species has
been produced, which we see in many social insects.
But we have not as yet touched on the acme of the difficulty; namely,
the fact that the neuters of several ants differ, not only from
the fertile females and males, but from each other, sometimes to
an almost incredible degree, and are thus divided into two or even
three castes. The castes, moreover, do not commonly graduate into
each other, but are perfectly well defined; being as distinct from
each other as are any two species of the same genus, or rather as
any two genera of the same family. Thus in Eciton, there are working
and soldier neuters, with jaws and instincts extraordinarily different:
in Cryptocerus, the workers of one caste alone carry a wonderful
sort of shield on their heads, the use of which is quite unknown:
in the Mexican Myrmecoeystus, the workers of one caste never leave
the nest; they are fed by the workers of another caste, and they
have an enormously developed abdomen which secretes a sort of honey,
supplying the place of that excreted by the aphides, or the domestic
cattle as they may be called, which our European ants guard and
imprison.
It will indeed be thought that I have an overweening confidence
in the principle of natural selection, when I do not admit that
such wonderful and well-established facts at once annihilate the
theory. In the simpler case of neuter insects all of one caste,
which, as I believe, have been rendered different from the fertile
males and females through natural selection, we may conclude from
the analogy of ordinary variations, that the successive, slight,
profitable modifications did not first arise in all the neuters
in the same nest, but in some few alone; and that by the survival
of the communities with females which produced most INSTINCT is
neuters having the advantageous modifications, all the neuters ultimately
came to be thus characterised. According to this view we ought occasionally
to find in the same nest neuter insects, presenting gradations of
structure; and this we do find, even not rarely, considering how
few neuter insects out of Europe have been carefully examined. Mr.
F. Smith has shown that the neuters of several British ants differ
surprisingly from each other in size and sometimes in colour; and
that the extreme forms can be linked together by individuals taken
out of the same nest: I have myself compared perfect gradations
of this kind. It sometimes happens that the larger or the smaller
sized workers are the most numerous; or that both large and small
are numerous, whilst those of an intermediate size are scanty in
numbers. Formica lava has larger and smaller workers, with some
few of intermediate size; and, in this species, as Mr. F. Smith
has observed, the larger workers have simple eyes (ocelli), which
though small can be plainly distinguished, whereas the smaller workers
have their ocelli rudimentary. Having carefully dissected several
specimens of these workers, I can affirm that the eyes are far more
rudimentary in the smaller workers than can be accounted for merely
by their proportionally lesser size; and I fully believe, though
I dare not assert so positively, that the workers of intermediate
size have their ocelli in an exactly intermediate condition. So
that here we have two bodies of sterile workers in the same nest,
differing not only in size, but in their organs of vision, yet connected
by some few members in an intermediate condition. I may digress
by adding, that if the smaller workers had been the most useful
to the community, and those males and females had been continually
selected, which produced more and more of the smaller workers, until
all the workers were in this condition; we should then have had
a species of ant with neuters in nearly the same condition as those
of Myrmica. For the workers of Myrmica have not even rudiments of
ocelli, though the male and female ants of this genus have well-developed
ocelli.
I may give one other case: so confidently did I expect occasionally
to find gradations of important structures between the different
castes of neuters in the same species, that I gladly availed myself
of Mr. F. Smith's offer of numerous specimens from the same nest
of the driver ant (Anomma) of West Africa. The reader will perhaps
best appreciate the amount of difference in these workers, by my
giving not the actual measurements, but a strictly accurate illustration:
the difference was the same as if we were to see a set of workmen
building a house, of whom many were five feet four inches high,
and many sixteen feet high; but we must in addition suppose that
the larger workmen had heads four instead of three times as big
as those of the smaller men, and jaws nearly five times as big.
The jaws, moreover, of the working ants of the several sizes differed
wonderfully in shape, and in the form and number of the teeth. But
the important fact for us is, that, though the workers can be grouped
into castes of different size, yet they graduate insensibly into
each other, as does the widely-different structure of their jaws.
I speak confidently on this latter point, as Sir J. Lubbock made
drawings for me, with the camera lucida, of the jaws which I dissected
from the workers of the several sizes. Mr. Bates, in his interesting
Naturalist on the Amazons, has described analogous cases.
With these facts before me, I believe that natural selection, by
acting on the fertile ants or parents, could form a species which
should regularly produce neuters, all of large size with one form
of jaw, or all of small size with widely different jaws; or lastly,
and this is the greatest difficulty, one set of workers of one size
and structure, and simultaneously another set of workers of a different
size and structure;- a graduated series having first been formed,
as in the case of the driver ant, and then the extreme forms having
been produced in greater and greater numbers, through the survival
of the parents which generated them, until none with an intermediate
structure were produced.
An analogous explanation has been given by Mr. Wallace, of the
equally complex case, of certain Malayan butterflies regularly appearing
under two or even three distinct female forms; and by Fritz Muller,
of certain Brazilian crustaceans likewise appearing under two widely
distinct male forms. But this subject need not here be discussed.
I have now explained how, as I believe, the wonderful fact of two
distinctly defined castes of sterile workers existing in the same
nest, both widely different from each other and from their parents,
has originated. We can see how useful their production may have
been to a social community of ants, on the same principle that the
division of labour is useful to civilised man. Ants, however, work
by inherited instincts and by inherited organs or tools, whilst
man works by acquired knowledge and manufactured instruments. But
I must confess, that, with all my faith in natural selection, I
should never have anticipated that this principle could have been
efficient in so high a degree, had not the case of these neuter
insects led me to this conclusion. I have, therefore, discussed
this case, at some little but wholly insufficient length, in order
to show the power of natural selection, and likewise because this
is by far the most serious special difficulty which my theory has
encountered. The case, also, is very interesting, as it proves that
with animals, as with plants, any amount of modification may be
effected by the accumulation of numerous, slight, spontaneous variations,
which are in any way profitable, without exercise or habit having
been brought into play. For peculiar habits confined to the workers
or sterile females, however long they might be followed, could not
possibly affect the males and fertile females, which alone leave
descendants. I am surprised that no one has hitherto advanced this
demonstrative case of neuter insects, against the well-known doctrine
of inherited habit, as advanced by Lamarck.

I have endeavoured in this chapter briefly to show that the mental
qualities of our domestic animals vary, and that the variations
are inherited. Still more briefly I have attempted to show that
instincts vary slightly in a state of nature. No one will dispute
that instincts are of the highest importance to each animal. Therefore
there is no real difficulty, under changing conditions of life,
in natural selection accumulating to any extent slight modifications
of instinct which are in any way useful. In many cases habit or
use and disuse have probably come into play. I do not pretend that
the facts given in this chapter strengthen in any great degree my
theory; but none of the cases of difficulty, to the best of my judgment,
annihilate it. On the other hand, the fact that instincts are not
always absolutely perfect and are liable to mistakes;- that no instinct
can be shown to have been produced for the good of other animals,
though animals take advantage of the instincts of others;- that
the canon in natural history, of "Natura non facit saltum," is applicable
to instincts as well as to corporeal structure, and is plainly explicable
on the foregoing views, but is otherwise inexplicable, all tend
to corroborate the theory of natural selection.
This theory is also strengthened by some few other facts in regard
to instincts; as by that common case of closely allied, but distinct
species, when inhabiting distant parts of the world and living under
considerably different conditions of life, yet often retaining nearly
the same instincts. For instance, we can understand, on the principle
of inheritance, how it is that the thrush of tropical South America
lines its nest with mud, in the same peculiar manner as does our
British thrush; how it is that the hornbills of Africa and India
have the same extraordinary instinct of plastering up and imprisoning
the females in a hole in a tree, with only a small hole left in
the plaster through which the males feed them and their young when
hatched; how it is that the male wrens (Troglodytes) of North America
build "cocknests," to roost in, like the males of our kittywrens,-
a habit wholly unlike that of any other known bird. Finally, it
may not be a logical deduction, but to my imagination it is far
more satisfactory to look at such instincts as the young cuckoo
ejecting its foster-brothers,- ants making slaves,- the larvae of
ichneumonidea feeding within the live bodies of caterpillars,- not
as specially endowed or created instincts, but as small consequences
of one general law leading to the advancement of all organic beings,-
namely, multiply, vary, let the strongest live and the weakest die.
THE view commonly entertained by naturalists is that species, when
intercrossed, have been specially endowed with sterility, in order
to prevent their confusion. This view certainly seems at first highly
probable, for species living together could hardly have been kept
distinct had they been capable of freely crossing. The subject is
in many ways important for us, more especially as the sterility
of species when first crossed, and that of their hybrid offspring,
cannot have been acquired, as I shall show, by the preservation
of successive profitable degrees of sterility. It is an incidental
result of differences in the reproductive systems of the parent-species.
In treating this subject, two classes of facts, to a large extent
fundamentally different, have generally been confounded; namely,
the sterility of species when first crossed, and the sterility of
the hybrids produced from them.
Pure species have of course their organs of reproduction in a perfect
condition, yet when intercrossed they produce either few or no offspring.
Hybrids, on the other hand, have their reproductive organs functionally
impotent, as may be clearly seen in the state of the male element
in both plants and animals; though the formative organs themselves
are perfect in structure, as far as the microscope reveals. In the
first case the two sexual elements which go to form the embryo are
perfect; in the second case they are either not at all developed,
or are imperfectly developed. This distinction is important, when
the cause of the sterility, which is common to the two cases, has
to be considered. The distinction probably has been slurred over,
owing to the sterility in both cases being looked on as a special
endowment, beyond the province of our reasoning powers.
The fertility of varieties, that is of the forms known or believed
to be descended from common parents, when crossed, and likewise
the fertility of their mongrel offspring, is, with reference to
my theory, of equal importance with the sterility of species; for
it seems to make a broad and clear distinction between varieties
and species.
Degrees of Sterility.- First, for the sterility of species when
crossed and of their hybrid offspring. It is impossible to study
the several memoirs and works of those two conscientious and admirable
observers, Kolreuter and Gartner, who almost devoted their lives
to this subject, without being deeply impressed with the high generality
of some degree of sterility. Kolreuter makes the rule universal;
but then he cuts the knot, for in ten cases in which he found two
forms, considered by most authors as distinct species, quite fertile
together, he unhesitatingly ranks them as varieties. Gartner, also,
makes the rule equally universal; and he disputes the entire fertility
of Kolreuter's ten cases. But in these and in many other cases,
Gartner is obliged carefully to count the seeds, in order to show
that there is any degree of sterility. He always compares the maximum
number of seeds produced by two species when first crossed, and
the maximum produced by their hybrid offspring, with the average
number produced by both pure parent-species in a state of nature.
But causes of serious error here intervene: a plant, to be hybridised,
must be castrated, and, what is often more important, must be secluded
in order to prevent pollen being brought to it by insects from other
plants. Nearly all the plants experimented on by Gartner were potted,
and were kept in a chamber in his house. That these processes are
often injurious to the fertility of a plant cannot be doubted; for
Gartner gives in his table about a score of cases of plants which
he castrated, and artificially fertilised with their own pollen,
and (excluding all cases such as the Leguminosae, in which there
is an acknowledged difficulty in the manipulation) half of these
twenty plants had their fertility in some degree impaired. Moreover,
as Gartner repeatedly crossed some forms, such as the common red
and blue pimpernels (Anagallis arvensis and caerulea), which the
best botanists rank as varieties, and found them absolutely sterile,
we may doubt whether many species are really so sterile, when intercrossed,
as he believed.
It is certain, on the one hand, that the sterility of various species
when crossed is so different in degree and graduates away so insensibly,
and, on the other hand, that the fertility of pure species is so
easily affected by various circumstances, that for all practical
purposes it is most difficult to say where perfect fertility ends
and sterility begins. I think no better evidence of this can be
required than that the two most experienced observers who have ever
lived, namely Kolreuter and Gartner, arrived at diametrically opposite
conclusions in regard to some of the very same forms. It is also
most instructive to compare- but I have not space here to enter
on details- the evidence advanced by our best botanists on the question
whether certain doubtful forms should be ranked as species or varieties,
with the evidence from fertility adduced by different hybridisers,
or by the same observer from experiments made during different years.
It can thus be shown that neither sterility nor fertility affords
any certain distinction between species and varieties. The evidence
from this source graduates away, and is doubtful in the same degree
as is the evidence derived from other constitutional and structural
differences.
In regard to the sterility of hybrids in successive generations:
though Gartner was enabled to rear some hybrids, carefully guarding
them from a cross with either pure parent, for six or seven, and
in one case for ten generations, yet he asserts positively that
their fertility never increases, but generally decreases greatly
and suddenly. With respect to this decrease, it may first be noticed
that when any deviation in structure or constitution is common to
both parents, this is often transmitted in an augmented degree to
the offspring; and both sexual elements in hybrid plants are already
affected in some degree. But I believe that their fertility has
been diminished in nearly all these cases by an independent cause,
namely, by too close interbreeding. I have made so many experiments
and collected so many facts, showing on the one hand that an occasional
cross with a distinct individual or variety increases the vigour
and fertility of the offspring, and on the other hand that very
close interbreeding lessens their vigour and fertility, that I cannot
doubt the correctness of this conclusion. Hybrids are seldom raised
by experimentalists in great numbers; and as the parent-species,
or other allied hybrids, generally grow in the same garden, the
visits of insects must be carefully prevented during the flowering
season: hence hybrids, if left to themselves, will generally be
fertilised during each generation by pollen from the same flower;
and this would probably be injurious to their fertility, already
lessened by their hybrid origin. I am strengthened in this conviction
by a remarkable statement repeatedly made by Gartner, namely, that
if even the less fertile hybrids be artificially fertilised with
hybrid pollen of the same kind, their fertility, notwithstanding
the frequent ill effects from manipulation, sometimes decidedly
increases, and goes on increasing. Now, in the process of artificial
fertilisation, pollen is as often taken by chance (as I know from
my own experience) from the anthers of another flower, as from the
anthers of the flower itself which is to be fertilised; so that
a cross between two flowers, though probably often on the same plant,
would be thus effected. Moreover, whenever complicated experiments
are in progress, so careful an observer as Gartner would have castrated
his hybrids, and this would have ensured in each generation a cross
with pollen from a distinct flower, either from the same plant or
from another plant of the same hybrid nature. And thus, the strange
fact of an increase of fertility in the successive generations of
artificially fertilised hybrids, in contrast with those spontaneously
self-fertilised, may, as I believe, be accounted for by too close
interbreeding having been avoided.
Now let us turn to the results arrived at by a third most experienced
hybridiser, namely, the Hon. and Rev. W. Herbert. He is as emphatic
in his conclusion that some hybrids are perfectly fertile- as fertile
as the pure parent-species- as are Kolreuter and Gartner that some
degree of sterility between distinct species is a universal law
of nature. He experimented on some of the very same species as did
Gartner. The difference in their results may, I think, be in part
accounted for by Herbert's great horticultural skill, and by his
having hot-houses at his command. Of his many important statements
I will here give only a single one as an example, namely, that "every
ovule in a pod of Crinum capense fertilised by C. revolutum produced
a plant, which I never saw to occur in a case of its natural fecundation."
So that here we have perfect or even more than commonly perfect
fertility, in a first cross between two distinct species.
This case of the Crinum leads me to refer to a singular fact, namely,
that individual plants of certain species of Lobelia, Verbascum
and Passiflora, can easily be fertilised by pollen from a distinct
species, but not by pollen from the same plant, though this pollen
can be proved to be perfectly sound by fertilising other plants
or species. In the genus Hippeastrum, in Corydalis as shown by Professor
Hildebrand, in various orchids as shown by Mr. Scott and Fritz Muller,
all the individuals are in this peculiar condition. So that with
some species, certain abnormal individuals, and in other species
all the individuals, can actually be hybridised much more readily
than they can be fertilised by pollen from the same individual plant!
To give one instance, a bulb of Hippeastrum aulicum produced four
flowers; three were fertilised by Herbert with their own pollen,
and the fourth was subsequently fertilised by the pollen of a compound
hybrid descended from three distinct species: the result was that
"the ovaries of the three first flowers soon ceased to grow, and
after a few days perished entirely, whereas the pod impregnated
by the pollen of the hybrid made vigorous growth and rapid progress
to maturity, and bore good seed, which vegetated freely." Mr. Herbert
tried similar experiments during many years, and always with the
same result. These cases serve to show on what slight and mysterious
causes the lesser or greater fertility of a species sometimes depends.
The practical experiments of horticulturists, though not made with
scientific precision, deserve some notice. It is notorious in how
complicated a manner the species of Pelargonium, Fuchsia, Calceolaria,
Petunia, Rhododendron, &c., have been crossed, yet many of these
hybrids seed freely. For instance, Herbert asserts that a hybrid
from Calceolaria integrifolia and plantaginea, species most widely
dissimilar in general habit, "reproduces itself as perfectly as
if it had been a natural species from the mountains of Chili." I
have taken some pains to ascertain the degree of fertility of some
of the complex crosses of rhododendrons, and I am assured that many
of them are perfectly fertile. Mr. C. Noble, for instance, informs
me that he raises stocks for grafting from a hybrid between Rhod.
ponticum and catawbiense, and that this hybrid "seeds as freely
as it is possible to imagine." Had hybrids when fairly treated,
always gone on decreasing in fertility in each successive generation,
as Gartner believed to be the case, the fact would have been notorious
to nurserymen. Horticulturists raise large beds of the same hybrid,
and such alone are fairly treated, for by insect agency the several
individuals are allowed to cross freely with each other, and the
injurious influence of close interbreeding is thus prevented. Any
one may readily convince himself of the efficiency of insect-agency
by examining the flowers of the more sterile kinds of hybrid rhododendrons,
which produce no pollen for he will find on their stigmas plenty
of pollen brought from other flowers.
In regard to animals, much fewer experiments have been carefully
tried than with plants. If our systematic arrangements can be trusted,
that is, if the genera of animals are as distinct from each other
as are the genera of plants, then we may infer that animals more
widely distinct in the scale of nature can be crossed more easily
than in the case of plants; but the hybrids themselves are, I think,
more sterile. It should, however, be borne in mind that, owing to
few animals breeding freely under confinement, few experiments have
been fairly tried: for instance, the canary-bird has been crossed
with nine distinct species of finches, but, as not one of these
breeds freely in confinement, we have no right to expect that the
first crosses between them and the canary, or that their hybrids,
should be perfectly fertile. Again, with respect to the fertility
in successive generations of the more fertile hybrid animals, I
hardly know of an instance in which two families of the same hybrid
have been raised at the same time from different parents, so as
to avoid the ill effects of close interbreeding. On the contrary,
brothers and sisters have usually been crossed in each successive
generation, in opposition to the constantly repeated admonition
of every breeder. And in this case, it is not at all surprising
that the inherent sterility in the hybrids should have gone on increasing.
Although I know of hardly any thoroughly well-authenticated cases
of perfectly fertile hybrid animals, I have reason to believe that
the hybrids from Cervulus vaginalis and reevesii, and from Phasianus
colchicus with P. torquatus, are perfectly fertile. M. Quatrefages
states that the hybrids from two moths (Bombyx cynthia and arrindia)
were proved in Paris to be fertile inter se for eight generations.
It has lately been asserted that two such distinct species as the
hare and rabbit, when they can be got to breed together, produce
offspring which are highly fertile when crossed with one of the
parent-species. The hybrids from the common and Chinese geese (A.
cygnoides), species which are so different that they are generally
ranked in distinct genera, have often bred in this country with
either pure parent, and in one single instance they have bred inter
se. This was effected by Mr. Eyton, who raised two hybrids from
the same parents, but from different hatches; and from these two
birds he raised no less than eight hybrids (grandchildren of the
pure geese) from one nest. In India, however, these cross-bred geese
must be far more fertile; for I am assured by two eminently capable
judges, namely Mr. Blyth and Capt. Hutton, that whole flocks of
these crossed geese are kept in various parts of the country; and
as they are kept for profit, where neither pure parent-species exists,
they must certainly be highly or perfectly fertile.
With our domesticated animals, the various races when crossed together
are quite fertile; yet in many cases they are descended from two
or more wild species. From this fact we must conclude either that
the aboriginal parent-species at first produced perfectly fertile
hybrids, or that the hybrids subsequently reared under domestication
became quite fertile. This latter alternative, which was first propounded
by Pallas, seems by far the most probable, and can, indeed, hardly
be doubted. It is, for instance, almost certain that our dogs are
descended from several wild stocks; yet, with perhaps the exception
of certain indigenous domestic dogs of South America, all are quite
fertile together; but analogy makes me greatly doubt whether the
several aboriginal species would at first have freely bred together
and have produced quite fertile hybrids. So again I have lately
acquired decisive evidence that the crossed offspring from the Indian
humped and common cattle are inter se perfectly fertile; and from
the observations by Rutimeyer on their important osteological differences,
as well as from those by Mr. Blyth on their differences in habits,
voice, constitution, &c., these two forms must be regarded as
good and distinct species. The same remarks may be extended to the
two chief races of the pig. We must, therefore, either give up the
belief of the universal sterility of species when crossed; or we
must look at this sterility in animals, not as an indelible characteristic,
but as one capable of being removed by domestication.
Finally, considering all the ascertained facts on the intercrossing
of plants and animals, it may be concluded that some degree of sterility,
both in first crosses and in hybrids, is an extremely general result;
but that it cannot, under our present state of knowledge, be considered
as absolutely universal.

We will now consider a little more in detail the laws governing
the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids. Our chief object
will be to see whether or not these laws indicate that species have
been specially endowed with this quality, in order to prevent their
crossing and blending together in utter confusion. The following
conclusions are drawn up chiefly from Gartner's admirable work on
the hybridisation of plants. I have taken much pains to ascertain
how far they apply to animals, and, considering how scanty our knowledge
is in regard to hybrid animals, I have been surprised to find how
generally the same rules apply to both kingdoms.
It has been already remarked, that the degree of fertility, both
of first crosses and of hybrids, graduates from zero to perfect
fertility. It is surprising in how many curious ways this gradation
can be shown; but only the barest outline of the facts can here
be given. When pollen from a plant of one family is placed on the
stigma of a plant of a distinct family, it exerts no more influence
than so much inorganic dust. From this absolute zero of fertility,
the pollen of different species applied to the stigma of some one
species of the same genus, yields a perfect gradation in the number
of seeds produced, up to nearly complete or even quite complete
fertility; and, as we have seen, in certain abnormal cases, even
to an excess of fertility, beyond that which the plant's own pollen
produces. So in hybrids themselves, there are some which never have
produced, and probably never would produce, even with the pollen
of the pure parents, a single fertile seed: but in some of these
cases a first trace of fertility may be detected, by the pollen
of one of the pure parent-species causing the flower of the hybrid
to wither earlier than it otherwise would have done; and the early
withering of the flower is well known to be a sign of incipient
fertilisation. From this extreme degree of sterility we have self-sterilised
hybrids producing a greater and greater number of seeds up to perfect
fertility.
The hybrids raised from two species which are very difficult to
cross, and which rarely produce any offspring, are generally very
sterile; but the parallelism between the difficulty of making a
first cross, and the sterility of the hybrids thus produced- two
classes of facts which are generally confounded together- is by
no means strict. There are many cases, in which two pure species,
as in the genus Verbascum, can be united with unusual facility,
and produce numerous hybrid offspring, yet these hybrids are remarkably
sterile. On the other hand, there are species which can be crossed
very rarely, or with extreme difficulty, but the hybrids, when at
last produced, are very fertile. Even within the limits of the same
genus, for instance in Dianthus, these two opposite cases occur.
The fertility, both of first crosses and of hybrids, is more easily
affected by unfavourable conditions, than is that of pure species.
But the fertility of first crosses is likewise innately variable;
for it is not always the same in degree when the same two species
are crossed under the same circumstances; it depends in part upon
the constitution of the individuals which happen to have been chosen
for the experiment. So it is with hybrids, for their degree of fertility
is often found to differ greatly in the several individuals raised
from seed out of the same capsule and exposed to the same conditions.
By the term systematic affinity is meant, the general resemblance
between species in structure and constitution. Now the fertility
of first crosses, and of the hybrids produced from them, is largely
governed by their systematic affinity. This is clearly shown by
hybrids never having been raised between species ranked by systematists
in distinct families; and on the other hand, by very closely allied
species generally uniting with facility. But the correspondence
between systematic affinity and the facility of crossing is by no
means strict. A multitude of cases could be given of very closely
allied species which will not unite, or only with extreme difficulty;
and on the other hand of very distinct species which unite with
the utmost facility. In the same family there may be a genus, as
Dianthus, in which very many species can most readily be crossed;
and another genus, as Silene, in which the most persevering efforts
have failed to produce between extremely close species a single
hybrid. Even within the limits of the same genus, we meet with this
same difference; for instance, the many species of Nicotiana have
been more largely crossed than the species of almost any other genus;
but Gartner found that N. acuminata, which is not a particularly
distinct species, obstinately failed to fertilise, or to be fertilised
by no less than eight other species of Nicotiana. Many analogous
facts could be given.
No one has been able to point out what kind or what amount of difference,
in any recognisable character, is sufficient to prevent two species
crossing. It can be shown that plants most widely different in habit
and general appearance, and having strongly marked differences in
every part of the flower, even in the pollen, in the fruit, and
in the cotyledons, can be crossed. Annual and perennial plants,
deciduous and evergreen trees, plants inhabiting different stations
and fitted for extremely different climates, can often be crossed
with ease.
By a reciprocal cross between two species, I mean the case, for
instance, of a female-ass being first crossed by a stallion, and
then a mare by a male-ass; these two species may then be said to
have been reciprocally crossed. There is often the widest possible
difference in the facility of making reciprocal crosses. Such cases
are highly important, for they prove that the capacity in any two
species to cross is often completely independent of their systematic
affinity, that is of any difference in their structure or constitution,
excepting in their reproductive systems. The diversity of the result
in reciprocal crosses between the same two species was long ago
observed by Kolreuter. To give an instance: Mirabilis jalapa can
easily be fertilised by the pollen of M. longiflora, and the hybrids
thus produced are sufficiently fertile; but Kolreuter tried more
than two hundred times, during eight following years, to fertilise
reciprocally M. longiflora with the pollen of M. jalapa, and utterly
failed. Several other equally striking cases could be given. Thuret
has observed the same fact with certain sea-weeds or Fuci. Gartner,
moreover, found that this difference of facility in making reciprocal
crosses is extremely common in a lesser degree. He has observed
it even between closely related forms (as Matthiola annua and gilabra)
which many botanists rank only as varieties. It is also a remarkable
fact, that hybrids raised from reciprocal crosses, though of course
compounded of the very same two species, the one species having
first been used as the father and then as the mother, though they
rarely differ in external characters, yet generally differ in fertility
in a small, and occasionally in a high degree.
Several other singular rules could be given from Gartner: for instance,
some species have a remarkable power of crossing with other species;
other species of the same genus have a remarkable power of impressing
their likeness on their hybrid offspring; but these two powers do
not at all necessarily go together. There are certain hybrids which,
instead of having, as is usual, an intermediate character between
their two parents, always closely resemble one of them; and such
hybrids, though externally so like one of their pure parent-species,
are with rare exceptions extremely sterile. So again amongst hybrids
which are usually intermediate in structure between their parents,
exceptional and abnormal individuals sometimes are born, which closely
resemble one of their pure parents; and these hybrids are almost
always utterly sterile, even when the other hybrids raised from
seed from the same capsule have a considerable degree of fertility.
These facts show how completely the fertility of a hybrid may be
independent of its external resemblance to either pure parent.
Considering the several rules now given, which govern the fertility
of first causes and of hybrids, we see that when forms, which must
be considered as good and distinct species, are united, their fertility
graduates from zero to perfect fertility, or even to fertility under
certain conditions in excess; that their fertility, besides being
eminently susceptible to favourable and unfavourable conditions,
is innately variable; that it is by no means always the same in
degree in the first cross and in the hybrids produced from this
cross; that the fertility of hybrids is not related to the degree
in which they resemble in external appearance either parent; and
lastly, that the facility of making a first cross between any two
species is not always governed by their systematic affinity or degree
of resemblance to each other. This latter statement is clearly proved
by the difference in the result of reciprocal crosses between the
same two species, for, according as the one species or the other
is used as the father or the mother, there is generally some difference,
and occasionally the widest possible difference, in the facility
of effecting an union. The hybrids, moreover, produced from reciprocal
crosses often differ in fertility.
Now do these complex and singular rules indicate that species have
been endowed with sterility simply to prevent their becoming confounded
in nature? I think not. For why should the sterility be so extremely
different in degree, when various species are crossed, all of which
we must suppose it would be equally important to keep from blending
together? Why should the degree of sterility be innately variable
in the individuals of the same species? Why should some species
cross with facility, and yet produce very sterile hybrids; and other
species cross with extreme difficulty, and yet produce fairly fertile
hybrids? Why should there often be so great a difference in the
result of a reciprocal cross between the same two species? Why,
it may even be asked, has the production of hybrids been permitted?
To grant to species the special power of producing hybrids, and
then to stop their further propagation by different degrees of sterility,
not strictly related to the facility of the first union between
their parents, seems a strange arrangement.
The foregoing rules and facts, on the other hand, appear to me
clearly to indicate that the sterility both of first crosses and
of hybrids is simply incidental or dependent on unknown differences
in their reproductive systems; the differences being of so peculiar
and limited a nature, that, in reciprocal crosses between the same
two species, the male sexual element of the one will often freely
act on the female sexual element of the other, but not in a reversed
direction. It will be advisable to explain a little more fully by
an example what I mean by sterility being incidental on other differences,
and not a specially endowed quality. As the capacity of one plant
to be grafted or budded on another is unimportant for their welfare
in a state of nature, I presume that no one will suppose that this
capacity is a specially endowed quality, but will admit that it
is incidental on differences in the laws of growth of the two plants.
We can sometimes see the reason why one tree will not take on another,
from differences in their rate of growth, in the hardness of their
wood, in the period of the flow or nature of their sap, &c.;
but in a multitude of cases we can assign no reason whatever. Great
diversity in the size of two plants, one being woody and the other
herbaceous, one being evergreen and the other deciduous, and adaptation
to widely different climates, do not always prevent the two grafting
together. As in hybridisation, so with grafting, the capacity is
limited by systematic affinity, for no one has been able to graft
together trees belonging to quite distinct families; and, on the
other hand, closely allied species, and varieties of the same species,
can usually, but not invariably, be grafted with ease. But this
capacity, as in hybridisation, is by no means absolutely governed
by systematic affinity. Although many distinct genera within the
same family have been grafted together, in other cases species of
the same genus will not take on each other. The pear can be grafted
far more readily on the quince, which is ranked as a distinct genus,
than on the apple, which is a member of the same genus. Even different
varieties of the pear take with different degrees of facility on
the quince; so do different varieties of the apricot and peach on
certain varieties of the plum.
As Gartner found that there was sometimes an innate difference
in different individuals of the same two species in crossing; so
Sageret believes this to be the case with different individuals
of the same two species in being grafted together. As in reciprocal
crosses, the facility of effecting an union is often very far from
equal, so it sometimes is in grafting; the common gooseberry, for
instance, cannot be grafted on the currant, whereas the current
will take, though with difficulty, on the gooseberry.
We have seen that the sterility of hybrids, which have their reproductive
organs in an imperfect condition, is a different case from the difficulty
of uniting two pure species, which have their reproductive organs
perfect; yet these two distinct classes of cases run to a large
extent parallel. Something analogous occurs in grafting; for Thouin
found that three species of Robinia, which seeded freely on their
own roots, and which could be grafted with no great difficulty on
a fourth species, when thus grafted were rendered barren. On the
other hand, certain species of Sorbus, when grafted on other species
yielded twice as much fruit as when on their own roots. We are reminded
by this latter fact of the extraordinary cases of Hippeastrum, Passiflora,
&c., which seed much more freely when fertilised with the pollen
of a distinct species, than when fertilised with pollen from the
same plant.
We thus see, that, although there is a clear and great difference
between the mere adhesion of grafted stocks, and the union of the
male and female elements in the act of reproduction, yet that there
is a rude degree of parallelism in the results of grafting and of
crossing distinct species. And as we must look at the curious and
complex laws governing the facility with which trees can be grafted
on each other as incidental on unknown differences in their vegetative
systems, so I believe that the still more complex laws governing
the facility of first crosses are incidental on unknown differences
in their reproductive systems. These differences in both cases,
follow to a certain extent, as might have been expected, systematic
affinity, by which term every kind of resemblance and dissimilarity
between organic beings is attempted to be expressed. The facts by
no means seem to indicate that the greater or lesser difficulty
of either grafting or crossing various species has been a special
endowment; although in the case of crossing, the difficulty is as
important for the endurance and stability of specific forms, as
in the case of grafting it is unimportant for their welfare.

At one time it appeared to me probable, as it has to others, that
the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids might have been slowly
acquired through the natural selection of slightly lessened degrees
of fertility, which, like any other variation, spontaneously appeared
in certain individuals of one variety when crossed with those of
another variety. For it would clearly be advantageous to two varieties
or incipient species, if they could be kept from blending, on the
same principle that, when man is selecting at the same time two
varieties, it is necessary that he should keep them separate. In
the first place, it may be remarked that species inhabiting distinct
regions are often sterile when crossed; now it could clearly have
been of no advantage to such separated species to have been rendered
mutually sterile, and consequently this could not have been effected
through natural selection; but it may perhaps be argued, that, if
a species was rendered sterile with some one compatriot, sterility
with other species would follow as a necessary contingency. In the
second place, it is almost as much opposed to the theory of natural
selection as to that of special creation, that in reciprocal crosses
the male element of one form should have been rendered utterly impotent
on a second form, whilst at the same time the male element of this
second form is enabled freely to fertilise the first form; for this
peculiar state of the reproductive system could hardly have been
advantageous to either species.
In considering the probability of natural selection having come
into action, in rendering species mutually sterile, the greatest
difficulty will be found to lie in the existence of many graduated
steps from slightly lessened fertility to absolute sterility. It
may be admitted that it would profit an incipient species, if it
were rendered in some slight degree sterile when crossed with its
parent form or with some other variety; for thus fewer bastardised
and deteriorated offspring would be produced to commingle their
blood with the new species in process of formation. But he who will
take the trouble to reflect on the steps by which this first degree
of sterility could be increased through natural selection to that
high degree which is common with so many species, and which is universal
with species which have been differentiated to a generic or family
rank, will find the subject extraordinarily complex. After mature
reflection it seems to me that this could not have been effected
through natural selection. Take the case of any two species which,
when crossed, produced few and sterile offspring; now, what is there
which could favour the survival of those individuals which happened
to be endowed in a slightly higher degree with mutual infertility,
and which thus approached by one small step towards absolute sterility?
Yet an advance of this kind, if the theory of natural selection
be brought to bear, must have incessantly occurred with many species,
for a multitude are mutually quite barren. With sterile neuter insects
we have reason to believe that modifications in their structure
and fertility have been slowly accumulated by natural selection,
from an advantage having been thus indirectly given to the community
to which they belonged over other communities of the same species;
but an individual animal not belonging to a social community, if
rendered slightly sterile when crossed with some other variety,
would not thus itself gain any advantage or indirectly give any
advantage to the other individuals of the same variety, thus leading
to their preservation.
But it would be superfluous to discuss this question in detail;
for with plants we have conclusive evidence that the sterility of
crossed species must be due to some principle, quite independent
of natural selection. Both Gartner and Kolreuter have proved that
in genera including numerous species, a series can be formed from
species which when crossed yield fewer and fewer seeds, to species
which never produce a single seed, but yet are affected by the pollen
of certain other species, for the germen swells. It is here manifestly
impossible to select the more sterile individuals, which have already
ceased to yield seeds; so that this acme of sterility, when the
germen alone is affected, cannot have been gained through selection;
and from the laws governing the various grades of sterility being
so uniform throughout the animal and vegetable kingdoms, we may
infer that the cause, whatever it may be, is the same or nearly
the same in an cases.
We will now look a little closer at the probable nature of the
differences between species which induce sterility in first crosses
and in hybrids. In the case of first crosses, the greater or less
difficulty in effecting an union and in obtaining offspring apparently
depends on several distinct causes. There must sometimes be a physical
impossibility in the male element reaching the ovule, as would be
the case with a plant having a pistil too long for the pollen-tubes
to reach the ovarium. It has also been observed that when the pollen
of one species is placed on the stigma of a distantly allied species,
though the pollen-tubes protrude, they do not penetrate the stigmatic
surface. Again, the male element may reach the female element but
be incapable of causing an embryo to be developed, as seems to have
been the case with some of Thuret's experiments on Fuci. No explanation
can be given of these facts, any more than why certain trees cannot
be grafted on others. Lastly, an embryo may be developed, and then
perish at an early period. This latter alternative has not been
sufficiently attended to; but I believe, from observations communicated
to me by Mr. Rewitt, who has had great experience in hybridising
pheasants and fowls, that the early death of the embryo is a very
frequent cause of sterility in first crosses. Mr. Salter has recently
given the results of an examination of about 500 eggs produced from
various crosses between three species of Gallus and their hybrids;
the majority of these eggs had been fertilised; and in the majority
of the fertilised eggs, the embryos had either been partially developed
and had then perished, or had become nearly mature, but the young
chickens had been unable to break through the shell. Of the chickens
which were born, more than four-fifths died within the first few
days, or at latest weeks, "without any obvious cause, apparently
from mere inability to live"; so that from the 500 eggs only twelve
chickens were reared. With plants, hybridised embryos probably often
perish in a like manner; at least it is known that hybrids raised
from very distinct species are sometimes weak and dwarfed, and perish
at an early age; of which fact Max Wichura has recently given some
striking cases with hybrid willows. It may be here worth noticing
that in some cases of parthenogenesis, the embryos within the eggs
of silk moths which had not been fertilised, pass through their
early stages of development and then perish like the embryos produced
by a cross between distinct species. Until becoming acquainted with
these facts, I was unwilling to believe in the frequent early death
of hybrid embryos; for hybrids, when once born, are generally healthy
and long-lived, as we see in the case of the common mule. Hybrids,
however, are differently circumstanced before and after birth: when
born and living in a country where their two parents live, they
are generally placed under suitable conditions of life. But a hybrid
partakes of only half of the nature and constitution of its mother;
it may therefore before birth, as long as it is nourished within
its mother's womb, or within the egg or seed produced by the mother,
be exposed to conditions in some degree unsuitable, and consequently
be liable to perish at an early period; more especially as all very
young beings are eminently sensitive to injurious or unnatural conditions
of life. But after all, the cause more probably lies in some imperfection
in the original act of impregnation, causing the embryo to be imperfectly
developed, rather than in the conditions to which it is subsequently
exposed.
In regard to the sterility of hybrids, in which the sexual elements
are imperfectly developed, the case is somewhat different. I have
more than once alluded to a large body of facts showing that, when
animals and plants are removed from their natural conditions, they
are extremely liable to have their reproductive systems seriously
affected. This, in fact, is the great bar to the domestication of
animals. Between the sterility thus super-induced and that of hybrids,
there are many points of similarity. In both cases the sterility
is independent of general health, and is often accompanied by excess
of size or great luxuriance. In both cases the sterility occurs
in various degrees; in both, the male element is the most liable
to be affected; but sometimes the female more than the male. In
both, the tendency goes to a certain extent with systematic affinity,
for whole groups of animals and plants are rendered impotent by
the same unnatural conditions; and whole groups of species tend
to produce sterile hybrids. On the other hand, one species in a
group will sometimes resist great changes of conditions with unimpaired
fertility; and certain species in a group will produce unusually
fertile hybrids. No one can tell, till he tries, whether any particular
animal will breed under confinement, or any exotic plant seed freely
under culture; nor can he tell till he tries, whether any two species
of a genus will produce more or less sterile hybrids. Lastly, when
organic beings are placed during several generations under conditions
not natural to them, they are extremely liable to vary, which seems
to be partly due to their reproductive systems having been specially
affected, though in a lesser degree than when sterility ensues.
So it is with hybrids, for their offspring in successive generations
are eminently liable to vary, as every experimentalist has observed.
Thus we see that when organic beings are placed under new and unnatural
conditions, and when hybrids are produced by the unnatural crossing
of two species, the reproductive system, independently of the general
state of health, is affected in a very similar manner. In the one
case, the conditions of life have been disturbed, though often in
so slight a degree as to be inappreciable by us; in the other case,
or that of hybrids, the external conditions have remained the same,
but the organisation has been disturbed by two distinct structures
and constitutions, including of course the reproductive systems,
having been blended into one. For it is scarcely possible that two
organisations should be compounded into one, without some disturbance
occurring in the development, or periodical action, or mutual relations
of the different parts and organs one to another or to the conditions
of life. When hybrids are able to breed inter se, they transmit
to their offspring from generation to generation the same compounded
organisation, and hence we need not be surprised that their sterility,
though in some degree variable, does not diminish; it is even apt
to increase, this being generally the result, as before explained,
of too close interbreeding. The above view of the sterility of hybrids
being caused by two constitutions being compounded into one has
been strongly maintained by Max Wichura.
It must, however, be owned that we cannot understand, on the above
or any other view, several facts with respect to the sterility of
hybrids; for instance, the unequal fertility of hybrids produced
from reciprocal crosses; or the increased sterility in those hybrids
which occasionally and exceptionally resemble closely either pure
parent. Nor do I pretend that the foregoing remarks go to the root
of the matter; no explanation is offered why an organism, when placed
under unnatural conditions, is rendered sterile. All that I have
attempted to show is, that in two cases, in some respects allied,
sterility is the common result,- in the one case from the conditions
of life having been disturbed, in the other case from the organisation
having been disturbed by two organisations being compounded into
one.
A similar parallelism holds good with an allied yet very different
class of facts. It is an old and almost universal belief founded
on a considerable body of evidence, which I have elsewhere given,
that slight changes in the conditions of life are beneficial to
all living things. We see this acted on by farmers and gardeners
in their frequent exchanges of seed, tubers, &c., from one soil
or climate to another, and back again. During the convalescence
of animals, great benefit is derived from almost any change in their
habits of life. Again, both with plants and animals, there is the
clearest evidence that a cross between individuals of the same species,
which differ to a certain extent, gives vigour and fertility to
the offspring; and that close interbreeding continued during several
generations between the nearest relations, if these be kept under
the same conditions of life, almost always leads to decreased size,
weakness, or sterility.
Hence it seems that, on the one hand, slight changes in the conditions
of life benefit all organic beings, and on the other hand, that
slight crosses, that is crosses between the males and females of
the same species, which have been subjected to slightly different
conditions, or which have slightly varied, give vigour and fertility
to the offspring. But, as we have seen, organic beings long habituated
to certain uniform conditions under a state of nature, when subjected,
as under confinement, to a considerable change in their conditions,
very frequently are rendered more or less sterile; and we know that
a cross between two forms, that have become widely or specifically
different, produce hybrids which are almost always in some degree
sterile. I am fully persuaded that this double parallelism is by
no means an accident or an illusion. He who is able to explain why
the elephant and a multitude of other animals are incapable of breeding
when kept under only partial confinement in their native country,
will be able to explain the primary cause of hybrids being so generally
sterile. He will at the same time be able to explain how it is that
the races of some of our domesticated animals, which have often
been subjected to new and not uniform conditions, are quite fertile
together, although they are descended from distinct species, which
would probably have been sterile if aboriginally crossed. The above
two parallel series of facts seem to be connected together by some
common but unknown bond, which is essentially related to the principle
of life; this principle, according to Mr. Herbert Spencer, being
that life depends on, or consists in, the incessant action and reaction
of various forces, which, as throughout nature, are always tending
towards an equilibrium; and when this tendency is slightly disturbed
by any change, the vital forces gain in power.

This subject may be here briefly discussed, and will be found to
throw some light on hybridism. Several plants belonging to distinct
orders present two forms, which exist in about equal numbers and
which differ in no respect except in their reproductive organs;
one form having a long pistil with short stamens, the other a short
pistil with long stamens; the two having differently sized pollen-grains.
With trimorphic plants there are three forms likewise differing
in the lengths of the pistils and stamens, in the size and colour
of the pollen grains, and in some other respects; and as in each
of the three forms there are two sets of stamens, the three forms
possess altogether six sets of stamens and three kinds of pistils.
These organs are so proportioned in length to each other, that half
the stamens in two of the forms stand on a level with the stigma
of the third form. Now I have shown, and the result has been confirmed
by other observers, that, in order to obtain full fertility with
these plants, it is necessary that the stigma of the one form should
be fertilised by pollen taken from the stamens of corresponding
height in another form. So that with dimorphic species two unions,
which may be called legitimate, are fully fertile; and two, which
may be called illegitimate, are more or less infertile. With trimorphic
species six unions are legitimate, or fully fertile,- and twelve
are illegitimate, or more or less infertile.
The infertility which may be observed in various dimorphic and
trimorphic plants, when they are illegitimately fertilised, that
is by pollen taken from stamens not corresponding in height with
the pistil, differs much in degree, up to absolute and utter sterility;
just in the same manner as occurs in crossing distinct species.
As the degree of sterility in the latter case depends in an eminent
degree on the conditions of life being more or less favourable,
so I have found it with illegitimate unions. It is well known that
if pollen of a distinct species be placed on the stigma of a flower,
and its own pollen be afterwards, even after a considerable interval
of time, placed on the same stigma, its action is so strongly prepotent
that it generally annihilates the effect of the foreign pollen;
so it is with the pollen of the several forms of the same species,
for legitimate pollen is strongly prepotent over illegitimate pollen,
when both are placed on the same stigma. I ascertained this by fertilising
several flowers, first illegitimately, and twenty-four hours afterwards
legitimately with the pollen taken from a peculiarly coloured variety,
and all the seedlings were similarly coloured; this shows that the
legitimate pollen, though applied twenty-four hours subsequently,
had wholly destroyed or prevented the action of the previously applied
illegitimate pollen. Again, as in making reciprocal crosses between
the same two species, there is occasionally a great difference in
the result, so the same thing occurs with trimorphic plants; for
instance, the mid-styled form of Lythrum galicaria was illegitimately
fertilised with the greatest ease by pollen from the longer stamens
of the short-styled form, and yielded many seeds; but the latter
form did not yield a single seed when fertilised by the longer stamens
of the mid-styled form.
In all these respects, and in others which might be added, the
forms of the same undoubted species when illegitimately united behave
in exactly the same manner as do two distinct species when crossed.
This led me carefully to observe during four years many seedlings,
raised from several illegitimate unions. The chief result is that
these illegitimate plants, as they may be called, are not fully
fertile. It is possible to raise from dimorphic species, both long-styled
and short-styled illegitimate plants, and from trimorphic plants
all three illegitimate forms. These can then be properly united
in a legitimate manner. When this is done, there is no apparent
reason why they should not yield as many seeds as did their parents
when legitimately fertilised. But such is not the case. They are
all infertile, in various degrees; some being so utterly and incurably
sterile that they did not yield during four seasons a single seed
or even seed-capsule. The sterility of these illegitimate plants,
when united with each other in a legitimate manner, may be strictly
compared with that of hybrids when crossed inter se. If, on the
other hand, a hybrid is crossed with either pure parent-species,
the sterility is usually much lessened: and so it is when an illegitimate
plant is fertilised by a legitimate plant. In the same manner as
the sterility of hybrids does not always run parallel with the difficulty
of making the first cross between the two parent-species, so the
sterility of certain illegitimate plants was unusually great, whilst
the sterility of the union from which they were derived was by no
means great. With hybrids raised from the same seed-capsule the
degree of sterility is innately variable, so it is in a marked manner
with illegitimate plants. Lastly, many hybrids are profuse and persistent
flowerers, whilst other and more sterile hybrids produce few flowers,
and are weak, miserable dwarfs; exactly similar cases occur with
the illegitimate offspring of various dimorphic and trimorphic plants.
Altogether there is the closest identity in character and behaviour
between illegitimate plants and hybrids. It is hardly an exaggeration
to maintain that illegitimate plants are hybrids, produced within
the limits of the same species by the improper union of certain
forms, whilst ordinary hybrids are produced from an improper union
between so-called distinct species. We have also already seen that
there is the closest similarity in all respects between first illegitimate
unions and first crosses between distinct species. This will perhaps
be made more fully apparent by an illustration; we may suppose that
a botanist found two well-marked varieties (and such occur) of the
long-styled form of the trimorphic Lythrum salicaria, and that he
determined to try by crossing whether they were specifically distinct.
He would find that they yielded only about one-fifth of the proper
number of seeds, and that they behaved in all the other above-specified
respects as if they had been two distinct species. But to make the
case sure, he would raise plants from his supposed hybridised seed,
and he would find that the seedlings were miserably dwarfed and
utterly sterile, and that they behaved in all other respects like
ordinary hybrids. He might then maintain that he had actually proved,
in accordance with the common view, that his two varieties were
as good and as distinct species as any in the world; but he would
be completely mistaken.
The facts now given on dimorphic and trimorphic plants are important,
because they show us, first, that the physiological test of lessened
fertility, both in first crosses and in hybrids, is no safe criterion
of specific distinction; secondly, because we may conclude that
there is some unknown bond which connects the infertility of illegitimate
unions with that of their illegitimate offspring, and we are led
to extend the same view to first crosses and hybrids; thirdly, because
we find, and this seems to me of especial importance, that two or
three forms of the same species may exist and may differ in no respect
whatever, either in structure or in constitution, relatively to
external conditions, and yet be sterile when united in certain ways.
For we must remember that it is the union of the sexual elements
of individuals of the same form, for instance, of two long-styled
forms, which results in sterility; whilst it is the union of the
sexual elements proper to two distinct forms which is fertile. Hence
the case appears at first sight exactly the reverse of what occurs,
in the ordinary unions of the individuals of the same species and
with crosses between distinct species. It is, however, doubtful
whether this is really so; but I will not enlarge on this obscure
subject.
We may, however, infer as probable from the consideration of dimorphic
and trimorphic plants, that the sterility of distinct species when
crossed and of their hybrid progeny, depends exclusively on the
nature of their sexual elements, and not on any difference in their
structure or general constitution. We are also led to this same
conclusion by considering reciprocal crosses, in which the male
of one species cannot be united, or can be united with great difficulty,
with the female of a second species, whilst the converse cross can
be effected with perfect facility. That excellent observer, Gartner,
likewise concluded that species when crossed are sterile owing to
differences confined to their reproductive systems.

It may be urged, as an overwhelming argument, that there must be
some essential distinction between species and varieties, inasmuch
as the latter, however much they may differ from each other in external
appearance, cross with perfect facility, and yield perfectly fertile
offspring. With some exceptions, presently to be given, I fully
admit that this is the rule. But the subject is surrounded by difficulties,
for, looking to varieties produced under nature, if two forms hitherto
reputed to be varieties be found in any degree sterile together,
they are at once ranked by most naturalists as species. For instance,
the blue and red pimpernel, which are considered by most botanists
as varieties, are said by Gartner to be quite sterile when crossed,
and he subsequently ranks them as undoubted species. If we thus
argue in a circle, the fertility of all varieties produced under
nature will assuredly have to be granted.
If we turn to varieties, produced, or supposed to have been produced,
under domestication, we are still involved in some doubt. For when
it is stated, for instance, that certain South American indigenous
domestic dogs do not readily unite with European dogs, the explanation
which will occur to every one, and probably the true one, is that
they are descended from aboriginally distinct species. Nevertheless
the perfect fertility of so many domestic races, differing widely
from each other in appearance, for instance those of the pigeon,
or of the cabbage, is a remarkable fact; more especially when we
reflect how many species there are, which, though resembling each
other most closely, are utterly sterile when intercrossed. Several
considerations however, render the fertility of domestic varieties
less remarkable. In the first place, it may be observed that the
amount of external difference between two species is no sure guide
to their degree of mutual sterility, so that similar differences
in the case of varieties would be no sure guide. It is certain that
with species the cause lies exclusively in differences in their
sexual constitution. Now the varying conditions to which domesticated
animals and cultivated plants have been subjected, have had so little
tendency towards modifying the reproductive system in a manner leading
to mutual sterility, that we have good grounds for admitting the
directly opposite doctrine of Pallas, namely, that such conditions
generally eliminate this tendency; so that the domesticated descendants
of species, which in their natural state probably would have been
in some degree sterile when crossed, become perfectly fertile together.
With plants, so far is cultivation from giving a tendency towards
sterility between distinct species, that in several well-authenticated
cases already alluded to, certain plants have been affected in an
opposite manner, for they have become self-impotent whilst still
retaining the capacity of fertilising, and being fertilised by,
other species. If the Pallasian doctrine of the elimination of sterility
through long-continued domestication be admitted, and it can hardly
be rejected, it becomes in the highest degree improbable that similar
conditions long-continued should likewise induce this tendency;
though in certain cases, with species having a peculiar constitution,
sterility might occasionally be thus caused. Thus, as I believe,
we can understand why with domesticated animals varieties have not
been produced which are mutually sterile; and why with plants only
a few such cases, immediately to be given, have been observed.
The real difficulty in our present subject is not, as it appears
to me, why domestic varieties have not become mutually infertile
when crossed, but why this has so generally occurred with natural
varieties, as soon as they have been permanently modified in a sufficient
degree to take rank as species. We are far from precisely knowing
the cause; nor is this surprising, seeing how profoundly ignorant
we are in regard to the normal and abnormal action of the reproductive
system. But we can see that species, owing to their struggle for
existence with numerous competitors, will have been exposed during
long periods of time to more uniform conditions, than have domestic
varieties; and this may well make a wide difference in the result.
For we know how commonly wild animals and plants, when taken from
their natural conditions and subjected to captivity, are rendered
sterile; and the reproductive functions of organic beings which
have always lived under natural conditions would probably in like
manner be eminently sensitive to the influence of an unnatural cross.
Domesticated productions, on the other hand, which, as shown by
the mere fact of their domestication, were not originally highly
sensitive to changes in their conditions of life, and which can
now generally resist with undiminished fertility repeated changes
of conditions, might be expected to produce varieties, which would
be little liable to have their reproductive powers injuriously affected
by the act of crossing with other varieties which had originated
in a like manner.
I have not as yet spoken as if the varieties of the same species
were invariably fertile when intercrossed. But it is impossible
to resist the evidence of the existence of a certain amount of sterility
in the few following cases, which I will briefly abstract. The evidence
is at least as good as that from which we believe in the sterility
of a multitude of species. The evidence is, also, derived from hostile
witnesses, who in all other cases consider fertility and sterility
as safe criterions of specific distinction. Gartner kept during
several years a dwarf kind of maize with yellow seeds, and a tall
variety with red seeds growing near each other in his garden; and
although these plants have separated sexes, they never naturally
crossed. He then fertilised thirteen flowers of the one kind with
pollen of the other; but only a single head produced any seed, and
this one head produced only five grains. Manipulation in this case
could not have been injurious, as the plants have separated sexes.
No one, I believe, has suspected that these varieties of maize are
distinct species; and it is important to notice that the hybrid
plants thus raised were themselves perfectly fertile; so that even
Gartner did not venture to consider the two varieties as specifically
distinct.
Girou de Buzareingues crossed three varieties of gourd, which like
the maize has separated sexes, and he asserts that their mutual
fertilization is by so much the less easy as their differences are
greater. How far these experiments may be trusted, I know not; but
the forms experimented on are ranked by Sageret, who mainly founds
his classification by the test of infertility, as varieties, and
Naudin has come to the same conclusion.
The following case is far more remarkable, and seems at first incredible;
but it is the result of an astonishing number of experiments made
during many years on nine species of Verbascum, by so good an observer
and so hostile a witness as Gartner: namely, that the yellow and
white varieties when crossed produce less seed than the similarly
coloured varieties of the same species. Moreover, he asserts that,
when yellow and white varieties of one species are crossed with
yellow and white varieties of a distinct species, more seed is produced
by the crosses between the similarly coloured flowers, than between
those which are differently coloured. Mr. Scott also has experimented
on the species and varieties of Verbascum; and although unable to
confirm Gartner's results on the crossing of the distinct species,
he finds that the dissimilarly coloured varieties of the same species
yield fewer seeds in the proportion of 86 to 100, than the similarly
coloured varieties. Yet these varieties differ in no respect except
in the colour of their flowers; and one variety can sometimes be
raised from the seed of another.
Kolreuter, whose accuracy has been confirmed by every subsequent
observer, has proved the remarkable fact, that one particular variety
of the common tobacco was more fertile than the other varieties,
when crossed with a widely distinct species. He experimented on
five forms which are commonly reputed to be varieties, and which
he tested by the severest trial, namely, by reciprocal crosses,
and he found their mongrel offspring perfectly fertile. But one
of these five varieties, when used either as the father or mother,
and crossed with the Nicotiana glutinosa, always yielded hybrids
not so sterile as those which were produced from the four other
varieties when crossed with N. glutinosa. Hence the reproductive
system of this one variety must have been in some manner and in
some degree modified.
From these facts it can no longer be maintained that varieties
when crossed are invariably quite fertile. From the great difficulty
of ascertaining the infertility of varieties in a state of nature,
for a supposed variety, if proved to be infertile in any degree,
would almost universally be ranked as a species;- from man attending
only to external characters in his domestic varieties, and from
such varieties not having been exposed for very long periods to
uniform conditions of life;- from these several considerations we
may conclude that fertility does not constitute a fundamental distinction
between varieties and species when crossed. The general sterility
of crossed species may safely be looked at, not as a special acquirement
or endowment, but as incidental on changes of an unknown nature
in their sexual elements.

Independently of the question of fertility, the offspring of species
and of varieties when crossed may be compared in several other respects.
Gartner, whose strong wish it was to draw a distinct line between
species and varieties, could find very few, and, as it seems to
me, quite unimportant differences between the so-called hybrid offspring
of species, and the so-called mongrel offspring of varieties. And,
on the other hand, they agree most closely in many important respects.
I shall here discuss this subject with extreme brevity. The most
important distinction is, that in the first generation mongrels
are more variable than hybrids; but Gartner admits that hybrids
from species which have long been cultivated are often variable
in the first generation; and I have myself seen striking instances
of this fact. Gartner further admits that hybrids between very closely
allied species are more variable than those from very distinct species;
and this shows that the difference in the degree of variability
graduates away. When mongrels and the more fertile hybrids are propagated
for several generations, an extreme amount of variability in the
offspring in both cases is notorious; but some few instances of
both hybrids and mongrels long retaining a uniform character could
be given. The variability, however, in the successive generations
of mongrels is, perhaps, greater than in hybrids.
This greater variability in mongrels than in hybrids does not seem
at all surprising. For the parents of mongrels are varieties, and
mostly domestic varieties (very few experiments having been tried
on natural varieties), and this implies that there has been recent
variability, which would often continue and would augment that arising
from the act of crossing. The slight variability of hybrids in the
first generation, in contrast with that in the succeeding generations,
is a curious fact and deserves attention. For it bears on the view
which I have taken of one of the causes of ordinary variability;
namely, that the reproductive system from being eminently sensitive
to changed conditions of life, fails under these circumstances to
perform its proper function of producing offspring closely similar
in all respects to the parent-form. Now hybrids in the first generation
are descended from species (excluding those long-cultivated) which
have not had their reproductive systems in any way affected, and
they are not variable; but hybrids themselves have their reproductive
systems seriously affected, and their descendants are highly variable.
But to return to our comparison of mongrels and hybrids: Gartner
states that mongrels are more liable than hybrids to revert to either
parent-form; but this, if it be true, is certainly only a difference
in degree. Moreover, Gartner expressly states that hybrids from
long cultivated plants are more subject to reversion than hybrids
from species in their natural state; and this probably explains
the singular difference in the results arrived at by different observers:
thus Max Wichura doubts whether hybrids ever revert to their parent-forms,
and he experimented on uncultivated species of willows; whilst Naudin,
on the other hand, insists in the strongest terms on the almost
universal tendency to reversion in hybrids, and he experimented
chiefly on cultivated plants. Gartner further states that when any
two species, although most closely allied to each other, are crossed
with a third species, the hybrids are widely different from each
other; whereas if two very distinct varieties of one species are
crossed with another species, the hybrids do not differ much. But
this conclusion, as far as I can make out, is founded on a single
experiment; and seems directly opposed to the results of several
experiments made by Kolreuter.
Such alone are the unimportant differences which Gartner is able
to point out between hybrid and mongrel plants. On the other hand,
the degrees and kinds of resemblance in mongrels and in hybrids
to their respective parents, more especially in hybrids produced
from nearly related species, follow according to Gartner the same
laws. When two species are crossed, one has sometimes a prepotent
power of impressing its likeness on the hybrid. So I believe it
to be with varieties of plants; and with animals one variety certainly
often has this prepotent power over another variety. Hybrid plants
produced from a reciprocal cross, generally resemble each other
closely; and so it is with mongrel plants from a reciprocal cross.
Both hybrids and mongrels can be reduced to either pure parent-form,
by repeated crosses in successive generations with either parent.
These several remarks are apparently applicable to animals; but
the subject is here much complicated, partly owing to the existence
of secondary sexual characters; but more especially owing to prepotency
in transmitting likeness running more strongly in one sex than in
the other, both when one species is crossed with another, and when
one variety is crossed with another variety. For instance, I think
those authors are right who maintain that the ass has a prepotent
power over the horse, so that both the mule and the hinny resemble
more closely the ass than the horse; but that the prepotency runs
more strongly in the male than in the female ass, so that the mule,
which is the offspring of the male ass and mare, is more like an
ass, than is the hinny, which is the offspring of the female ass
and stallion.
Much stress has been laid by some authors on the supposed fact,
that it is only with mongrels that the offspring are not intermediate
in character, but closely resemble one of their parents; but this
does sometimes occur with hybrids, yet I grant much less frequently
than with mongrels. Looking to the cases which I have collected
of cross-bred animals closely resembling one parent, the resemblances
seem chiefly confined to characters almost monstrous in their nature,
and which have suddenly appeared- such as albinism, melanism, deficiency
of tail or horns, or additional fingers and toes; and do not relate
to characters which have been slowly acquired through selection.
A tendency to sudden reversions to the perfect character of either
parent would, also, be much more likely to occur with mongrels,
which are descended from varieties often suddenly produced and semi-monstrous
in character, than with hybrids, which are descended from species
slowly and naturally produced On the whole, I entirely agree with
Dr. Prosper Lucas, who, after arranging an enormous body of facts
with respect to animals, comes to the conclusion that the laws of
resemblance of the child to its parents are the same, whether the
two parents differ little or much from each other, namely, in the
union of individuals of the same variety, or of different varieties,
or of distinct species.
Independently of the question of fertility and sterility, in all
other respects there seems to be a general and close similarity
in the offspring of crossed species, and of crossed varieties. If
we look at species as having been specially created, and at varieties
as having been produced by secondary laws, this similarity would
be an astonishing fact. But it harmonises perfectly with the view
that there is no essential distinction between species and varieties.

First crosses between forms, sufficiently distinct to be ranked
as species, and their hybrids, are very generally, but not universally,
sterile. The sterility is of all degrees, and is often so slight
that the most careful experimentalists have arrived at diametrically
opposite conclusions in ranking forms by this test. The sterility
is innately variable in individuals of the same species, and is
eminently susceptible to the action of favourable and unfavourable
conditions. The degree of sterility does not strictly follow systematic
affinity, but is governed by several curious and complex laws. It
is generally different, and sometimes widely different in reciprocal
crosses between the same two species. It is not always equal in
degree in a first cross and in the hybrids produced from this cross.
In the same manner as in grafting trees, the capacity in one species
or variety to take on another, is incidental on differences, generally
of an unknown nature, in their vegetative systems, so in crossing,
the greater or less facility of one species to unite with another
is incidental on unknown differences in their reproductive systems.
There is no more reason to think that species have been specially
endowed with various degrees of sterility to prevent their crossing
and blending in nature, than to think that trees have been specially
endowed with various and somewhat analogous degrees of difficulty
in being grafted together in order to prevent their inarching in
our forests.
The sterility of first crosses and of their hybrid progeny has
not been acquired through natural selection. In the case of first
crosses it seems to depend on several circumstances; in some instances
in chief part on the early death of the embryo. In the case of hybrids,
it apparently depends on their whole organisation having been disturbed
by being compounded from two distinct forms; the sterility being
closely allied to that which so frequently affects pure species,
when exposed to new and unnatural conditions of life. He who will
explain these latter cases will be able to explain the sterility
of hybrids. This view is strongly supported by a parallelism of
another kind: namely, that, firstly, slight changes in the conditions
of life add to the vigour and fertility of all organic beings; and
secondly, that the crossing of forms, which have been exposed to
slightly different conditions of life or which have varied, favours
the size, vigour, and fertility of their offspring. The facts given
on the sterility of the illegitimate unions of dimorphic and trimorphic
plants and of their illegitimate progeny, perhaps render it probable
that some unknown bond in all cases connects the degree of fertility
of first unions with that of their offspring. The consideration
of these facts on dimorphism, as well as of the results of reciprocal
crosses, clearly leads to the conclusion that the primary cause
of the sterility of crossed species is confined to differences in
their sexual elements. But why, in the case of distinct species,
the sexual elements should so generally have become more or less
modified, leading to their mutual infertility, we do not know; but
it seems to stand in some close relation to species having been
exposed for long periods of time to nearly uniform conditions of
life.
It is not surprising that the difficulty in crossing any two species,
and the sterility of their hybrid offspring, should in most cases
correspond, even if due to distinct causes: for both depend on the
amount of difference between the species which are crossed. Nor
is it surprising that the facility of effecting a first cross, and
the fertility of the hybrids thus produced, and the capacity of
being grafted together- though this latter capacity evidently depends
on widely different circumstances- should all run, to a certain
extent, parallel with the systematic affinity of the forms subjected
to experiment; for systematic affinity includes resemblances of
all kinds.
First crosses between forms known to be varieties, or sufficiently
alike to be considered as varieties, and their mongrel offspring,
are very generally, but not, as is so often stated, invariably fertile.
Nor is this almost universal and perfect fertility surprising, when
it is remembered how liable we are to argue in a circle with respect
to varieties in a state of nature; and when we remember that the
greater number of varieties have been produced under domestication
by the selection of mere external differences, and that they have
not been long exposed to uniform conditions of life. It should also
be especially kept in mind, that long-continued domestication tends
to eliminate sterility, and is therefore little likely to induce
this same quality. Independently of the question of fertility, in
all other respects there is the closest general resemblance between
hybrids and mongrels,- in their variability, in their power of absorbing
each other by repeated crosses, and in their inheritance of characters
from both parent-forms. Finally, then, although we are as ignorant
of the precise cause of the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids
as we are why animals and plants removed from their natural conditions
become sterile, yet the facts given in this chapter do not seem
to me opposed to the belief that species aboriginally existed as
varieties.
IN THE sixth chapter I enumerated the chief objections which might
be justly urged against the views maintained in this volume. Most
of them have now been discussed. One, namely the distinctness of
specific forms, and their not being blended together by innumerable
transitional links, is a very obvious difficulty. I assigned reasons
why such links do not commonly occur at the present day under the
circumstances apparently most favourable for their presence, namely,
on an extensive and continuous area with graduated physical conditions.
I endeavoured to show, that the life of each species depends in
a more important manner on the presence of other already defined
organic forms, than on climate, and, therefore, that the really
governing conditions of life do not graduate away quite insensibly
like heat or moisture. I endeavoured, also, to show that intermediate
varieties, from existing in lesser numbers than the forms which
they connect, will generally be beaten out and exterminated during
the course of further modification and improvement. The main cause,
however, of innumerable intermediate links not now occurring everywhere
throughout nature, depends on the very process of natural selection,
through which new varieties continually take the places of and supplant
their parent-forms. But just in proportion as this process of extermination
has acted on an enormous scale, so must the number of intermediate
varieties, which have formerly existed, be truly enormous. Why then
is not every geological formation and every stratum full of such
intermediate links? Geology assuredly does not reveal any such finely-graduated
organic chain; and this, perhaps, is the most obvious and serious
objection which can be urged against the theory. The explanation
lies, as I believe, in the extreme imperfection of the geological
record.
In the first place, it should always be borne in mind what sort
of intermediate forms must, on the theory, have formerly existed.
I have found it difficult, when looking at any two species, to avoid
picturing to myself forms directly intermediate between them. But
this is a wholly false view; we should always look for forms intermediate
between each species and a common but unknown progenitor; and the
progenitor will generally have differed in some respects from all
its modified descendants. To give a simple illustration: the fantail
and pouter pigeons are both descended from the rock-pigeon; if we
possessed all the intermediate varieties which have ever existed,
we should have an extremely close series between both and the rock-pigeon;
but we should have no varieties directly intermediate between the
fantail and pouter; none, for instance, combining a tail somewhat
expanded with a crop somewhat enlarged, the characteristic features
of these two breeds. These two breeds, moreover, have become so
much modified, that, if we had no historical or indirect evidence
regarding their origin, it would not have been possible to have
determined, from a mere comparison of their structure with that
of the rock-pigeon, C. livia, whether they had descended from this
species or from some allied form, such as C. aenas.
So, with natural species, if we look to forms very distinct, for
instance to the horse and tapir, we have no reason to suppose that
links directly intermediate between them ever existed, but between
each and an unknown common parent. The common parent will have had
in its whole organisation much general resemblance to the tapir
and to the horse; but in some points of structure may have differed
considerably from both, even perhaps more than they differ from
each other. Hence, in all such cases, we should be unable to recognise
the parent-form of any two or more species, even if we closely compared
the structure of the parent with that of its modified descendants,
unless at the same time we had a nearly perfect chain of the intermediate
links.
It is just possible by theory, that one of two living forms might
have descended from the other; for instance, a horse from a tapir;
and in this case direct intermediate links will have existed between
them. But such a case would imply that one form had remained for
a very long period unaltered, whilst its descendants had undergone
a vast amount of change; and the principle of competition between
organism and organism, between child and parent, will render this
a very rare event; for in all cases the new and improved forms of
life tend to supplant the old and unimproved forms.
By the theory of natural selection all living species have been
connected with the parent-species of each genus, by differences
not greater than we see between the natural and domestic varieties
of the same species at the present day; and these parent-species,
now generally extinct, have in their turn been similarly connected
with more ancient forms; and so on backwards, always converging
to the common ancestor of each great class. So that the number of
intermediate and transitional links, between all living and extinct
species, must have been inconceivably great. But assuredly, if this
theory be true, such have lived upon the earth.

Independently of our not finding fossil remains of such infinitely
numerous connecting links, it may be objected that time cannot have
sufficed for so great an amount of organic change, all changes having
been effected slowly. It is hardly possible for me to recall to
the reader who is not a practical geologist, the facts leading the
mind feebly to comprehend the lapse of time. He who can read Sir
Charles Lyell's grand work on the Principles of Geology, which the
future historian will recognise as having produced a revolution
in natural science, and yet does not admit how vast have been the
past periods of time, may at once close this volume. Not that it
suffices to study the Principles of Geology, or to read special
treatises by different observers on separate formations, and to
mark how each author attempts, to give an inadequate idea of the
duration of each formation, or even of each stratum. We can best
gain some idea of past time by knowing the agencies at work, and
learning how deeply the surface of the land has been denuded, and
how much sediment has been deposited. As Lyell has well remarked,
the extent and thickness of our sedimentary formations are the result
and the measure of the denudation which the earth's crust has elsewhere
undergone. Therefore a man should examine for himself the great
piles of superimposed strata, and watch the rivulets bringing down
mud, and the waves wearing away the sea-cliffs, in order to comprehend
something about the duration of past time, the monuments of which
we see all around us.
It is good to wander along the coast, when formed of moderately
hard rocks, and mark the process of degradation. The tides in most
cases reach the cliffs only for a short time twice a day, and the
waves eat into them only when they are charged with sand or pebbles;
for there is good evidence that pure water effects nothing in wearing
away rock. At last the base of the cliff is undermined, huge fragments
fall down, and these, remaining fixed, have to be worn away atom
by atom, until after being reduced in size they can be rolled about
by the waves, and then they are more quickly ground into pebbles,
sand, or mud. But how often do we see along the bases of retreating
cliffs rounded boulders, all thickly clothed by marine productions,
showing how little they are abraded and how seldom they are rolled
about! Moreover, if we follow for a few miles any line of rocky
cliff, which is undergoing degradation, we find that it is only
here and there, along a short length or round a promontory, that
the cliffs are at the present time suffering. The appearance of
the surface and the vegetation show that elsewhere years have elapsed
since the waters washed their base.
We have, however, recently learnt from the observations of Ramsay,
in the van of many excellent observers- of Jukes, Geikie, Croll,
and others, that subaerial degradation is a much more important
agency than coast-action, or the power of the waves. The whole surface
of the land is exposed to the chemical action of the air and of
the rain-water with its dissolved carbolic acid, and in colder countries
to frost; the disintegrated matter is carried down even gentle slopes
during heavy rain, and to a greater extent than might be supposed,
especially in arid districts, by the wind; it is then transported
by the streams and rivers, which when rapid deepen their channels,
and triturate the fragments. On a rainy day, even in a gently undulating
country, we see the effects of subaerial degradation in the muddy
rills which flow down every slope. Messrs. Ramsay and Whitaker have
shown, and the observation is a most striking one, that the great
lines of escarpment in the Wealden district and those ranging across
England, which formerly were looked at as ancient sea-coasts, cannot
have been thus formed, for each line is composed of one and the
same formation, whilst our sea-cliffs are everywhere formed by the
intersection of various formations. This being the case, we are
compelled to admit that the escarpments owe their origin in chief
part to the rocks of which they are composed having resisted subaerial
denudation better than the surrounding surface; this surface consequently
has been gradually lowered, with the lines of harder rock left projecting.
Nothing impresses the mind with the vast duration of time, according
to our ideas of time, more forcibly than the conviction thus gained
that subaerial agencies which apparently have so little power, and
which seem to work so slowly, have produced great results.
When thus impressed with the slow rate at which the land is worn
away through subaerial and littoral action, it is good, in order
to appreciate the past duration of time, to consider, on the one
hand, the masses of rock which have been removed over many extensive
areas, and on the other hand the thickness of our sedimentary formations.
I remember having been much struck when viewing volcanic islands,
which have been worn by the waves and pared all round into perpendicular
cliffs of one or two thousand feet in height; for the gentle slope
of the lava-streams, due to their formerly liquid state, showed
at a glance how far the hard, rocky beds had once extended into
the open ocean. The same story is told still more plainly by faults,-
those great cracks along which the strata have been upheaved on
one side, or thrown down on the other, to the height or depth of
thousands of feet; for since the crust cracked, and it makes no
great difference whether the upheaval was sudden, or, as most geologists
now believe, was slow and effected by many starts, the surface of
the land has been so completely planed down that no trace of these
vast dislocations is externally visible. The Craven fault, for instance,
extends for upwards of 30 miles, and along this line the vertical
displacement of the strata varies from 600 to 3000 feet. Professor
Ramsay has published an account of a downthrow in Anglesea of 2300
feet; and he informs me that he fully believes that there is one
in Merionethshire of 12,000 feet; yet in these cases there is nothing
on the surface of the land to show such prodigious movements; the
pile of rocks on either side of the crack having been smoothly swept
away.
On the other hand, in all parts of the world the piles of sedimentary
strata are of wonderful thickness. In the Cordillera I estimated
one mass of conglomerate at ten thousand feet; and although conglomerates
have probably been accumulated at a quicker rate than finer sediments,
yet from being formed of worn and rounded pebbles, each of which
bears the stamp of time, they are good to show how slowly the mass
must have been heaped together. Professor Ramsay has given me the
maximum thickness, from actual measurement in most cases, of the
successive formations in different parts of Great Britain; and this
is the result:-
Palaeozoic strata (not including igneous beds)57,154 feet
Secondary strata13,190 feet
Tertiary strata2,249 feet
-making altogether 72,584 feet; that is, very nearly thirteen and
three-quarters British miles. Some of the formations, which are
represented in England by thin beds, are thousands of feet in thickness
on the Continent. Moreover, between each successive formation, we
have, in the opinion of most geologists, blank periods of enormous
length. So that the lofty pile of sedimentary rocks in Britain gives
but an inadequate idea of the time which has elapsed during their
accumulation. The consideration of these various facts impresses
the mind almost in the same manner as does the vain endeavour to
grapple with the idea of eternity.
Nevertheless this impression is partly false. Mr. Croll, in an
interesting paper, remarks that we do not err "in forming too great
a conception of the length of geological periods," but in estimating
them by years. When geologists look at large and complicated phenomena,
and then at the figures representing several million years, the
two produce a totally different effect on the mind, and the figures
are at once pronounced too small. In regard to subaerial denudation,
Mr. Croll shows, by calculating the known amount of sediment annually
brought down by certain rivers, relatively to their areas of drainage,
that 1000 feet of solid rock, as it became gradually disintegrated,
would thus be removed from the mean level of the whole area in the
course of six million years. This seems an astonishing result, and
some considerations lead to the suspicion that it may be too large,
but even if halved or quartered it is still very surprising. Few
of us, however, know what a million really means: Mr. Croll gives
the following illustration: take a narrow strip of paper, 83 feet
4 inches in length, and stretch it along the wall of a large hall;
then mark off at one end the tenth of an inch. This tenth of an
inch will represent one hundred years, and the entire strip a million
years. But let it be borne in mind, in relation to the subject of
this work, what a hundred years implies, represented as it is by
a measure utterly insignificant in a hall of the above dimensions.
Several eminent breeders, during a single lifetime, have so largely
modified some of the higher animals which propagate their kind much
more slowly than most of the lower animals, that they have formed
what well deserves to be called a new sub-breed. Few men have attended
with due care to any one strain for more than half a century, so
that a hundred years represents the work of two breeders in succession.
It is not to be supposed that species in a state of nature ever
change so quickly as domestic animals under the guidance of methodical
selection. The comparison would be in every way fairer with the
effects which follow from unconscious selection, that is the preservation
of the most useful or beautiful animals, with no intention of modifying
the breed; but by this process of unconscious selection, various
breeds have been sensibly changed in the course of two or three
centuries.
Species, however, probably change much more slowly, and within
the same country only a few change at the same time. This slowness
follows from all the inhabitants of the same country being already
so well adapted to each other, that new places in the polity of
nature do not occur until after long intervals, due to the occurrence
of physical changes of some kind, or through the immigration of
new forms. Moreover variations or individual differences of the
right nature, by which some of the inhabitants might be better fitted
to their new places under the altered circumstances, would not always
occur at once. Unfortunately we have no means of determining, according
to the standards of years, how long a period it takes to modify
a species; but to the subject of time we must return.

Now let us turn to our richest geological museums, and what a paltry
display we behold! That our collections are imperfect is admitted
by every one. The remark of that admirable palaeontologist, Edward
Forbes, should never be forgotten, namely, that very many fossil
species are known and named from single and often broken specimens,
or from a few specimens collected on some one spot. Only a small
portion of the surface of the earth has been geologically explored,
and no part with sufficient care, as the important discoveries made
every year in Europe prove. No organism wholly soft can be preserved.
Shells and bones decay and disappear when left on the bottom of
the sea, where sediment is not accumulating. We probably take a
quite erroneous view, when we assume that sediment is being deposited
over nearly the whole bed of the sea, at a rate sufficiently quick
to embed and preserve fossil remains. Throughout an enormously large
proportion of the ocean, the bright blue tint of the water bespeaks
its purity. The many cases on record of a formation conformably
covered, after an immense interval of time, by another and later
formation, without the underlying bed having suffered in the interval
any wear and tear, seem explicable only on the view of the bottom
of the sea not rarely lying for ages in an unaltered condition.
The remains which do become embedded, if in sand or gravel, will,
when the beds are upraised, generally be dissolved by the percolation
of rain-water charged with carbolic acid. Some of the many kinds
of animals which live on the beach between high and low water mark
seem to be rarely preserved. For instance, the several species of
the Chthamalinae (a sub-family of sessile cirripedes) coat the rocks
all over the world in infinite numbers: they are all strictly littoral,
with the exception of a single Mediterranean species, which inhabits
deep water, and this has been found fossil in Sicily, whereas not
one other species has hitherto been found in any tertiary formation:
yet it is known that the genus Chthamalus existed during the Chalk
period. Lastly, many great deposits requiring a vast length of time
for their accumulation, are entirely destitute of organic remains,
without our being able to assign any reason: one of the most striking
instances is that of the Flysch formation, which consists of shale
and sandstone, several thousand, occasionally even six thousand
feet in thickness, and extending for at least 300 miles from Vienna
to Switzerland; and although this great mass has been most carefully
searched, no fossils, except a few vegetable remains, have been
found.
With respect to the terrestrial productions which lived during
the Secondary and Palaeozoic periods, it is superfluous to state
that our evidence is fragmentary in an extreme degree. For instance,
until recently not a land-shell was known belonging to either of
these vast periods, with the exception of one species discovered
by Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Dawson in the carboniferous strata of North
America; but now land-shells have been found in the lias. In regard
to mammiferous remains, a glance at the historical table published
in Lyell's Manual will bring home the truth, how accidental and
rare is their preservation, far better than pages of detail. Nor
is their rarity surprising, when we remember how large a proportion
of the bones of tertiary mammals have been discovered either in
caves or in lacustrine deposits; and that not a cave or true lacustrine
bed is known belonging to the age of our secondary or palaeozoic
formations.
But the imperfection in the geological record largely results
from another and more important cause than any of the foregoing;
namely, from the several formations being separated from each other
by wide intervals of time. This doctrine has been emphatically admitted
by many geologists and palaeontologists, who, like E. Forbes, entirely
disbelieve in the change of species. When we see the formations
tabulated in written works, or when we follow them in nature, it
is difficult to avoid believing that they are closely consecutive.
But we know, for instance, from Sir R. Murchison's great work on
Russia, what wide gaps there are in that country between the superimposed
formations; so it is in North America, and in many other parts of
the world. The most skilful geologist if his attention had been
confined exclusively to these large territories, would never have
suspected that, during the periods which were blank and barren in
his own country, great piles of sediment, charged with new and peculiar
forms of life, had elsewhere been accumulated. And if, in each separate
territory, hardly any idea can be formed of the length of time which
has elapsed between the consecutive formations, we may infer that
this could nowhere be ascertained. The frequent and great changes
in the mineralogical composition of consecutive formations, generally
implying great changes in the geography of the surrounding lands,
whence the sediment was derived, accord with the belief of vast
intervals of time having elapsed between each formation.
We can, I think, see why the geological formations of each region
are almost invariably intermittent; that is, have not followed each
other in close sequence. Scarcely any fact struck me more when examining
many hundred miles of the South American coasts, which have been
upraised several hundred feet within the recent period, than the
absence of any recent deposits sufficiently extensive to last for
even a short geological period. Along the whole west coast, which
is inhabited by a peculiar marine fauna, tertiary beds are so poorly
developed, that no record of several successive and peculiar marine
faunas will probably be preserved to a distant age. A little reflection
will explain why, along the rising coast of the western side of
South America, no extensive formations with recent or tertiary remains
can anywhere be found, though the supply of sediment must for ages
have been great, from the enormous degradation of the coast-rocks
and from muddy streams entering the sea. The explanation, no doubt,
is, that the littoral and sub-littoral deposits are continually
worn away, as soon as they are brought up by the slow and gradual
rising of the land within the grinding action of the coast-waves.
We may, I think, conclude that sediment must be accumulated in
extremely thick, solid, or extensive masses, in order to withstand
the incessant action of the waves, when first upraised and during
successive oscillations of level as well as the subsequent subaerial
degradation. Such thick and extensive accumulations of sediment
may be formed in two ways; either in profound depths of the sea,
in which case the bottom will not be inhabited by so many and such
varied forms of life, as the more shallow seas; and the mass when
upraised will give an imperfect record of the organisms which existed
in the neighbourhood during the period of its accumulation. Or,
sediment may be deposited to any thickness and extent over a shallow
bottom, if it continue slowly to subside. In this latter case, as
long as the rate of subsidence and the supply of sediment nearly
balance each other, the sea will remain shallow and favourable for
many and varied forms, and thus a rich fossiliferous formation,
thick enough, when upraised, to resist a large amount of denudation,
may be formed.
I am convinced that nearly all our ancient formations, which are
throughout the greater part of their thickness rich in fossils,
have thus been formed during subsidence. Since publishing my views
on this subject in 1845, I have watched the progress of geology,
and have been surprised to note how author after author, in treating
of this or that great formation, has come to the conclusion that
it was accumulated during subsidence. I may add, that the only ancient
tertiary formation on the west coast of South America, which has
been bulky enough to resist such degradation as it has yet suffered,
but which will hardly last to a distant geological age, was deposited
during a downward oscillation of level, and thus gained considerable
thickness.
All geological facts tell us plainly that each area has undergone
slow oscillations of level, and apparently these oscillations have
affected wide spaces. Consequently, formations rich in fossils and
sufficiently thick and extensive to resist subsequent degradation,
will have been formed over wide spaces during periods of subsidence,
but only where the supply of sediment was sufficient to keep the
sea shallow and to embed and preserve the remains before they had
time to decay. On the other hand, as long as the bed of the sea
remains stationary, thick deposits cannot have been accumulated
in the shallow parts, which are the most favourable to life. Still
less can this have happened during the alternate periods of elevation;
or, to speak more accurately, the beds which were then accumulated
will generally have been destroyed by being upraised and brought
within the limits of the coast-action.
These remarks apply chiefly to littoral and sub-littoral deposits.
In the case of an extensive and shallow sea, such as that within
a large part of the Malay Archipelago, where the depth varies from
30 or 40 to 60 fathoms, a widely extended formation might be formed
during a period of elevation, and yet not suffer excessively from
denudation during its slow upheaval; but the thickness of the formation
could not be great, for owing to the elevatory movement it would
be less than the depth in which it was formed; nor would the deposit
be much consolidated, nor be capped by overlying formations, so
that it would run a good chance of being worn away by atmospheric
degradation and by the action of the sea during subsequent oscillations
of level. It has, however, been suggested by Mr. Hopkins, that if
one part of the area, after rising and before being denuded, subsided,
the deposit formed during the rising movement, though not thick,
might afterwards become protected by fresh accumulations, and thus
be preserved for a long period.
Mr. Hopkins also expresses his belief that sedimentary beds of
considerable horizontal extent have rarely been completely destroyed.
But all geologists, excepting the few who believe that our present
metamorphic schists and plutonic rocks once formed the primordial
nucleus of the globe, will admit that these latter rocks have been
stript of their coverings to an enormous extent. For it is scarcely
possible that such rocks could have been solidified and crystallized
whilst uncovered; but if the metamorphic action occurred at profound
depths of the ocean, the former protecting mantle of rock may not
have been very thick. Admitting then that gneiss, mica-schist, granite,
diorite, &c, were once necessarily covered up, how can we account
for the naked and extensive areas of such rocks in many parts of
the world, except on the belief that they have subsequently been
completely denuded of all overlying strata? That such extensive
areas do exist cannot be doubted: the granitic region of Parime
is described by Humboldt as being as least nineteen times as large
as Switzerland. South of the Amazon, Boue colours an area composed
of rocks of this nature as equal to that of Spain, France, Italy,
part of Germany, and the British Islands, all conjoined. This region
has not been carefully explored, but from the concurrent testimony
of travellers, the granitic area is very large: thus, von Eschwege
gives a detailed section of these rocks, stretching from Rio de
Janeiro for 260 geographical miles inland in a straight line; and
I travelled for 150 miles in another direction, and saw nothing
but granitic rocks. Numerous specimens, collected along the whole
coast from near Rio de Janeiro to the mouth of the Plata, a distance
of 1100 geographical miles, were examined by me, and they all belonged
to this class. Inland, along the whole northern bank of the Plata
I saw, besides modern tertiary beds, only one small patch of slightly
metamorphosed rock, which alone could have formed a part of the
original capping of the granitic series. Turning to a well-known
region, namely, to the United States and Canada, as shown in Professor
H. D. Rogers's beautiful map, I have estimated the areas by cutting
out and weighing the paper, and I find that the metamorphic (excluding
"the semi-metamorphic") and granitic rocks exceed, in the proportion
of 19 to 12.5, the whole of the newer Palaeozoic formations. In
many regions the metamorphic and granitic rocks would be found much
more widely extended than they appear to be, if all the sedimentary
beds were removed which rest unconformably on them, and which could
not have formed part of the original mantle under which they were
crystallized. Hence it is probable that in some parts of the world
whole formations have been completely denuded, with not a wreck
left behind.
One remark is here worth a passing notice. During periods of elevation
the area of the land and of the adjoining shoal parts of the sea
will be increased, and new stations will often be formed:- all circumstances
favourable, as previously explained, for the formation of new varieties
and species; but during such periods there will generally be a blank
in the geological record. On the other hand, during subsidence,
the inhabited area and number of inhabitants will decrease (excepting
on the shores of a continent when first broken up into an archipelago),
and consequently during subsidence, though there will be much extinction,
few new varieties or species will be formed; and it is during these
very periods of subsidence, that the deposits which are richest
in fossils have been accumulated.

From these several considerations, it cannot be doubted that the
geological record, viewed as a whole, is extremely imperfect; but
if we confine our attention to any one formation, it becomes much
more difficult to understand why we do not therein find closely
graduated varieties between the allied species which lived at its
commencement and at its close. Several cases are on record of the
same species presenting varieties in the upper and lower parts of
the same formation; thus, Trautschold gives a number of instances
with ammonites; and Hilgendorf has described a most curious case
of ten graduated forms of Planorbis multiformis in the successive
beds of a fresh-water formation in Switzerland. Although each formation
has indisputably required a vast number of years for its deposition,
several reasons can be given why each should not commonly include
a graduated series of links between the species which lived at its
commencement and close; but I cannot assign due proportional weight
to the following considerations.
Although each formation may mark a very long lapse of years, each
probably is short compared with the period requisite to change one
species into another. I am aware that two palaeontologists, whose
opinions are worthy of much deference, namely Bronn and Woodward,
have concluded that the average duration of each formation is twice
or thrice as long as the average duration of specific forms. But
insuperable difficulties, as it seems to me, prevent us from coming
to any just conclusion on this head. When we see a species first
appearing in the middle of any formation, it would be rash in the
extreme to infer that it had not elsewhere previously existed. So
again when we find a species disappearing before the last layers
have been deposited, it would be equally rash to suppose that it
then became extinct. We forget how small the area of Europe is compared
with the rest of the world; nor have the several stages of the same
formation throughout Europe been correlated with perfect accuracy.
We may safely infer that with marine animals of all kinds there
has been a large amount of migration due to climatal and other changes;
and when we see a species first appearing in any formation, the
probability is that it only then first immigrated into that area.
It is well known, for instance, that several species appear somewhat
earlier in the palaeozoic beds of North America than in those of
Europe; time having apparently been required for their migration
from the American to the European seas. In examining the latest
deposits in various quarters of the world, it has everywhere been
noted, that some few still existing species are common in the deposit,
but have become extinct in the immediately surrounding sea; or,
conversely that some are now abundant in the neighbouring sea, but
are rare or absent in this particular deposit. It is an excellent
lesson to reflect on the ascertained amount of migration of the
inhabitants of Europe during the glacial epoch, which forms only
a part of one whole geological period; and likewise to reflect on
the changes of level, on the extreme change of climate, and on the
great lapse of time, all included within this same glacial period.
Yet it may be doubted whether, in any quarter of the world, sedimentary
deposits, including fossil remains, have gone on accumulating within
the same area during the whole of this period. It is not, for instance,
probable that sediment was deposited during the whole of the glacial
period near the mouth of the Mississippi, within that limit of depth
at which marine animals can best flourish: for we know that great
geographical changes occurred in other parts of America during this
space of time. When such beds as were deposited in shallow water
near the mouth of the Mississippi during some part of the glacial
period shall have been upraised, organic remains will probably first
appear and disappear at different levels, owing to the migrations
of species and to geographical changes. And in the distant future,
a geologist, examining these beds, would be tempted to conclude
that the average duration of life of the embedded fossils had been
less than that of the glacial period, instead of having been really
far greater, that is, extending from before the glacial epoch to
the present day.
In order to get a perfect gradation between two forms in the upper
and lower parts of the same formation, the deposit must have gone
on continuously accumulating during a long period, sufficient for
the slow process of modification; hence the deposit must be a very
thick one; and the species, undergoing change must have lived in
the same district throughout the whole time. But we have seen that
a thick formation, fossiliferous throughout its entire thickness,
can accumulate only during a period of subsidence; and to keep the
depth approximately the same, which is necessary that the same marine
species may live on the same space, the supply of sediment must
nearly counterbalance the amount of subsidence. But this same movement
of subsidence will tend to submerge the area whence the sediment
is derived, and thus diminish the supply, whilst the downward movement
continues. In fact, this nearly exact balancing between the supply
of sediment and the amount of subsidence is probably a rare contingency;
for it has been observed by more than one palaeontologist, that
very thick deposits are usually barren of organic remains, except
near their upper or lower limits.
It would seem that each separate formation, like the whole pile
of formations in any country, has generally been intermittent in
its accumulation. When we see, as is so often the case, a formation
composed of beds of widely different mineralogical composition,
we may reasonably suspect that the process of deposition has been
more or less interrupted. Nor will the closest inspection of a formation
give us any idea of the length of time which its deposition may
have consumed. Many instances could be given of beds only a few
feet in thickness, representing formations, which are elsewhere
thousands of feet in thickness, and which must have required an
enormous period for their accumulation; yet no one ignorant of this
fact would have even suspected the vast lapse of time represented
by the thinner formation. Many cases could be given of the lower
beds of a formation having been upraised, denuded, submerged, and
then re-covered by the upper beds of the same formation,- facts,
showing what wide, yet easily overlooked, intervals have occurred
in its accumulation. In other cases we have the plainest evidence
in great fossilised trees, still standing upright as they grew,
of many long intervals of time and changes of level during the process
of deposition, which would not have been suspected, had not the
trees been preserved: thus Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Dawson found carboniferous
beds 1400 feet thick in Nova Scotia, with ancient root-bearing strata,
one above the other at no less than sixty-eight different levels.
Hence, when the same species occurs at the bottom, middle, and top
of a formation, the probability is that it has not lived on the
same spot during the whole period of deposition, but has disappeared
and reappeared, perhaps many times, during the same geological period.
Consequently if it were to undergo a considerable amount of modification
during the deposition of any one geological formation, a section
would not include all the fine intermediate gradations which must
on our theory have existed, but abrupt, though perhaps slight, changes
of form.
It is all-important to remember that naturalists have no golden
rule by which to distinguish species and varieties; they grant some
little variability to each species, but when they meet with a somewhat
greater amount of difference between any two forms, they rank both
as species, unless they are enabled to connect them together by
the closest intermediate gradations; and this, from the reasons
just assigned, we can seldom hope to effect in any one geological
section. Supposing B and C to be two species, and a third, A, to
be found in an older and underlying bed; even if A were strictly
intermediate between B and C, it would simply be ranked as a third
and distinct species, unless at the same time it could be closely
connected by intermediate varieties with either one or both forms.
Nor should it be forgotten, as before explained, that A might be
the actual progenitor of B and C, and yet would not necessarily
be strictly intermediate between them in all respects. So that we
might obtain the parent-species, and its several modified descendants
from the lower and upper beds of the same formation, and unless
we obtained numerous transitional gradations, we should not recognise
their blood-relationship, and should consequently rank them as distinct
species.
It is notorious on what excessively slight differences many palaeontologists
have founded their species; and they do this the more readily if
the specimens come from different substages of the same formation.
Some experienced conchologists are now sinking many of the very
fine species of D'Orbigny and others into the rank of varieties;
and on this view we do find the kind of evidence of change which
on the theory we ought to find. Look again at the later tertiary
deposits, which include many shells believed by the majority of
naturalists to be identical with existing species; but some excellent
naturalists as Agassiz and Pictet, maintain that all these tertiary
species are specifically distinct, though the distinction is admitted
to be very slight; so that here, unless we believe that these eminent
naturalists have been misled by their imaginations, and that these
late tertiary species really present no difference whatever from
their living. representatives, or unless we admit, in opposition
to the judgment of most naturalists, that these tertiary species
are all truly distinct from the recent, we have evidence of the
frequent occurrence of slight modifications of the kind required.
It we look to rather wider intervals of time, namely, to distinct
but consecutive stages of the same great formation, we find that
the embedded fossils, though universally ranked as specifically
different, yet are far more closely related to each other than are
the species found in more widely separated formations; so that here
again we have undoubted evidence of change in the direction required
by the theory; but to this latter subject I shall return in the
following chapter.
With animals and plants that propagate rapidly and do not wander
much, there is reason to suspect, as we have formerly seen, that
their varieties are generally at first local; and that such local
varieties do not spread widely and supplant their parent-forms until
they have been modified and perfected in some considerable degree.
According to this view, the chance of discovering in a formation
in any one country all the early stages of transition between any
two forms, is small, for the successive changes are supposed to
have been local or confined to some one spot. Most marine animals
have a wide range; and we have seen that with plants it is those
which have the widest range, that oftenest present varieties; so
that, with shells and other marine animals, it is probable that
those which had the widest range, far exceeding the limits of the
known geological formations in Europe, have oftenest given rise,
first to local varieties and ultimately to new species; and this
again would greatly lessen the chance of our being able trace the
stages of transition in any one geological formation.
It is a more important consideration, leading to the same result,
as lately insisted on by Dr. Falconer, namely, that the period during
which each species underwent modification, though long as measured
by years, was probably short in comparison with that during which
it remained without undergoing any change.
It should not be forgotten, that at the present day, with perfect
specimens for examination, two forms can seldom be connected by
intermediate varieties, and thus proved to be the same species,
until many specimens are collected from many places; and with fossil
species this can rarely be done. We shall, perhaps, best perceive
the improbability of our being enabled to connect species by numerous,
fine, intermediate, fossil links, by asking ourselves whether, for
instance, geologists at some future period will be able to prove
that our different breeds of cattle, sheep, horses, and dogs are
descended from a single stock or from several aboriginal stocks;
or, again, whether certain sea-shells inhabiting the shores of North
America, which are ranked by some conchologists as distinct species
from their European representatives, and by other conchologists
as only varieties, are really varieties, or are, as it is called,
specifically distinct. This could be effected by the future geologist
only by his discovering in a fossil state numerous intermediate
gradations; and such success is improbable in the highest degree.
It has been asserted over and over again, by writers who believe
in the immutability of species, that geology yields no linking forms.
This assertion, as we shall see in the next chapter, is certainly
erroneous. As Sir J. Lubbock has remarked, "Every species is a link
between other allied forms." If we take a genus having a score of
species, recent and extinct, and destroy four-fifths of them, no
one doubts that the remainder will stand much more distinct from
each other. If the extreme forms in the genus happen to have been
thus destroyed, the genus itself will stand more distinct from other
allied genera. What geological research has not revealed, is the
former existence of infinitely numerous gradations, as fine as existing
varieties, connecting together nearly all existing and extinct species.
But this ought not to be expected; yet this has been repeatedly
advanced as a most serious objection against my views.
It may be worth while to sum up the foregoing remarks on the causes
of the imperfection of the geological record under an imaginary
illustration. The Malay Archipelago is about the size of Europe
from the North Cape to the Mediterranean, and from Britain to Russia;
and therefore equals all the geological formations which have been
examined with any accuracy, excepting those of the United States
of America. I fully agree with Mr. Godwin-Austen, that the present
condition of the Malay Archipelago, with its numerous large islands
separated by wide and shallow seas, probably represents the former
state of Europe, whilst most of our formations were accumulating.
The Malay Archipelago is one of the richest regions in organic beings;
yet if all the species were to be collected which have ever lived
there, how imperfectly would they represent the natural history
of the world!
But we have every reason to believe that the terrestrial productions
of the archipelago would be preserved in an extremely imperfect
manner in the formations which we suppose to be there accumulating.
Not many of the strictly littoral animals, or of those which lived
on naked submarine rocks, would be embedded; and those embedded
in gravel or sand would not endure to a distant epoch. Wherever
sediment did not accumulate on the bed of the sea, or where it did
not accumulate at a sufficient rate to protect organic bodies from
decay, no remains could be preserved.
Formations rich in fossils of many kinds, and of thickness sufficient
to last to an age as distant in futurity as the secondary formations
lie in the past, would generally be formed in the archipelago only
during periods of subsidence. These periods of subsidence would
be separated from each other by immense intervals of time, during
which the area would be either stationary or rising; whilst rising,
the fossiliferous formations on the steeper shores would be destroyed,
almost as soon as accumulated, by the incessant coast-action, as
we now see on the shores of South America. Even throughout the extensive
and shallow seas within the archipelago, sedimentary beds could
hardly be accumulated of great thickness during the periods of elevation,
or become capped and protected by subsequent deposits, so as to
have a good chance of enduring to a very distant future. During
the periods of subsidence, there would probably be much extinction
of life; during the periods of elevation, there would be much variation,
but the geological record would then be less perfect.
It may be doubted whether the duration of any one great period
of subsidence over the whole or part of the archipelago, together
with a contemporaneous accumulation of sediment, would exceed the
average duration of the same specific forms; and these contingencies
are indispensable for the preservation of all the transitional gradations
between any two or more species. If such gradations were not all
fully preserved, transitional varieties would merely appear as so
many new, though closely allied species. It is also probable that
each great period of subsidence would be interrupted by oscillations
of level, and that slight climatal changes would intervene during
such lengthy periods; and in these cases the inhabitants of the
archipelago would migrate, and no closely consecutive record of
their modifications could be preserved in any one formation.
Very many of the marine inhabitants of the archipelago now range
thousands of miles beyond its confines; and analogy plainly leads
to the belief that it would be chiefly these far ranging species,
though only some of them, which would oftenest produce new varieties;
and the varieties would at first be local or confined to one place,
but if possessed of any decided advantage, or when further modified
and improved, they would slowly spread and supplant their parent-forms.
When such varieties returned to their ancient homes, as they would
differ from their former state in a nearly uniform, though perhaps
extremely slight degree, and as they would be found embedded in
slightly different sub-stages of the same formation, they would,
according to the principles followed by many palaeontologists, be
ranked as new and distinct species.
If then there be some degree of truth in these remarks, we have
no right to expect to find, in our geological formations, an infinite
number of those fine transitional forms which, on our theory, have
connected all the past and present species of the same group into
one long and branching chain of life. We ought only to look for
a few links, and such assuredly we do find- some more distantly,
some more closely, related to each other; and these links, let them
be ever so close, if found in different stages of the same formation,
would, by many palaeontologists, be ranked as distinct species.
But I do not pretend that I should ever have suspected how poor
was the record in the best preserved geological sections, had not
the absence of innumerable transitional links between the species
which lived at the commencement and close of each formation, pressed
so hardly on my theory.

The abrupt manner in which whole groups of species suddenly appear
in certain formations, has been urged by several palaeontologists-
for instance, by Agassiz, Pictet, and Sedgwick- as a fatal objection
to the belief in the transmutation of species. If numerous species,
belonging to the same genera or families, have really started into
life at once, the fact would be fatal to the theory of evolution
through natural selection. For the development by this means of
a group of forms, all of which are descended from some one progenitor,
must have been an extremely slow process; and the progenitors must
have lived long before their modified descendants. But we continually
overrate the perfection of the geological record, and falsely infer,
because certain genera or families have not been found beneath a
certain stage, that they did not exist before that stage. In all
cases positive palaeontological evidence may be implicitly trusted;
negative evidence is worthless, as experience has so often shown.
We continually forget how large the world is, compared with the
area over which our geological formations have been carefully examined;
we forget that groups of species may elsewhere have long existed,
and have slowly multiplied, before they invaded the ancient archipelagoes
of Europe and the United States. We do not make due allowance for
the intervals of time which have elapsed between our consecutive
formations,- longer perhaps in many cases than the time required
for the accumulation of each formation. These intervals will have
given time for the multiplication of species from some one parent-form:
and in the succeeding formation, such groups or species will appear
as if suddenly created.
I may here recall a remark formerly made, namely, that it might
require a long succession of ages to adapt an organism to some new
and peculiar line of life, for instance, to fly through the air;
and consequently that the transitional forms would often long remain
confined to some one region; but that, when this adaptation had
once been effected, and a few species had thus acquired a great
advantage over other organisms, a comparatively short time would
be necessary to produce many divergent forms, which would spread
rapidly and widely, throughout the world. Professor Pictet, in his
excellent review of this work, in commenting on early transitional
forms, and taking birds as an illustration, cannot see how the successive
modifications of the anterior limbs of a supposed prototype could
possibly have been of any advantage. But look at the penguins of
the Southern Ocean; have not these birds their front limbs in this
precise intermediate state of "neither true arms nor true wings"?
Yet these birds hold their place victoriously in the battle for
life; for they exist in infinite numbers and of many kinds. I do
not suppose that we here see the real transitional grades through
which the wings of birds have passed; but what special difficulty
is there in believing that it might profit the modified descendants
of the penguin, first to become enabled to flap along the surface
of the sea like the logger-headed duck, and ultimately to rise from
its surface and glide through the air?
I will now give a few examples to illustrate the foregoing remarks,
and to show how liable we are to error in supposing that whole groups
of species have suddenly been produced. Even in so short an interval
as that between the first and second editions of Pictet's great
work on Palaeontology, published in 1844-46 and in 1853-57, the
conclusions on the first appearance and disappearance of several
groups of animals have been considerably modified; and a third edition
would require still further changes. I may recall the well-known
fact that in geological treatises, published not many years ago,
mammals were always spoken of as having abruptly come in at the
commencement of the tertiary series. And now one of the richest
known accumulations of fossil mammals belongs to the middle of the
secondary series; and true mammals have been discovered in the new
red sandstone at nearly the commencement of this great series. Cuvier
used to urge that no monkey occurred in any tertiary stratum; but
now extinct species have been discovered in India, South America
and in Europe, as far back as the miocene stage. Had it not been
for the rare accident of the preservation of the footsteps in the
new red sandstone of the United States, who would have ventured
to suppose that no less than at least thirty different bird-like
animals, some of gigantic size, existed during that period? Not
a fragment of bone has been discovered in these beds. Not long ago,
palaeontologists maintained that the whole class of birds came suddenly
into existence during the eocene period; but now we know, on the
authority of Professor Owen, that a bird certainly lived during
the deposition of the upper greensand; and still more recently,
that strange bird, the Archeopteryx, with a long lizard-like tail,
bearing a pair of feathers on each joint, and with its wings furnished
with two free claws, has been discovered in the oolitic slates of
Solenhofen. Hardly any recent discovery shows more forcibly than
this, how little we as yet know of the former inhabitants of the
world.
I may give another instance, which, from having passed under my
own eyes, has much struck me. In a memoir On Fossil Sessile Cirripedes,
I stated that, from the large number of existing and extinct tertiary
species; from the extraordinary abundance of the individuals of
many species all over the world, from the Arctic regions to the
equator, inhabiting various zones of depths from the upper tidal
limits to 50 fathoms; from the perfect manner in which specimens
are preserved in the oldest tertiary beds; from the ease with which
even a fragment of a valve can be recognised; from all these circumstances,
I inferred that, had sessile cirripedes existed during the secondary
periods, they would certainly have been preserved and discovered;
and as not one species had then been discovered in beds of this
age, I concluded that this great group had been suddenly developed
at the commencement of the tertiary series. This was a sore trouble
to me, adding as I then thought one more instance of the abrupt
appearance of a great group of species. But my work had hardly been
published, when a skilful palaeontologist, M. Bosquet, sent me a
drawing of a perfect specimen of an unmistakable sessile cirripede,
which he had himself extracted from the chalk of Belgium. And, as
if to make the case as striking as possible, this cirripede was
a Chthamalus, a very common, large, and ubiquitous genus, of which
not one species has as yet been found even in any tertiary stratum.
Still more recently, a Pyrgoma, a member of a distinct subfamily
of sessile cirripedes, has been discovered by Mr. Woodward in the
upper chalk; so that we now have abundant evidence of the existence
of this group of animals during the secondary period.
The case most frequently insisted on by palaeontologists of the
apparently sudden appearance of a whole group of species, is that
of the teleostean fishes, low down, according to Agassiz, in the
Chalk period. This group includes the large majority of existing
species. But certain Jurassic and Triassic forms are now commonly
admitted to be teleostean; and even some palaeozoic forms have thus
been classed by one high authority. If the teleosteans had really
appeared suddenly in the northern hemisphere at the commencement
of the chalk formation the fact would have been highly remarkable;
but it would not have formed an insuperable difficulty, unless it
could likewise have been shown that at the same period the species
were suddenly and simultaneously developed in other quarters of
the world. It is almost superfluous to remark that hardly any fossil-fish
are known from south of the equator; and by running through Pictet's
Palaeontology it will be seen that very few species are known from
several formations in Europe. Some few families of fish now have
a confined range; the teleostean fishes might formerly have had
a similarly confined range, and after having been largely developed
in some one sea, have spread widely. Nor have we any right to suppose
that the seas of the world have always been so freely open from
south to north as they are at present. Even at this day, if the
Malay Archipelago were converted into land, the tropical parts of
the Indian Ocean would form a large and perfectly enclosed basin,
in which any great group of marine animals might be multiplied:
and here they would remain confined, until some of the species became
adapted to a cooler climate, and were enabled to double the Southern
capes of Africa or Australia, and thus reach other and distant seas.
From these considerations, from our ignorance of the geology of
other countries beyond the confines of Europe and the United States,
and from the revolution in our palaeontological knowledge effected
by the discoveries of the last dozen years, it seems to me to be
about as rash to dogmatize on the succession of organic forms throughout
the world, as it would be for a naturalist to land for five minutes
on a barren point in Australia, and then to discuss the number and
range of its productions.

There is another and allied difficulty, which is much more serious.
I allude to the manner in which species belonging to several of
the main divisions of the animal kingdom suddenly appear in the
lowest known fossiliferous rocks. Most of the arguments which have
convinced me that all the existing species of the same group are
descended from a single progenitor, apply with equal force to the
earliest known species. For instance, it cannot be doubted that
all the Cambrian and Silurian trilobites are descended from some
one crustacean, which must have lived long before the Cambrian age,
and which probably differed greatly from any known animal. Some
of the most ancient animals, as the Nautilus, Lingula, &c.,
do not differ much from living species; and it cannot on our theory
be supposed, that these old species were the progenitors of all
the species belonging to the same groups which have subsequently
appeared, for they are not in any degree intermediate in character.
Consequently, if the theory be true, it is indisputable that before
the lowest Cambrian stratum was deposited, long periods elapsed,
as long as, or probably far longer than, the whole interval from
the Cambrian age to the present day; and that during these vast
periods the world swarmed with living creatures. Here we encounter
a formidable objection; for it seems doubtful whether the earth,
in a fit state for the habitation of living creatures, has lasted
long enough. Sir W. Thompson concludes that the consolidation of
the crust can hardly have occurred less than 20 or more than 400
million years ago, but probably not less than 98 or more than 200
million years. These very wide limits show how doubtful the data
are; and other elements may have hereafter to be introduced into
the problem. Mr. Croll estimates that about 60 million years have
elapsed since the Cambrian period, but this, judging from the small
amount of organic change since the commencement of the Glacial epoch,
appears a very short time for the many and great mutations of life,
which have certainly occurred since the Cambrian formation; and
the previous 140 million years can hardly be considered as sufficient
for the development of the varied forms of life which already existed
during the Cambrian period. It is, however, probable, as Sir William
Thompson insists, that the world at a very early period was subjected
to more rapid and violent changes in its physical conditions than
those now occurring; and such changes would have tended to induce
changes at a corresponding rate in the organisms which then existed.
To the question why we do not find rich fossiliferous deposits
belonging to these assumed earliest periods prior to the Cambrian
system, I can give no satisfactory answer. Several eminent geologists,
with Sir R. Murchison at their head, were until recently convinced
that we beheld in the organic remains of the lowest Silurian stratum
the first dawn of life. Other highly competent judges, as Lyell
and E. Forbes, have disputed this conclusion. We should not forget
that only a small portion of the world is known with accuracy. Not
very long ago M. Barrande added another and lower stage, abounding
with new and peculiar species, beneath the then known Silurian system;
and now, still lower down in the Lower Cambrian formation, Mr. Hicks
has found in South Wales beds rich in trilobites, and containing
various molluscs and annelids. The presence of phosphatic nodules
and bituminous matter, even in some of the lowest azoic rocks, probably
indicates life at these periods; and the existence of the Eozoon
in the Laurentian formation of Canada is generally admitted. There
are three great series of strata beneath the Silurian system in
Canada, in the lowest of which the Eozoon is found. Sir W. Logan
states that their "united thickness may possibly far surpass that
of all the succeeding rocks, from the base of the palaeozoic series
to the present time. We are thus carried back to a period so remote,
that the appearance of the so-called primordial fauna (of Barrande)
may by some be considered as a comparatively modern event." The
Eozoon belongs to the most lowly organised, of all classes of animals,
but is highly organised for its class; it existed in countless numbers,
and, as Dr. Dawson has remarked, certainly preyed on other minute
organic beings, which must have lived in great numbers. Thus the
words, which I wrote in 1859, about the existence of living beings
long before the Cambrian period, and which are almost the same with
those since used by Sir W. Logan, have proved true. Nevertheless,
the difficulty of assigning any good reason for the absence of vast
piles of strata rich in fossils beneath the Cambrian system is very
great. It does not seem probable that the most ancient beds have
been quite worn away by denudation, or that their fossils have been
wholly obliterated by metamorphic action, for if this had been the
case we should have found only small remnants of the formations
next succeeding them in age, and these would always have existed
in partially metamorphosed condition. But the descriptions which
we possess of the Silurian deposits over immense territories in
Russia and in North America, do not support the view, that the older
a formation is, the more invariably it has suffered extreme denudation
and metamorphism.
The case at present must remain inexplicable; and may be truly
urged as a valid argument against the views here entertained. To
show that it may hereafter receive some explanation, I will give
the following hypothesis. From the nature of the organic remains
which do not appear to have inhabited profound depths, in the several
formations of Europe and of the United States; and from the amount
of sediment, miles in thickness, of which the formations are composed,
we may infer that from first to last large islands or tracts of
land, whence the sediment was derived, occurred in the neighbourhood
of the now existing continents of Europe and North America. This
same view has since been maintained by Agassiz and others. But we
do not know what was the state of things in the intervals between
the several successive formations; whether Europe and the United
States during these intervals existed as dry land, or as a submarine
surface near land, on which sediment was not deposited, or as the
bed of an open and unfathomable sea.
Looking to the existing oceans, which are thrice as extensive as
the land, we see them studded with many islands; but hardly one
truly oceanic island (with the exception of New Zealand, if this
can be called a truly oceanic island) is as yet known to afford
even a remnant of any palaeozoic or secondary formation. Hence we
may perhaps infer, that during the palaeozoic and secondary periods,
neither continents nor continental islands existed where our oceans
now extend; for had they existed, palaeozoic and secondary formations
would in all probability have been accumulated from sediment derived
from their wear and tear; and these would have been at least partially
upheaved by the oscillations of level, which must have intervened
during these enormously long periods. If then we may infer anything
from these facts, we may infer that, where our oceans now extend,
oceans have extended from the remotest period of which we have any
record; and on the other hand, that where continents now exist,
large tracts of land have existed, subjected no doubt to great oscillations
of level, since the Cambrian period. The coloured map appended to
my volume on coral reefs, led me to conclude that the great oceans
are still mainly areas of subsidence, the great archipelagoes still
areas of oscillations of level, and the continents areas of elevation.
But we have no reason to assume that things have thus remained from
the beginning of the world. Our continents seem to have been formed
by a preponderance, during many oscillations of level, of the force
of elevation; but may not the areas of preponderant movement have
changed in the lapse of ages? At a period long antecedent to the
Cambrian epoch, continents may have existed where oceans are now
spread out; and clear and open oceans may have existed where our
continents now stand. Nor should we be justified in assuming that
if, for instance, the bed of the Pacific Ocean were now converted
into a continent we should there find sedimentary formations in
a recognisable condition older than the Cambrian strata, supposing
such to have been formerly deposited; for it might well happen that
strata which had subsided some miles nearer to the centre of the
earth, and which had been pressed on by an enormous weight of super-incumbent
water, might have undergone far more metamorphic action than strata
which have always remained nearer to the surface. The immense areas
in some parts of the world, for instance in South America, of naked
metamorphic rocks, which must have been heated under great pressure,
have always seemed to me to require some special explanation; and
we may perhaps believe that we see in these large areas, the many
formations long anterior to the Cambrian epoch in a completely metamorphosed
and denuded condition.
The several difficulties here discussed, namely- that, though we
find in our geological formations many links between the species
which now exist and which formerly existed, we do not find infinitely
numerous fine transitional forms closely joining them all together;-
the sudden manner in which several groups of species first appear
in our European formations;- the almost entire absence, as at present
known, of formations rich in fossils beneath the Cambrian strata,-
are all undoubtedly of the most serious nature. We see this in the
fact that the most eminent palaeontologists, namely Cuvier, Agassiz,
Barrande, Pictet, Falconer, E. Forbes, &c., and all our greatest
geologists, as Lyell, Murchison, Sedgwick, &c., have unanimously,
often vehemently, maintained the immutability of species. But Sir
Charles Lyell now gives the support of his high authority to the
opposite side; and most geologists and palaeontologists are much
shaken in their former belief. Those who believe that the geological
record is in any degree perfect, will undoubtedly at once reject
the theory. For my part, following out Lyell's metaphor, I look
at the geological record as a history of the world imperfectly kept,
and written in a changing dialect; of this history we possess the
last volume alone, relating only to two or three countries. Of this
volume, only here and there a short chapter has been preserved;
and of each page, only here and there a few lines. Each word of
the slowly-changing language, more or less different in the successive
chapters, may represent the forms of life, which are entombed in
our consecutive formations, and which falsely appear to have been
abruptly introduced. On this view, the difficulties above discussed
are greatly diminished, or even disappear.
LET us now see whether the several facts and laws relating to the
geological succession of organic beings accord best with the common
view of the immutability of species, or with that of their slow
and gradual modification, through variation and natural selection.
New species have appeared very slowly, one after another, both
on the land and in the waters. Lyell has shown that it is hardly
possible to resist the evidence on this head in the case of the
several tertiary stages; and every year tends to fill up the blanks
between the stages, and to make the proportion between the lost
and existing forms more gradual. In some of the most recent beds,
though undoubtedly of high antiquity if measured by years, only
one or two species are extinct, and only one or two are new, having
appeared there for the first time, either locally, or, as far as
we know, on the face of the earth. The secondary formations are
more broken; but, as Bronn has remarked, neither the appearance
nor disappearance of the many species embedded in each formation
has been simultaneous.
Species belonging to different genera and classes have not changed
at the same rate, or in the same degree. In the older tertiary beds
a few living shells may still be found in the midst of a multitude
of extinct forms. Falconer has given a striking instance of a similar
fact, for an existing crocodile is associated with many lost mammals
and reptiles in the sub-Himalayan deposits. The Silurian Lingula
differs but little from the living species of this genus; whereas
most of the other Silurian molluscs and all the crustaceans have
changed greatly. The productions of the land seem to have changed
at a quicker rate than those of the sea, of which a striking instance
has been observed in Switzerland. There is some reason to believe
that organisms high in the scale, change more quickly than those
that are low: though there are exceptions to this rule. The amount
of organic change, as Pictet has remarked, is not the same in each
successive so-called formation. Yet if we compare any but the most
closely related formations, all the species will be found to have
undergone some change. When a species has once disappeared from
the lace of the earth, we have no reason to believe that the same
identical form ever reappears. The strongest apparent exception
to this latter rule is that of the so-called "colonies" of M. Barrande,
which intrude for a period in the midst of an older formation, and
then allow the pre-existing fauna to reappear; but Lyell's explanation,
namely, that it is a case of temporary migration from a distinct
geographical province, seems satisfactory.
These several facts accord well with our theory, which includes
no fixed law of development, causing all the inhabitants of an area
to change abruptly, or simultaneously, or to an equal degree. The
process of modification must be slow, and will generally affect
only a few species at the same time; for the variability of each
species is independent of that of all others. Whether such variations
or individual differences as may arise will be accumulated through
natural selection in a greater or less degree, thus causing a greater
or less amount of permanent modification, will depend on many complex
contingencies- on the variations being of a beneficial nature, on
the freedom of intercrossing, on the slowly changing physical conditions
of the country, on the immigration of new colonists, and on the
nature of the other inhabitants with which the varying species come
into competition. Hence it is by no means surprising that one species
should retain the same identical form much longer than others; or,
if changing, should change in a less degree. We find similar relations
between the existing inhabitants of distinct countries; for instance,
the land-shells and coleopterous insects of Madeira have come to
differ considerably from their nearest allies on the continent of
Europe, whereas the marine shells and birds have remained unaltered.
We can perhaps understand the apparently quicker rate of change
in terrestrial and in more highly organised productions compared
with marine and lower productions, by the more complex relations
of the higher beings to their organic and inorganic conditions of
life, as explained in a former chapter. When many of the inhabitants
of any area have become modified and improved, we can understand,
on the principle of competition, and from the all-important relations
of organism to organism in the struggle for life, that any form
which did not become in some degree modified and improved, would
be liable to extermination. Hence we see why all the species in
the same region do at last, if we look to long enough intervals
of time, become modified, for otherwise they would become extinct.
In members of the same class the average amount of change, during
long and equal periods of time, may, perhaps, be nearly the same;
but as the accumulation of enduring formations, rich in fossils,
depends on great masses of sediment being deposited on subsiding
areas, our formations have been almost necessarily accumulated at
wide and irregularly intermittent intervals of time; consequently
the amount of organic change exhibited by the fossils embedded in
consecutive formations is not equal. Each formation, on this view,
does not mark a new and complete act of creation, but only an occasional
scene, taken almost at hazard, in an ever slowly changing drama.
We can clearly understand why a species when once lost should never
reappear, even if the very same conditions of life, organic and
inorganic, should recur. For though the offspring of one species
might be adapted (and no doubt this has occurred in innumerable
instances) to fill the place of another species in the economy of
nature, and thus supplant it; yet the two forms- the old and the
new- would not be identically the same; for both would almost certainly
inherit different characters from their distinct progenitors; and
organisms already differing would vary in a different manner. For
instance, it is possible, if all our fantail pigeons were destroyed,
that fanciers might make a new breed hardly distinguishable from
the present breed; but if the parent rock-pigeon were likewise destroyed,
and under nature we have every reason to believe that parent-forms
are generally supplanted and exterminated by their improved off
spring, it is incredible that a fantail, identical with the existing
breed, could be raised from any other species of pigeon, or even
from any other well-established race of the domestic pigeon, for
the successive variations would almost certainly be in some degree
different, and the newly-formed variety would probably inherit from
its progenitor some characteristic differences.
Groups of species, that is, genera and families, follow the same
general rules in their appearance and disappearance as do single
species, changing more or less quickly, and in a greater or lesser
degree. A group, when it has once disappeared, never reappears;
that is, its existence, as long as it lasts, is continuous. I am
aware that there are some apparent exceptions to this rule, but
the exceptions are surprisingly few, so few that E. Forbes, Pictet,
and Woodward (though all strongly opposed to such views as I maintain)
admit its truth; and the rule strictly accords with the theory.
For all the species of the same group, however long it may have
lasted, are the modified descendants one from the other, and all
from a common progenitor. In the genus Lingula, for instance, the
species which have successively appeared at all ages must have been
connected by an unbroken series of generations, from the lowest
Silurian stratum to the present day.
We have seen in the last chapter that whole groups of species sometimes
falsely appear to have been abruptly developed; and I have attempted
to give an explanation of this fact, which if true would be fatal
to my views. But such cases are certainly exceptional; the general
rule being a gradual increase in number, until the group reaches
its maximum, and then, sooner or later, a gradual decrease. If the
number of the species included within a genus, or the number of
the genera within a family, be represented by a vertical line of
varying thickness, ascending through the successive geological formations,
in which the species are found, the line will sometimes falsely
appear to begin at its lower end, not in a sharp point, but abruptly;
it then gradually thickens upwards, often keeping of equal thickness
for a space, and ultimately thins out in the upper beds, marking
the decrease and final extinction of the species. This gradual increase
in number of the species of a group is strictly conformable with
the theory, for the species of the same genus, and the genera of
the same family, can increase only slowly and progressively; the
process of modification and the production of a number of allied
forms necessarily being a slow and gradual process,- one species
first giving rise to two or three varieties, these being slowly
converted into species, which in their turn produce by equally slow
steps other varieties and species, and so on, like the branching
of a great tree from a single stem, till the group becomes large.

We have as yet only spoken incidentally of the disappearance of
species and of groups of species. On the theory of natural selection,
the extinction of old forms and the production of new and improved
forms are intimately connected together. The old notion of all the
inhabitants of the earth having been swept away by catastrophes
at successive periods is very generally given up, even by those
geologists, as Elie de Beaumont, Murchison, Barrande, &c., whose
general views would naturally lead them to this conclusion. On the
contrary, we have every reason to believe, from the study of the
tertiary formations, that species and groups of species gradually
disappear, one after another, first from one spot, then from another,
and finally from the world. In some few cases however, as by the
breaking of an isthmus and the consequent irruption of a multitude
of new inhabitants into an adjoining sea, or by the final subsidence
of an island, the process of extinction may have been rapid. Both
single species and whole groups of species last for very unequal
periods; some groups, as we have seen, have endured from the earliest
known dawn of life to the present day; some have disappeared before
the close of the palaeozoic period. No fixed law seems to determine
the length of time during which any single species or any single
genus endures. There is reason to believe that the extinction of
a whole group of species is generally a slower process than their
production: if their appearance and disappearance be represented,
as before, by a vertical line of varying thickness the line is found
to taper more gradually at its upper end, which marks the progress
of extermination, than at its lower end, which marks the first appearance
and the early increase in number of the species. In some cases,
however, the extermination of whole groups, as of ammonites, towards
the close of the secondary period, has been wonderfully sudden.
The extinction of species has been involved in the most gratuitous
mystery. Some authors have even supposed that, as the individual
has a definite length of life, so have species a definite duration.
No one can have marvelled more than I have done at the extinction
of species. When I found in La Plata the tooth of a horse embedded
with the remains of Mastodon, Megatherium, Toxodon, and other extinct
monsters, which all co-existed with still living shells at a very
late geological period, I was filled with astonishment; for, seeing
that the horse, since its introduction by the Spaniards into South
America, has run wild over the whole country and has increased in
numbers at an unparalleled rate, I asked myself what could so recently
have exterminated the former horse under conditions of life apparently
so favourable. But my astonishment was groundless. Professor Owen
soon perceived that the tooth, though so like that of the existing
horse, belonged to an extinct species. Had this horse been still
living, but in some degree rare, no naturalist would have felt the
least surprise at its rarity; for rarity is the attribute of a vast
number of species of all classes, in all countries. If we ask ourselves
why this or that species is rare, we answer that something is unfavourable
in its conditions of life; but what that something is we can hardly
ever tell. On the supposition of the fossil horse still existing
as a rare species, we might have felt certain, from the analogy
of all other mammals, even of the slow-breeding elephant, and from
the history of the naturalisation of the domestic horse in South
America, that under more favourable conditions it would in a very
few years have stocked the whole continent. But we could not have
told what the unfavourable conditions were which checked its increase,
whether some one or several contingencies, and at what period of
the horse's life, and in what degree they severally acted. If the
conditions had gone on, however slowly, becoming less and less favourable,
we assuredly should not have perceived the fact, yet the fossil
horse would certainly have become rarer and rarer, and finally extinct;-
its place being seized on by some more successful competitor.
It is most difficult always to remember that the increase of every
creature is constantly being checked by unperceived hostile agencies;
and that these same unperceived agencies are amply sufficient to
cause rarity, and finally extinction. So little is this subject
understood, that I have heard surprise repeatedly expressed at such
great monsters as the Mastodon and the more ancient dinosaurians
having become extinct; as if mere bodily strength gave victory in
the battle of life. Mere size, on the contrary, would in some cases
determine, as has been remarked by Owen, quicker extermination from
the greater amount of requisite food. Before man inhabited India
or Africa, some cause must have checked the continued increase of
the existing elephant. A highly capable judge, Dr. Falconer, believes
that it is chiefly insects which, from incessantly harassing and
weakening the elephant in India, check its increase; and this was
Bruce's conclusion with respect to the African elephant in Abyssinia.
It is certain that insects and bloodsucking bats determine the existence
of the larger naturalized quadrupeds in several parts of S. America.
We see in many cases in the more recent tertiary formations, that
rarity precedes extinction; and we know that this has been the progress
of events with those animals which have been exterminated, either
locally or wholly, through man's agency. I may repeat what I published
in 1845, namely, that to admit that species generally become rare
before they become extinct- to feel no surprise at the rarity of
a species, and yet to marvel greatly when the species ceases to
exist, is much the same as to admit that sickness in the individual
is the forerunner of death- to feel no surprise at sickness, but,
when the sick man dies, to wonder and to suspect that he died by
some deed of violence.
The theory of natural selection is grounded on the belief that
each new variety and ultimately each new species, is produced and
maintained by having some advantage over those with which it comes
into competition; and the consequent extinction of the less-favoured
forms almost inevitably follows. It is the same with our domestic
productions; when a new and slightly improved variety has been raised,
it at first supplants the less improved varieties in the same neighbourhood;
when much improved it is transported far and near, like our short-horn
cattle, and takes the place of other breeds in other countries.
Thus the appearance of new forms and the disappearance of old forms,
both those naturally and those artificially produced, are bound
together. In flourishing groups, the number of new specific forms
which have been produced within a given time has at some periods
probably been greater than the number of the old specific forms
which have been exterminated; but we know that species have not
gone on indefinitely increasing, at least during the later geological
epochs, so that, looking to later times, we may believe that the
production of new forms has caused the extinction of about the same
number of old forms.
The competition will generally be most severe, as formerly explained
and illustrated by examples, between the forms which are most like
each other in all respects. Hence the improved and modified descendants
of a species will generally cause the extermination of the parent-species;
and if many new forms have been developed from any one species,
the nearest allies of that species, i.e. the species of the same
genus, will be the most liable to extermination. Thus, as I believe,
a number of new species descended from one species, that is a new
genus, comes to supplant an old genus, belonging to the same family.
But it must often have happened that a new species belonging to
some one group has seized on the place occupied by a species belonging
to a distinct group, and thus have caused its extermination. If
many allied forms be developed from the successful intruder, many
will have to yield their places; and it will generally be the allied
forms, which will suffer from some inherited inferiority in common.
But whether it be species belonging to the same or to a distinct
class, which have yielded their places to other modified and improved
species, a few of the sufferers may often be preserved for a long
time, from being fitted to some peculiar line of life, or from inhabiting
some distant and isolated station, where they will have escaped
severe competition. For instance, some species of Trigonia, a great
genus of shells in the secondary formations, survive in the Australian
seas; and a few members of the great and almost extinct group of
ganoid fishes still inhabit our fresh waters. Therefore the utter
extinction of a group is generally, as we have seen, a slower process
than its production.
With respect to the apparently sudden extermination of whole families
or orders, as of trilobites at the close of the palaeozoic period
and of ammonites at the close of the secondary period, we must remember
what has been already said on the probable wide intervals of time
between our consecutive formations; and in these intervals there
may have been much slow extermination. Moreover, when, by sudden
immigration or by unusually rapid development, many species of a
new group have taken possession of an area, many of the older species
will have been exterminated in a correspondingly rapid manner; and
the forms which thus yield their places will commonly be allied,
for they will partake of the same inferiority in common.
Thus, as it seems to me, the manner in which single species and
whole groups of species become extinct accords well with the theory
of natural selection. We need not marvel at extinction; if we must
marvel, let it be at our own presumption in imagining for a moment
that we understand the many complex contingencies on which the existence
of each species depends. If we forget for an instant that each species
tends to increase inordinately, and that some check is always in
action, yet seldom perceived by us, the whole economy of nature
will be utterly obscured. Whenever we can precisely say why this
species is more abundant in individuals than that; why this species
and not another can be naturalised in a given country; then, and
not until then, we may justly feel surprise why we cannot account
for the extinction of any particular species or group of species.

Scarcely any palaeontological discovery is more striking than the
fact that the forms of life change almost simultaneously throughout
the world. Thus our European Chalk formation can be recognised in
many distant regions, under the most different climates, where not
a fragment of the mineral chalk itself can be found; namely in North
America, in equatorial South America, in Tierra del Fuego, at the
Cape of Good Hope, and in the peninsula of India. For at these distant
points, the organic remains in certain beds present an unmistakable
resemblance to those of the Chalk. It is not that the same species
are met with; for in some cases not one species is identically the
same, but they belong to the same families, genera, and sections
of genera, and sometimes are similarly characterised in such trifling
points as mere superficial sculpture. Moreover, other forms, which
are not found in the Chalk of Europe, but which occur in the formations
either above or below, occur in the same order at these distant
points of the world. In the several successive palaeozoic formations
of Russia, Western Europe, and North America, a similar parallelism
in the forms of life has been observed by several authors; so it
is, according to Lyell, with the European and North American tertiary
deposits. Even if the few fossil species which are common to the
Old and New Worlds were kept wholly out of view, the general parallelism
in the successive forms of life, in the palaeozoic and tertiary
stages, would still be manifest, and the several formations could
be easily correlated.
These observations, however, relate to the marine inhabitants of
the world: we have not sufficient data to judge whether the productions
of the land and of fresh water at distant points change in the same
parallel manner. We may doubt whether they have thus changed: if
the Megatherium, Mylodon, Macrauchenia, and Toxodon had been brought
to Europe from La Plata, without any information in regard to their
geological position, no one would have suspected that they had co-existed
with seashells all still living; but as these anomalous monsters
co-existed with the mastodon and horse, it might at least have been
inferred that they had lived during one of the later tertiary stages.
When the marine forms of life are spoken of as having changed simultaneously
throughout the world, it must not be supposed that this expression
relates to the same year, or to the same century, or even that it
has a very strict geological sense; for if all the marine animals
now living in Europe, and all those that lived in Europe during
the pleistocene period (a very remote period as measured by years,
including the whole glacial epoch) were compared with those now
existing in South America or in Australia, the most skilful naturalist
would hardly be able to say whether the present or the pleistocene
inhabitants of Europe resembled most closely those of the southern
hemisphere. So, again, several highly competent observers maintain
that the existing productions of the United States are more closely
related to those which lived in Europe during certain late tertiary
stages, than to the present inhabitants of Europe; and if this be
so, it is evident that fossiliferous beds now deposited on the shores
of North America would hereafter be liable to be classed with somewhat
older European beds. Nevertheless, looking to a remotely future
epoch, there can be little doubt that all the more modern marine
formations, namely, the upper pliocene, the pleistocene and strictly
modern beds of Europe, North and South America, and Australia, from
containing fossil remains in some degree allied, and from not including
those forms which are found only in the older underlying deposits,
would be correctly ranked as simultaneous in a geological sense.
The fact of the forms of life changing simultaneously, in the above
large sense, at distant parts of the world, has greatly struck these
admirable observers, MM. de Verneuil and d'Archiae. After referring
to the parallelism of the palaeozoic forms of life in various parts
of Europe, they add, "If, struck by this strange sequence, we turn
our attention to North America, and there discover a series of analogous
phenomena, it will appear certain that all these modifications of
species, their extinction, and the introduction of new ones, cannot
be owing to mere changes in marine currents or other causes more
or less local and temporary, but depend on general laws which govern
the whole animal kingdom." M. Barrande has made forcible remarks
to precisely the same effect. It is, indeed, quite futile to look
to changes of currents, climate, or other physical conditions, as
the cause of these great mutations in the forms of life throughout
the world, under the most different climates. We must, as Barrande
has remarked, look to some special law. We shall see this more clearly
when we treat of the present distribution of organic beings, and
find how slight is the relation between the physical conditions
of various countries and the nature of their inhabitants.
This great fact of the parallel succession of the forms of life
throughout the world, is explicable on the theory of natural selection.
New species are formed by having some advantage over older forms;
and the forms, which are already dominant, or have some advantage
over the other forms in their own country, give birth to the greatest
number of new varieties or incipient species. We have distinct evidence
on this head, in the plants which are dominant, that is, which are
commonest and most widely diffused, producing the greatest number
of new varieties. It is also natural that the dominant, varying,
and far-spreading species, which have already invaded to a certain
extent the territories of other species, should be those which would
have the best chance of spreading still further, and of giving rise
in new countries to other new varieties and species. The process
of diffusion would often be very slow, depending on climatal and
geographical changes, on strange accidents, and on the gradual acclimatisation
of new species to the various climates through which they might
have to pass, but in the course of time the dominant forms would
generally succeed in spreading and would ultimately prevail. The
diffusion would, it is probable, be slower with the terrestrial
inhabitants of distinct continents than with the marine inhabitants
of the continuous sea. We might therefore expect to find, as we
do find, a less strict degree of parallelism in the succession of
the productions of the land than with those of the sea.
Thus, as it seems to me, the parallel, and, taken in a large sense,
simultaneous, succession of the same forms of life throughout the
world, accords well with the principle of new species having been
formed by dominant species spreading widely and varying; the new
species thus produced being themselves dominant, owing to their
having had some advantage over their already dominant parents, as
well as over other species, and again spreading, varying, and producing
new forms. The old forms which are beaten and which yield their
places to the new and victorious forms, will generally be allied
in groups, from inheriting some inferiority in common; and therefore,
as new and improved groups spread throughout the world, old groups
disappear from the world; and the succession of forms everywhere
tends to correspond both in their first appearance and final disappearance.
There is one other remark connected with this subject worth making.
I have given my reasons for believing that most of our great formations,
rich in fossils, were deposited during periods of subsidence; and
that blank intervals of vast duration, as far as fossils are concerned,
occurred during the periods when the bed of the sea was either stationary
or rising, and likewise when sediment was not thrown down quickly
enough to embed and preserve organic remains. During these long
and blank intervals I suppose that the inhabitants of each region
underwent a considerable amount of modification and extinction,
and that there was much migration from other parts of the world.
As we have reason to believe that large areas are affected by the
same movement, it is probable that strictly contemporaneous formations
have often been accumulated over very wide spaces in the same quarter
of the world; but we are very far from having any right to conclude
that this has invariably been the case, and that large areas have
invariably been affected by the same movements. When two formations
have been deposited in two regions during nearly, but not exactly,
the same period, we should find in both, from the causes explained
in the foregoing paragraphs, the same general succession in the
forms of life; but the species would not exactly correspond; for
there will have been a little more time in the one region than in
the other for modification, extinction, and immigration.
I suspect that cases of this nature occur in Europe. Mr. Prestwich,
in his admirable Memoirs on the eocene deposits of England and France,
is able to draw a close general parallelism between the successive
stages in the two countries; but when he compares certain stages
in England with those in France, although he finds in both a curious
accordance in the numbers of the species belonging to the same genera,
yet the species themselves differ in a very, difficult to account
for, considering the proximity of the two areas,- unless, indeed,
it be assumed that an isthmus separated two seas inhabited by distinct,
but contemporaneous, faunas. Lyell has made similar observations
on some of the later tertiary formations. Barrande, also, shows
that there is a striking general parallelism in the successive Silurian
deposits of Bohemia and Scandinavia; nevertheless he finds a surprising
amount of difference in the species. If the several formations in
these regions have not been deposited during the same exact periods,-
a formation in one region often corresponding with a blank interval
in the other,- and if in both regions the species have gone on slowly
changing during the accumulation of the several formations and during
the long intervals of time between them; in this case the several
formations in the two regions could be arranged in the same order,
in accordance with the general succession of the forms of life,
and the order would falsely appear to be strictly parallel; nevertheless
the species would not be all the same in the apparently corresponding
stages in the two regions.

Let us now look to the mutual affinities of extinct and living
species. All fall into a few grand classes; and this fact is once
explained on the principle of descent. The more ancient any form
is, the more, as a general rule, it differs from living forms. But,
as Buckland long ago remarked, extinct species can all be classed
either in still existing groups, or between them. That the extinct
forms of life help to fill up the intervals between existing genera,
families, and orders, is certainly true; but as this statement has
often been ignored or even denied, it may be well to make some remarks
on this subject, and to give some instances. If we confine our attention
either to the living or to the extinct species of the same class,
the series is far less perfect than if we combine both into one
general system. In the writings of Professor Owen we continually
meet with the expression of generalised forms, as applied to extinct
animals; and in the writings of Agassiz, of prophetic or synthetic
types; and these terms imply that such forms are in fact intermediate
or connecting links. Another distinguished palaeontologist, M. Gaudry,
has shown in the most striking manner that many of the fossil mammals
discovered by him in Attica serve to break down the intervals between
existing genera. Cuvier ranked the ruminants and pachyderms as two
of the most distinct orders of mammals: but so many fossil links
have been disentombed that Owen has had to alter the whole classification,
and has placed certain pachyderms in the same sub-order with ruminants;
for example, he dissolves by gradations the apparently wide interval
between the pig and the camel. The Ungulata or hoofed quadrupeds
are now divided into the even-toed or odd-toed divisions; but the
Maerauchenia of S. America connects to a certain extent these two
grand divisions. No one will deny that the Hipparion is intermediate
between the existing horse and certain older ungulate forms. What
a wonderful connecting link in the chain of mammals is the Typotherium
from S. America, as the name given to it by Professor Gervais expresses,
and which cannot be placed in any existing order. The Sirenia form
a very distinct group of mammals, and one of the most remarkable
peculiarities in the existing dugong and lamentin is the entire
absence of hind limbs without even a rudiment being left; but the
extinct Halitherium had, according to Professor Flower, an ossified
thighbone "articulated to a well-defined acetabulum in the pelvis,"
and it thus makes some approach to ordinary hoofed quadrupeds, to
which the Sirenia are in other respects allied. The cetaceans or
whales are widely different from all other mammals but the tertiary
Zeuglodon and Squalodon, which have been placed by some naturalists
in an order by themselves, are considered by Professor Huxley to
be undoubtedly cetaceans, "and to constitute connecting links with
the aquatic carnivora."
Even the wide interval between birds and reptiles has been shown
by the naturalist just quoted to be partially bridged over in the
most unexpected manner, on the one hand, by the ostrich and extinct
Archeopteryx, and on the other hand, by the Compsognathus, one of
the dinosaurians- that group which includes the most gigantic of
all terrestrial reptiles. Turning to the Invertebrata, Barrande
asserts, a higher authority could not be named, that he is every
day taught that, although palaeozoic can certainly be classed under
existing groups, yet that at this ancient period the groups were
not so distinctly separated from each other as they now are.
Some writers have objected to any extinct species, or group of
species, being considered as intermediate between any two living
species, or groups of species. If by this term it is meant that
an extinct form is directly intermediate in all its characters between
two living forms or groups, the objection is probably valid. But
in a natural classification many fossil species certainly stand
between living species, and some extinct genera between living genera,
even between genera belonging to distinct families. The most common
case, especially with respect to very distinct groups, such as fish
and reptiles, seems to be, that, supposing them to be distinguished
at the present day by a score of characters, the ancient members
are separated by a somewhat lesser number of characters; so that
the two groups formerly made a somewhat nearer approach to each
other than they now do.
It is a common belief that the more ancient a form is, by so much
the more it tends to connect by some of its characters groups now
widely separated from each other. This remark no doubt must be restricted
to those groups which have undergone much change in the course of
geological ages; and it would be difficult to prove the truth of
the proposition, for every now and then even a living animal, as
the Lepidosiren, is discovered having affinities directed towards
very distinct groups. Yet if we compare the older reptiles and batrachians,
the older fish, the older cephalopods, and the eocene mammals, with
the more recent members of the same classes, we must admit that
there is truth in the remark.
Let us see how far these several facts and inferences accord with
the theory of descent with modification. As the subject is somewhat
complex, I must request the reader to turn to the diagram in the
fourth chapter. We may suppose that the numbered letters in italics
represent genera, and the lines diverging from them the species
in each genus. The diagram is much too simple, too few genera and
too few species being given, but this is unimportant for us. The
horizontal lines may represent successive geological formations,
and all the forms beneath the uppermost line may be considered as
extinct. The three existing genera a14, q14, p14, will form a small
family; b14, and f14 a closely allied family or sub-family; and
o14, e14, m14, a third family. These three families, together with
the many extinct genera on the several lines of descent diverging
from the parent-form (A) will form an order, for all will have inherited
something in common from their ancient progenitor. On the principle
of the continued tendency to divergence of character, which was
formerly illustrated by this diagram, the more recent any form is,
the more it will generally differ from its ancient progenitor. Hence
we can understand the rule that the most ancient fossils differ
most from existing forms. We must not, however, assume that divergence
of character is a necessary contingency; it depends solely on the
descendants from a species being thus enabled to seize on many and
different places in the economy of nature. Therefore it is quite
possible, as we have seen in the case of some Silurian forms, that
a species might go on being slightly modified in relation to its
slightly altered conditions of life, and yet retain throughout a
vast period the same general characteristics. This is represented
in the diagram by the letter F14.
All the many forms, extinct and recent, descended from (A), make,
as before remarked, one order; and this order, from the continued
effects of extinction and divergence of character, has become divided
into several sub-families and families, some of which are supposed
to have perished at different periods, and some to have endured
to the present day.
By looking at the diagram we can see that if many of the extinct
forms supposed to be imbedded in the successive formations, were
discovered at several points low down in the series, the three existing
families on the uppermost line would be rendered less distinct from
each other. If, for instance, the genera a1, a5, a10, f8, m3, m6,
m9, were disinterred, these three families would be so closely linked
together that they probably would have to be united into one great
family, in nearly the same manner as has occurred with ruminants
and certain pachyderms. Yet he who objected to consider as intermediate
the extinct genera, which thus link together the living genera of
three families, would be partly justified, for they are intermediate,
not directly, but only by a long and circuitous course through many
widely different forms. If many extinct forms were to be discovered
above one of the middle horizontal lines or geological formations-
for instance, above No. VI.- but none from beneath this line, then
only two of the families (those on the left hand, a14, &c.,
and b14, &c.) would have to be united into one; and there would
remain two families, which would be less distinct from each other
than they were before the discovery of the fossils. So again if
the three families formed of eight genera (a14 to m14), on the uppermost
line, be supposed to differ from each other by half-a-dozen important
characters, then the families which existed at the period marked
VI. would certainly have differed from each other by a less number
of characters; for they would at this early stage of descent have
diverged in a less degree from their common progeneitor. Thus it
comes that ancient and extinct genera are often in a greater or
less degree intermediate in character between their modified descendants,
or between their collateral relations.
Under nature the process will be far more complicated than represented
in the diagram; for the groups will have been more numerous; they
will have endured for extremely unequal lengths of time, and will
have been modified in various degrees. As we possess only the last
volume of the geological record, and that in a very broken condition,
we have no right to expect, except in rare cases, to fill up the
wide intervals in the natural system, and thus to unite distinct
families or orders. All that we have a right to expect is, that
those groups which have, within known geological periods, undergone
much modification, should in the older formations make some slight
approach to each other; so that the older members should differ
less from each other in some of their characters than do the existing
members of the same groups; and this by the concurrent evidence
of our best palaeontologists is frequently the case.
Thus, on the theory of descent with modification, the main facts
with respect to the mutual affinities of the extinct forms of life
to each other and to living forms, are explained in a satisfactory
manner. And they are wholly inexplicable on any other view.
On this same theory, it is evident that the fauna during any one
great period in the earth's history will be intermediate in general
character between that which preceded and that which succeeded it.
Thus the species which lived at the sixth great stage of descent
in the diagram are the modified offspring of those which lived at
the sixth stage of descent, and are the parents of those which became
still more modified at the seventh stage; hence they could hardly
fail to be nearly intermediate in character between the forms of
life above and below. We must, however, allow for the entire extinction
of some preceding forms, and in any one region for the immigration
of new forms from other regions, and for a large amount of modification
during the long and blank intervals between the successive formations.
Subject to these allowances, the fauna of each geological period
undoubtedly is intermediate in character, between the preceding
and succeeding faunas. I need give only one instance, namely, the
manner in which the fossils of the Devonian system, when this system
was first discovered, were at once recognized by palaeontologists
as intermediate in character between those of the overlying carboniferous,
and underlying Silurian systems. But each fauna is not necessarily
exactly intermediate, as unequal intervals of time have elapsed
between consecutive formations.
It is no real objection to the truth of the statement that the
fauna of each period as a whole is nearly intermediate in character
between preceding and succeeding faunas, that certain genera offer
exceptions to the rule. For instance, the species of mastodons and
elephants, when arranged by Dr. Falconer in two series,- the first
place according to their mutual affinities, and in the second place
according to their periods of existence,- do not accord in arrangement.
The species extreme in character are not the oldest or the most
recent; nor are those which are intermediate in character, intermediate
in age. But supposing for an instant, in this and other such cases,
that the record of the first appearance and disappearance of the
species was complete, which is far from the case, we have no reason
to believe that forms successively produced necessarily endure for
corresponding lengths of time. A very ancient form may occasionally
have lasted much longer than a form elsewhere subsequently produced,
especially in the case of terrestrial productions inhabiting separated
districts. To compare small things with great; if the principal
living and extinct races of the domestic pigeon were arranged in
serial affinity, this arrangement would not closely accord with
the order in time of their production, and even less with the order
of their disappearance; for the parent rock-pigeon still lives;
and many varieties between the rock-pigeon and the carrier have
become extinct; and carriers which are extreme in the important
character of length of beak originated earlier than short-beaked
tumblers, which are at the opposite end of the series in this respect.
Closely connected with the statement, that the organic remains
from an intermediate formation are in some degree intermediate in
character, is the fact, insisted on by all palaeontologists, that
fossils from two consecutive formations are far more closely related
to each other, than are the fossils from two remote formations.
Pictet gives as a well-known instance, the general resemblance of
the organic remains from the several stages of the Chalk formation,
though the species are distinct in each stage. This fact alone,
from its generality, seems to have shaken Professor Pictet in his
belief in the immutability of species. He who is acquainted with
the distribution of existing species over the globe, will not attempt
to account for the close resemblance of distinct species in closely
consecutive formations, by the physical conditions of the ancient
areas having remained nearly the same. Let it be remembered that
the forms of life, at least those inhabiting the sea, have changed
almost simultaneously throughout the world, and therefore under
the most different climates and conditions. Consider the prodigious
vicissitudes of climate during the pleistocene period, which includes
the whole glacial epoch, and note how little the specific forms
of the inhabitants of the sea have been affected.
On the theory of descent, the full meaning of the fossil remains
from closely consecutive formations being closely related, though
ranked as distinct species, is obvious. As the accumulation of each
formation has often been interrupted, and as long blank intervals
have intervened between successive formations, we ought not to expect
to find, as I attempted to show in the last chapter, in any one
or in any two formations, all the intermediate varieties between
the species which appeared at the commencement and close of these
periods: but we ought to find after intervals, very long as measured
by years, but only moderately long as measured geologically, closely
allied forms, or, as they have been called by some authors, representative
species; and these assuredly we do find. We find, in short, such
evidence of the slow and scarcely sensible mutations of specific
forms, as we have the right to expect.

We have seen in the fourth chapter that the degree of differentiation
and specialisation of the parts in organic beings, when arrived
at maturity, is the best standard, as yet suggested, of their degree
of perfection or highness. We have also seen that, as the specialisation
of parts is an advantage to each being, so natural selection will
tend to render the organisation of each being more specialised and
perfect, and in this sense higher; not but that it may leave many
creatures with simple and unimproved structures fitted for simple
conditions of life, and in some cases will even degrade or simplify
the organisation, yet leaving such degraded beings better fitted
for their new walks of life. In another and more general manner,
new species become superior to their predecessors; for they have
to beat in the struggle for life all the older forms, with which
they come into close competition. We may therefore conclude that
if under a nearly similar climate the eocene inhabitants of the
world could be put into competition with the existing inhabitants,
the former would be beaten and exterminated by the latter, as would
the secondary by the eocene, and the palaeozoic by the secondary
forms. So that by this fundamental test of victory in the battle
for life, as well as by the standard of the specialisation of organs,
modern forms ought, on the theory of natural selection, to stand
higher than ancient forms. Is this the case? A large majority of
palaeontologists would answer in the affirmative; and it seems that
this answer must be admitted as true, though difficult of proof.
It is no valid objection to this conclusion, that certain brachiopods
have been but slightly modified from an extremely remote geological
epoch; and that certain land and fresh-water shells have remained
nearly the same, from the time when, as far as is known, they first
appeared. It is not an insuperable difficulty that Foraminifera
have not, as insisted on by Dr. Carpenter, progressed in organisation
since even the Laurentian epoch; for some organisms would have to
remain fitted for simple conditions of life, and what could be better
fitted for this end than these lowly organised Protozoa? Such objections
as the above would be fatal to my view, if it included advance in
organisation as a necessary contingent. They would likewise be fatal,
if the above Foraminifera, for instance, could be proved to have
first come into existence during the Laurentian epoch, or the above
brachiopods during the Cambrian formation; for in this case, there
would not have been time sufficient for the development of these
organisms up to the standard which they had then reached. When advanced
up to any given point, there is no necessity, on the theory of natural
selection, for their further continued progress; though they will,
during each successive age, have to be slightly modified, so as
to hold their places in relation to slight changes in their conditions.
The foregoing objections hinge on the question whether we really
know how old the world is, and at what period the various forms
of life first appeared; and this may well be disputed.
The problem whether organisation on the whole has advanced is in
many ways excessively intricate. The geological record, at all times
imperfect, does not extend far enough back to show with unmistakable
clearness that within the known history of the world organisation
has largely advanced. Even at the present day, looking to members
of the same class, naturalists are not unanimous which forms ought
to be ranked as highest: thus, some look at the selaceans or sharks,
from their approach in some important points of structure to reptiles,
as the highest fish; others look at the teleosteans as the highest.
The ganoids stand intermediate between the selaceans and teleosteans;
the latter at the present day are largely preponderant in number;
but formerly selaceans and ganoids alone existed; and in this case,
according to the standard of highness chosen, so will it be said
that fishes have advanced or retrograded in organisation. To attempt
to compare members of distinct types in the scale of highness seem
hopeless; who will decide whether a cuttle-fish be higher than a
bee- that insect which the great von Baer believed to be "in fact
more highly organised than a fish, although upon another type"?
In the complex struggle for life it is quite credible that crustaceans,
not very high in their own class, might beat cephalopods, the highest
molluscs; and such crustaceans, though not highly developed, would
stand very high in the scale of invertebrate animals, if judged
by the most decisive of all trials- the law of battle. Besides these
inherent difficulties in deciding which forms are the most advanced
in organisation, we ought not solely to compare the highest members
of a class at any two periods- though undoubtedly this is one and
perhaps the most important element in striking a balance- but we
ought to compare all the members, high and low, at the two periods.
At an ancient epoch the highest and lowest molluscoidal animals,
namely, cephalopods and brachiopods, swarmed in numbers; at the
present time both groups are greatly reduced, whilst others, intermediate
in organisation, have largely increased; consequently some naturalists
maintain that molluscs were formerly more highly developed than
at present; but a stronger case can be made out on the opposite
side, by considering the vast reduction of brachiopods, and the
fact that our existing cephalopods, though few in number, are more
highly organised than their ancient representatives. We ought also
to compare the relative proportional numbers at any two periods
of the high and low classes throughout the world: if, for instance,
at the present day fifty thousand kinds of vertebrate animals exist,
and if we knew that at some former period only ten thousand kinds
existed, we ought to look at this increase in number in the highest
class, which implies a great displacement of lower forms, as a decided
advance in the organisation of the world. We thus see how hopelessly
difficult it is to compare with perfect fairness such extremely
complex relations, the standards of organisation of the imperfectly-known
faunas of successive periods.
We shall appreciate this difficulty more clearly, by looking to
certain existing faunas and floras. From the extraordinary manner
in which European productions have recently spread over New Zealand,
and have seized on places which must have been previously occupied
by the indigenes, we must believe, that if all the animals and plants
of Great Britain were set free in New Zealand, a multitude of British
forms would in the course of time become thoroughly naturalised
there, and would exterminate many of the natives. On the other hand,
from the fact that hardly a single inhabitant of the southern hemisphere
has become wild in any part of Europe, we may well doubt whether,
if all the productions of New Zealand were set free in Great Britain,
any considerable number would be enabled to seize on places now
occupied by our native plants and animals. Under this point of view,
the productions of Great Britain stand much higher in the scale
than those of New Zealand. Yet the most skilful naturalist, from
an examination Of the species of the species of the two countries,
could not have foreseen this result.
Agassiz and several other highly competent judges insist that ancient
animals resemble to a certain extent the embryos of recent animals
belonging to the same classes; and that the geological succession
of extinct forms is nearly parallel with the embryological development
of existing forms. This view accords admirably well with our theory.
In a future chapter I shall attempt to show that the adult differs
from its embryo, owing to variations having supervened at a not
early age, and having been inherited at a corresponding age. This
process, whilst it leaves the embryo almost unaltered, continually
adds, in the course of successive generations, more and more difference
to the adult. Thus the embryo comes to be left as a sort of picture,
preserved by nature, of the former and less modified condition of
the species. This view may be true, and yet may never be capable
of proof. Seeing, for instance, that the oldest known mammals, reptiles,
and fishes strictly belong to their proper classes, though some
of these old forms are in a slight degree less distinct from each
other than are the typical members of the same groups at the present
day, it would be vain to look for animals having the common embryological
character of the Vertebrata, until beds rich in fossils are discovered
far beneath the lowest Cambrian strata- a discovery of which the
chance is small.

Mr. Clift many years ago showed that the fossil mammals from the
Australian caves were closely allied to the living marsupials of
that continent. In South America a similar relationship is manifest,
even to an uneducated eye, in the gigantic pieces of armour, like
those of the armadillo, found in several parts of La Plata; and
Professor Owen has shown in the most striking manner that most of
the fossil mammals, buried there in such numbers, are related to
South American types. This relationship is even more clearly seen
in the wonderful collection of fossil bones made by MM. Lund and
Clausen in the caves of Brazil. I was so much impressed with these
facts that I strongly insisted, in 1839 and 1845, on this "law of
the succession of types,"- on "this wonderful relationship in the
same continent between the dead and the living." Professor Owen
has subsequently extended the same generalisation to the mammals
of the Old World. We see the same law in this author's restorations
of the extinct and gigantic birds of New Zealand. We see it also
in the birds of the caves of Brazil. Mr. Woodward has shown that
the same law holds good with sea-shells, but, from the wide distribution
of most molluscs, it is not well displayed by them. Other cases
could be added, as the relation between the extinct and living land-shells
of Madeira; and between the extinct and living brackish watershells
of the Aralo-Caspian Sea.
Now what does this remarkable law of the succession of the same
types within the same areas mean? He would be a bold man who, after
comparing the present climate of Australia and of parts of South
America, under the same latitude, would attempt to account, on the
one hand through dissimilar physical conditions, for the dissimilarity
of the inhabitants of these two continents; and, on the other hand
through similarity of conditions, for the uniformity of the same
types in each continent during the later tertiary periods. Nor can
it be pretended that it is an immutable law that marsupials should
have been chiefly or solely produced in Australia; or that Edentata
and other American types should have been solely produced in South
America. For we know that Europe in ancient times was peopled by
numerous marsupials; and I have shown in the publications above
alluded to, that in America the law of distribution of terrestrial
mammals was formerly different from what it now is. North America
formerly partook strongly of the present character of the southern
half of the continent; and the southern half was formerly more closely
allied, than it is at present, to the northern half. In a similar
manner we know, from Falconer and Cautley's discoveries, that Northern
India was formerly more closely related in its mammals to Africa
than it is at the present time. Analogous facts could be given in
relation to the distribution of marine animals.
On the theory of descent with modification, the great law of the
long enduring, but not immutable, succession of the same types within
the same areas, is at once explained; for the inhabitants of each
quarter of the world will obviously tend to leave in that quarter,
during the next succeeding period of time, closely allied though
in some degree modified descendants. If the inhabitants of one continent
formerly differed greatly from those of another continent, so will
their modified descendants still differ in nearly the same manner
and degree. But after very long intervals of time, and after great
geographical changes, permitting much intermigration, the feebler
will yield to the more dominant forms, and there will be nothing
immutable in the distribution of organic beings.
It may be asked in ridicule, whether I suppose that the Megatherium
and other allied huge monsters, which formerly lived in South America,
have left behind them the sloth, armadillo, and anteater, as their
degenerate descendants. This cannot for an instant be admitted.
These huge animals have become wholly extinct, and have left no
progeny. But in the caves of Brazil, there are many extinct species
which are closely allied in size and in all other characters to
the species still living in South America; and some of these fossils
may have been the actual progenitors of the living species. It must
not be forgotten that, on our theory, all the species of the same
genus are the descendants of some one species; so that, if six genera,
each having eight species, be found in one geological formation,
and in a succeeding formation there be six other allied or representative
genera each with the same number of species, then we may conclude
that generally only one species of each of the older genera has
left modified descendants, which constitute the new genera containing
the several species; the other seven species of each old genus having
died out and left no progeny. Or, and this will be a far commoner
case, two or three species in two or three alone of the six older
genera will be the parents of the new genera: the other species
and the other old genera having become utterly extinct. In failing
orders, with the genera and species decreasing in numbers as is
the case with the Edentata of South America, still fewer genera
and species will leave modified blood-descendants.

I have attempted to show that the geological record is extremely
imperfect; that only a small portion of the globe has been geologically
explored with care; that only certain classes of organic beings
have been largely preserved in a fossil state; that the number both
of specimens and of species, preserved in our museums, is absolutely
as nothing compared with the number of generations which must have
passed away even during a single formation; that, owing to subsidence
being almost necessary for the accumulation of deposits rich in
fossil species of many kinds, and thick enough to outlast future
degradation, great intervals of time must have elapsed between most
of our successive formations; that there has probably been more
extinction during the periods of subsidence, and more variation
during the periods of elevation, and during the latter the record
will have been less perfectly kept; that each single formation has
not been continuously deposited; that the duration of each formation
is probably short compared with the average duration of specific
forms; that migration has played an important part in the first
appearance of new forms in any one area and formation; that widely
ranging species are those which have varied most frequently, and
have oftenest given rise to new species; that varieties have at
first been local; and lastly, although each species must have passed
through numerous transitional stages, it is probable that the periods,
during which each underwent modification, though many and long as
measured by years, have been short in comparison with the periods
during which each remained in an unchanged condition. These causes,
taken conjointly, will to a large extent explain why- though we
do find many links- we do not find interminable varieties, connecting
together all extinct and existing forms by the finest graduated
steps. It should also be constantly borne in mind that any linking
variety between two forms, which might be found, would be ranked,
unless the whole chain could be perfectly restored, as a new and
distinct species; for it is not pretended that we have any sure
criterion by which species and varieties can be discriminated.
He who rejects this view of the imperfection of the geological
record, will rightly reject the whole theory. For he may ask in
vain where are the numberless transitional links which must formerly
have connected the closely allied or representative species, found
in the successive stages of the same great formation? He may disbelieve
in the immense intervals of time which must have elapsed between
our consecutive formations; he may overlook how important a part
migration has played, when the formations of any one great region,
as those of Europe, are considered; he may urge the apparent, but
often falsely apparent, sudden coming in of whole groups of species.
He may ask where are the remains of those infinitely numerous organisms
which must have existed long before the Cambrian system was deposited?
We now know that at least one animal did then exist; but I can answer
this last, question only by supposing that where our oceans now
extend they have extended for an enormous period, and where our
oscillating continents now stand they have stood since the commencement
of the Cambrian system; but that, long before that epoch, the world
presented a widely different aspect; and that the older continents
formed of formations older than any known to us, exist now only
as remnants in a metamorphosed condition, or lie still buried under
the ocean.
Passing from these difficulties, the other great leading facts
in palaeontology agree admirably with the theory of descent with
modification through variation and natural selection. We can thus
understand how it is that new species come in slowly and successively;
how species of different classes do not necessarily change together,
or at the same rate, or in the same degree; yet in the long run
that all undergo modification to some extent. The extinction of
old forms is the almost inevitable consequence of the productions
of new forms. We can understand why, when a species has once disappeared,
it never reappears. Groups of species increase in numbers slowly,
and endure for unequal periods of time; for the process of modification
is necessarily slow, and depends on many complex contingencies.
The dominant species belonging to large and dominant groups tend
to leave many modified descendants, which form new sub-groups and
groups. As these are formed, the species of the less vigorous groups,
from their inferiority inherited from a common progenitor, tend
to become extinct together, and to leave no modified offspring on
the face of the earth. But the utter extinction of a whole group
of species has sometimes been a slow process, from the survival
of a few descendants, lingering in protected and isolated situations.
When a group has once wholly disappeared, it does not reappear;
for the link of generation has been broken.
We can understand how it is that dominant forms which spread widely
and yield the greatest number of varieties tend to people the world
with allied, but modified, descendants; and these will generally
succeed in displacing the groups which are their inferiors in the
struggle for existence. Hence, after long intervals of time, the
productions of the world appear to have changed simultaneously.
We can understand how it is that all the forms of life, ancient
and recent, make together a few grand classes. We can understand,
from the continued tendency to divergence of character, why the
more ancient a form is, the more it generally differs from those
now living; why ancient and extinct forms often tend to fill up
gaps between existing forms, sometimes blending two groups, previously
classed as distinct, into one; but more commonly bringing them only
a little closer together. The more ancient a form is, the more often
it stands in some degree intermediate between groups now distinct;
for the more ancient a form is, the more nearly it will be related
to, and consequently resemble, the common progenitor of groups,
since become widely divergent. Extinct forms are seldom directly
intermediate between existing forms; but are intermediate only by
a long and circuitous course through other extinct and different
forms. We can clearly see why the organic remains of closely consecutive
formations are closely allied; for they are closely linked together
by generation. We can clearly see why the remains of an intermediate
formation are intermediate in character.
The inhabitants of the world at each successive period in its history
have beaten their predecessors in the race for life, and are, in
so far, higher in the scale, and their structure has generally become
more specialised; and this may account for the common belief held
by so many palaeontologists, that organisation on the whole has
progressed. Extinct and ancient animals resemble to a certain extent
the embryos of the more recent animals belonging to the same classes,
and this wonderful fact receives a simple explanation according
to our views. The succession of the same types of structure within
the same areas during the later geological periods ceases to be
mysterious, and is intelligible on the principle of inheritance.
If then the geological record be as imperfect as many believe,
and it may at least be asserted that the record cannot be proved
to be much more perfect, the main objections to the theory of natural
selection are greatly diminished or disappear. On the other hand,
an the chief laws of palaeontology plainly proclaim, as it seems
to me, that species have been produced by ordinary generation: old
forms having been supplanted by new and improved forms of life,
the products of Variation and the Survival of the Fittest.
IN considering the distribution of organic beings over the face
of the globe, the first great fact which strikes us is, that neither
the similarity nor the dissimilarity of the inhabitants of various
regions can be wholly accounted for by climatal and other physical
conditions. Of late, almost every author who has studied the subject
has come to this conclusion. The case of America alone would almost
suffice to prove its truth; for if we exclude the arctic and northern
temperate parts, all authors agree that one of the most fundamental
divisions in geographical distribution is that between the New and
Old Worlds; yet if we travel over the vast American continent, from
the central parts of the United States to its extreme southern point,
we meet with the most diversified conditions; humid districts, arid
deserts, lofty mountains, grassy plains, forests, marshes, lakes,
and great rivers, under almost every temperature. There is hardly
a climate or condition in the Old World which cannot be paralleled
in the New- at least as closely as the same species generally require.
No doubt small areas can be pointed out in the Old World hotter
than any in the New World; but these are not inhabited by a fauna
different from that of the surrounding districts; for it is rare
to find a group of organisms confined to a small area, of which
the conditions are peculiar in only a slight degree. Notwithstanding
this general parallelism in the conditions of the Old and New Worlds,
how widely different are their living productions!
In the southern hemisphere, if we compare large tracts of land
in Australia, South Africa, and western South America, between latitudes
25 and 35, we shall find parts extremely similar in all their conditions,
yet it would not be possible to point out three faunas and floras
more utterly dissimilar. Or, again, we may compare the productions
of South America south of lat. 35 with those north of 25, which
consequently are separated by a space of ten degrees of latitude,
and are exposed to considerably different conditions; yet they are
incomparably more closely related to each other than they are to
the productions of Australia or Africa under nearly the same climate.
Analogous facts could be given with respect to the inhabitants of
the sea.
A second great fact which strikes us in our general review is,
that barriers of any kind, or obstacles to free migration, are related
in a close and important manner to the differences between the productions
of various regions. We see this in the great difference in nearly
all the terrestrial productions of the New and Old Worlds, excepting
in the northern parts, where the land almost joins, and where, under
a slightly different climate, there might have been free migration
for the northern temperate forms, as there now is for the strictly
arctic productions. We see the same fact in the great difference
between the inhabitants of Australia, Africa, and South America
under the same latitude; for these countries are almost as much
isolated from each other as is possible. On each continent, also,
we see the same fact; for on the opposite sides of lofty and continuous
mountain-ranges, of great deserts and even of large rivers, we find
different productions; though as mountain-chains, deserts, &c.,
are not as impassable, or likely to have endured so long, as the
oceans separating continents, the differences are very inferior
in degree to those characteristic of distinct continents.
Turning to the sea, we find the same law. The marine inhabitants
of the eastern and western shores of South America are very distinct,
with extremely few shells, Crustacea, or Echinodermata in common;
but Dr. Gunther has recently shown that about thirty per cent. of
the fishes are the same on the opposite sides of the isthmus of
Panama; and this fact has led naturalists to believe that the isthmus
was formerly open. Westward of the shores of America, a wide space
of open ocean extends, with not an island as a halting-place for
emigrants; here we have a barrier of another kind, and as soon as
this is passed we meet in the eastern islands of the Pacific with
another and totally distinct fauna. So that three marine faunas
range far northward and southward in parallel lines not far from
each other, under corresponding climates; but from being separated
from each other by impassable barriers, either of land or open sea,
they are almost wholly distinct. On the other hand, proceeding still
farther westward from the eastern islands of the tropical parts
of the Pacific, we encounter no impassable barriers, and we have
innumerable islands as halting-places, or continuous coasts, until,
after travelling over a hemisphere, we come to the shores of Africa;
and over this vast space we meet with no well-defined and distinct
marine faunas. Although so few marine animals are common to the
above-named three approximate faunas of eastern and western America
and the eastern Pacific islands, yet many fishes range from the
Pacific into the Indian Ocean, and many shells are common to the
eastern islands of the Pacific and the eastern shores of Africa
on almost exactly opposite meridians of longitude.
A third great fact, partly included in the foregoing statement,
is the affinity of the productions of the same continent or of the
same sea, though the species themselves are distinct at different
points and stations. It is a law of the widest generality, and every
continent offers innumerable instances. Nevertheless the naturalist,
in travelling, for instance, from north to south, never fails to
be struck by the manner in which successive groups of beings, specifically
distinct, though nearly related, replace each other. He hears from
closely allied, yet distinct kinds of birds, notes nearly similar,
and sees their nests similarly constructed, but not quite alike,
with eggs coloured in nearly the same manner. The plains near the
Straits of Magellan are inhabited by one species of Rhea (American
ostrich) and northward the plains of La Plata by another species
of the same genus; and not by a true ostrich or emu, like those
inhabiting Africa and Australia under the same latitude. On these
same plains of La Plata we see the agouti and bizcacha, animals
having nearly the same habits as our hares and rabbits, and belonging
to the same order of rodents, but they plainly display an American
type of structure. We ascend the lofty peaks of the Cordillera,
and we find an alpine species of bizcacha; we look to the waters,
and we do not find the beaver or musk-rat, but the coypu and capybara,
rodents of the S. American type. Innumerable other instances could
be given. If we look to the islands off the American shore, however
much they may differ in geological structure, the inhabitants are
essentially American, though they may be all peculiar species. We
may look back to past ages, as shown in the last chapter, and we
find American types then prevailing on the American continent and
in the American seas. We see in these facts some deep organic bond,
throughout space and time, over the same areas of land and water,
independently of physical conditions. The naturalist must be dull
who is not led to enquire what this bond is.
The bond is simply inheritance, that cause which alone, as far
as we positively know, produces organisms quite like each other,
or, as we see in the case of varieties, nearly alike. The dissimilarity
of the inhabitants of different regions may be attributed to modification
through variation and natural selection, and probably in a subordinate
degree to the definite influence of different physical conditions.
The degrees of dissimilarity will depend on the migration of the
more dominant forms of life from one region into another having
been more or less effectually prevented, at periods more or less
remote;- on the nature and number of the former immigrants;- and
on the action of the inhabitants on each other in leading to the
preservation of different modifications; the relation of organism
to organism in the struggle for life being, as I have already often
remarked, the most important of all relations. Thus the high importance
of barriers comes into play by checking migration; as does time
for the slow process of modification through natural selection.
Widely-ranging species, abounding in individuals, which have already
triumphed over many competitors in their own widely-extended homes,
will have the best chance of seizing on new places, when they spread
into new countries. In their new homes they will be exposed to new
conditions, and will frequently undergo further modification and
improvement; and thus they will become still further victorious,
and will produce groups of modified descendants. On this principle
of inheritance with modification we can understand how it is that
sections of genera, whole genera, and even families, are confined
to the same areas, as is so commonly and notoriously the case.
There is no evidence, as was remarked in the last chapter, of the
existence of any law of necessary development. As the variability
of each species is an independent property, and will be taken advantage
of by natural selection, only so far as it profits each individual
in its complex struggle for life, so the amount of modification
in different species will be no uniform quantity. If a number of
species, after having long competed with each other in their old
home, were to migrate in a body into a new and afterwards isolated
country, they would be little liable to modification; for neither
migration nor isolation in themselves effect anything. These principles
come into play only by bringing organisms into new relations with
each other and in a lesser degree with the surrounding physical
conditions. As we have seen in the last chapter that some forms
have retained nearly the same character from an enormously remote
geological period, so certain species have migrated over vast spaces,
and have not become greatly or at all modified.
According to these views, it is obvious that the several species
of the same genus, though inhabiting the most distant quarters of
the world, must originally have proceeded from the same source,
as they are descended from the same progenitor. In the case of those
species which have undergone during the whole geological periods
little modification, there is not much difficulty in believing that
they have migrated from, the same region; for during the vast geographical
and climatal changes which have supervened since ancient times,
almost any amount of migration is possible. But in many other cases,
in which we have reason to believe that the species of a genus have
been produced within comparatively recent times, there is great
difficulty on this head. It is also obvious that the individuals
of the same species, though now inhabiting distant and isolated
regions, must have proceeded from one spot, where their parents
were first produced: for, as has been explained, it is incredible
that individuals identically the same should have been produced
from parents specifically distinct.
Single Centres of supposed Creation.- We are thus brought to the
question which has been largely discussed by naturalists, namely,
whether species have been created at one or more points of the earth's
surface. Undoubtedly there are many cases of extreme difficulty
in understanding how the same species could possibly have migrated
from some one point to the several distant and isolated points,
where now found. Nevertheless the simplicity of the view that each
species was first produced within a single region captivates the
mind. He who rejects it, rejects the vera causa of ordinary generation
with subsequent migration, and calls in the agency of a miracle.
It is universally admitted, that in most cases the area inhabited
by a species is continuous; and that when a plant or animal inhabits
two points so distant from each other, or with an interval of such
a nature, that the space could not have been easily passed over
by migration, the fact is given as something remarkable and exceptional.
The incapacity of migrating across a wide sea is more clear in the
case of terrestrial mammals than perhaps with any other organic
beings; and, accordingly, we find no inexplicable instances of the
same mammals inhabiting distant points of the world. No geologist
feels any difficulty in Great Britain possessing the same quadrupeds
with the rest of Europe, for they were no doubt once united. But
if the same species can be produced at two separate points, why
do we not find a single mammal common to Europe and Australia or
South America? The conditions of life are nearly the same, so that
a multitude of European animals and plants have become naturalised
in America and Australia; and some of the aboriginal plants are
identically the same at these distant points of the northern and
southern hemispheres. The answer, as I believe, is, that mammals
have not been able to migrate, whereas some plants, from their varied
means of dispersal, have migrated across the wide and broken interspaces.
The great and striking influence of barriers of all kinds, is intelligible
only on the view that the great majority of species have been produced
on one side, and have not been able to migrate to the opposite side.
Some few families, many sub-families, very many genera, and a still
greater number of sections of genera, are confined to a single region;
and it has been observed by several naturalists that the most natural
genera, or those genera in which the species are most closely related
to each other, are generally confined to the same, country, or if
they have a wide range that their range is continuous. What a strange
anomaly it would be, if a directly opposite rule were to prevail,
when we go down one step lower in the series, namely, to the individuals
of the same species, and these had not been, at least at first,
confined to some one region!
Hence it seems to me, as it has to many other naturalists, that
the view of each species having been produced in one area alone,
and having subsequently migrated from that area as far as its powers
of migration and subsistence under past and present conditions permitted,
is the most probable. Undoubtedly many cases occur, in which we
cannot explain how the same species could have passed from one point
to the other. But the geographical and climatal changes which have
certainly occurred within recent geological times, must have rendered
discontinuous the formerly continuous range of many species. So
that we are reduced to consider whether the exceptions to continuity
of range are so numerous and of so grave a nature, that we ought
to give up the belief, rendered probable by general considerations,
that each species has been produced within one area, and has migrated
thence as far as it could. It would be hopelessly tedious to discuss
all the exceptional cases of the same species, now living at distant
and separated points, nor do I for a moment pretend that any explanation
could be offered of many instances. But, after some preliminary
remarks, I will discuss a few of the most striking classes of facts;
namely, the existence of the same species on the summits of distant
mountain ranges, and at distant points in the arctic and antarctic
regions; and secondly (in the following chapter), the wide distribution
of fresh-water productions; and thirdly, the occurrence of the same
terrestrial species on islands and on the nearest mainland, though
separated by hundreds of miles of open sea. If the existence of
the same species at distant and isolated points of the earth's surface,
can in many instances be explained on the view of each species having
migrated from a single birthplace; then, considering our ignorance
with respect to former climatal and geographical changes and to
the various occasional means of transport, the belief that a single
birthplace is the law, seems to me incomparably the safest.
In discussing this subject, we shall be enabled at the same time
to consider a point equally important for us, namely, whether the
several species of a genus which must on our theory all be descended
from a common progenitor, can have migrated, undergoing modification
during their migration, from some one area. If, when most of the
species inhabiting one region are different from those of another
region, though closely allied to them, it can be shown that migration
from the one region to the other has probably occurred at some former
period, our general view will be much strengthened; for the explanation
is obvious on the principle of descent with modification. A volcanic
island, for instance, upheaved and formed at the distance of a few
hundreds of miles from a continent, would probably receive from
it in the course of time a few colonists, and their descendants,
though modified, would still be related by inheritance to the inhabitants
of that continent. Cases of this nature are common, and are, as
we shall hereafter see, inexplicable on the theory of independent
creation. This view of the relation of the species of one region
to those of another, does not differ much from that advanced by
Mr. Wallace, who concludes that "every species has come into existence
coincident both in space and time with a pre-existing closely allied
species." And it is now well known that he attributes this coincidence
to descent with modification.
The question of single or multiple centres of creation differs
from another though allied question,- namely, whether all the individuals
of the same species are descended from a single pair, or single
hermaphrodite, or whether, as some authors suppose, from many individuals
simultaneously created. With organic beings which never intercross,
if such exist, each species must be descended from a succession
of modified varieties, that have supplanted each other, but have
never blended with other individuals or varieties of the same species;
so that, at each successive stage of modification, all the individuals
of the same form will be descended from a single parent. But in
the great majority of cases, namely, with all organisms which habitually
unite for each birth, or which occasionally intercross, the individuals
of the same species inhabiting the same area will be kept nearly
uniform by intercrossing; so that many individuals will go on simultaneously
changing, and the whole amount of modification at each stage will
not be due to descent from a single parent. To illustrate what I
mean: our English race-horses differ from the horses of every other
breed; but they do not owe their difference and superiority to descent
from any single pair, but to continued care in the selecting and
training of many individuals during each generation.
Before discussing the three classes of facts, which I have selected
as presenting the greatest amount of difficulty on the theory of
"single centres of creation," I must say a few words on the means
of dispersal.

Sir C. Lyell and other authors have ably treated this subject.
I can give here only the briefest abstract of the more important
facts. Change of climate must have had a powerful influence on migration.
A region now impassable to certain organisms from the nature of
its climate, might have been a high road for migration, when the
climate was different. I shall, however, presently have to discuss
this branch of the subject in some detail. Changes of level in the
land must also have been highly influential: a narrow isthmus now
separates two marine faunas; submerge it, or let it formerly have
been submerged, and the two faunas will now blend together, or may
formerly have blended. Where the sea now extends, land may at a
former period have connected islands or possibly even continents
together, and thus have allowed terrestrial productions to pass
from one to the other No geologist disputes that great mutations
of level have occurred within the period of existing organisms.
Edward Forbes insisted that all the islands in the Atlantic must
have been recently connected with Europe or Africa, and Europe likewise
with America. Other authors have thus hypothetically bridged over
every ocean, and united almost every island with some mainland.
If indeed the arguments used by Forbes are to be trusted, it must
be admitted that scarcely a single island exists which has not recently
been united to some continent. This view cuts the Gordian knot of
the dispersal of the same species to the more distant points, and
removes many a difficulty; but to the best of my judgment we are
not authorised in admitting such enormous geographical changes within
the period of existing species. It seems to me that we have abundant
evidence of great oscillations in the level of the land or sea;
but not of such vast change in the position and extension of our
continents, as to have united them within the recent period to each
other and to the several intervening oceanic islands. I freely admit
the former existence of many islands, now buried beneath the sea,
which may have served as halting-places for plants and for many
animals during their migration. In the coral-producing oceans such
sunken islands are now marked by rings of coral or atolls standing
over them. Whenever it is fully admitted, as it will some day be,
that each species has proceeded from a single birthplace, and when
in the course of time we know something definite about the means
of distribution, we shall be enabled to speculate with security
on the former extension of the land. But I do not believe that it
will ever be proved that within the recent period most of our continents
which now stand quite separate have been continuously, or almost
continuously united with each other, and with the many existing
oceanic islands. Several facts in distribution,- such as the great
difference in the marine faunas on the opposite sides of almost
every continent,- the close relation of the tertiary inhabitants
of several lands and even seas to their present inhabitants,- the
degree of affinity between the mammals inhabiting islands with those
of the nearest continent, being in part determined (as we shall
hereafter see) by the depth of the intervening ocean,- these and
other such facts are opposed to the admission of such prodigious
geographical revolutions within the recent period, as are necessary
on the view advanced by Forbes and admitted by his followers. The
nature and relative proportions of the inhabitants of oceanic islands
are likewise opposed to the belief of their former continuity with
continents. Nor does the almost universally volcanic composition
of such islands favour the admission that they are the wrecks of
sunken continents;- if they had originally existed as continental
mountain ranges, some at least of the islands would have been formed,
like other mountain summits, of granite, metamorphic schists, old
fossiliferous and other rocks, instead of consisting of mere piles
of volcanic matter.
I must now say a few words on what are called accidental means,
but which more properly should be called occasional means of distribution.
I shall here confine myself to plants. In botanical works, this
or that plant is often stated to be ill adapted for wide dissemination;
but the greater or less facilities for transport across the sea
may be said to be almost wholly unknown. Until I tried, with Mr.
Berkeley's aid, a few experiments, it was not even known how far
seeds could resist the injurious action of sea-water. To my surprise
I found that out of 87 kinds, 64 germinated after an immersion of
28 days, and a few survived an immersion of 137 days. It deserves
notice that certain orders were far more injured than others: nine
leguminosae were tried, and, with one exception, they resisted the
salt-water badly; seven species of the allied orders, Hydrophyllaceae
and Polemoniacae, were all killed by a month's immersion. For convenience'
sake I chiefly tried small seeds without the capsule or fruit; and
as all of these sank in a few days they could not have been floated
across wide spaces of the sea, whether or not they were injured
by the salt-water. Afterwards I tried some larger fruits, capsules,
&c., and some of these floated for a long time. It is well known
what a difference there is in the buoyancy of green and seasoned
timber; and it occurred to me that floods would often wash into
the sea dried plants or branches with seed-capsules or fruit attached
to them. Hence I was led to dry the stems and branches of 94 plants
with ripe fruit, and to place them on sea-water. The majority sank
rapidly, but some which, whilst green, floated for a short time,
when dried floated much longer; for instance, ripe hazel-nuts sank
immediately, but when dried they floated for 90 days, and afterwards
when planted germinated; an asparagus-plant with ripe berries floated
for 23 days, when dried it floated for 85 days, and the seeds afterwards
germinated; the ripe seeds of Helosciadium sank in two days, when
dried they floated for above 90 days, and afterwards germinated.
Altogether, out of the 94 dried plants, 18 floated for above 28
days; and some of the 18 floated for a very much longer period.
So that as 64/87 kinds of seeds germinated after an immersion of
28 days; and as 18/94 distinct species with ripe fruit (but not
all the same species as in the foregoing experiment) floated, after
being dried, for above 28 days, we may conclude, as far as anything
can be inferred from these scanty facts, that the seeds of 14/100
kinds of plants of any country might be floated by sea currents
during 28 days, and would retain their power of germination. In
Johnston's Physical Atlas, the average rate of the several Atlantic
currents is 33 miles per diem (some currents running at the rate
of miles per diem); on this average, the seeds of 14/100 plants
belonging to one country might be floated across 924 miles of sea
to another country, and when stranded, if blown by an inland gale
to a favourable spot, would germinate.
Subsequently to my experiments, M. Martens tried similar ones,
but in a much better manner, for he placed the seeds in a box in
the actual sea, so that they were alternately wet and exposed to
the air like really floating plants. He tried 98 seeds, mostly different
from mine; but he chose many large fruits and likewise seeds from
plants which live near the sea; and this would have favoured both
the average length of their flotation and their resistance to the
injurious action of the salt-water. On the other hand, he did not
previously dry the plants or branches with the fruit; and this,
as we have seen, would have caused some of them to have floated
much longer. The result was that 18/98ths of his seeds of different
kinds floated for 42 days, and were then capable of germination.
But I do not doubt that plants exposed to the waves would float
for a less time than those protected from violent movement as in
our experiments. Therefore it would perhaps be safer to assume that
the seeds of about 10/100 plants of a flora, after having been dried,
could be floated across a space of sea 900 miles in width, and would
then germinate. The fact of the larger fruits often floating longer
than the small, is interesting; as plants with large seeds or fruit
which, as Alph. de Candolle has shown, generally have restricted
ranges, could hardly be transported by any other means.
Seeds may be occasionally transported in another manner. Drift
timber is thrown up on most islands, even on those in the midst
of the widest oceans; and the natives of the coral islands in the
Pacific procure stones for their tools, solely from the roots of
drifted trees, these stones being a valuable royal tax. I find that
when irregularly shaped are embedded in the roots of trees, small
parcels of earth are frequently enclosed in their interstices and
behind them,- so perfectly that not a particle could be washed away
during the longest transport: out of one small portion of earth
thus completely enclosed by the roots of an oak about 50 years old,
three dicotyledonous plants germinated: I am certain of the accuracy
of this observation. Again, I can show that the carcases of birds,
when floating on the sea, sometimes escape being immediately devoured:
and many kinds of seeds in the crops of floating birds long retain
their vitality: peas and vetches, for instance, are killed by even
a few days' immersion in sea-water; but some taken out of the crop
of a pigeon, which had floated on artificial sea-water for 30 days,
to my surprise nearly all germinated.
Living birds can hardly fail to be highly effective agents in the
transportation of seeds. I could give many facts showing how frequently
birds of many kinds are blown by gales to vast distances across
the ocean. We may safely assume that under such circumstances their
rate of flight would often be 35 miles an hour; and some authors
have given a far higher estimate. I have never seen an instance
of nutritious seeds passing through the intestines of a bird, but
hard seeds of fruit pass uninjured through even the digestive organs
of a turkey. In the course of two months, I picked up in my garden
12 kinds of seeds, out of the excrement of small birds, and these
seemed perfect, and some of them, which were tried, germinated.
But the following fact is more important: the crops of birds do
not secrete gastric juice, and do not, as I know by trial, injure
in the least the germination of seeds; now, after a bird has found
and devoured a large supply of food, it is positively asserted that
all the grains do not pass into the gizzard for twelve or even eighteen
hours. A bird in this interval might easily be blown to the distance
of 500 miles, and hawks are known to look out for tired birds, and
the contents of their torn crops might thus readily get scattered.
Some hawks and owls bolt their prey whole, and, after an interval
of from twelve to twenty hours, disgorge pellets, which, as I know
from experiments made in the Zoological Gardens, include seeds capable
of germination. Some seeds of the oat, wheat, millet, canary, hemp,
clover, and beet germinated after having been from twelve to twenty-one
hours in the stomachs of different birds of prey; and two seeds
of beet grew after having been thus retained for two days and fourteen
hours. Fresh-water fish, I find, eat seeds of many land and water
plants; fish are frequently devoured by birds, and thus the seeds
might be transported from place to place. I forced many kinds of
seeds into the stomachs of dead fish, and then gave their bodies
to fishing-eagles, storks, and pelicans; these birds, after an interval
of many hours, either rejected the seeds in pellets or passed them
in their excrement; and several of these seeds retained the power
of germination. Certain seeds, however, were always killed by this
process.
Locusts are sometimes blown to great distances from the land; I
myself caught one 370 miles from the coast of Africa, and have heard
of others caught at greater distances. The Rev. R. T. Lowe informed
Sir C. Lyell that in November, 1844, swarms of locusts visited the
island of Madeira. They were in countless numbers, as thick as the
flakes of snow in the heaviest snowstorm, and extended upwards as
far as could be seen with a telescope. During two or three days
they slowly careered round and round in an immense ellipse, at least
five or six miles in diameter, and at night alighted on the taller
trees, which were completely coated with them. They then disappeared
over the sea, as suddenly as they had appeared, and have not since
visited the island. Now, in parts of Natal it is believed by some
farmers, though on insufficient evidence, that injurious seeds are
introduced into their grass-land in the dung left by the great flights
of locusts which often visit that country. In consequence of this
belief Mr. Weale sent me in a letter a small packet of the dried
pellets, out of which I extracted under the microscope several seeds,
and raised from them seven grass plants, belonging to two species,
of two genera. Hence a swarm of locusts, such as that which visited
Madeira, might readily be the means of introducing several kinds
of plants into an island lying far from the mainland.
Although the beaks and feet of birds are generally clean, earth
sometimes adheres to them: in one case I removed sixty-one grains,
and in another case twenty-two grains of dry argillaceous earth
from the foot of a partridge, and in the earth there was a pebble
as large as the seed of a vetch. Here is a better case: the leg
of a woodcock was sent to me by a friend, with a little cake of
dry earth attached to the shank, weighing only nine grains; and
this contained a seed of the toad-rush (Juncus bufonius) which germinated
and flowered. Mr. Swaysland, of Brighton, who during the last forty
years has paid close attention to our migratory birds, informs me
that he has often shot wagtails (Motacillae), wheat-ears, and whinchats
(Saxicolae), on their first arrival on our shores, before they had
alighted; and he has several times noticed little cakes of earth
attached to their feet. Many facts could be given showing how generally
soil is charged with seeds. For instance, Prof. Newton sent me the
leg of a red-legged partridge (Caccabis rufa) which had been wounded
and could not fly, with a ball of hard earth adhering to it, and
weighing six and a half ounces. The earth had been kept for three
years, but when broken, watered and placed under a bell glass, no
less than 82 plants sprung from it: these consisted of 12 monocotyledons,
including the common oat, and at least one kind of grass, and of
70 dicotyledons, which consisted, judging from the young leaves,
of at least three distinct species. With such facts before us, can
we doubt that the many birds which are annually blown by gales across
great spaces of ocean, and which annually migrate- for instance,
the millions of quails across the Mediterranean- must occasionally
transport a few seeds embedded in dirt adhering to their feet or
beaks? But I shall have to recur to this subject.
As icebergs are known to be sometimes loaded with earth and stones,
and have even carried brushwood, bones, and the nest of a land-bird,
it can hardly be doubted that they must occasionally, as suggested
by Lyell, have transported seeds from one part to another of the
arctic and antarctic regions; and during the Glacial period from
one part of the now temperate regions to another. In the Azores,
from the large number of plants common to Europe, in comparison
with the species on the other islands of the Atlantic, which stand
nearer to the mainland, and (as remarked by Mr. H. C. Watson) from
their somewhat northern character in comparison with the latitude,
I suspected that these islands had been partly stocked by ice-borne
seeds, during the Glacial epoch. At my request Sir C. Lyell wrote
to M. Hartung to inquire whether he had observed erratic boulders
on these islands, and he answered that he had found large fragments
of granite and other rocks, which do not occur in the archipelago.
Hence we may safely infer that icebergs formerly landed their rocky
burthens on the shores of these mid-ocean islands and it is at least
possible that they may have brought thither some few seeds of northern
plants.
Considering that these several means of transport, and that other
means, which without doubt remain to be discovered, have been in
action year after year for tens of thousands of years, it would,
I think, be a marvellous fact if many plants had not thus become
widely transported. These means of transport are sometimes called
accidental, but this is not strictly correct: the currents of the
sea are not accidental, nor is the direction of prevalent gales
of wind. It should be observed that scarcely any means of transport
would carry seeds for very great distances: for seeds do not retain
their vitality when exposed for a great length of time to the action
of sea-water; nor could they be long carried in the crops or intestines
of birds. These means, however, would suffice for occasional transport
across tracts of sea some hundred miles in breadth, or from island
to island, or from a continent to a neighbouring island, but not
from one distant continent to another. The floras of distant continents
would not by such means become mingled; but would remain as distinct
as they now are. The currents, from their course, would never bring
seeds from North America to Britain, though they might and do bring
seeds from the West Indies to our western shores, where, if not
killed by their very long immersion in salt water, they could not
endure our climate. Almost every year, one or two land-birds are
blown across the whole Atlantic Ocean, from North America to the
western shores of Ireland and England; but seeds could be transported
by these rare wanderers only by one means, namely, by dirt adhering
to their feet or beaks, which is in itself a rare accident. Even
in this case, how small would be the chance of a seed falling on
favourable soil, and coming to maturity! But it would be a great
error to argue that because a well-stocked island, like Great Britain,
has not, as far as is known (and it would be very difficult to prove
this), received within the last few centuries, through occasional
means of transport, immigrants from Europe or any other continent,
that a poorly-stocked island, though standing more remote from the
mainland, would not receive colonists by similar means. Out of a
hundred kinds of seeds or animals transported to an island, even
if far less well-stocked than Britain, perhaps not more than one
would be so well fitted to its new home, as to become naturalised.
But this is no valid argument against what would be effected by
occasional means of transport, during the long lapse of geological
time, whilst the island was being upheaved, and before it had become
fully stocked with inhabitants. On almost bare land, with few or
no destructive insects or birds living there, nearly every seed
which chanced to arrive, if fitted for the climate, would germinate
and survive.

The identity of many plants and animals, on mountain-summits, separated
from each other by hundreds of miles of lowlands, where Alpine species
could not possibly exist, is one of the most striking cases known
of the same species living at distant points without the apparent
possibility of their having migrated from one point to the other.
It is indeed a remarkable fact to see so many plants of the same
species living on the snowy regions of the Alps or Pyrenees, and
in the extreme northern parts of Europe; but it is far more remarkable,
that the plants on the White Mountains, in the United States of
America, are all the same with those of Labrador, and nearly all
the same, as we hear from Asa Gray, with those on the loftiest mountains
of Europe. Even as long ago as 1747, such facts led Gmelin to conclude
that the same species must have been independently created at many
distinct points; and we might have remained in this same belief,
had not Agassiz and others called vivid attention to the Glacial
period, which, as we shall immediately see, affords a simple explanation
of these facts. We have evidence of almost every conceivable kind,
organic and inorganic, that, within a very recent geological period,
central Europe and North America suffered under an arctic climate.
The ruins of a house burnt by fire do not tell their tale more plainly
than do the mountains of Scotland and Wales, with their scored flanks,
polished surfaces, and perched boulders, of the icy streams with
which their valleys were lately filled. So greatly has the climate
of Europe changed, that in northern Italy, gigantic moraines, left
by old glaciers, are now clothed by the vine and maize. Throughout
a large part of the United States, erratic boulders and scored rocks
plainly reveal a former cold period.
The former influence of the glacial climate on the distribution
of the inhabitants of Europe, as explained by Edward Forbes, is
substantially as follows. But we shall follow the changes more readily,
by supposing a new glacial period slowly to come on, and then pass
away, as formerly occurred. As the cold came on, and as each more
southern zone became fitted for the inhabitants of the north, these
would take the places of the former inhabitants of the temperate
regions. The latter, at the same time, would travel further and
further southward, unless they were stopped by barriers, in which
case they would perish. The mountains would become covered with
snow and ice, and their former Alpine inhabitants would descend
to the plains. By the time that the cold had reached its maximum,
we should have an arctic fauna and flora, covering the central parts
of Europe, as far south as the Alps and Pyrenees, and even stretching
into Spain. The now temperate regions of the United States would
likewise be covered by arctic plants and animals and these would
be nearly the same with those of Europe; for the present circumpolar
inhabitants, which we suppose to have everywhere travelled southward,
are remarkably uniform round the world.
As the warmth returned, the arctic forms would retreat northward,
closely followed up in their retreat by the productions of the more
temperate regions. And as the snow melted from the bases of the
mountains, the arctic forms would seize on the cleared and thawed
ground, always ascending, as the warmth increased and the snow still
further disappeared, higher and higher, whilst their brethren were
pursuing their northern journey. Hence, when the warmth had fully
returned, the same species, which had lately lived together on the
European and North American lowlands, would again be found in the
arctic regions of the Old and New Worlds, and on many isolated mountain-summits
far distant from each other.
Thus we can understand the identity of many plants at points so
immensely remote as the mountains of the United States and those
of Europe. We can thus also understand the fact that the Alpine
plants of each mountain range are more especially related to the
arctic forms living due north or nearly due north of them: for the
first migration when the cold came on, and the re-migration on the
returning warmth, would generally have been due south and north.
The Alpine plants, for example, of Scotland, as remarked by Mr.
H. C. Watson, and those of the Pyrenees, as remarked by Ramond,
are more especially allied to the plants of northern Scandinavia;
those of the United States to Labrador; those of the mountains of
Siberia to the arctic regions of that country. These views, grounded
as they are on the perfectly well-ascertained occurrence of a former
Glacial period, seem to me to explain in so satisfactory a manner
the present distribution of the Alpine and arctic productions of
Europe and America, that when in other regions we find the same
species on distant mountain-summits, we may almost conclude, without
other evidence, that a colder climate formerly permitted their migration
across the intervening lowlands, now become too warm for their existence.
As the arctic forms moved first southward and afterwards backwards
to the north, in unison with the changing climate, they will not
have been exposed during their long migration to any great diversity
of temperature; and as they all migrated in a body together, their
mutual relations will not have been much disturbed. Hence, in accordance
with the principles inculcated in this volume, these forms will
not have been liable to much modification. But with the Alpine productions,
left isolated from the moment of the returning warmth, first at
the bases and ultimately on the summits of the mountains, the case
will have been somewhat different; for it is not likely that all
the same arctic species will have been left on mountain ranges far
distant from each other, and have survived there ever since; they
will also in all probability, have become mingled with ancient Alpine
species, which must have existed on the mountains before the commencement
of the Glacial epoch, and which during the coldest period will have
been temporarily driven down to the plains; they will, also, have
been subsequently exposed to somewhat different climatal influences.
Their mutual relations will thus have been in some degree disturbed;
consequently they will have been liable to modification; and they
have been modified; for if we compare the present Alpine plants
and animals of the several great European mountain ranges one with
another, though many of the species remain identically the same,
some exist as varieties, some as doubtful forms or sub-species,
and some as distinct yet closely allied species representing each
other on the several ranges.
In the foregoing illustration I have assumed that at the commencement
of our imaginary Glacial period, the arctic productions were as
uniform round the polar regions as they are at the present day.
But it is also necessary to assume that many sub-arctic and some
few temperate forms were the same round the world, for some of the
species which now exist on the lower mountain-slopes and on the
plains of North America and Europe are the same; and it may be asked
how I account for this degree of uniformity in the sub-arctic and
temperate forms round the world, at the commencement of the real
Glacial period. At the present day, the sub-arctic and northern
temperate productions of the Old and New Worlds are separated from
each other by the whole Atlantic Ocean and by the northern part
of the Pacific. During the Glacial period, when the inhabitants
of the Old and New Worlds lived farther southward than they do at
present, they must have been still more completely separated from
each other by wider spaces of ocean; so that it may well be asked
how the same species could then or previously have entered the two
continents. The explanation, I believe, lies in the nature of the
climate before the commencement of the Glacial period. At this,
the newer Pliocene period, the majority of the inhabitants of the
world were specifically the same as now, and we have good reason
to believe that the climate was warmer than at the present day.
Hence we may suppose that the organisms which now live under latitude
60, lived during the Pliocene period farther north under the Polar
Circle, in latitude 66-67; and that the present arctic productions
then lived on the broken land still nearer to the pole. Now, if
we looked at a terrestrial globe, we see under the Polar Circle
that there is almost continuous land from western Europe, through
Siberia, to eastern America. And this continuity of the circumpolar
land, with the consequent freedom under a more favourable climate
for intermigration, will account for the supposed uniformity of
the sub-arctic and temperate productions of the Old and New Worlds,
at a period anterior to the Glacial epoch.
Believing, from reasons before alluded to, that our continents
have long remained in nearly the same relative position, though
subjected to great oscillations of level, I am strongly inclined
to extend the above view, and to infer that during some still earlier
and still warmer period, such as the older Pliocene period, a large
number of the same plants and animals inhabited the almost continuous
circumpolar land; and that these plants and animals, both in the
Old and New Worlds, began slowly to migrate southwards as the climate
became less warm, long before the commencement of the Glacial period.
We now see, as I believe, their descendants, mostly in a modified
condition, in the central parts of Europe and the United States.
On this view we can understand the relationship with very little
identity, between the productions of North America and Europe,-
a relationship which is highly remarkable, considering the distance
of the two areas, and their separation by the whole Atlantic Ocean.
We can further understand the singular fact remarked on by several
observers that the productions of Europe and America during the
later tertiary stages were more closely related to each other than
they are at the present time; for during these warmer periods the
northern parts of the Old and New Worlds will have been almost continuously
united by land, serving as a bridge, since rendered impassable by
cold, for the intermigration of their inhabitants.
During the slowly decreasing warmth of the Pliocene period, as
soon as the species in common, which inhabited the New and Old Worlds,
migrated south of the Polar Circle, they will have been completely
cut off from each other. This separation, as far as the more temperate
productions are concerned, must have taken place long ages ago.
As the plants and animals migrated southwards, they will have become
mingled in the one great region with the native American productions,
and would have had to compete with them; and in the other great
region, with those of the Old World. Consequently we have here everything
favourable for much modification,- for far more modification than
with the Alpine productions, left isolated, within a much more recent
period, on the several mountain-ranges and on the arctic lands of
Europe and N. America. Hence it has come, that when we compare the
now living productions of the temperate regions of the New and Old
Worlds, we find very few identical species (though Asa Gray has
lately shown that more plants are identical than was formerly supposed),
but we find in every great class many forms, which some naturalists
rank as geographical races, and others as distinct species; and
a host of closely allied or representative forms which are ranked
by all naturalists as specifically distinct.
As on the land, so in the waters of the sea, a slow southern migration
of a marine fauna, which, during the Pliocene or even a somewhat
earlier period, was nearly uniform along the continuous shores of
the Polar Circle, will account, on the theory of modification, for
many closely allied forms now living in marine areas completely
sundered. Thus, I think, we can understand the presence of some
closely allied, still existing and extinct tertiary forms, on the
eastern and western shores of temperate North America; and the still
more striking fact of many closely allied crustaceans (as described
in Dana's admirable work), some fish and other marine animals, inhabiting
the Mediterranean and the seas of Japan,- these two areas being
now completely separated by the breadth of a whole continent and
by wide spaces of ocean.
These cases of close relationship in species either now or formerly
inhabiting the seas on the eastern and western shores of North America,
the Mediterranean and Japan, and the temperate lands of North America
and Europe, are inexplicable on the theory of creation. We cannot
maintain that such species have been created alike, in correspondence
with the nearly similar physical conditions of the areas; for if
we compare, for instance, certain parts of South America with parts
of South Africa or Australia, we see countries closely similar in
all their physical conditions, with their inhabitants utterly dissimilar.

But we must return to our more immediate subject. I am convinced
that Forbes's view may be largely extended. In Europe we meet with
the plainest evidence of the Glacial period, from the western shores
of Britain to the Oural range, and southward to the Pyrenees. We
may infer from the frozen mammals and nature of the mountain vegetation,
that Siberia was similarly affected. In the Lebanon, according to
Dr. Hooker, perpetual snow formerly covered the central axis, and
fed glaciers which rolled 400 feet down the valleys. The same observer
has recently found great moraines at a low level on the Atlas range
in N. Africa. Along the Himalaya, at points 900 miles apart, glaciers
have left the marks of their former low descent; and in Sikkim,
Dr. Hooker saw maize growing on ancient and gigantic moraines. Southward
of the Asiatic continent, on the opposite side of the equator, we
know, from the excellent researches of Dr. J. Haast and Dr. Hector,
that in New Zealand immense glaciers formerly descended to a low
level; and the same plants found by Dr. Hooker on widely separated
mountains in this island tell the same story of a former cold period.
From facts communicated to me by the Rev. W. B. Clarke, it appears
also that there are traces of former glacial action on the mountains
of the south-eastern corner of Australia.
Looking to America; in the northern half, ice-borne fragments of
rock have been observed on the eastern side of the continent, as
far south as lat. 36-37, and on the shores of the Pacific, where
the climate is now so different, as far south as lat. 46. Erratic
boulders have, also, been noticed on the Rocky Mountains. In the
Cordillera of South America, nearly under the equator, glaciers
once extended far below their present level. In Central Chile I
examined a vast mound of detritus with great boulders, crossing
the Portillo valley, which there can hardly be a doubt once formed
a huge moraine; and Mr. D. Forbes informs me that he found in various
parts of the Cordillera, from lat. 13 deg. to 30 deg. S., at about
the height of 19,000 feet, deeply furrowed rocks, resembling those
with which he was familiar in Norway, and likewise great masses
of detritus, including grooved pebbles. Along this whole space of
the Cordillera true glaciers do not exist even at much more considerable
heights. Farther south on both sides of the continent, from lat.
41 deg. to the southernmost extremity, we have the clearest evidence
of former glacial action, in numerous immense boulders transported
far from their parent source.
From these several facts, namely from the glacial action having
extended all round the northern and southern hemispheres- from the
period having been in a geological sense recent in both hemispheres-
from its having lasted in both during a great length of time, as
may be inferred from the amount of work affected- and lastly from
glaciers having recently descended to a low level along the whole
line of the Cordillera, it at one time appeared to me that we could
not avoid the conclusion that the temperature of the whole world
had been simultaneously lowered during the Glacial period. But now
Mr. Croll, in a series of admirable memoirs, has attempted to show
that a glacial condition of climate is the result of various physical
causes, brought into operation by an increase in the eccentricity
of the earth's orbit. All these causes tend towards the same end;
but the most powerful appears to be the indirect influence of the
eccentricity of the orbit upon oceanic currents. According to Mr.
Croll, cold periods regularly occur every ten or fifteen thousand
years; and these at long intervals are extremely severe, owing to
certain contingencies, of which the most important, as Sir C. Lyell
has shown, is the relative position of the land and water. Mr. Croll
believes that the last great Glacial period occurred about 240,000
years ago, and endured with slight alterations of climate for about
160,000 years. With respect to more ancient Glacial periods, several
geologists are convinced from direct evidence that such occurred
during the Miocene and Eocene formations, not to mention still more
ancient formations. But the most important result for us, arrived
at by Mr. Croll, is that whenever the northern hemisphere passes
through a cold period the temperature of the southern hemisphere
is actually raised, with the winters rendered much milder, chiefly
through changes in the direction of the ocean currents. So conversely
it will be with the northern hemisphere, whilst the southern passes
through a Glacial period. This conclusion throws so much light on
geographical distribution that I am strongly inclined to trust in
it; but I will first give the facts, which demand an explanation.
In South America, Dr. Hooker has shown that besides many closely
allied species, between forty and fifty of the flowering plants
of Tierra del Fuego, forming no inconsiderable part of its scanty
flora, are common to North America and Europe, enormously remote
as these areas in opposite hemispheres are from each other. On the
lofty mountains of equatorial America a host of peculiar species
belonging to European genera occur. On the Organ mountains of Brazil,
some few temperate European, some Antarctic, and some Andean genera
were found by Gardner, which do not exist in the low intervening
hot countries. On the Silla of Caraccas, the illustrious Humboldt
long ago found species belonging to genera characteristic of the
Cordillera.
In Africa, several forms characteristic of Europe and some few
representatives of the flora of the Cape of Good Hope occur in the
mountains of Abyssinia. At the Cape of Good Hope a very few European
species, believed not to have been introduced by man, and on the
mountains several representative European forms are found, which
have not been discovered in the intertropical parts of Africa. Dr.
Hooker has also lately shown that several of the plants living on
the upper parts of the lofty island of Fernando Po and on the neighbouring
Cameroon mountains, in the Gulf of Guinea, are closely related to
those on the mountains of Abyssinia, and likewise to those of temperate
Europe. It now also appears, as I hear from Dr. Hooker, that some
of these same temperate plants have been discovered by the Rev.
R. T. Lowe on the mountains of the Cape Verde Islands. This extension
of the same temperate forms, almost under the equator, across the
whole continent of Africa and to the mountains of the Cape Verde
Archipelago, is one of the most astonishing facts ever recorded
in the distribution of plants.
On the Himalaya, and on the isolated mountain-ranges of the peninsula
of India, on the heights of Ceylon, and on the volcanic cones of
Java, many plants occur, either identically the same or representing
each other, and at the same time representing plants of Europe,
not found in the intervening hot lowlands. A list of the genera
of plants collected on the loftier peaks of Java, raises a picture
of a collection made on a hillock in Europe! Still more striking
is the fact that peculiar Australian forms are represented by certain
plants growing on the summits of the mountains of Borneo. Some of
these Australian forms, as I hear from Dr. Hooker, extend along
the heights of the peninsula of Malacca, and are thinly scattered
on the one hand over India, and on the other hand as far north as
Japan.
On the southern mountains of Australia, Dr. F. Muller has discovered
several European species; other species, not introduced by man,
occur on the lowlands; and a long list can be given, as I am informed
by Dr. Hooker, of European genera, found in Australia, but not in
the intermediate torrid regions. In the admirable Introduction to
the Flora of New Zealand, by Dr. Hooker, analogous and striking
facts are given in regard to the plants of that large island. Hence
we see that certain plants growing on the more lofty mountains of
the tropics in all parts of the world, and on the temperate plains
of the north and south, are either the same species or varieties
of the same species. It should, however, be observed that these
plants are not strictly arctic forms; for, as Mr. H. C. Watson has
remarked, "in receding from polar towards equatorial latitudes,
the Alpine or mountain floras really become less and less Arctic."
Besides these identical and closely allied forms, many species inhabiting
the same widely sundered areas, belong to genera not now found in
the intermediate tropical lowlands.
These brief remarks apply to plants alone; but some few analogous
facts could be given in regard to terrestrial animals. In marine
productions, similar cases likewise occur; as an example, I may
quote a statement by the highest authority, Prof. Dana, that "It
is certainly a wonderful fact that New Zealand should have a closer
resemblance in its Crustacea to Great Britain, its antipode, than
to any other part of the world." Sir J. Richardson, also, speaks
of the reappearance on the shores of New Zealand, Tasmania, &c.,
of northern forms of fish. Dr. Hooker informs me that twenty-five
species of Algae are common to New Zealand and to Europe, but have
not been found in the intermediate tropical seas.
From the foregoing facts, namely, the presence of temperate forms
on the highlands across the whole of equatorial Africa, and along
the Peninsula of India, to Ceylon and the Malay Archipelago, and
in a less well-marked manner across the wide expanse of tropical
South America, it appears almost certain that at some former period,
no doubt during the most severe part of a Glacial period, the lowlands
of these great continents were everywhere tenanted under the equator
by considerable number of temperate forms. At this period the equatorial
climate at the level of the sea was probably about the same with
that now experienced at the height of from five to six thousand
feet under the same latitude, or perhaps even rather cooler. During
this, the coldest period, the lowlands under the equator must have
been clothed with a mingled tropical and temperate vegetation, like
that described by Hooker as growing luxuriantly at the height of
from four to five thousand feet on the lower slopes of the Himalaya,
but with perhaps a still greater preponderance of temperate forms.
So again in the mountainous island of Fernando Po, in the Gulf of
Guinea, Mr. Mann found temperate European forms beginning to appear
at the height of about five thousand feet. On the mountains of Panama,
at the height of only two thousand feet, Dr. Seemann found the vegetation
like that of Mexico, "with forms of the torrid zone harmoniously
blended with those of the temperate."
Now let us see whether Mr. Croll's conclusion that when the northern
hemisphere suffered from the extreme cold of the great Glacial period,
the southern hemisphere was actually warmer, throws any clear light
on the present apparently inexplicable distribution of various organisms
in the temperate parts of both hemispheres, and on the mountains
of the tropics. The Glacial period, as measured by years, must have
been very long; and when we remember over what vast spaces some
naturalised plants and animals have spread within a few centuries,
this period will have been ample for any amount of migration. As
the cold became more and more intense, we know that arctic forms
invaded the temperate regions; and, from the facts just given, there
can hardly be a doubt that some of the more vigorous, dominant,
and widest-spreading temperate forms invaded the equatorial lowlands.
The inhabitants of these hot lowlands would at the same time have
migrated to the tropical and subtropical regions of the south, for
the southern hemisphere was at this period warmer. On the decline
of the Glacial period, as both hemispheres gradually recovered their
former temperatures, the northern temperate forms living on the
lowlands under the equator, would have been driven to their former
homes or have been destroyed, being replaced by the equatorial forms
returning from the south. Some, however, of the northern temperate
forms would almost certainly have ascended any adjoining high land,
where, if sufficiently lofty, they would have long survived like
the arctic forms on the mountains of Europe. They might have survived,
even if the climate was not perfectly fitted for them, for the change
of temperature must have been very slow, and plants undoubtedly
possess a certain capacity for acclimatisation, as shown by their
transmitting to their offspring different constitutional powers
of resisting heat and cold.
In the regular course of events the southern hemisphere would in
its turn be subjected to a severe Glacial period, with the northern
hemisphere rendered warmer; and then the southern temperate forms
would invade the equatorial lowlands. The northern forms which had
before been left on the mountains would now descend and mingle with
the southern forms. These latter, when the warmth returned, would
return to their former homes, leaving some few species on the mountains,
and carrying southward with them some of the northern temperate
forms which had descended from their mountain fastnesses. Thus,
we should have some few species identically the same in the northern
and southern temperate zones and on the mountains of the intermediate
tropical regions. But the species left during a long time on these
mountains, or in opposite hemispheres, would have to compete with
many new forms and would be exposed to somewhat different physical
conditions; hence they would be eminently liable to modification,
and would generally now exist as varieties or as representative
species; and this is the case. We must, also, bear in mind the occurrence
in both hemispheres of former Glacial periods; for these will account,
in accordance with the same principles, for the many quite distinct
species inhabiting the same widely separated areas, and belonging
to genera not now found in the intermediate torrid zones.
It is a remarkable fact strongly insisted on by Hooker in regard
to America, and by Alph. de Candolle in regard to Australia, that
many more identical or slightly modified species have migrated from
the north to the south, than in a reversed direction. We see, however,
a few southern forms on the mountains of Borneo and Abyssinia. I
suspect that this preponderant migration from the north to the south
is due to the greater extent of land in the north, and to the northern
forms having existed in their own homes in greater numbers, and
having consequently been advanced through natural selection and
competition to a higher stage of perfection, or dominating power,
than the southern forms. And thus, when the two sets became commingled
in the equatorial regions, during the alternations to the Glacial
periods, the northern forms were the more powerful and were able
to hold their places on the mountains, and afterwards to migrate
southward with the southern forms; but not so the southern in regard
to the northern forms. In the same manner at the present day, we
see that very many European productions cover the ground in La Plata,
New Zealand, and to a lesser degree in Australia, and have beaten
the natives; whereas extremely few southern forms have become naturalised
in any part of the northern hemisphere, though hides, wool, and
other objects likely to carry seeds have been largely imported into
Europe during the last two or three centuries from La Plata and
during the last forty or fifty years from Australia. The Neilgherrie
mountains in India, however, offer a partial exception; for here,
as I hear from Dr. Hooker, Australian forms are rapidly sowing themselves
and becoming naturalised. Before the last great Glacial period,
no doubt the intertropical mountains were stocked with endemic Alpine
forms; but these have almost everywhere yielded to the more dominant
forms generated in the larger areas and more efficient workshops
of the north. In many islands the native productions are nearly
equalled, or even outnumbered, by those which have become naturalised;
and this is the first stage towards their extinction. Mountains
are islands on the land, and their inhabitants have yielded to those
produced within the larger areas of the north, just in the same
way as the inhabitants of real islands have everywhere yielded and
are still yielding to continental forms naturalised through man's
agency.
The same principles apply to the distribution of terrestrial animals
and of marine productions, in the northern and southern temperate
zones, and on the intertropical mountains. When, during the height
of the Glacial period, the ocean-currents were widely different
to what they now are, some of the inhabitants of the temperate seas
might have reached the equator; of these a few would perhaps at
once be able to migrate southward, by keeping to the cooler currents,
whilst others might remain and survive in the colder depths until
the southern hemisphere was in its turn subjected to a glacial climate
and permitted their further progress; in nearly the same manner
as, according to Forbes, isolated spaces inhabited by arctic productions
exist to the present day in the deeper parts of the northern temperate
seas.
I am far from supposing that all the difficulties in regard to
the distribution and affinities of the identical and allied species,
which now live so widely separated in the north and south, and sometimes
on the intermediate mountain-ranges, are removed on the views above
given. The exact lines of migration cannot be indicated. We cannot
say why certain species and not others have migrated; why certain
species have been modified and have given rise to new forms, whilst
others have remained unaltered. We cannot hope to explain such facts,
until we can say why one species and not another becomes naturalised
by man's agency in a foreign land; why one species ranges twice
or thrice as far, and is twice or thrice as common, as another species
within their own homes.
Various special difficulties also remain to be solved; for instance,
the occurrence, as shown by Dr. Hooker, of the same plants at points
so enormously remote as Kerguelen Land, New Zealand, and Fuegia;
but icebergs, as suggested by Lyell, may have been concerned in
their dispersal. The existence at these and other distant points
of the southern hemisphere, of species, which, though distinct,
belong to genera exclusively confined to the south, is a more remarkable
case. Some of these species are so distinct, that we cannot suppose
that there has been time since the commencement of the last Glacial
period for their migration and subsequent modification to the necessary
degree. The facts seem to indicate that distinct species belonging
to the same genera have migrated in radiating lines from a common
centre; and I am inclined to look in the southern, as in the northern
hemisphere, to a former and warmer period, before the commencement
of the last Glacial period, when the Antarctic lands, now covered
with ice, supported a highly peculiar and isolated flora. It may
be suspected that before this flora was exterminated during the
last Glacial epoch, a few forms had been already widely dispersed
to various points of the southern hemisphere by occasional means
of transport, and by the aid as halting-places, of now sunken islands.
Thus the southern shores of America, Australia, and New Zealand
may have become slightly tinted by the same peculiar forms of life.
Sir C. Lyell in a striking passage has speculated, in language
almost identical with mine, on the effects of great alterations
of climate throughout the world on geographical distribution. And
we have now seen that Mr. Croll's conclusion that successive Glacial
periods in the one hemisphere coincide with warmer periods in the
opposite hemisphere, together with the admission of the slow modification
of species, explains a multitude of facts in the distribution of
the same and of the allied forms of life in all parts of the globe.
The living waters have flowed during one period from the north and
during another from the south, and in both cases have reached the
equator; but the stream of life has flowed with greater force from
the north than in the opposite direction, and has consequently more
freely inundated the south. As the tide leaves its drift in horizontal
lines, rising higher on the shores where the tide rises highest,
so have the living waters left their living drift on our mountain
summits, in a line gently rising from the arctic lowlands to a great
altitude under the equator. The various beings thus left stranded
may be compared with savage races of man, driven up and surviving
in the mountain fastnesses of almost every land, which serves as
a record, full of interest to us, of the former inhabitants of the
surrounding lowlands.

AS LAKES and river-systems are separated from each other by barriers
of land, it might have been thought that fresh-water productions
would not have ranged widely within the same country, and as the
sea is apparently a still more formidable barrier, that they would
never have extended to distant countries. But the case is exactly
the reverse. Not only have many fresh-water species, belonging to
different classes, an enormous range, but allied species prevail
in a remarkable manner throughout the world. When first collecting
in the fresh waters of Brazil, I well remember feeling much surprise
at the similarity of the fresh-water insects, shells &c., and
at the dissimilarity of the surrounding terrestrial beings, compared
with those of Britain.
But the wide ranging power of fresh-water productions can, I think,
in most cases be explained by their having become fitted, in a manner
highly useful to them, for short and frequent migrations from pond
to pond, or from stream to stream, within their own countries; and
liability to wide dispersal would follow from this capacity as an
almost necessary consequence. We can here consider only a few cases;
of these, some of the most difficult to explain are presented by
fish. It was formerly believed that the same fresh-water species
never existed on two continents distant from each other. But Dr.
Gunther has lately shown that the Galaxias attenuatus inhabits Tasmania,
New Zealand, the Falkland Islands, and the mainland of South America.
This is a wonderful case, and probably indicates dispersal from
an Antarctic centre during a former warm period. This case, however,
is rendered in some degree less surprising by the species of this
genus having the power of crossing by some unknown means considerable
spaces of open ocean: thus there is one species common to New Zealand
and to the Auckland Islands, though separated by a distance of about
230 miles. On the same continent fresh-water fish often range widely,
and as if capriciously; for in two adjoining river-systems some
of the species may be the same, and some wholly different.
It is probable that they are occasionally transported by what may
be called accidental means. Thus fishes still alive are not very
rarely dropped at distant points by whirlwinds; and it is known
that the ova retain their vitality for a considerable time after
removal from the water. Their dispersal may, however, be mainly
attributed to changes in the level of the land within the recent
period, causing rivers to flow into each other. Instances, also,
could be given of this having occurred during floods, without any
change of level. The wide difference of the fish on the opposite
sides of most mountain-ranges, which are continuous, and which consequently
must from an early period have completely prevented the inosculation
of the river-systems on the two sides, leads to the same conclusion.
Some fresh-water fish belong to very ancient forms, and in such
cases there will have been ample time for great geographical changes,
and consequently time and means for much migration. Moreover, Dr.
Gunther has recently been led by several considerations to infer
that with fishes the same forms have a long endurance. Salt-water
fish can with care be slowly accustomed to live in fresh water;
and, according to Valenciennes' there is hardly a single group of
which an the members are confined to fresh water, so that a marine
species belonging to a fresh-water group might travel far along
the shores of the sea, and could, it is probable, become adapted
without much difficulty to the fresh waters of a distant land.
Some species of fresh-water shells have very wide ranges, and allied
species which, on our theory, are descended from a common parent,
and must have proceeded from a single source, prevail throughout
the world. Their distribution at first perplexed me much, as their
ova are not likely to be transported by birds; and the ova, as well
as the adults, are immediately killed by sea-water. I could not
even understand how some naturalised species have spread rapidly
throughout the same country. But two facts, which I have observed-
and many others no doubt will be discovered- throw some light on
this subject. When ducks suddenly emerge from a pond covered with
duck-weed, I have twice seen these little plants adhering to their
backs; and it has happened to me, in removing a little duck-weed
from one aquarium to another, that I have unintentionally stocked
the one with fresh-water shells from the other. But another agency
is perhaps more effectual: I suspended the feet of a duck in an
aquarium, where many ova of fresh-water shells were hatching; and
I found that numbers of the extremely minute and just-hatched shells
crawled on the feet, and clung to them so firmly that when taken
out of the water they could not be jarred off, though at a somewhat
more advanced age they would voluntarily drop off. These just-hatched
molluscs, though aquatic in their nature, survived on the duck's
feet, in damp air, from twelve to twenty-hours; and in this length
of time a duck or heron might fly at least six or seven hundred
miles, and if blown across the sea to an oceanic island, or to any
other distant point, would be sure to alight on a pool or rivulet.
Sir Charles Lyell informs me that a Dytiscus has been caught with
an Ancylus (a fresh-water shell like a limpet) firmly adhering to
it; and a water-beetle of the same family, a Colymbetes, once flew
on board the "Beagle," when forty-five miles distant from the nearest
land: how much farther it might have been blown by a favouring gale
no one can tell.
With respect to plants, it has long been known what enormous ranges
many fresh-water, and even marsh species, have, both over continents
and to the most remote oceanic islands. This is strikingly illustrated,
according to Alph. de Candolle, in those large groups of terrestrial
plants, which have very few aquatic members; for the latter seem
immediately to acquire, as if in consequence, a wide range. I think
favourable means of dispersal explain this fact. I have before mentioned
that earth occasionally adheres in some quantity to the feet and
beaks of birds. Wading birds, which frequent the muddy edges of
ponds, if suddenly flushed, would be the most likely to have muddy
feet. Birds of this order wander more than those of any other; and
they are occasionally found on the most remote and barren islands
of the open ocean; they would not be likely to alight on the surface
of the sea, so that any dirt on their feet would not be washed off;
and when gaining the land, they would be sure to fly to their natural
fresh-water haunts. I do not believe that botanists are aware how
charged the mud of ponds is with seeds; I have tried several little
experiments, but will here give only the most striking case: I took
in February three tablespoonfuls of mud from three different points,
beneath water, on the edge of a little pond: this mud when dried
weighed only 63/4 ounces; I kept it covered up in my study for six
months, pulling up and counting each plant as it grew; the plants
were of many kinds, and were altogether 537 in number; and yet the
viscid mud was all contained in a breakfast cup! Considering these
facts, I think it would be an inexplicable circumstance if water-birds
did not transport the seeds of fresh-water plants to unstocked ponds
and streams, situated at very distant points. The same agency may
have come into play with the eggs of some of the smaller fresh-water
animals.
Other and unknown agencies probably have also played a part. I
have stated that fresh-water fish eat some kinds of seeds, though
they reject many other kinds after having swallowed them; even small
fish swallow seeds of moderate size, as of the yellow water-lily
and Potamogeton. Herons and other birds, century after century,
have gone on daily devouring fish; they then take flight and go
to other waters, or are blown across the sea; and we have seen that
seeds retain their power of germination, when rejected many hours
afterwards in pellets or in the excrement. When I saw the great
size of the seeds of that fine water-lily, the Nelumbium, and remembered
Alph. de Candolle's remarks on the distribution of this plant, I
thought that the means of its dispersal must remain inexplicable;
but Audubon states that he found the seeds of the great southern
water-lily (probably, according to Dr. Hooker, the Nelumbium luteum)
in a heron's stomach. Now this bird must often have flown with its
stomach thus well stocked to distant ponds, and then getting a hearty
meal of fish, analogy makes me believe that it would have rejected
the seeds in a pellet in a fit state for germination.
In considering these several means of distribution, it should be
remembered that when a pond or stream is first formed, for instance,
on a rising islet, it will be unoccupied; and a single seed or egg
will have a good chance of succeeding. Although there will always
be a struggle for life between the inhabitants of the same pond,
however few in kind, yet as the number even in a well-stocked pond
is small in comparison with the number of species inhabiting an
equal area of land, the competition between them will probably be
less severe than between terrestrial species; consequently an intruder
from the waters of a foreign country would have a better chance
of seizing on new place, than in the case of terrestrial colonists.
We should also remember that many fresh-water productions are low
in the scale of nature, and we have reason to believe that such
beings become modified more slowly than the high; and this will
give time for the migration of aquatic species. We should not forget
the probability of many fresh-water forms laving formerly ranged
continuously over immense areas, and then having become extinct
at intermediate points. But the wide distribution of fresh-water
plants and of the lower animals, whether retaining the same identical
form or in some degree modified, apparently depends in main part
on the wide dispersal of their seeds and eggs by animals, more especially
by fresh-water birds, which have great powers of flight, and naturally
travel from one piece of water to another.

We now come to the last of the three classes of facts, which I
have selected as presenting the greatest amount of difficulty with
respect to distribution, on the view that not only all the individuals
of the same species have migrated from some one area, but that allied
species, although now inhabiting the most distant points, have proceeded
from a single area,- the birthplace of their early progenitors.
I have already given my reasons for disbelieving in continental
extensions within the period of existing species, on so enormous
a scale that all the many islands of the several oceans were thus
stocked with their present terrestrial inhabitants. This view removes
many difficulties, but it does not accord with all the facts in
regard to the productions of islands. In the following remarks I
shall not confine myself to the mere question of dispersal, but
shall consider some other cases bearing on the truth of the two
theories of independent creation and of descent with modification.
The species of all kinds which inhabit oceanic islands are few
in number compared with those on equal continental areas: Alph.
de Candolle admits this for plants, and Wollaston for insects. New
Zealand, for instance, with its lofty mountains and diversified
stations, extending over 780 miles of latitude, together with the
outlying islands of Auckland, Campbell and Chatham, contain altogether
only 960 kinds of flowering plants; if we compare this moderate
number with the species which swarm over equal areas in South-Western
Australia or at the Cape of Good Hope, we must admit that some cause,
independently of different physical conditions, has given rise to
so great a difference in number. Even the uniform county of Cambridge
has 847 plants, and the little island of Anglesea 764, but a few
ferns and a few introduced plants are included in these numbers,
and the comparison in some other respects is not quite fair. We
have evidence that the barren island of Ascension aboriginally possessed
less than half-a-dozen flowering plants; yet many species have now
become naturalised on it, as they have in New Zealand and on every
other oceanic island which can be named. In St. Helena there is
reason to believe that the naturalised plants and animals have nearly
or quite exterminated many native productions. He who admits the
doctrine of the creation of each separate species, will have to
admit that a sufficient number of the best adapted plants and animals
were not created for oceanic islands; for man has unintentionally
stocked them far more fully and perfectly than did nature.
Although in oceanic islands the species are few in number, the
proportion of endemic kinds (i.e., those found nowhere else in the
world) is often extremely large. If we compare, for instance, the
number of endemic landshells in Madeira, or of endemic birds in
the Galapagos Archipelago, with the number found on any continent,
and then compare the area of the island with that of the continent,
we shall see that this is true. This fact might have been theoretically
expected, for, as already explained, species occasionally arriving
after long intervals of time in the new and isolated district, and
having to compete with new associates, would be eminently liable
to modification, and would often produce groups of modified descendants.
But it by no means follows that, because in an island nearly all
the species of one class are peculiar, those of another class, or
of another section of the same class, are peculiar; and this difference
seems to depend partly on the species which are not modified having
immigrated in a body, so that their mutual relations have not been
much disturbed; and partly on the frequent arrival of unmodified
immigrants from the mother-country, with which the insular forms
have intercrossed. It should be borne in mind that the offspring
of such crosses would certainly gain in vigour, so that even an
occasional cross would produce more effect than might have been
anticipated. I will give a few illustrations of the foregoing remarks:
in the Galapagos Islands there are 9.6 land-birds; of these 21 (or
perhaps 93) are peculiar, whereas of the 11 marine birds only 2
are peculiar; and it is obvious that marine birds could arrive at
these islands much more easily and frequently than land-birds. Bermuda,
on the other hand, which lies at about the same distance from North
America as the Galapagos Islands do from South America, and which
has a very peculiar soil, does not possess a single endemic landbird,
and we know from Mr. J. M. Jones's admirable account of Bermuda,
that very many North American birds occasionally or even frequently
visit this, island. Almost every year, as I am informed by Mr. E.
V. Harcourt, many European and African birds are blown to Madeira;
this island is inhabited by 99 kinds of which one alone is peculiar,
though very closely related to a European form; and three or four
other species are confined to this island and to the Canaries. So
that the islands of Bermuda and Madeira have been stocked from the
neighbouring continents with birds, which for long ages have there
struggled together, and have become mutually co-adapted. Hence when
settled in their new homes, each kind will have been kept by the
others to its proper place and habits, and will consequently have
been but little liable to modification. Any tendency to modification
will also have been checked by intercrossing with the unmodified
immigrants, often arriving from the mother-country. Madeira again
is inhabited by a wonderful number of peculiar land-shells, whereas
not one species of sea-shell is peculiar to its shores: now, though
we do not know how seashells are dispersed, yet we can see that
their eggs or larvae, perhaps attached to seaweed or floating timber,
or to the feet of wading-birds, might be transported across three
or four hundred miles of open sea far more easily than land-shells.
The different orders of insects inhabiting Madeira present nearly
parallel cases.
Oceanic islands are sometimes deficient in animals of certain whole
classes, and their places are occupied by other classes; thus in
the Galapagos Islands reptiles, and in New Zealand gigantic wingless
birds, take, or recently took, the place of mammals. Although New
Zealand is here spoken of as an oceanic island, it is in some degree
doubtful whether it should be so ranked; it is of large size, and
is not separated from Australia by a profoundly deep sea; from its
geological character and the direction of its mountain-ranges, the
Rev. W. B. Clarke has lately maintained that this island, as well
as New Caledonia, should be considered as appurtenances of Australia.
Turning to plants, Dr. Hooker has shown that in the Galapagos Islands
the proportional numbers of the different orders are very different
from what they are elsewhere. All such differences in number, and
the absence of certain whole groups of animals and plants, are generally
accounted for by supposed differences in the physical conditions
of the islands; but this explanation is not a little doubtful. Facility
of immigration seems to have been fully as important as the nature
of the conditions.
Many remarkable little facts could be given with respect to the
inhabitants of oceanic islands. For instance, in certain islands
not tenanted by a single mammal, some of the endemic plants have
beautifully hooked seeds; yet few relations are more manifest than
that hooks serve for the transportal of seeds in the wool or fur
of quadrupeds. But a hooked seed might be carried to an island by
other means; and the plant then becoming modified would form an
endemic species, still retaining its hooks, which would form a useless
appendage like the shrivelled wings under the soldered wing-covers
of many insular beetles. Again, islands often possess trees or bushes
belonging to orders which elsewhere include only herbaceous species;
now trees, as Alph. de Candolle has shown, generally have, whatever
the cause may be, confined ranges. Hence trees would be little likely
to reach distant oceanic islands; and an herbaceous plant, which
had no chance of successfully competing with the many fully developed
trees growing on a continent, might, when established on an island,
gain an advantage over other herbaceous plants by growing taller
and taller and overtopping them. In this case, natural selection
would tend to add to the stature of the plant, to whatever order
it belonged, and thus first convert it into a bush and then into
a tree.

With respect to the absence of whole orders of animals on oceanic
islands, Bory St. Vincent long ago remarked that batrachians (frogs,
toads, newts) are never found on any of the many islands with which
the great oceans are studded. I have taken pains to verify this
assertion, and have found it true, with the exception of New Zealand,
New Caledonia, the Andaman Islands, and perhaps the Solomon Islands
and the Seychelles. But I have already remarked that it is doubtful
whether New Zealand and New Caledonia ought to be classed as oceanic
islands; and this is still more doubtful with respect to the Andaman
and Solomon groups and the Seychelles. This general absence of frogs,
toads, and newts on so many true oceanic islands cannot be accounted
for by their physical conditions: indeed it seems that islands are
peculiarly fitted for these animals; for frogs have been introduced
into Madeira, the Azores, and Mauritius, and have multiplied so
as to become a nuisance. But as these animals and their spawn are
immediately killed (with the exception, as far as known, of one
Indian species) by sea-water, there would be great difficulty in
their transportal across the sea, and therefore we can see why they
do not exist on strictly oceanic islands. But why, on the theory
of creation, they should not have been created there, it would be
very difficult to explain.
Mammals offer another and similar case. I have carefully searched
the oldest voyages, and have not found a single instance, free from
doubt, of a terrestrial mammal (excluding domesticated animals kept
by the natives) inhabiting an island situated above 300 miles from
a continent or great continental island; and many islands situated
at a much less distance are equally barren. The Falkland Islands,
which are inhabited by a wolf-like fox, come nearest to an exception;
but this group cannot be considered as oceanic, as it lies on a
bank in connection with the mainland at the distance of about 280
miles; moreover, icebergs formerly brought boulders to its western
shores, and they may have formerly transported foxes, as now frequently
happens in the arctic regions. Yet it cannot be said that small
islands will not support at least small mammals, for they occur
in many parts of the world on very small islands, when lying close
to a continent; and hardly an island can be named on which our smaller
quadrupeds have not become naturalised and greatly multiplied. It
cannot be said, on the ordinary view of creation, that there has
not been time for the creation of mammals; many volcanic islands
are sufficiently ancient, as shown by the stupendous degradation
which they have suffered, and by their tertiary strata: there has
also been time for the production of endemic species belonging to
other classes; and on continents it is known that new species of
mammals appear and disappear at a quicker rate than other and lower
animals. Although terrestrial mammals do not occur on oceanic islands,
aerial mammals do occur on almost every island. New Zealand possesses
two bats found nowhere else in the world: Norfolk Island, the Viti
Archipelago, the Bonin Islands, the Caroline and Marianne Archipelagoes,
and Mauritius, all possess their peculiar bats. Why, it may be asked,
has the supposed creative force produced bats and no other mammals
on remote islands? On my view this question can easily be answered;
for no terrestrial mammal can be transported across a wide space
of sea, but bats can fly across. Bats have been seen wandering by
day far over the Atlantic Ocean; and two North American species
either regularly or occasionally visit Bermuda, at the distance
of 600 miles from the mainland. I hear from Mr. Tomes, who has specially
studied this family, that many species have enormous ranges, and
are found on continents and on far distant islands. Hence we have
only to suppose that such wandering species have been modified in
their new homes in relation to their new position, and we can understand
the presence of endemic bats on oceanic islands, with the absence
of all other terrestrial mammals.
Another interesting relation exists, namely, between the depth
of the sea separating islands from each other or from the nearest
continent, and the degree of affinity of their mammalian inhabitants.
Mr. Windsor Earl has made some striking observations on this head,
since greatly extended by Mr. Wallace's admirable researches, in
regard to the great Malay Archipelago, which is traversed near Celebes
by a space of deep ocean, and this separates two widely distinct
mammalian faunas. On either side the islands stand on a moderately
shallow submarine bank, and these islands are inhabited by the same
or by closely allied quadrupeds. I have not as yet had time to follow
up this subject in all quarters of the world; but as far as I have
gone, the relation holds good. For instance, Britain is separated
by a shallow channel from Europe, and the mammals are the same on
both sides; and so it is with all the islands near the shores of
Australia. The West Indian Islands, on the other hand, stand on
a deeply submerged bank, nearly 1000 fathoms in depth, and here
we find American forms, but the species and even the genera are
quite distinct. As the amount of modification which animals of all
kinds undergo partly depends on the lapse of time, and as the islands
which are separated from each other or from the mainland by shallow
channels, are more likely to have been continuously united within
a recent period than the islands separated by deeper channels, we
can understand how it is that a relation exists between the depth
of the sea separating two mammalian faunas, and the degree of their
affinity,- a relation which is quite inexplicable on the theory
of independent acts of creation.
The foregoing statements in regard to the inhabitants of oceanic
islands,- namely, the fewness of the species, with a large proportion
consisting of endemic forms,- the members of certain groups, but
not those of other groups in the same class, having been modified,-
the absence of certain whole orders, as of batrachians and of terrestrial
mammals, notwithstanding the presence of aerial bats,- the singular
proportions of certain orders of plants,- herbaceous forms having
been developed into trees, &c.,- seem to me to accord better
with the belief in the efficiency of occasional means of transport,
carried on during a long course of time, than with the belief in
the former connection of all oceanic islands with the nearest continent;
for on this latter view it is probable that the various classes
would have immigrated more uniformly, and from the species having
entered in a body their mutual relations would not have been much
disturbed, and consequently they would either have not been modified,
or all the species in a more equable manner.
I do not deny that there are many and serious difficulties in understanding
how many Of the inhabitants of the inhabitants of the more remote
islands, whether still retaining the same specific form or subsequently
modified, have reached their present homes. But the probability
of other islands having once existed as halting-places, of which
not a wreck now remains, must not be overlooked. I will specify
one difficult case. Almost all oceanic islands, even the most isolated
and smallest, are inhabited by landshells, generally by endemic
species, but sometimes by species found elsewhere,- striking instances
of which have been given by Dr. A. A. Gould in relation to the Pacific.
Now it is notorious that land-shells are easily killed by sea-water;
their eggs, at least such as I have tried, sink in it and are killed.
Yet there must be some unknown, but occasionally efficient means
for their transportal. Would the just-hatched young sometimes adhere
to the feet of birds roosting on the ground, and thus get transported?
It occurred to me that landshells, when hibernating and having a
membranous diaphragm over the mouth of the shell, might be floated
in chinks of drifted timber across moderately wide arms of the sea.
And I find that several species in this state withstand uninjured
an immersion in sea-water during seven days: one shell, the Helix
pomatia, after having been thus treated and again hibernating was
put into sea-water for twenty days, and perfectly recovered. During
this length of time the shell might have been carried by a marine
current of average swiftness, to a distance of 660 geographical
miles. As this Helix has a thick calcareous operculum, I removed
it, and when it had formed a new membranous one, I again immersed
it for fourteen days in sea-water, and again it recovered and crawled
away. Baron Aucapitaine has since tried similar experiments: he
placed 100 landshells, belonging to ten species, in a box pierced
with holes, and immersed it for a fortnight in the sea. Out of the
hundred shells, twenty-seven recovered. The presence of an operculum
seems to have been of importance, as out of twelve specimens of
Cyclostoma elegans, which is thus furnished, eleven revived. It
is remarkable, seeing how well the Helix pomatia resisted with me
the salt-water, that not one of fifty-four specimens belonging to
four other species of Helix tried by Aucapitaine, recovered. It
is, however, not at all probable that land-shells have often been
thus transported; the feet of birds offer a more probable method.

The most striking and important fact for us is the affinity of
the species which inhabit islands to those of the nearest mainland,
without being actually the same. Numerous instances could be given.
The Galapagos Archipelago, situated under the equator, lies at the
distance of between 500 and 600 miles from the shores of South America.
Here almost every product of the land and of the water bears the
unmistakable stamp of the American continent. There are twenty-six
land-birds; of these, twenty-one, or perhaps twenty-three are ranked
as distinct species, and would commonly be assumed to have been
here created; yet the close affinity of most of these birds to American
species is manifest in every character, in their habits, gestures,
and tones of voice. So it is with the other animals, and with a
large proportion of the plants, as shown by Dr. Hooker in his admirable
Flora of this archipelago. The naturalist, looking at the inhabitants
of these volcanic islands in the Pacific, distant several hundred
miles from the continent, feels that he is standing on American
land. Why should this be so? Why should the species which are supposed
to have been created in the Galapagos Archipelago, and nowhere else,
bear so plainly the stamp of affinity to those created in America?
There is nothing in the conditions of life, in the geological nature
of the islands, in their height or climate, or in the proportions
in which the several classes are associated together, which closely
resemble; the conditions of the South American coast: in fact, there
is a considerable dissimilarity in all these respects. On the other
hand, there is a considerable degree of resemblance in the volcanic
nature of the soil, in the climate, height, and size of the islands,
between the Galapagos and Cape Verde Archipelagoes: but what an
entire and absolute difference in their inhabitants! The inhabitants
of the Cape Verde Islands are related to those of Africa, like those
of the Galapagos to America. Facts such as these admit of no sort
of explanation on the ordinary view of independent creation; whereas
on the view here maintained, it is obvious that the Galapagos Islands
would be likely to receive colonists from America, whether by occasional
means of transport or (though I do not believe in this doctrine)
by formerly continuous land, and the Cape Verde Islands from Africa;
such colonists would be liable to modification,- the principle of
inheritance still betraying their original birthplace.
Many analogous facts could be given: indeed it is an almost universal
rule that the endemic productions of islands are related to those
of the nearest continent, or of the nearest large island. The exceptions
are few, and most of them can be explained. Thus although Kerguelen
Land stands nearer to Africa than to America, the plants are related,
and that very closely, as we know from Dr. Hooker's account, to
those of America: but on the view that this island has been mainly
stocked by seeds brought with earth and stones on icebergs, drifted
by the prevailing currents, this anomaly disappears. New Zealand
in its endemic planes is much more closely related to Australia,
the nearest mainland, than to any other region: and this is what
might have been expected; but it is also plainly related to South
America, which, although the next nearest continent, is so enormously
remote, that the fact becomes an anomaly. But this difficulty partially
disappears on the view that New Zealand, South America, and the
other southern lands have been stocked in part from a nearly intermediate
though distant point, namely from the antarctic islands, when they
were clothed with vegetation, during a warmer tertiary period, before
the commencement of the last Glacial period. The affinity, which
though feeble, I am assured by Dr. Hooker is real, between the flora
of the south-western corner of Australia and of the Cape of Good
Hope, is a far more remarkable case; but this affinity is confined
to the plants, and will, no doubt, some day be explained.
The same law which has determined the relationship between the
inhabitants of islands and the nearest mainland, is sometimes displayed
on a small scale, but in a most interesting manner, within the limits
of the same archipelago. Thus each separate island of the Galapagos
Archipelago is tenanted, and the fact is a marvellous one, by many
different species; but these species are related to each other in
a very much closer manner than to the inhabitants of the American
continent, or of any other quarter of the world. This is what might
have been expected, for islands situated so near to each other would
almost necessarily receive immigrants from the same original source,
and from each other. But how is it that many of the immigrants have
been differently modified, though only in a small degree, in islands
situated within sight of each other, having the same geological
nature, the same height, climate, &c.? This long appeared to
me a great difficulty: but it arises in chief part from the deeply-seated
error of considering the physical conditions of a country as the
most important; whereas it cannot be disputed that the nature of
the other species with which each has to compete, is at least as
important, and generally a far more important element of success.
Now if we look to the species which inhabit the Galapagos Archipelago,
and are likewise found in other parts of the world, we find that
they differ considerably in the several islands. This difference
might indeed have been expected if the islands had been stocked
by occasional means of transport- a seed, for instance, of one plant
having been brought to one island, and that of another plant to
another island, though all proceeding from the same general source.
Hence, when in former times an immigrant first settled on one of
the islands, or when it subsequently spread from one to another,
it would undoubtedly be exposed to different conditions in the different
islands, for it would have to compete with a different set of organisms;
a plant, for instance, would find the ground best fitted for it
occupied by somewhat different species in the different islands,
and would be exposed to the attacks of somewhat different enemies.
If then it varied, natural selection would probably favour different
varieties in the different islands. Some species, however, might
spread and yet retain the same character throughout the group, just
as we see some species spreading widely throughout a continent and
remaining the same.
The really surprising fact in this case of the Galapagos Archipelago,
and in a lesser degree in some analogous cases, is that each new
species after being formed in any one island, did not spread quickly
to the other islands. But the islands, though in sight of each other,
are separated by deep arms of the sea, in most cases wider than
the British Channel, and there is no reason to suppose that they
have at any former period been continuously united. The currents
of the sea are rapid and sweep between the islands, and gales of
wind are extraordinarily rare; so that the islands are far more
effectually separated from each other than they appear on a map.
Nevertheless some of the species, both of those found in other parts
of the world and of those confined to the archipelago, are common
to the several islands; and we may infer from their present manner
of distribution, that they have spread from one island to the others.
But we often take, I think, an erroneous view of the probability
of closely-allied species invading each other's territory, when
put into free intercommunication. Undoubtedly, if one species has
any advantage over another, it will in a very brief time wholly
or in part supplant it; but if both are equally well fitted for
their own places, both will probably hold their separate places
for almost any length of time. Being familiar with the fact that
many species, naturalised through man's agency, have spread with
astonishing rapidity over wide areas, we are apt to infer that most
species would thus spread; but we should remember that the species
which become naturalised in new countries are not generally closely
allied to the aboriginal inhabitants, but are very distinct forms,
belonging in a large proportion of cases, as shown by Alph. de Candolle,
to distinct genera. In the Galapagos Archipelago, many even of the
birds, though so well adapted for flying from island to island,
differ on the different islands; thus there are three closely-allied
species of mocking-thrush, each confined to its own island. Now
let us suppose the mocking-thrush of Chatham Island to be blown
to Charles Island, which has its own mocking-thrush, why should
it succeed in establishing itself there? We may safely infer that
Charles Island is well stocked with its own species, for annually
more eggs are laid and young birds hatched, than can possibly be
reared; and we may infer that the mocking-thrush peculiar to Charles's
Island is at least as well fitted for its home as is the species
peculiar to Chatham Island. Sir C. Lyell and Mr. Wollaston have
communicated to me a remarkable fact bearing on this subject; namely,
that Madeira and the adjoining islet of Porto Santo possess many
distinct but representative species of land-shells, some of which
live in crevices of stone; and although large quantities of stone
are annually transported from Porto Santo to Madeira, yet this latter
island has not become colonised by the Porto Santo species; nevertheless
both islands have been colonised by European land-shells, which
no doubt had some advantage over the indigenous species. From these
considerations I think we need not greatly marvel at the endemic
species which inhabit the several islands of the Galapagos Archipelago,
not having all spread from island to island. On the same continent,
also, preoccupation has probably played an important part in checking
the commingling of the species which inhabit different districts
with nearly the same physical conditions. Thus, the south-east and
south-west corners of Australia have nearly the same physical conditions,
and are united by continuous land, yet they are inhabited by a vast
number of distinct mammals, birds, and plants; so it is, according
to Mr. Bates, with the butterflies and other animals inhabiting
the great, open, and continuous valley of the Amazons.
The same principle which governs the general character of the inhabitants
of oceanic islands, namely, the relation to the source whence colonists
could have been most easily derived, together with their subsequent
modification, is of the widest application throughout nature. We
see this on every mountain summit, in every lake and marsh. For
Alpine species, excepting in as far as the same species have become
widely spread during the Glacial epoch, are related to those of
the surrounding lowlands; thus we have in South America, Alpine
humming-birds, Alpine rodents, Alpine plants, &c., all strictly
belonging to American forms; and it is obvious that a mountain,
as it became slowly unheaved, would be colonised from the surrounding
lowlands. So it is with the inhabitants of lakes and marshes, excepting
in so far as great facility of transport has allowed the same forms
to prevail throughout large portions of the world. We see this same
principle in the character of most of the blind animals inhabiting
the caves of America and of Europe. Other analogous facts could
be given. It will, I believe, be found universally true, that wherever
in two regions, let them be ever so distant, many closely allied
or representative species occur, there will likewise be found some
identical species; and wherever many closely-allied species occur,
there will be found many forms which some naturalists rank as distinct
species, and others as mere varieties; these doubtful forms showing
us the steps in the progress of modification.
The relation between the power and extent of migration in certain
species, either at the present or at some former period, and the
existence at remote points of the world of closely-allied species,
is shown in another and more general way. Mr. Gould remarked to
me long ago, that in those genera of birds which range over the
world, many of the species have very wide ranges. I can hardly doubt
that this rule is generally true, though difficult of proof. Amongst
mammals, we see it strikingly displayed in bats, and in a lesser
degree in the Felidae and Canidae. We see the same rule in the distribution
of butterflies and beetles. So it is with most of the inhabitants
of fresh water, for many of the genera in the most distinct classes
range over the world, and many of the species have enormous ranges.
It is not meant that all, but that some of the species have very
wide ranges in the genera which range very widely. Nor is it meant
that the species in such genera have on an average a very wide range;
for this will largely depend on how far the process of modification
has gone; for instance, two varieties of the same species inhabit
America and Europe, and thus the species has an immense range; but,
if variation were to be carried a little further, the two varieties
would be ranked as distinct species, and their range would be greatly
reduced. Still less is it meant, that species which have the capacity
of crossing barriers and ranging widely, as in the case of certain
powerfully-winged birds, will necessarily range widely; for we should
never forget that to range widely implies not only the power of
crossing barriers, but the more important power of being victorious
in distant lands in the struggle for life with foreign associates.
But according to the view that all the species of a genus, though
distributed to the most remote points of the world, are descended
from a single progenitor, we ought to find, and I believe as a general
rule we do find, that some at least of the species range very widely.
We should bear in mind that many genera in all classes are of ancient
origin, and the species in this case will have had ample time for
dispersal and subsequent modification. There is also reason to believe
from geological evidence, that within each great class the lower
organisms change at a slower rate than the higher; consequently
they will have had a better chance of ranging widely and of still
retaining the same specific character. This fact, together with
that of the seeds and eggs of most lowly organised forms being very
minute and better fitted for distant transportal, probably accounts
for a law which has long been observed, and which has lately been
discussed by Alph. de Candolle in regard to plants, namely, that
the lower any group of organisms stands the more widely it ranges.
The relations just discussed,- namely, lower organisms ranging
more widely than the higher,- some of the species of widely-ranging
genera themselves ranging widely,- such facts, as Alpine, lacustrine,
and marsh productions being generally related to those which live
on the surrounding low lands and dry lands,- the striking relationship
between the inhabitants of islands and those of the nearest mainland,
the still closer relationship of the distinct inhabitants of the
islands in the same archipelago,- are inexplicable on the ordinary
view of the independent creation of each species, but are explicable
if we admit colonisation from the nearest or readiest source, together
with the subsequent adaptation of the colonists to their new homes.

In these chapters I have endeavoured to show, that if we make due
allowance for our ignorance of the full effects of changes of climate
and of the level of the land, which have certainly occurred within
the recent period, and of other changes which have probably occurred,-
if we remember how ignorant we are with respect to the many curious
means of occasional transport,- if we bear in mind, and this is
a very important consideration, how often a species may have ranged
continuously over a wide area, and then have become extinct in the
intermediate tracts,- the difficulty is not insuperable in believing
that all the individuals of the same species, wherever found, are
descended from common parents. And we are led to this conclusion,
which has been arrived at by many naturalists under the designation
of single centres of creation, by various general considerations,
more especially from the importance of barriers of all kinds, and
from the analogical distribution of subgenera, genera, and families.
With respect to distinct species belonging to the same genus, which
on our theory have spread from one parent-source; if we make the
same allowances as before for our ignorance, and remember that some
forms of life have changed very slowly, enormous periods of time
having been thus granted for their migration, the difficulties are
far from insuperable; though in this case, as in that of the individuals
of the same species, they are often great.
As exemplifying the effects of climatal changes on distribution,
I have attempted to show how important a part the last Glacial period
has played, which affected even the equatorial regions, and which,
during the alternations of the cold in the north and south, allowed
the productions of opposite hemispheres to mingle, and left some
of them stranded on the mountain-summits in all parts of the world.
As showing how diversified are the means of occasional transport,
I have discussed at some little length the means of dispersal of
fresh-water productions.
If the difficulties be not insuperable in admitting that in the
long course of time all the individuals of the same species, and
likewise of the several species belonging to the same genus, have
proceeded from some one source; then all the grand leading facts
of geographical distribution are explicable on the theory of migration,
together with subsequent modification and the multiplication of
new forms. We can thus understand the high importance of barriers,
whether of land or water, in not only separating, but in apparently
forming the several zoological and botanical provinces. We can thus
understand the concentration of related species within the same
areas; and how it is that under different latitudes, for instance
in South America, the inhabitants of the plains and mountains, of
the forests, marshes, and deserts, are linked together in so mysterious
a manner, and are likewise linked to the extinct beings which formerly
inhabited the same continent. Bearing in mind that the mutual relation
of organism to organism is of the highest importance, we can see
why two areas having nearly the same physical conditions should
often be inhabited by very different forms of life; for according
to the length of time which has elapsed since the colonists entered
one of the regions, or both; according to the nature of the communication
which allowed certain forms and not others to enter, either in greater
or lesser numbers; according or not, as those which entered happened
to come into more or less direct competition with each other and
with the aborigines; and according as the immigrants were capable
of varying more or less rapidly, there would ensue in the two or
more regions, independently of their physical conditions, infinitely
diversified conditions of life,- there would be an almost endless
amount of organic action and reaction,- and we should find some
groups of beings greatly, and some only slightly modified,- some
developed in great force, some existing in scanty numbers- and this
we do find in the several great geographical provinces of the world.
On these same principles we can understand, as I have endeavoured
to show, why oceanic islands should have few inhabitants, but that
of these, a large proportion should be endemic or peculiar; and
why, in relation to the means of migration, one group of beings
should have all its species peculiar, and another group, even within
the same class, should have all its species the same with those
in an adjoining quarter of the world. We can see why whole groups
of organisms, as batrachians and terrestrial mammals, should be
absent from oceanic islands, whilst the most isolated islands should
possess their own peculiar species of aerial mammals or bats. We
can see why, in islands, there should be some relation between the
presence of mammals, in a more or less modified condition, and the
depth of the sea between such islands and the mainland. We can clearly
see why all the inhabitants of an archipelago, though specifically
distinct on the several islets, should be closely related to each
other; and should likewise be related, but less closely, to those
of the nearest continent, or other source whence immigrants might
have been derived. We can see why, if there exists very closely
allied or representative species in two areas, however distant from
each other, some identical species will almost always there be found.
As the late Edward Forbes often insisted, there is a striking parallelism
in the laws of life throughout time and space; the laws governing
the succession of forms in past times being nearly the same with
those governing at the present time the differences in different
areas. We see this in many facts. The endurance of each species
and group of species is continuous in time; for the apparent exceptions
to the rule are so few, that they may fairly be attributed to our
not having as yet discovered in an intermediate deposit certain
forms which are absent in it, but which occur both above and below:
so in space, it certainly is the general rule that the area inhabited
by a single species, or by a group of species, is continuous, and
the exceptions, which are not rare, may, as I have attempted to
show, be accounted for by former migrations under different circumstances,
or through occasional means of transport, or by the species having
become extinct in the intermediate tracts. Both in time and space
species and groups of species have their points of maximum development.
Groups of species, living during the same period of time, or living
within the same area, are often characterised by trifling features
in common, as of sculpture or colour. In looking to the long succession
of past ages, as in looking to distant provinces throughout the
world, we find that species in certain classes differ little from
each other, whilst those in another class, or only in a different
section of the same order, differ greatly from each other. In both
time and space the lowly organised members of each class generally
change less than the highly organised; but there are in both cases
marked exceptions to the rule. According to our theory, these several
relations throughout time and space are intelligible; for whether
we look to the allied forms of life which have changed during successive
ages, or to those which have changed after having migrated into
distant quarters, in both cases they are connected by the same bond
of ordinary generation; in both cases the laws of variation have
been the same, and modifications have been accumulated by the same
means of natural selection.

FROM the most remote period in the history of the world organic
beings have been found to resemble each other in descending degrees,
so that they can be classed in groups under groups. This classification
is not arbitrary like the grouping of the stars in constellations.
The existence of groups would have been of simpler significance,
if one group had been exclusively fitted to inhabit the land and
another the water; one to feed on flesh, another on vegetable matter,
and so on; but the case is widely different, for it is notorious
how commonly members of even the same subgroup have different habits.
In the second and fourth chapters, on Variation and on Natural Selection,
I have attempted to show that within each country it is the widely
ranging, the much diffused and common, that is the dominant species,
belonging to the larger genera in each class, which vary most. The
varieties, or incipient species, thus produced, ultimately become
converted into new and distinct species; and these, on the principle
of inheritance, tend to produce other new and dominant species.
Consequently the groups which are now large, and which generally
include many dominant species, tend to go on increasing in size.
I further attempted to show that from the varying descendants of
each species trying to occupy as many and as different places as
possible in the economy of nature, they constantly tend to diverge
in character. This latter conclusion is supported by observing the
great diversity of forms which, in any small area, come into the
closest competition, and by certain facts in naturalisation.
I attempted also to show that there is a steady tendency in the
forms which are increasing in number and diverging in character,
to supplant and exterminate the preceding, less divergent and less
improved forms. I request the reader to turn to the diagram illustrating
the action, as formerly explained, of these several principles;
and he will see that the inevitable result is, that the modified
descendants proceeding from one progenitor become broken up into
groups subordinate to groups. In the diagram each letter on the
uppermost line may represent a genus including several species,
and the whole of the genera along this upper line form together
one class, for all are descended from one ancient parent, and, consequently,
have inherited something in common. But the three genera on the
left hand have, on this same principle, much in common, and form
a sub-family, distinct from that containing the next two genera
on the right hand, which diverged from a common parent at the fifth
stage of descent. These five genera have also much in common, though
less than when grouped in sub-families; and they form a family distinct
from that containing the three genera still farther to the right
hand, which diverged at an earlier period. And all these genera,
descended from (A), form an order distinct from the genera descended
from (I). So that we here have many species descended from a single
progenitor grouped into genera; and the genera into sub-families,
families, and orders, all under one great class. The grand fact
of the natural subordination of organic beings in groups under groups,
which, from its familiarity, does not always sufficiently strike
us, is in my judgment thus explained. No doubt organic beings, like
all other objects, can be classed in many ways, either artificially
by single characters, or more naturally by a number of characters.
We know, for instance, that minerals and the elemental substances
can be thus arranged. In this case there is of course no relation
to genealogical succession, and no cause can at present be assigned
for their falling into groups. But with organic beings the case
is different, and the view above given accords with their natural
arrangement in group under group; and no other explanation has ever
been attempted.
Naturalists, as we have seen, try to arrange the species, genera,
and families in each class, on what is called the Natural System.
But what is meant by this system? Some authors look at it merely
as a scheme for arranging together those living objects which are
most alike, and for separating those which are most unlike; or as
an artificial method of enunciating, as briefly as possible, general
propositions,- that is, by one sentence to give the characters common,
for instance, to all mammals, by another those common to all carnivora,
by another those common to the dog-genus, and then, by adding a
single sentence, a full description is given of each kind of dog.
The ingenuity and utility of this system are indisputable. But many
naturalists think that something more is meant by the Natural System;
they believe that it reveals the plan of the Creator; but unless
it be specified whether order in time or space, or both, or what
else is meant by the plan of the Creator, it seems to me that nothing
is thus added to our knowledge. Expressions such as that famous
one by Linnaeus, which we often meet with in a more or less concealed
form, namely, that the characters do not make the genus, but that
the genus gives the characters, seem to imply that some deeper bond
is included in our classifications than mere resemblance. I believe
that this is the case, and that community of descent- the one known
cause of close similarity in organic beings- is the bond, which
though observed by various degrees of modification, is partially
revealed to us by our classifications.
Let us now consider the rules followed in classification, and the
difficulties which are encountered on the view that classification
either gives some unknown plan of creation, or is simply a scheme
for enunciating general propositions and of placing together the
forms most like each other. It might have been thought (and was
in ancient times thought) that those parts of the structure which
determined the habits of life, and the general place of each being
in the economy of nature, would be of very high importance in classification.
Nothing can be more false. No one regards the external similarity
of a mouse to a shrew, of a dugong to a whale, of a whale to a fish,
as of any importance. These resemblances, though so intimately connected
with the whole life of the being, are ranked as merely " adaptive
or analogical characters "; but to the consideration of these resemblances
we shall recur. It may even be given as a general rule, that the
less any part of the organisation is concerned with special habits,
the more important it becomes for classification. As an instance:
Owen, in speaking of the dugong, says, "The generative organs, being
those which are most remotely related to the habits and food of
an animal, I have always regarded as affording very clear indications
of its true affinities. We are least likely in the modifications
of these organs to mistake a merely adaptive for an essential character."
With plants how remarkable it is that the organs of vegetation,
on which their nutrition and life depend, are of little significance;
whereas the organs of reproduction, with their product the seed
and embryo, are of paramount importance! So again in formerly discussing
certain morphological characters which are not functionally important,
we have seen that they are often of the highest service in classification.
This depends on their constancy throughout many allied groups; and
their constancy chiefly depends on any slight deviations not having
been preserved and accumulated by natural selection, which acts
only on serviceable characters.
That the mere physiological importance of an organ does not determine
its classificatory value, is almost proved by the fact that in allied
groups, in which the same organ, as we have every reason to suppose,
has nearly the same physiological value, its classificatory value
is widely different. No naturalist can have worked long at any group
without being struck with this fact; and it has been fully acknowledged
in the writings of almost every author. It will suffice to quote
the highest authority, Robert Brown, who, in speaking of certain
organs in the Proteaceae, says their generic importance, "like that
of all their parts, not only in this, but, as apprehend, in every
natural family, is very unequal, and in some cases seems to be entirely
lost." Again, in another work he says, the genera of the Connaraceae
"differ in having one or more ovaria, in the existence or absence
of albumen, in the imbricate or valvular aestivation. Any one of
these characters singly is frequently of more than generic importance,
though here even when all taken together they appear insufficient
to separate Cnestis from Connarus." To give an example amongst insects:
in one great division of the Hymenoptera, the antennae, as Westwood
has remarked, are most constant in structure; in another division
they differ much, and the differences are of quite subordinate value
in classification; yet no one will say that the antennae in these
two divisions of the same order are of unequal physiological importance.
Any number of instances could be given of the varying importance
for classification of the same important organ within the same group
of beings.
Again, no one will say that rudimentary or atrophied organs are
of high physiological or vital importance; yet, undoubtedly, organs
in this condition are often of much value in classification. No
one will dispute that the rudimentary teeth in the upper jaws of
young ruminants, and certain rudimentary bones of the leg, are highly
serviceable in exhibiting the close affinity between ruminants and
pachyderms. Robert Brown has strongly insisted on the fact that
the position of the rudimentary florets is of the highest importance
in the classification of the grasses.
Numerous instances could be given of characters derived from parts
which must be considered of very trifling physiological importance,
but which are universally admitted as highly serviceable in the
definition of whole groups. For instance, whether or not there is
an open passage from the nostrils to the mouth, the only character,
according to Owen, which absolutely distinguishes fishes and reptiles-
the inflection of the angle of the lower jaw in marsupials- the
manner in which the wings of insects are folded- mere colour in
certain Algae- mere pubescence on parts of the flower in grasses-
the nature of the dermal covering, as hair or feathers, in the Vertebrata.
If the Ornithorhynchus had been covered with feathers instead of
hair, this external and trifling character would have been considered
by naturalists as an important aid in determining the degree of
affinity of this strange creature to birds.
The importance, for classification, of trifling characters, mainly
depends on their being correlated with many other characters of
more or less importance. The value indeed of an aggregate of characters
is very evident in natural history. Hence, as has often been remarked,
a species may depart from its allies in several characters, both
of high physiological importance, and of almost universal prevalence,
and yet leave us in no doubt where it should be ranked. Hence, also,
it has been found that a classification founded on any single character,
however, important that may be, has always failed; for no part of
the organisation is invariably constant. The importance of an aggregate
of characters, even when none are important, alone explains the
aphorism enunciated by Linnaeus, namely, that the characters do
not give the genus, but the genus gives the characters; for this
seems founded on the appreciation of many trifling points of resemblance,
too slight to be defined. Certain plants, belonging to the Malpighiaceae,
bear perfect and degraded flowers; in the latter, as A. de Jussieu
has remarked, " The greater number of the characters proper to the
species, to the genus, to the family, to the class, disappear, and
thus laugh at our classification." When Aspicarpa produced in France,
during several years, only these degraded flowers, departing so
wonderfully in a number of the most important points of structure
from the proper type of the order, yet M. Richard sagaciously saw,
as Jussieu observes, that this genus should still be retained amongst
the Malpighiaceae. This case well illustrates the spirit of our
classifications.
Practically, when naturalists are at work, they do not trouble
themselves about the physiological value of the characters which
they use in defining a group or in allocating any particular species.
If they find a character nearly uniform, and common to a great number
of forms, and not common to others, they use it as one of high value;
if common to some lesser number, they use it as of subordinate value.
This principle has been broadly confessed by some naturalists to
be the true one; and by none more clearly than by that excellent
botanist, Auguste de Saint-Hilaire. If several trifling characters
are always found in combination, though no apparent bond of connection
can be discovered between them, especial value is set on them. As
in most groups of animals, important organs, such as those for propelling
the blood, or for Aerating it, or those for propagating the race,
are found nearly uniform, they are considered as highly serviceable
in classification; but in some organs all these, the most important
vital organs, are found to offer characters of quite subordinate
value. Thus, as Fritz Muller has lately remarked, in the same group
of crustaceans, Cypridina is furnished with a heart, whilst in two
closely allied genera, namely Cypris and Cytherea, there is no such
organ; one species of Cypridina has well-developed branchiae, whilst
another species is destitute of them.
We can see why characters derived from the embryo should be of
equal importance with those derived from the adult, for a natural
classification of course includes all ages. But it is by no means
obvious, on the ordinary view, why the structure of the embryo should
be more important for this purpose than that of the adult, which
alone plays its full part in the economy of nature. Yet it has been
strongly urged by those great naturalists, Milne Edwards and Agassiz,
that embryological characters are the most important of all; and
this doctrine has very generally been admitted as true. Nevertheless,
their importance has sometimes been exaggerated, owing to the adaptive
characters of larvae not having been excluded; in order to show
this, Fritz Muller arranged by the aid of such characters alone
the great class of crustaceans, and the arrangement did not prove
a natural one. But there can be no doubt that embryonic, excluding
larval characters, are of the highest value for classification,
not only with animals but with plants. Thus the main divisions of
flowering plants are founded on differences in the embryo,- on the
number and position of the cotyledons, and on the mode of development
of the plumule and radicle. We shall immediately see why these characters
possess so high a value in classification, namely, from the natural
system being genealogical in its arrangement.
Our classifications are often plainly influenced by chains of affinities.
Nothing can be easier than to define a number of characters common
to all birds; but with crustaceans, any such definition has hitherto
been found impossible. There are crustaceans at the opposite ends
of the series, which have hardly a character in common; yet the
species at both ends, from being plainly allied to others, and these
to others, and so onwards, can be recognised as unequivocally belonging
to this, and to no other class of the Articulata.
Geographical distribution has often been used, though perhaps not
quite logically, in classification, more especially in very large
groups of closely allied forms. Temminck insists on the utility
or even necessity of this practice in certain groups of birds; and
it has been followed by several entomologists and botanists.
Finally, with respect to the comparative value of the various groups
of species, such as orders, sub-orders, families, sub-families,
and genera, they seem to be, at least at present, almost arbitrary.
Several of the best botanists, such as Mr. Bentham and others, have
strongly insisted on their arbitrary value. Instances could be given
amongst plants and insects, of a group first ranked by practised
naturalists as only a genus, and then raised to the rank of a sub-family
or family; and this has been done, not because further research
has detected important structural differences, at first overlooked,
but because numerous allied species with slightly different grades
of difference, have been subsequently discovered.
All the foregoing rules and aids and difficulties in classification
may be explained, if I do not greatly deceive myself, on the view
that the Natural System is founded on descent with modification;-
that the characters which naturalists consider as showing true affinity
between any two or more species, are those which have been inherited
from a common parent, all true classification being genealogical;-
that community of descent is the hidden bond which naturalists have
been unconsciously seeking, and not some unknown plan of creation,
or the enunciation of general propositions, and the mere putting
together and separating objects more or less alike.
But I must explain my meaning more fully. I believe that the arrangement
of the groups within each class, in due subordination and relation
to each other, must be strictly genealogical in order to be natural;
but that the amount of difference in the several branches or groups,
though allied in the same degree in blood to their common progenitor,
may differ greatly, being due to the different degrees of modification
which they have undergone; and this is expressed by the forms being
ranked under different genera, families, sections, or orders. The
reader will best understand what is meant, if he will take the trouble
to refer to the diagram in the fourth chapter.
We will suppose the letters A to L to represent allied genera existing
during the Silurian epoch, and descended from some still earlier
form. In three of these genera (A, F, and I), a species has transmitted
modified descendants to the present day, represented by the fifteen
genera (a14 to z14) on the uppermost horizontal line. Now all these
modified descendants from a single species, are related in blood
or descent in the same degree; they may metaphorically be called
cousins to the same millionth degree; yet they differ widely and
in different degrees from each other. The forms descended from A,
now broken up into two or three families, constitute a distinct
order from those descended from I, also broken up into two families.
Nor can the existing species, descended from A, be ranked in the
same genus with the parent A; or those from I, with the parent I.
But the existing genus f14 may be supposed to have been but slightly
modified; and it will then rank with the parent-genus F; just as
some few still living organisms belong to Silurian genera. So that
the comparative value of the differences between these organic beings,
which are all related to each other in the same degree in blood,
has come to be widely different. Nevertheless their genealogical
arrangement remains strictly true, not only at the present time,
but at each successive period of descent. All modified descendants
from A will have inherited something in common from their common
parent, as will all the descendants from I; so will it be with each
subordinate branch of descendants, at each successive stage. If,
however, we suppose any descendant of A, or of I, to have become
so much modified as to have lost all traces of its parentage, in
this case, its place in the natural system will be lost, as seems
to have occurred with some few existing organisms. All the descendants
of the genus F, along its whole line of descent, are supposed to
have been but little modified, and they form a single genus. But
this genus, though much isolated, will still occupy its proper intermediate
position. The representation of the groups, as here given in the
diagram on a flat surface, is much too simple. The branches ought
to have diverged in all directions. If the names of the groups had
been simply written down in a linear series, the representation
would have been still less natural; and it is notoriously not possible
to represent in a series, on a flat surface, the affinities which
we discover in nature amongst the beings of the same group. Thus,
the Natural System is genealogical in its arrangement, like a pedigree:
but the amount of modification which the different groups have undergone
has to be expressed by ranking them under different so-called genera,
sub-families, families, sections, orders, and classes.
It may be worth while to illustrate this view of classification,
by taking the case of languages. If we possessed a perfect pedigree
of mankind, a genealogical arrangement of the races of man would
afford the best classification of the various languages now spoken
throughout the world; and if all extinct languages, and all intermediate
and slowly changing dialects, were to be included, such an arrangement
would be the only possible one. Yet it might be that some ancient
languages had altered very little and had given rise to few new
languages, whilst others had altered much owing to the spreading,
isolation, and state of civilisation of the several co-descended
races, and had thus given rise to many new dialects and languages.
The various degrees of difference between the languages of the same
stock, would have to be expressed by groups subordinate to groups;
but the proper or even the only possible arrangement would still
be genealogical; and this would be strictly natural, as it would
connect together all languages, extinct and recent, by the closest
affinities, and would give the filiation and origin of each tongue.
In confirmation of this view, let us glance at the classification
of varieties, which are known or believed to be descended from a
single species. These are grouped under the species, with the sub-varieties
under the varieties; and in some cases, as with the domestic pigeon,
with several other grades of difference. Nearly the same rules are
followed as in classifying species. Authors have insisted on the
necessity of arranging varieties on a natural instead of an artificial
system; we are cautioned, for instance, not to class two varieties
of the pineapple together, merely because their fruit, though the
most important part, happens to be nearly identical; no one puts
the Swedish and common turnip together, though the esculent and
thickened stems are so similar. Whatever part is found to be most
constant, is used in classing varieties: thus the great agriculturist
Marshall says the horns are very useful for this purpose with cattle,
because they are less variable than the shape or colour of the body,
&c.; whereas with sheep the horns are much less serviceable,
because less constant. In classing varieties, I apprehend that if
we had a real pedigree, a genealogical classification would be universally
preferred; and it has been attempted in some cases. For we might
feel sure, whether there had been more or less modification, that
the principle of inheritance would keep the forms together which
were allied in the greatest number of points. In tumbler pigeons,
though some of the sub-varieties differ in the important character
of the length of the beak, yet all are kept together from having
the common habit of tumbling; but the short-faced breed has nearly
or quite lost this habit; nevertheless, without any thought on the
subject, these tumblers are kept in the same group, because allied
in blood and alike in some other respects.
With species in a state of nature, every naturalist has in fact
brought descent into his classification; for he includes in his
lowest grade, that of species, the two sexes; and how enormously
these sometimes differ in the most important characters, is known
to every naturalist: scarcely a single fact can be predicated in
common of the adult males and hermaphrodites of certain cirripedes,
and yet no one dreams of separating them. As soon as the three orchidean
forms, Monachanthus, Myanthus, and Catasetum, which had previously
been ranked as three distinct genera, were known to be sometimes
produced on the same plant, they were immediately considered as
varieties; and now I have been able to show that they are the male,
female, and hermaphrodite forms of the same species. The naturalist
includes as one species the various larval stages of the same individual,
however much they may differ from each other and from the adult,
as well as the so-called alternate generations of Steenstrup, which
can only in a technical sense be considered as the same individual.
He includes monsters and varieties, not from their partial resemblance
to the parent-form, but because they are descended from it.
As descent has universally been used in classing together the individuals
of the same species, though the males and females and larvae are
sometimes extremely different; and as it has been used in classing
varieties which have undergone a certain, and sometimes a considerable
amount of modification, may not this same element of descent have
been unconsciously used in grouping species under genera, and genera
under higher groups, all under the so-called natural system? I believe
it has been unconsciously used; and thus only can I understand the
several rules and guides which have been followed by our best systematists.
As we have no written pedigrees, we are forced to trace community
of descent by resemblances of any kind. Therefore we chose those
characters which are the least likely to have been modified, in
relation to the conditions of life to which each species has been
recently exposed. Rudimentary structures on this view are as good
as, or even better than, other parts of the organisation. We care
not how trifling a character may be- let it be the mere inflection
of the angle of the jaw, the manner in which an insect's wing is
folded, whether the skin be covered by hair or feathers- if it prevail
throughout many and different species, especially those having very
different habits of life, it assumes high value; for we can account
for its presence in so many forms with such different habits, only
by inheritance from a common parent. We may err in this respect
in regard to single points of structure, but when several characters,
let them be ever so trifling, concur throughout a large group of
beings having different habits, we may feel almost sure, on the
theory of descent, that these characters have been inherited from
a common ancestor; and we know that such aggregated characters have
especial value in classification.
We can understand why a species or a group of species may depart
from its allies, in several of its most important characteristics,
and yet be safely classed with them. This may be safely done, and
is often done, as long as a sufficient number of characters, let
them be ever so unimportant, betrays the hidden bond of community
of descent. Let two forms have not a single character in common,
yet, if these extreme forms are connected together by a chain of
intermediate groups, we may at once infer their community of descent,
and we put them all into the same class. As we find organs of high
physiological importance- those which serve to preserve life under
the most diverse conditions of existence- are generally the most
constant, we attach especial value to them; but if these same organs,
in another group or section of a group, are found to differ much,
we at once value them less in our classification. We shall presently
see why embryological characters are of such high classificatory
importance. Geographical distribution may sometimes be brought usefully
into play in classing large genera, because all the species of the
same genus, inhabiting any distinct and isolated region, are in
all probability descended from the same parents.
Analogical Resemblances.- We can understand, on the above views,
the very important distinction between real affinities and analogical
or adaptive resemblances. Lamarck first called attention to this
subject, and he has been ably followed by Macleay and others. The
resemblance in the shape of the body and in the fin-like anterior
limbs between dugongs and whales, and between these two orders of
mammals and fishes, are analogical. So is the resemblance between
a mouse and a shrewmouse (Sorex), which belong to different orders;
and the still closer resemblance, insisted on by Mr. Mivart, between
the mouse and a small marsupial animal (Antechinus) of Australia.
These latter resemblances may be accounted for, as it seems to me,
by adaptation for similarly active movements through thickets and
herbage, together with concealment from enemies.
Amongst insects there are innumerable similar instances; thus Linnaeus,
misled by external appearances, actually classed an homopterous
insect as a moth. We see something of the same kind even with our
domestic varieties, as in the strikingly similar shape of the body
in the improved breeds of the Chinese and common pig, which are
descended from distinct species; and in the similarly thickened
stems of the common and specifically distinct Swedish turnip. The
resemblance between the greyhound and the race-horse is hardly more
fanciful than the analogies which have been drawn by some authors
between widely different animals.
On the view of characters being of real importance for classification,
only in so far as they reveal descent, we can clearly understand
why analogical or adaptive characters, although of the utmost importance
to the welfare of the being, are almost valueless to the systematist.
For animals, belonging to two most distinct lines of descent, may
have become adapted to similar conditions, and thus have assumed
a close external resemblance; but such resemblances will not reveal-
will rather tend to conceal their blood-relationship. We can thus
understand the apparent paradox, that the very same characters are
analogical when one group is compared with another, but give true
affinities when the members of the same group are compared together:
thus, the shape of the body and fin-like limbs are only analogical
when whales are compared with fishes, being adaptations in both
classes for swimming through the water; but between the several
members of the whale family, the shape of the body and the fin-like
limbs offer characters exhibiting true affinity; for as these parts
are so nearly similar throughout the whole family, we cannot doubt
that they have been inherited from a common ancestor. So it is with
fishes.
Numerous cases could be given of striking resemblances in quite
distinct beings between single parts or organs, which have been
adapted for the same functions. A good instance is afforded by the
close resemblance of the jaws of the dog and Tasmanian wolf or Thylacinus,-
animals which are widely sundered in the natural system. But this
resemblance is confined to general appearance, as in the prominence
of the canines, and in the cutting shape of the molar teeth. For
the teeth really differ much: thus the dog has on each side of the
upper jaw four pre-molars and only two molars; whilst the Thylacinus
has three pre-molars and four molars. The molars also differ much
in the two animals in relative size and structure. The adult dentition
is preceded by a widely different milk dentition. Any one may of
course deny that the teeth in either case have been adapted for
tearing flesh, through the natural selection of successive variations;
but if this be admitted in the one case, it is unintelligible to
me that it should be denied in the other. I am glad to find that
so high an authority as Professor Flower has come to this same conclusion.
The extraordinary cases given in a former chapter, of widely different
fishes possessing electric organs,- of widely different insects
possessing luminous organs,- and of orchids and asclepiads having
pollen-masses with viscid discs, come under this same head of analogical
resemblances. But these cases are so wonderful that they were introduced
as difficulties or objections to our theory. In all such cases some
fundamental difference in the growth or development of the parts,
and generally in their matured structure, can be detected. The end
gained is the same, but the means, though appearing superficially
to be the same, are essentially different. The principle formerly
alluded to under the term of analogical variation has probably in
these cases often come into play; that is, the members of the same
class, although only distantly allied, have inherited so much in
common in their constitution, that they are apt to vary under similar
exciting causes in a similar manner; and this would obviously aid
in the acquirement through natural selection of parts or organs,
strikingly like each other, independently of their direct inheritance
from a common progenitor.
As species belonging to distinct classes have often been adapted
by successive slight modifications to live under nearly similar
circumstances,- to inhabit, for instance, the three elements of
land, air, and water,- we can perhaps understand how it is that
a numerical parallelism has sometimes been observed between the
sub-groups of distinct classes. A naturalist, struck with a parallelism
of this nature, by arbitrarily raising or sinking the value of the
groups in several classes (and all our experience shows that their
valuation is as yet arbitrary), could easily extend the parallelism
over a wide range; and thus the septenary, quinary, quarternary
and ternary classifications have probably arisen.
There is another and curious class of cases in which close external
resemblance does not depend on adaptation to similar habits of life,
but has been gained for the sake of protection. I allude to the
wonderful manner in which certain butterflies imitate, as first
described by Mr. Bates, other and quite distinct species. This excellent
observer has shown that in some districts of S. America, where,
for instance, an Ithomia abounds in gaudy swarms, another butterfly,
namely, a leptalis, is often found mingled in the same flock; and
the latter so closely resembles the Ithomia in every shade and stripe
of colour and even in the shape of its wings, that Mr. Bates, with
his eyes sharpened by collecting during eleven years, was, though
always on his guard, continually deceived. When the mockers and
the mocked are caught and compared, they are found to be very different
in essential structure, and to belong not only to distinct genera,
but often to distinct families. Had this mimicry occurred in only
one or two instances, it might have been passed over as a strange
coincidence. But, if we proceed from a district where one Leptalis
imitates an Ithomia, another mocking and mocked species, belonging
to the same two genera, equally close in their resemblance, may
be found. Altogether no less than ten genera are enumerated, which
include species that imitate other butterflies. The mockers and
mocked always inhabit the same region; we never find an imitator
living remote from the form which it imitates. The mockers are almost
invariably rare insects; the mocked in almost every case abound
in swarms. In the same district in which a species of laptalis closely
imitates an Ithomia, there are sometimes other Lepidoptera mimicking
the same Ithomia: so that in the same place, species of three genera
of butterflies and even a moth are found all closely resembling
a butterfly belonging to a fourth genus. It deserves especial notice
that many of the mimicking forms of the leptalis, as well as of
the mimicked forms, can be shown by a graduated series to be merely
varieties of the same species; whilst others are undoubtedly distinct
species. But why, it may be asked, are certain forms treated as
the mimicked and others as the mimickers? Mr. Bates satisfactorily
answers this question, by showing that the form which is imitated
keeps the usual dress of the group to which it belongs, whilst the
counterfeiters have changed their dress and do not resemble their
nearest allies.
We are next led to inquire what reason can be assigned for certain
butterflies and moths so often assuming the dress of another and
quite distinct form; why, to the perplexity of naturalists, has
nature condescended to the tricks of the stage? Mr. Bates has, no
doubt, hit on the true explanation. The mocked forms, which always
abound in numbers, must habitually escape destruction to a large
extent, otherwise they could not exist in such swarms; and a large
amount of evidence has now been collected, showing that they are
distasteful to birds and other insect-devouring animals. The mocking
forms, on the other hand, that inhabit the same district, are comparatively
rare, and belong to rare groups; hence they must suffer habitually
from some danger, for otherwise, from the number of eggs laid by
all butterflies, they would in three or four generations swarm over
the whole country. Now if a member of one of these persecuted and
rare groups were to assume a dress so like that of a well-protected
species that it continually deceived the practised eye of an entomologist,
it would often deceive predaceous birds and insects, and thus often
escape destruction. Mr. Bates may almost be said to have actually
witnessed the process by which the mimickers have come so closely
to resemble the mimicked; for he found that some of the forms of
Leptalis which mimic so many other butterflies, varied in an extreme
degree. In one district several varieties occurred, and of these
one alone resembled to a certain extent, the common Ithomia of the
same district. In another district there were two or three varieties,
one of which was much commoner than the others, and this closely
mocked another form of Ithomia. From facts of this nature, Mr. Bates
concludes that the leptalis first varies; and when a variety happens
to resemble in some degree any common butterfly inhabiting the same
district, this variety, from its resemblance to a flourishing and
little-persecuted kind, has a better chance of escaping destruction
from predaceous birds and insects, and is consequently oftener preserved;-
"the less perfect degrees of resemblance being generation after
generation eliminated, and only the others left to propagate their
kind." So that here we have an excellent illustration of natural
selection.
Messrs. Wallace and Trimen have likewise described several equally
striking cases of imitation in the Lepidoptera of the Malay Archipelago
and Africa, and with some other insects. Mr. Wallace has also detected
one such case with birds, but we have none with the larger quadrupeds.
The much greater frequency of imitation with insects than with other
animals, is probably the consequence of their small size; insects
cannot defend themselves, excepting indeed the kinds furnished with
a sting, and I have never heard of an instance of such kinds mocking
other insects, though they are mocked; insects cannot easily escape
by flight from the larger animals which prey on them; therefore,
speaking metaphorically, they are reduced, like most weak creatures,
to trickery and dissimulation.
It should be observed that the process of imitation probably never
commenced between forms widely dissimilar in colour. But starting
with species already somewhat like each other, the closest resemblance,
if beneficial, could readily be gained by the above means; and if
the imitated form was subsequently and gradually modified through
any agency, the imitating form would be led along the same track,
and thus be altered to almost any extent, so that it might ultimately
assume an appearance or colouring wholly unlike that of the other
members of the family to which it belonged. There is, however, some
difficulty on this head, for it is necessary to suppose in some
cases that ancient members belonging to several distinct groups,
before they had diverged to their present extent, accidentally resembled
a member of another and protected group in a sufficient degree to
afford some slight protection; this having given the basis for the
subsequent acquisition of the most perfect resemblance.
On the Nature of the Affinities connecting Organic Beings.- As
the modified descendants of dominant species, belonging to the larger
genera, tend to inherit the advantages which made the groups to
which they belong large and their parents dominant, they are almost
sure to spread widely, and to seize on more and more places in the
economy of nature. The larger and more dominant groups within each
class thus tend to go on increasing in size; and they consequently
supplant many smaller and feebler groups. Thus we can account for
the fact that all organisms, recent and extinct, are included under
a few great orders, and under still fewer classes. As showing how
few the higher groups are in number, and how widely they are spread
throughout the world, the fact is striking that the discovery of
Australia has not added an insect belonging to a new class; and
that in the vegetable kingdom, as I learn from Dr. Hooker, it has
added only two or three families of small size.
In the chapter on Geological Succession I attempted to show, on
the principle of each group having generally diverged much in character
during the long-continued process of modification, how it is that
the more ancient forms of life often present characters in some
degree intermediate between existing groups. As some few of the
old and intermediate forms have transmitted to the present day descendants
but little modified, these constitute our so-called osculant or
aberrant species. The more aberrant any form is, the greater must
be the number of connecting forms which have been exterminated and
utterly lost. And we have some evidence of aberrant groups having
suffered severely from extinction, for they are almost always represented
by extremely few species; and such species as do occur are generally
very distinct from each other, which again implies extinction. The
genera Ornithorhynchus and lepidosiren, for example, would not have
been less aberrant had each been represented by a dozen species,
instead of as at present by a single one, or by two or three. We
can, I think, account for this fact only by looking at aberrant
groups as forms which have been conquered by more successful competitors,
with a few members still preserved under unusually favourable conditions.
Mr. Waterhouse has remarked that, when a member belonging to one
group of animals exhibits an affinity to a quite distinct group,
this affinity in most cases is general and not special; thus, according
to Mr. Waterhouse, of all rodents, the bizcacha is most nearly related
to marsupials; but in the points in which it approaches this order,
its relations are general, that is, not to any one marsupial species
more than to another. As these points of affinity are believed to
be real and not merely adaptive, they must be due in accordance
with our view to inheritance from a common progenitor. Therefore
we must suppose either that all rodents, including the bizcacha,
branched off from some ancient marsupial, which will naturally have
been more or less intermediate in character with respect to all
existing marsupials; or that both rodents and marsupials branched
off from a common progenitor, and that both groups have since undergone
much modification in divergent directions. On either view we must
suppose that the bizcacha has retained, by inheritance, more of
the, characters of its ancient progenitor than have other rodents;
and therefore it will not be specially related to any one existing
marsupial, but indirectly to all or nearly all marsupials, from
having partially retained the character of their common progenitor,
or of some early member of the group. On the other hand, of all
marsupials, as Mr. Waterhouse has remarked, the Phascolomys resembles
most nearly, not any one species, but the general order of rodents.
In this case, however, it may be strongly suspected as the resemblance
is only analogical, owing to the Phascolomys having become adapted
to habits like those of a rodent. The elder De Candolle has made
nearly similar observations on the general nature of the affinities
of distinct families of plants.
On the principle of the multiplication and gradual divergence in
character of the species descended from a common progenitor, together
with their retention by inheritance of some characters in common,
we can understand the excessively complex and radiating affinities
by which all the members of the same family or higher group are
connected together. For the common progenitor of a whole family,
now broken up by extinction into distinct groups and sub-groups,
will have transmitted some of its characters, modified in various
ways and degrees, to all the species; and they will consequently
be related to each other by circuitous lines of affinity of various
lengths (as may be seen in the diagram so often referred to), mounting
up through many predecessors. As it is difficult to show the blood
relationship between the numerous kindred of any ancient and noble
family even by the aid of a genealogical tree, and almost impossible
to do so without this aid, we can understand the extraordinary difficulty
which naturalists have experienced in describing, without the aid
of a diagram, the various affinities which they perceive between
the many living and extinct members of the same great natural class.
Extinction, as we have seen in the fourth chapter, has played an
important part in defining and widening the intervals between the
several groups in each class. We may thus account for the distinctness
of whole classes from each other- for instance, of birds from all
other vertebrate animals- by the belief that many ancient forms
of life have been utterly lost, through which the early progenitors
of birds were formerly connected with the early progenitors of the
other and at that time less differentiated vertebrate classes. There
has been much less extinction of the forms of life which once connected
fishes with batrachians. There has been still less within some whole
classes, for instance the Crustacea, for here the most wonderfully
diverse forms are still linked together by a long and only partially
broken chain of affinities. Extinction has only defined the groups:
it has by no means made them; for if every form which has ever lived
on this earth were suddenly to reappear, though it would be quite
impossible to give definitions by which each group could be distinguished,
still a natural classification, or at least a natural arrangement,
would be possible. We shall see this by turning to the diagram;
the letters, A to L, may represent eleven Silurian genera, some
of which have produced large groups of modified descendants, with
every link in each branch and sub-branch still alive; and the links
not greater than those between existing varieties. In this case
it would be quite impossible to give definitions by which the several
members of the several groups could be distinguished from their
more immediate parents and descendants. Yet the arrangement in the
diagram would still hold good and would be natural; for, on the
principle of inheritance, all the forms descended, for instance,
from A, would have something in common. In a tree we can distinguish
this or that branch, though at the actual fork the two unite and
blend together. We could not, as I have said, define the several
groups; but we could pick out types, or forms, representing most
of the characters of each group, whether large or small, and thus
give a general idea of the value of the differences between them.
This is what we should be driven to, if we were ever to succeed
in collecting all the forms in any one class which have lived throughout
all time and space. Assuredly we shall never succeed in making so
perfect a collection: nevertheless, in certain classes, we are tending
towards: this end; and Milne Edwards has lately insisted, in an
able paper, on the high importance of looking to types, whether
or not we can separate and define the groups to which such types
belong.
Finally we have seen that natural selection, which follows from
the struggle for existence, and which almost inevitably leads to
extinction and divergence of character in the descendants from any
one parent species, explains that great and universal feature in
the affinities of all organic beings, namely, their subordination
in group under group. We use the element of descent in classing
the individuals of both sexes and of all ages under one species,
although they may have but few characters in common; we use descent
in classing acknowledged varieties, however different they may be
from their parents; and I believe that this element of descent is
the hidden bond of connection which naturalists have sought under
the term of the, Natural System. On this idea of the natural system,
being, in so far as it has been perfected, genealogical in its arrangement,
with the grades of difference expressed by the terms genera, families,
orders, &c., we can understand the rules which we are compelled
to follow in our classification. We can understand why we value
certain resemblances far more than others; why we use rudimentary
and useless organs, or others of trifling physiological importance;
why, in finding the relations between one group and another, we
summarily reject analogical or adaptive characters, and yet use
these same characters within the limits of the same group. We can
clearly see how it is that all living and extinct forms can be grouped
together within a few great classes; and how the several members
of each class are connected together by the most complex and radiating
lines of affinities. We shall never, probably, disentangle the inextricable
web of the affinities between the members of any one class; but
when we have a distinct object in view, and do not look to some
unknown plan of creation, we may hope to make sure but slow progress.
Professor Haeckel in his Generelle Morphologie and in other works,
has recently brought his great knowledge and abilities to bear on
what he calls phylogeny, or the lines of descent of all organic
beings. In drawing up the several series he trusts chiefly to embryological
characters, but receives aid from homologous and rudimentary organs,
as well as from the successive periods at which the various forms
of life are believed to have first appeared in our geological formations.
He has thus boldly made a great beginning, and shows us how classification
will in the future be treated.

We have seen that the members of the same class, independently
of their habits of life, resemble each other in the general plan
of their organisation. This resemblance is often expressed by the
term "unity of type"; or by saying that the several parts and organs
in the different species of the class are homologous. The whole
subject is included under the general term of Morphology. This is
one of the most interesting departments of natural history, and
may almost be said to be its very soul. What can be more curious
than that the hand of a man, formed for grasping, that of a mole
for digging, the leg of the horse, the paddle of the porpoise, and
the wing of the bat, should all be constructed on the same pattern,
and should include similar bones, in the same relative positions?
How curious it is, to give a subordinate though striking instance,
that the hind-feet of the kangaroo, which are so well fitted for
bounding over the open plains, those of the climbing, leaf-eating
koala, equally well fitted for grasping the branches of trees,-
those of the ground-dwelling, insect or root-eating, bandicoots,-
and those of some other Australian marsupials,- should all be constructed
on the same extraordinary type, namely with the bones of the second
and third digits extremely slender and enveloped within the same
skin, so that they appear like a single toe furnished with two claws.
Notwithstanding this similarity of pattern, it is obvious that the
hind feet of these several animals are used for as widely different
purposes as it is possible to conceive. The case is rendered all
the more striking by the American opossums, which follow nearly
the same habits of life as some of their Australian relatives, having
feet constructed on the ordinary plan. Professor Flower, from whom
these statements are taken, remarks in conclusion: "We may call
this conformity to type, without getting much nearer to an explanation
of the phenomenon"; and he then adds "but is it not powerfully suggestive
of true relationship, of inheritance from a common ancestor?"
Geoffroy St-Hilaire has strongly insisted on the high importance
of relative position or connection in homologous parts; they may
differ to almost any extent in form and size, and yet remain connected
together in the same invariable order. We never find, for instance,
the bones of the arm and fore-arm, or of the thigh and leg, transposed.
Hence the same names can be given to the homologous bones in widely
different animals. We see the same great law in the construction
of the mouths of insects: what can be more different than the immensely
long spiral proboscis of a sphinxmoth, the curious folded one of
a bee or bug, and the great jaws of a beetle?- yet all these organs,
serving for such widely different purposes, are formed by infinitely
numerous modifications of an upper lip, mandibles, and two pairs
of maxillae. The same law governs the construction of the mouths
and limbs of crustaceans. So it is with the flowers of plants.
Nothing can be more hopeless than to attempt to explain this similarity
of pattern in members of the same class, by utility or by the doctrine
of final causes. The hopelessness of the attempt has been expressly
admitted by Owen in his most interesting work on the Nature of Limbs.
On the ordinary view of the independent creation of each being,
we can only say that so it is;- that it has pleased the Creator
to construct all the animals and plants in each great class on a
uniform plan; but this is not a scientific explanation.
The explanation is to a large extent simple on the theory of the
selection of successive slight modifications,- each modification
being profitable in some way to the modified form, but often affecting
by correlation other parts of the organisation. In changes of this
nature, there will be little or no tendency to alter the original
pattern, or to transpose the parts. The bones of a limb might be
shortened and flattened to any extent, becoming at the same time
enveloped in thick membrane, so as to serve as a fin; or a webbed
hand might have all its bones, or certain bones, lengthened to any
extent, with the membrane connecting them increased, so as to serve
as a wing; yet all these would not tend to alter the framework of
the bones or the relative connection of the parts. If we suppose
that an early progenitor- the archetype as it may be called- of
all mammals, birds, and reptiles, had its limbs constructed on the
existing general pattern, for whatever purpose they served, we can
at once perceive the plain signification of the homologous construction
of the limbs throughout the class. So with the mouths of insects,
we have only to suppose that their common progenitor had an upper
lip, mandibles, and two pairs of maxillae, these parts being perhaps
very simple in form; and then natural selection will account for
the infinite diversity in the structure and functions of the mouths
of insects. Nevertheless, it is conceivable that the general pattern
of an organ might become so much obscured as to be finally lost,
by the reduction and ultimately by the complete abortion of certain
parts, by the fusion of other parts, and by the doubling or multiplication
of others,- variations which we know to be within the limits of
possibility. In the paddles of the gigantic extinct sea-lizards,
and in the mouths of certain suctorial crustaceans, the general
pattern seems thus to have become partially obscured.
There is another and equally curious branch of our subject; namely,
serial homologies, or the comparison of the different parts or organs
in the same individual, and not of the same parts or organs in different
members of the same class. Most physiologists believe that the bones
of the skull are homologous- that is, correspond in number and in
relative connexion- with the elemental parts of a certain number
of vertebrae. The anterior and posterior limbs in all the higher
vertebrate classes are plainly homologous. So it is with the wonderfully
complex jaws and legs of crustaceans. It is familiar to almost every
one, that in a flower the relative position of the sepals, petals,
stamens, and pistils, as well as their intimate structure, are intelligible
on the view that they consist of metamorphosed leaves, arranged
in a spire. In monstrous plants, we often get direct evidence of
the possibility of one organ being transformed into another; and
we can actually see, during the early or embryonic stages of development
in flowers, as well as in crustaceans and many other animals, that
organs, which when mature become extremely different are at first
exactly alike.
How inexplicable are the cases of serial homologies on the ordinary
view of creation! Why should the brain be enclosed in a box composed
of such numerous and such extraordinarily shaped pieces of bone,
apparently representing vertebrae? As Owen has remarked, the benefit
derived from the yielding of the separate pieces in the act of parturition
by mammals, will by no means explain the same construction in the
skulls of birds and reptiles. Why should similar bones have been
created to form the wing and the leg of a bat, used as they are
for such totally different purposes, namely flying and walking?
Why should one crustacean, which has an extremely complex mouth
formed of many parts, consequently always have fewer legs; or conversely,
those with many legs have simpler mouths? Why should the sepals,
petals, stamens, and pistils, in each flower, though fitted for
such distinct purposes, be all constructed on the same pattern?
On the theory of natural selection, we can, to a certain extent,
answer these questions. We need not here consider how the bodies
of some animals first became divided into a series of segments,
or how they became divided into right and left sides, with corresponding
organs, for such questions are almost beyond investigation. It is,
however, probable that some serial structures are the result of
cells multiplying by division, entailing the multiplication of the
parts developed from such cells. It must suffice for our purpose
to bear in mind that an indefinite repetition of the same part or
organ is the common characteristic, as Owen has remarked, of all
low or little specialised forms; therefore the unknown progenitor
of the Vertebrata probably possessed many vertebrae; the unknown
progenitor of the Articulata, many segments; and the unknown progenitor
of flowering plants, many leaves arranged in one or more spires.
We have also formerly seen that parts many times repeated are eminently
liable to vary, not only in number, but in form. Consequently such
parts, being already present in considerable numbers, and being
highly variable, would naturally afford the materials for adaptation
to the most different purposes; yet they would generally retain,
through the force of inheritance, plain traces of their original
or fundamental resemblance. They would retain this resemblance all
the more, as the variations, which afforded the basis for their
subsequent modification through natural selection, would tend from
the first to be similar; the parts being at an early stage of growth
alike, and being subjected to nearly the same conditions. Such parts,
whether more or less modified, unless their common origin became
wholly obscured, would be serially homologous.
In the great class of molluscs, though the parts in distinct species
can be shown to be homologous, only a few serial homologies, such
as the valves of chitons, can be indicated; that is, we are seldom
enabled to say that one part is homologous with another part in
the same individual. And we can understand this fact; for in molluscs,
even in the lowest members of the class, we do not find nearly so
much indefinite repetition of any one part as we find in the other
great classes of the animal and vegetable kingdoms.
But morphology is a much more complex subject than it at first
appears, as has lately been well shown in a remarkable paper by
Mr. E. Ray Lankester, who has drawn an important distinction between
certain classes of cases which have all been equally ranked by naturalists
as homologous. He proposes to call the structures which resemble
each other in distinct animals, owing to their descent from a common
progenitor with subsequent modification, homogenous; and the resemblances
which cannot thus be accounted for, he proposes to call homoplastic.
For instance, he believes that the hearts of birds and mammals are
as a whole homogenous,- that is, have been derived from a common
progenitor; but that the four cavities of the heart in the two classes
are homoplastic,- that is, have been independently developed. Mr.
Lankester also adduces the close resemblance of the parts on the
right and left sides of the body, and in the successive segments
of the same individual animal; and here we have parts commonly called
homologous, which bear no relation to the descent of distinct species
from a common progenitor. Homoplastic structures are the same with
those which I have classed, though in a very imperfect manner, as
analogous modifications or resemblances. Their formation may be
attributed in part to distinct organisms, or to distinct parts of
the same organism, having varied in an analogous manner; and in
part to similar modifications, having been preserved for the same
general purpose or function,- of which many instances have been
given.
Naturalists frequently speak of the skull as formed of metamorphosed
vertebrae; the jaws of crabs as metamorphosed legs; the stamens
and pistils in flowers as metamorphosed leaves; but it would in
most cases be more correct, as Professor Huxley has remarked, to
speak of both skull and vertebrae, jaws and legs, &c., as having
been metamorphosed, not one from the other, as they now exist, but
from some common and simpler element. Most naturalists, however,
use such language only in a metaphorical sense; they are far from
meaning that during a long course of descent, primordial organs
of any kind- vertebrae in the one case and legs in the other- have
actually been converted into skulls or jaws. Yet so strong is the
appearance of this having occurred, that naturalists can hardly
avoid employing language having this plain signification. According
to the views here maintained, such language may be used literally;
and the wonderful fact of the jaws, for instance, of a crab retaining
numerous characters which they probably would have retained through
inheritance, if they had really been metamorphosed from true though
extremely simple legs, is in part explained.

This is one of the most important subjects in the whole round of
history. The metamorphoses of insects, with which every one is familiar,
are generally effected abruptly by a few stages; but the transformations
are in reality numerous and gradual, though concealed. A certain
ephemerous insect (Chloeon) during its development, moults, as shown
by Sir J. Lubbock, above twenty times, and each time undergoes a
certain amount of change; and in this case we see the act of metamorphosis
performed in a primary and gradual manner. Many insects, and especially
certain crustaceans, show us what wonderful changes of structure
can be effected during development. Such changes, however, reach
their acme in the so-called alternate generations of some of the
lower animals. It is, for instance, an astonishing fact that a delicate
branching coralline, studded with polypi and attached to a submarine
rock, should produce, first by budding and then by transverse division,
a host of huge floating jelly-fishes; and that these should produce
eggs, from which are hatched swimming animalcules, which attach
themselves to rocks and become developed into branching corallines;
and so on in an endless cycle. The belief in the essential identity
of the process of alternate generation and of ordinary metamorphosis
has been greatly strengthened by Wagner's discovery of the larva
or maggot of a fly, namely the Cecidomyia, producing asexually other
larvae, and these others, which finally are developed into mature
males and females, propagating their kind in the ordinary manner
by eggs.
It may be worth notice that when Wagner's remarkable discovery
was first announced, I was asked how was it possible to account
for the larvae of this fly having acquired the power of asexual
reproduction. As long as the case remained unique no answer could
be given. But already Grimm has shown that another fly, a Chironomus,
reproduces itself in nearly the same manner, and he believes that
this occurs frequently in the Order. It is the pupa, and not the
larva, of the Chironomus which has this power; and Grimm further
shows that this case, to a certain extent, "unites that of the Cecidomyia
with the parthenogenesis of the Coccidae";- the term parthenogenesis
implying that the mature females of the Coccidae are capable of
producing fertile eggs without the concourse of the males. Certain
animals belonging to several classes are now known to have the power
of ordinary reproduction at an unusually early age; and we have
only to accelerate parthenogenetic production by gradual steps to
an earlier and earlier age,- Chironomus showing us an almost exactly
intermediate stage, viz., that of the pupa- and we can perhaps account
for the marvellous case of the Cecidomyia.
It has already been stated that various parts in the same individual
which are exactly alike during an early embryonic period, become
widely different and serve for widely different purposes in the
adult state. So again it has been shown that generally the embryos
of the most distinct species belonging to the same class are closely
similar, but become, when fully developed, widely dissimilar. A
better proof of this latter fact cannot be given than the statement
by von Baer that "The embryos of mammalia, of birds, lizards, and
snakes, probably also of chelonia are in their earliest states exceedingly
like one another, both as a whole and in the mode of development
of their parts; so much so, in fact, that we can often distinguish
the embryos only by their size. In my possession are two little
embryos in spirit, whose names I have omitted to attach, and at
present I am quite unable to say to what class they belong. They
may be lizards or small birds, or very young mammalia, so complete
is the similarity in the mode of formation of the head and trunk
in these animals. The extremities, however, are still absent in
these embryos. But even if they had existed in the earliest stage
of their development we should learn nothing, for the feet of lizards
and mammals, the wings and feet of birds, no less than the hands
and feet of man, all arise from the same fundamental form." The
larvae of most crustaceans, at corresponding stages of development,
closely resemble each other, however different the adult may become;
and so it is with very many other animals. A trace of the law of
embryonic resemblance occasionally lasts till a rather late age;
thus birds of the same genus, and of allied genera, often resemble
each other in their immature plumage; as we see in the spotted feathers
in the young of the thrush group. In the cat tribe, most of the
species when adult are striped or spotted in lines; and stripes
or spots can be plainly distinguished in the whelp of the lion and
the puma. We occasionally though rarely see something of the same
kind in plants; thus the first leaves of the ulex or furze, and
the first leaves of the phyllodineous aeacias, are pinnate or divided
like the ordinary leaves of the leguminosae.
The points of structure, in which the embryos of widely different
animals within the same class resemble each other, often have no
direct relation to their conditions of existence. We cannot, for
instance, suppose that in the embryos of the vertebrata the peculiar
looplike courses of the arteries near the branchial slits are related
to similar conditions,- in the young mammal which is nourished in
the womb of its mother, in the egg of the bird which is hatched
in a nest, and in the spawn of a frog under water. We have no more
reason to believe in such a relation, than we have to believe that
the similar bones in the hand of a man, wing of a bat, and fin of
a porpoise, are related to similar conditions of life. No one supposes
that the stripes on the whelp of a lion, or the spots on the young
blackbird, are of any use to these animals.
The case, however, is different when an animal during any part
of its embryonic career is active, and has to provide for itself.
The period of activity may come on earlier or later in life; but
whenever it comes on, the adaptation of the larva to its conditions
of life is just as perfect and as beautiful as in the adult animal.
In how important a manner this has acted, has recently been well
shown by Sir J. Lubbock in his remarks on the close similarity of
the larvae of some insects belonging to very different orders, and
on the dissimilarity of the larvae of other insects within the same
order, according to their habits of life. Owing to such adaptations,
the similarity of the larvae of allied animals is sometimes greatly
obscured; especially when there is a division of labour during the
different stages of development, as when the same larva has during
one stage to search for food, and during another stage has to search
for a place of attachment. Cases can even be given of the larvae
of allied species, or groups of species, differing more from each
other than do the adults. In most cases, however, the larvae, though
active, still obey, more or less closely, the law of common embryonic
resemblance. Cirripedes afford a good instance of this; even the
illustrious Cuvier did not perceive that a barnacle was a crustacean:
but a glance at the larva shows this in an unmistakable manner.
So again the two main divisions of cirripedes, the pedunculated
and sessile, though differing widely in external appearance, have
larvae in all their stages barely distinguishable.
The embryo in the course of development generally rises in organisation;
I use this expression, though I am aware that it is hardly possible
to define clearly what is meant by the organisation being higher
or lower. But no one probably will dispute that the butterfly is
higher than the caterpillar. In some cases, however, the mature
animal must be considered as lower in the scale than the larva,
as with certain parasitic crustaceans. To refer once again to cirripedes:
the larvae in the first stage have three pairs of locomotive organs,
a simple single eye, and a probosciformed mouth, with which they
feed largely, for they increase much in size. In the second stage,
answering to the chrysalis stage of butterflies, they have six pairs
of beautifully constructed natatory legs, a pair of magnificent
compound eyes, and extremely complex antennae; but they have a closed
and imperfect mouth, and cannot feed: their function at this stage
is, to search out by their well-developed organs of sense, and to
reach by their active powers of swimming, a proper place on which
to become attached and to undergo their final metamorphosis. When
this is completed they are fixed for life: their legs are now converted
into prehensile organs; they again obtain a well-constructed mouth;
but they have no antennae, and their two eyes are now reconverted
into a minute, single, simple eye-spot. In this last and complete
state, cirripedes may be considered as either more highly or more
lowly organised than they were in the larval condition. But in some
genera the larvae become developed into hermaphrodites having the
ordinary structure, and into what I have called complemental males;
and in the latter the development has assuredly been retrograde,
for the male is a mere sack, which lives for a short time and is
destitute of mouth, stomach, and every other organ of importance,
excepting those for reproduction.
We are so much accustomed to see a difference in structure between
the embryo and the adult, that we are tempted to look at this difference
as in some necessary manner contingent on growth. But there is no
reason why, for instance, the wing of a bat, or the fin of a porpoise,
should not have been sketched out with all their parts in proper
proportion, as soon as any part became visible. In some whole groups
of animals and in certain members of other groups this is the case,
and the embryo does not at any period differ widely from the adult:
thus Owen has remarked in regard to cuttlefish, "There is no metamorphosis;
the cephalopodic character is manifested long before the parts of
the embryo are completed." Landshells and fresh-water crustaceans
are born having their proper forms, whilst the marine members of
the same two great classes pass through considerable and often great
changes during their development. Spiders, again, barely undergo
any metamorphosis. The larvae of most insects pass through a worm-like
stage, whether they are active and adapted to diversified habits,
or are inactive from being placed in the midst of proper nutriment
or from being fed by their parents; but in some few cases, as in
that of Aphis, if we look to the admirable drawings of the development
of this insect, by Professor Huxley, we see hardly any trace of
the vermiform stage.
Sometimes it is only the earlier developmental stages which fail.
Thus Fritz Muller has made the remarkable discovery that certain
shrimp-like crustaceans (allied to Penaeus) first appear under the
simple nauplius-form, and after passing through two or more zoea-stages,
and then through the mysis-stage, finally acquire their mature structure:
now in the whole great malacostracan order, to which these crustaceans
belong, no other member is as yet known to be first developed under
the nauplius-form, though many appear as zoeas; nevertheless Muller
assigns reasons for his belief, that if there had been no suppression
of development, all these crustaceans would have appeared as nauplii.
How, then, can we explain these several facts in embryology,- namely,
the very general, though not universal, difference in structure
between the embryo and the adult;- the various parts in the same
individual embryo, which ultimately become very unlike and serve
for diverse purposes, being at an early period of growth alike;-
the common, but not invariable, resemblance between the embryos
or larvae of the most distinct species in the same class;- the embryo
often retaining, whilst within the egg or womb, structures which
are of no service to it, either at that or at a later period of
life; on the other hand, larvae, which have to provide for their
own wants, being perfectly adapted to the surrounding conditions;-
and lastly the fact of certain larvae standing higher in the scale
of organisation than the mature animal into which they are developed?
I believe that all these facts can be explained, as follows.
It is commonly assumed, perhaps from monstrosities affecting the
embryo at a very early period, that slight variations or individual
differences necessarily appear at an equally early period. We have
little evidence on this head, but what we have certainly points
the other way; for it is notorious that breeders of cattle, horses,
and various fancy animals, cannot positively tell, until some time
after birth, what will be the merits or demerits of their young
animals. We see this plainly in our own children; we cannot tell
whether a child will be tall or short, or what its precise features
will be. The question is not, at what period of life each variation
may have been caused, but at what period the effects are displayed.
The cause may have acted, and I believe often has acted, on one
or both parents before the act of generation. It deserves notice
that it is of no importance to a very young animal, as long as it
remains in its mother's womb or in the egg, or as long as it is
nourished and protected by its parent, whether most of its characters
are acquired little earlier or later in life. It would not signify,
for instance, to a bird which obtained its food by having a much-curved
beak whether or not whilst young it possessed a beak of this shape,
as long as it was fed by its parents.
I have stated in the first chapter, that at whatever age a variation
first appears in the parent, it tends to re-appear at a corresponding
age in the offspring. Certain variations can only appear at corresponding
ages; for instance, peculiarities in the caterpillar, cocoon, or
imago states of the silk-moth; or, again, in the full-grown horns
of cattle. But variations, which, for all that we can see might
have first appeared either earlier or later in life, likewise tend
to reappear at a corresponding age in the offspring and parent.
I am far from meaning that this is invariably the case, and I could
give several exceptional cases of variations (taking the word in
the largest sense) which have supervened at an earlier age in the
child than in the parent.
These two principles, namely, that slight variations generally
appear at a not very early period of life, and are inherited at
a corresponding not early period, explain, as I believe, all the
above-specified leading facts in embryology. But first let us look
to a few analogous cases in our domestic varieties. Some authors
who have written on dogs, maintain that the greyhound and bulldog,
though so different, are really closely allied varieties, descended
from the same wild stock; hence I was curious to see how far their
puppies differed from each other: I was told by breeders that they
differed just as much as their parents, and this, judging by the
eye, seemed almost to be the case; but on actually measuring the
old dogs and their six-days-old puppies, I found that the puppies
had not acquired nearly their full amount of proportional difference.
So, again, I was told that the foals of cart- and race-horses- breeds
which have been almost wholly formed by selection under domestication-
differed as much as the full-grown animals; but having had careful
measurements made of the dams and of three-days-old colts of race
and heavy cart-horses, I find that this is by no means the case.
As we have conclusive evidence that the breeds of the pigeon are
descended from a single wild species, I compared the young within
twelve hours after being hatched; I carefully measured the proportions
(but will not here give the details) of the beak, width of mouth,
length of nostril and of eyelid, size of feet and length of leg,
in the wild parent-species, in pouters, fantails, runts, barbs,
dragons, carriers, and tumblers. Now some of these birds, when mature,
differ in so extraordinary a manner in the length and form of beak,
and in other characters, that they would certainly have been ranked
as distinct genera if found in a state of nature. But when the nestling
birds of these several breeds were placed in a row, though most
of them could just be distinguished, the proportional differences
in the above specified points were incomparably less than in the
full-grown birds. Some characteristic points of difference- for
instance, that of the width of mouth- could hardly be detected in
the young. But there was one remarkable exception to this rule,
for the young of the short-faced tumbler differed from the young
of the wild rock-pigeon and of the other breeds, in almost exactly
the same proportions as in the adult state.
These facts are explained by the above two principles. Fanciers
select their dogs, horses, pigeons, &c., for breeding, when
nearly grown up: they are indifferent whether the desired qualities
are acquired earlier or later in life, if the full-grown animal
possesses them. And the cases just given, more especially that of
the pigeons, show that the characteristic differences which have
been accumulated by man's selection, and which give value to his
breeds, do not generally appear at a very early period of life,
and are inherited at a corresponding not early period. But the case
of the shortfaced tumbler, which when twelve hours old possessed
its proper characters, proves that this is not the universal rule;
for here the characteristic differences must either have appeared
at an earlier period than usual, or, if not so, the differences
must have been inherited, not at a corresponding, but at an earlier
age.
Now let us apply these two principles to species in a state of
nature. Let us take a group of birds, descended from some ancient
form and modified through natural selection for different habits.
Then, from the many slight successive variations having supervened
in the several species at a not early age, and having been inherited
at a corresponding age, the young will have been but little modified,
and they will still resemble each other much more closely than do
the adults,- just as we have seen with the breeds of the pigeon.
We may extend this view to widely distinct structures and to whole
classes. The fore-limbs, for instance, which once served as legs
to a remote progenitor, may have become, through a long course of
modification, adapted in one descendant to act as hands, in another
as paddles, in another as wings; but on the above two principles
the fore-limbs will not have been much modified in the embryos of
these several forms; although in each form the fore-limb will differ
greatly in the adult state. Whatever influence long-continued use
or disuse may have had in modifying the limbs or other parts of
any species, this will chiefly or solely have affected it when nearly
mature, when it was compelled to use its full powers to gain its
own living; and the effects thus produced will have been transmitted
to the offspring at a corresponding nearly mature age. Thus the
young will not be modified, or will be modified only in a slight
degree, through the effects of the increased use or disuse of parts.
With some animals the successive variations may have supervened
at a very early period of life, or the steps may have been inherited
at an earlier age than that at which they first occurred. In either
of these cases, the young or embryo will closely resemble the mature
parent-form, as we have seen with the short-faced tumbler. And this
is the rule of development in certain whole groups, or in certain
sub-groups alone, as with cuttle-fish, land-shells, fresh-water
crustaceans, spiders, and some members of the great class of insects.
With respect to the final cause of the young in such groups not
passing through any metamorphosis, we can see that this would follow
from the following contingencies; namely, from the young having
to provide at a very early age for their own wants, and from their
following the same habits of life with their parents; for in this
case, it would be indispensable for their existence that they should
be modified in the same manner as their parents. Again, with respect
to the singular fact that many terrestrial and fresh-water animals
do not undergo any metamorphosis, whilst marine members of the same
groups pass through various transformations, Fritz Muller has suggested
that the process of slowly modifying and adapting an animal to live
on the land or in fresh water, instead of in the sea, would be greatly
simplified by its not passing through any larval stage; for it is
not probable that places well adapted for both the larval and mature
stages, under such new and greatly changed habits of life, would
commonly be found unoccupied or ill-occupied by other organisms.
In this case the gradual acquirement at an earlier and earlier age
of the adult structure would be favoured by natural selection; and
all traces of former metamorphoses would finally be lost.
If, on the other hand, it profited the young of an animal to follow
habits of life slightly different from those of the parent-form,
and consequently to be constructed on a slightly different plan,
or if it profited a larva already different from its parent to change
still further, then, on the principle of inheritance at corresponding
ages, the young or the larvae might be rendered by natural selection
more and more different from their parents to any conceivable extent.
Differences in the larva might, also, become correlated with successive
stages of its development; so that the larva, in the first stage
might come to differ greatly from the larva in the second stage,
as is the case with many animals. The adult might also become fitted
for sites or habits, in which organs of locomotion or of the senses,
&c., would be useless; and in this case the metamorphosis would
be retrograde.
From the remarks just made we can see how by changes of structure
in the young, in conformity with changed habits of life, together
with inheritance at corresponding ages, animals might come to pass
through stages of development, perfectly distinct from the primordial
condition of their adult progenitors. Most of our best authorities
are now convinced that the various larval and pupal stages of insects
have thus been acquired through adaptation, and not through inheritance
from some ancient form. The curious case of Sitaris- a beetle which
passes through certain unusual stages of development- will illustrate
how this might occur. The first larval form is described by M. Fabre,
as an active, minute insect, furnished with six legs, two long antennae,
and four eyes. These larvae are hatched in the nests of bees; and
when the male-bees emerge from their burrows, in the spring, which
they do before the females, the larvae spring on them, and afterwards
crawl on to the females whilst paired with the males. As soon as
the female bee deposits her eggs on the surface of the honey stored
in the cells, the larvas of the Sitaris leap on the eggs and devour
them. Afterwards they undergo a complete change; their eyes disappear;
their legs and antennae become rudimentary, and they feed on honey;
so that they now more closely resemble the ordinary larvae of insects;
ultimately they undergo a further transformation, and finally emerge
as the perfect beetle. Now, if an insect, undergoing transformations
like those of the Sitaris, were to become the progenitor of a whole
new class of insects, the course of development of the new class
would be widely different from that of our existing insects; and
the first larval stage certainly would not represent the former
condition of any adult and ancient form.
On the other hand it is highly probable that with many animals
the embryonic or larval stages show us, more or less completely,
the condition of the progenitor of the whole group in its adult
state. In the great class of the Crustacea, forms wonderfully distinct
from each other, namely, suctorial parasites, cirripedes, entomostraca,
and even the malacostraca, appear at first as larvae under the nauplius-form;
and as these larvae live and feed in the open sea, and are not adapted
for any peculiar habits of life, and from other reasons assigned
by Fritz Muller it is probable that at some very remote period an
independent adult animal, resembling the nauplius, existed, and
subsequently produced, along several divergent lines of descent,
the above-named great crustacean groups. So again it is probable,
from what we know of the embryos of mammals, birds, fishes, and
reptiles, that these animals are the modified descendants of some
ancient progenitor, which was furnished in its adult state with
branchiae, a swimbladder, four finlike limbs, and a long tail, all
fitted for an aquatic life.
As all the organic beings, extinct and recent, which have ever
lived, can be arranged within a few great classes; and as all within
each class have, according to our theory, been connected together
by fine gradations, the best, and, if our collections were nearly
perfect, the only possible arrangement, would be genealogical; descent
being the hidden bond of connexion which naturalists have been seeking
under the term of the Natural System. On this view we can understand
how it is that, in the eyes of most naturalists, the structure of
the embryo is even more important for classification than that of
the adult. In two or more groups of animals, however much they may
differ from each other in structure and habits in their adult condition,
if they pass through closely similar embryonic stages, we may feel
assured that they all are descended from one parent-form, and are
therefore closely related. Thus, community in embryonic structure
reveals community of descent; but dissimilarity in embryonic development
does not prove discommunity of descent, for in one of two groups
the developmental stages may have been suppressed, or may have been
so greatly modified through adaptation to new habits of life, as
to be no longer recognisable. Even in groups, in which the adults
have been modified to an extreme degree, community of origin is
often revealed by the structure of the larvae; we have seen, for
instance, that cirripedes, though externally so like shell-fish,
are at once known by their larvae to belong to the great class of
crustaceans. As the embryo often shows us more or less plainly the
structure of the less modified and ancient progenitor of the group,
we can see why ancient and extinct forms so resemble in their adult
state the embryos of existing species of the same class. Agassiz
believes this to be a universal law of nature; and we may hope hereafter
to see the law proved true. It can, however, be proved true only
in those cases in which the ancient state of the progenitor of the
group has not been wholly obliterated, either by successive variations
having supervened at a very early period of growth, or by such variations
having been inherited at an earlier age than that at which they
first appeared. It should also be borne in mind, that the law may
be true, but yet, owing to the geological record not extending far
enough back in time, may remain for a long period, or for ever,
incapable of demonstration. The law will not strictly hold good
in those cases in which an ancient form became adapted in its larvae
state to some special line of life, and transmitted the same larval
state to a whole group of descendants; for such larvae will not
resemble any still more ancient form in its adult state.
Thus, as it seems to me, the leading facts in embryology, which
are second to none in importance, are explained on the principle
of variations in the many descendants from some one ancient progenitor,
having appeared at a not very early period of life, and having been
inherited at a corresponding period. Embryology rises greatly in
interest, when we look at the embryo as a picture, more or less
obscured, of the progenitor, either in its adult or larval state,
of all the members of the same great class.

Organs or parts in this strange condition, bearing the plain stamp
of inutility, are extremely common, or even general, throughout
nature. It would be impossible to name one of the higher animals
in which some part or other is not in a rudimentary condition. In
the mammalia, for instance, the males possess rudimentary mammae;
in snakes one lobe of the lungs is rudimentary; in birds the "bastardwing"
may safely be considered as a rudimentary digit, and in some species
the whole wing is so far rudimentary that it cannot be used for
flight. What can be more curious than the presence of teeth in foetal
whales, which when grown up have not a tooth in their heads; or
the teeth, which never cut through the gums, in the upper jaws of
unborn calves?
Rudimentary organs plainly declare their origin and meaning in
various ways. There are beetles belonging to closely allied species,
or even to the same identical species, which have either full-sized
and perfect wings, or mere rudiments of membrane, which not rarely
lie under wing-covers firmly soldered together; and in these cases
it is impossible to doubt, that the rudiments represent wings. Rudimentary
organs sometimes retain their potentiality: this occasionally occurs
with the mammae of male mammals, which have been known to become
well developed and to secrete milk. So again in the udders in the
genus Bos, there are normally four developed and two rudimentary
teats; but the latter in our domestic cows sometimes become well
developed and yield milk. In regard to plants the petals are sometimes
rudimentary, and sometimes well-developed in the individuals of
the same species. In certain plants having separated sexes Kolreuter
found that by crossing a species, in which the male flowers included
a rudiment of a pistil, with an hermaphrodite species, having of
course a well-developed pistil, the rudiment in the hybrid offspring
was much increased in size; and this clearly shows that the rudimentary
and perfect pistils are essentially alike in nature. An animal may
possess various parts in a perfect state, and yet they may in one
sense be rudimentary, for they are useless: thus the tadpole of
the common salamander or water-newt, as Mr. G. H. Lewes remarks,
"has gills, and passes its existence in the water; but the Salamandra
atra, which lives high up among the mountains, brings forth its
young full-formed. This animal never lives in the water. Yet if
we open a gravid female, we find tadpoles inside her with exquisitely
feathered gills; and when placed in water they swim about like the
tadpoles of the water-newt. Obviously this aquatic organisation
has no reference to the future life of the animal, nor has it any
adaptation to its embryonic condition; it has solely reference to
ancestral adaptations, it repeats a phase in the development of
its progenitors."
An organ, serving for two purposes, may become rudimentary or utterly
aborted for one, even the more important purpose, and remain perfectly
efficient for the other. Thus in plants, the office of the pistil
is to allow the pollen-tubes to reach the ovules within the ovarium.
The pistil consists of a stigma supported on a style; but in some
Compositae, the male florets, which of course cannot be fecundated,
have a rudimentary pistil, for it is not crowned with a stigma;
but the style remains well developed and is clothed in the usual
manner with hairs, which serve to brush the pollen out of the surrounding
and conjoined anthers. Again, an organ may become rudimentary for
its proper purpose, and be used for a distinct one: in certain fishes
the swimbladder seems to be rudimentary for its proper function
of giving buoyancy, but has become converted into a nascent breathing
organ or lung. Many similar instances could be given.
Useful organs, however little they may be developed, unless we
have reason to suppose that they were formerly more highly developed,
ought not to be considered as rudimentary. They may be in a nascent
condition, and in progress towards further development. Rudimentary
organs, on the other hand, are either quite useless, such as teeth
which never cut through the gums, or almost useless, such as the
wings of an ostrich, which serve merely as sails. As organs in this
condition would formerly, when still less developed, have been of
even less use than at present, they cannot formerly have been produced
through variation and natural selection, which acts solely by the
preservation of useful modifications. They have been partially retained
by the power of inheritance, and relate to a former state of things.
It is, however, often difficult to distinguish between rudimentary
and nascent organs; for we can judge only by analogy whether a part
is capable of further development, in which case alone it deserves
to be called nascent. Organs in this condition will always be somewhat
rare; for beings thus provided will commonly have been supplanted
by their successors with the same organ in a more perfect state,
and consequently will have become long ago extinct. The wing of
the penguin is of high service, acting as a fin; it may, therefore,
represent the nascent state of the wing: not that I believe this
to be the case; it is more probably a reduced organ, modified for
a new function: the wing of the Apteryx, on the other hand, is quite
useless, and is truly rudimentary. Owen considers the simple filamentary
limbs of the lepidosiren as the "beginnings of organs which attain
full functional development in higher vertebrates"; but, according
to the view lately advocated by Dr. Gunther, they are probably remnants,
consisting of the persistent axis of a fin, with the lateral rays
of branches aborted. The mammary glands of the Ornithorhynchus may
be considered, in comparison with the udders of a cow, as in a nascent
condition. The ovigerous frena of certain cirripedes, which have
ceased to give attachment to the ova and are feebly developed, are
nascent branchiae.
Rudimentary organs in the individuals of the same species are very
liable to vary in the degree of their development and in other respects.
In closely allied species, also, the extent to which the same organ
has been reduced occasionally differs much. This latter fact is
well exemplified in the state of the wings of female moths belonging
to the same family. Rudimentary organs may be utterly aborted; and
this implies, that in certain animals or plants, parts are entirely
absent which analogy would lead us to expect to find in them, and
which are occasionally found in monstrous individuals. Thus in most
of the Scrophulariaceae the fifth stamen is utterly aborted; yet
we may conclude that a fifth stamen once existed, for a rudiment
of it is found in many species of the family, and this rudiment
occasionally becomes perfectly developed, as may sometimes be seen
in the common snap-dragon. In tracing the homologies of any part
in different members of the same class, nothing is more common,
or, in order fully to understand the relations of the parts, more
useful than the discovery of rudiments. This is well shown in the
drawings given by Owen of the leg-bones of the horse, ox, and rhinoceros.
It is an important fact that rudimentary organs, such as teeth
in the upper jaws of whales and ruminants, can often be detected
in the embryo, but afterwards wholly disappear. It is also, I believe,
a universal rule, that a rudimentary part is of greater size in
the embryo relatively to the adjoining parts, than in the adult;
so that the organ at this early age is less rudimentary, or even
cannot be said to be in any degree rudimentary. Hence rudimentary
organs in the adult are often said to have retained their embryonic
condition.
I have now given the leading facts with respect to rudimentary
organs. In reflecting on them, every one must be struck with astonishment;
for the same reasoning power which tells us that most parts and
organs are exquisitely adapted for certain purposes, tells us with
equal plainness that these rudimentary or atrophied organs are imperfect
and useless. In works on natural history, rudimentary organs are
generally said to have been created "for the sake of symmetry,"
or in order "to complete the scheme of nature." But this is not
an explanation, merely a re-statement of the fact. Nor is it consistent
with itself; thus the boa constrictor has rudiments of hind-limbs
and of a pelvis, and if it be said that these bones have been retained
"to complete the scheme of nature," why, as Professor Weismann asks,
have they not been retained by other snakes, which do not possess
even a vestige of these same bones? What would be thought of an
astronomer who maintained that the satellites revolve in elliptic
courses round their planets "for the sake of symmetry," because
the planets thus revolve round the sun? An eminent physiologist
accounts for the presence of rudimentary organs, by supposing that
they serve to excrete matter in excess, or matter injurious to the
system; but can we suppose that the minute papilla, which often
represents the pistil in male flowers, and which is formed of mere
cellular tissue, can thus act? Can we suppose that rudimentary teeth,
which are subsequently absorbed, are beneficial to the rapidly growing
embryonic calf by removing matter so precious as phosphate of lime?
When a man's fingers have been amputated, imperfect nails have been
known to appear on the stumps, and I could as soon believe that
these vestiges of nails are developed in order to excrete horny
matter, as that the rudimentary nails on the fin of the manatee
have been developed for this same purpose.
On the view of descent with modification, the origin of rudimentary
organs is comparatively simple; and we can understand to a large
extent the laws governing their imperfect development. We have plenty
of cases of rudimentary organs in our domestic productions,- as
the stump of a tail in tailless breeds,- the vestige of an ear in
earless breeds of sheep,- the reappearance of minute dangling horns
in hornless breeds of cattle, more especially, according to Youatt,
in young animals,- and the state of the whole flower in the cauliflower.
We often see rudiments of various parts in monsters; but I doubt
whether any of these cases throw light on the origin of rudimentary
organs in a state of nature, further than by showing that rudiments
can be produced; for the balance of evidence clearly indicates that
species under nature do not undergo great and abrupt changes. But
we learn from the study of our domestic productions that the disuse
of parts leads to their reduced size; and that the result is inherited.
It appears probable that disuse has been the main agent in rendering
organs rudimentary. It would at first lead by slow steps to the
more and more complete reduction of a part, until at last it became
rudimentary,- as in the case of the eyes of animals inhabiting dark
caverns, and of the wings of birds inhabiting oceanic islands, which
have seldom been forced by beasts of prey to take flight, and have
ultimately lost the power of flying. Again, an organ, useful under
certain conditions, might become injurious under others, as with
the wings of beetles living on small and exposed islands; and in
this case natural selection will have aided in reducing the organ,
until it was rendered harmless and rudimentary.
Any change in structure and function, which can be effected by
small stages, is within the power of natural selection; so that
an organ rendered, through changed habits of life, useless or injurious
for one purpose, might be modified and used for another purpose.
An organ might, also, be retained for one alone of its former functions.
Organs, originally formed by the aid of natural selection, when
rendered useless may well be variable, for their variations can
no longer be cheeked by natural selection. All this agrees well
with what we see under nature. Moreover, at whatever period of life
either disuse or selection reduces an organ, and this will generally
be when the being has come to maturity and has to exert its full
powers of action, the principle of inheritance at corresponding
ages will tend to reproduce the organ in its reduced state at the
same mature age, but will seldom effect it in the embryo. Thus we
can understand the greater size of rudimentary organs in the embryo
relatively to the adjoining parts. and their lesser relative size
in the adult. If, for instance, the digit of an adult animal was
used less and less during many generations, owing to some change
of habits, or if an organ or gland was less and less functionally
exercised, we may infer that it would become reduced in size in
the adult descendants of this animal, but would retain nearly its
original standard of development in the embryo.
There remains, however, this difficulty. After an organ has ceased
being used, and has become in consequence much reduced, how can
it be still further reduced in size until the merest vestige is
left; and how can it be finally quite obliterated? It is scarcely
possible that disuse can go on producing any further effect after
the organ has once been rendered functionless. Some additional explanation
is here requisite which I cannot give. If, for instance, it could
be proved that every part of the organisation tends to vary in a
greater degree towards diminution than towards augmentation of size,
then we should be able to understand how an organ which has become
useless would be rendered, independently of the effects of disuse,
rudimentary and would at last be wholly suppressed; for the variations
towards diminished size would no longer be checked by natural selection.
The principle of the economy of growth, explained in a former chapter,
by which the materials forming any part, if not useful to the possessor,
are saved as far as possible, will perhaps come into play in rendering
a useless part rudimentary. But this principle will almost necessarily
be confined to the earlier stages of the process of reduction; for
we cannot suppose that a minute papilla, for instance, representing
in a male flower the pistil of the female flower, and formed merely
of cellular tissue, could be further reduced or absorbed for the
sake of economising nutriment.
Finally, as rudimentary organs, by whatever steps they may have
been degraded into their present useless condition, are the record
of a former state of things, and have been retained solely through
the power of inheritance,- we can understand, on the genealogical
view of classification, how it is that systematists, in placing
organisms in their proper places in the natural system, have often
found rudimentary parts as useful as, or even sometimes more useful
than, parts of high physiological importance. Rudimentary organs
may be compared with the letters in a word, still retained in the
spelling, but become useless in the pronunciation, but which serve
as a clue for its derivation. On the view of descent with modification,
we may conclude that the existence of organs in a rudimentary, imperfect,
and useless condition, or quite aborted, far from presenting a strange
difficulty, as they assuredly do on the old doctrine of creation,
might even have been anticipated in accordance with the views here
explained.

In this chapter I have attempted to show, that the arrangement
of all organic beings throughout all time in groups under groups-
that the nature of the relationships by which all living and extinct
organisms are united by complex, radiating, and circuitous lines
of affinities into a few grand classes,- the rules followed and
the difficulties encountered by naturalists in their classifications,-
the value set upon characters, if constant and prevalent, whether
of high or of the most trifling importance, or, as with rudimentary
organs, of no importance,- the wide opposition in value between
analogical or adaptive characters, and characters of true affinity;
and other such rules;- all naturally follow if we admit the common
parentage of allied forms, together with their modification through
variation and natural selection, with the contingencies of extinction
and divergence of character. In considering this view of classification,
it should be borne in mind that the element of descent has been
universally used in ranking together the sexes, ages, dimorphic
forms, and acknowledged varieties of the same species, however much
they may differ from each other in structure. If we extend the use
of this element of descent,- the one certainly known cause of similarity
in organic beings,- we shall understand what is meant by the Natural
System: it is genealogical in its attempted arrangement, with the
grades of acquired difference marked by the terms, varieties, species,
genera, families, orders, and classes.
On this same view of descent with modification, most of the great
facts in Morphology become intelligible,- whether we look to the
same pattern displayed by the different species of the same class
in their homologous organs, to whatever purpose applied; or to the
serial and lateral homologies in each individual animal and plant.
On the principle of successive slight variations, not necessarily
or generally supervening at a very early period of life, and being
inherited at a corresponding period, we can understand the leading
facts in Embryology; namely, the close resemblance in the individual
embryo of the parts which are homologous, and which when matured
become widely different in structure and function; and the resemblance
of the homologous parts or organs in allied though distinct species,
though fitted in the adult state for habits as different as is possible.
Larvae are active embryos, which have been specially modified in
a greater or less degree in relation to their habits of life, with
their modifications inherited at a corresponding early age. On these
same principles,- and bearing in mind that when organs are reduced
in size, either from disuse or through natural selection, it will
generally be at that period of life when the being has to provide
for its own wants, and bearing in mind how strong is the force of
inheritance- the occurrence of rudimentary organs might even have
been anticipated. The importance of embryological characters and
of rudimentary organs in classification is intelligible, on the
view that a natural arrangement must be genealogical.
Finally, the several classes of facts which have been considered
in this chapter, seem to me to proclaim so plainly, that the innumerable
species, genera and families, with which this world is peopled,
are all descended, each within its own class or group, from common
parents, and have all been modified in the course of descent, that
I should without hesitation adopt this view, even if it were unsupported
by other facts or arguments.
AS THIS whole volume is one long argument, it may be convenient
to the reader to have the leading facts and inferences briefly recapitulated.
That many and serious objections may be advanced against the theory
of descent with modification through variation and natural selection,
I do not deny. I have endeavoured to give to them their full force.
Nothing at first can appear more difficult to believe than that
the more complex organs and instincts have been perfected, not by
means superior to, though analogous with, human reason, but by the
accumulation of innumerable slight variations, each good for the
individual possessor. Nevertheless, this difficulty, though appearing
to our imagination insuperably great, cannot be considered real
if we admit the following propositions, namely, that all parts of
the organisation and instincts offer, at least, individual differences-
that there is a struggle for existence leading to the preservation
of profitable deviations of structure or instinct- and, lastly,
that gradations in the state of perfection of each organ may have
existed, each good of its kind. The truth of these propositions
cannot, I think, be disputed.
It is, no doubt, extremely difficult even to conjecture by what
gradations many structures have been perfected, more especially
amongst broken and failing groups of organic beings, which have
suffered much extinction, but we see so many strange gradations
in nature, that we ought to be extremely cautious in saying that
any organ or instinct, or any whole structure, could not have arrived
at its present state by many graduated steps. There are, it must
be admitted, cases of special difficulty opposed to the theory of
natural selection; and one of the most curious of these is the existence
in the same community of two or three defined castes of workers
or sterile female ants; but I have attempted to show how these difficulties
can be mastered.
With respect to the almost universal sterility of species when
first crossed, which forms so remarkable a contrast with the almost
universal fertility of varieties when crossed, I must refer the
reader to the recapitulation of the facts given at the end of the
ninth chapter, which seem to me conclusively to show that this sterility
is no more a special endowment than is the incapacity of two distinct
kinds of trees to be grafted together; but that it is incidental
on differences confined to the reproductive systems of the intercrossed
species. We see the truth of this conclusion in the vast difference
in the results of crossing the same two species reciprocally,- that
is, when one species is first used as the father and then as the
mother. Analogy from the consideration of dimorphic and trimorphic
plants clearly leads to the same conclusion, for when the forms
are illegitimately united, they yield few or no seed, and their
offspring are more or less sterile; and these forms belong to the
same undoubted species, and differ from each other in no respect
except in their reproductive organs and functions.
Although the fertility of varieties when intercrossed and of their
mongrel offspring has been asserted by so many authors to be universal,
this cannot be considered as quite correct after the facts given
on the high authority of Gartner and Kolreuter. Most of the varieties
which have been experimented on have been produced under domestication;
and as domestication (I do not mean mere confinement) almost certainly
tends to eliminate that sterility which, judging from analogy, would
have affected the parent-species if intercrossed, we ought not to
expect that domestication would likewise induce sterility in their
modified descendants when crossed. This elimination of sterility
apparently follows from the same cause which allows our domestic
animals to breed freely under diversified circumstances; and this
again apparently follows from their having been gradually accustomed
to frequent changes in their conditions of life.
A double and parallel series of facts seems to throw much light
on the sterility of species, when first crossed, and of their hybrid
offspring. On the one side, there is good reason to believe that
slight changes in the conditions of life give vigour and fertility
to all organic beings. We know also that a cross between the distinct
individuals of the same variety, and between distinct varieties,
increases the number of their offspring, and certainly gives to
them increased size and vigour. This is chiefly owing to the forms
which are crossed having been exposed to somewhat different conditions
of life; for I have ascertained by a laborious series of experiments
that if all the individuals of the same variety be subjected during
several generations to the same conditions, the good derived from
crossing is often much diminished or wholly disappears. This is
one side of the case. On the other side, we know that species which
have long been exposed to nearly uniform conditions, when they are
subjected under confinement to new and greatly changed conditions,
either perish, or if they survive, are rendered sterile, though
retaining perfect health. This does not occur, or only in a very
slight degree, with our domesticated productions, which have long
been exposed to fluctuating conditions. Hence when we find that
hybrids produced by a cross between two distinct species are few
in number, owing to their perishing soon after conception or at
a very early age, or if surviving that they are rendered more or
less sterile, it seems highly probable that this result is due to
their having been in fact subjected to a great change in their conditions
of life, from being compounded of two distinct organisations. He
who will explain in a definite manner why, for instance, air elephant
or a fox will not breed under confinement in its native country,
whilst the domestic pig or dog will breed freely under the most
diversified conditions, will at the same time be able to give a
definite answer to the question why two distinct species, when crossed,
as well as their hybrid offspring, are generally rendered more or
less sterile, whilst two domesticated varieties when crossed and
their mongrel offspring are perfectly fertile.
Turning to geographical distribution, the difficulties encountered
on the theory of descent with modification are serious enough. All
the individuals of the same species, and all the species of the
same genus, or even higher group, are descended from common parents;
and therefore, in however distant and isolated parts of the world
they may now be found, they must in the course of successive generations
have travelled from some one point to all the others. We are often
wholly unable even to conjecture how this could have been effected.
Yet, as we have reason to believe that some species have retained
the same specific form for very long periods of time, immensely
long as measured by years, too much stress ought not to be laid
on the occasional wide diffusion of the same species; for during
very long periods there will always have been a good chance for
wide migration by many means. A broken or interrupted range may
often be accounted for by the extinction of the species in the intermediate
regions. It cannot be denied that we are as yet very ignorant as
to the full extent of the various climatal and geographical changes
which have affected the earth during modern periods; and such changes
will often have facilitated migration. As an example, I have attempted
to show how potent has been the influence of the Glacial period
on the distribution of the same and of allied species throughout
the world. We are as yet profoundly ignorant of the many occasional
means of transport. With respect to distinct species of the same
genus inhabiting distant and isolated regions, as the process of
modification has necessarily been slow, all the means of migration
will have been possible during a very long period; and consequently
the difficulty of the wide diffusion of the species of the same
genus is in some degree lessened.
As according to the theory of natural selection an interminable
number of intermediate forms must have existed, linking together
all the species in each group by gradations as fine as are our existing
varieties, it may be asked: Why do we not see these linking forms
all around us? Why are not all organic beings blended together in
an inextricable chaos? With respect to existing forms, we should
remember that we have no right to expect (excepting in rare cases)
to discover directly connecting links between them, but only between
each and some extinct and supplanted form. Even on a wide area,
which has during a long period remained continuous, and of which
the climatic and other conditions of life change insensibly in proceeding
from a district occupied by one species into another district occupied
by a closely allied species, we have no just right to expect often
to find intermediate varieties in the intermediate zones. For we
have reason to believe that only a few species of a genus ever undergo
change; the other species becoming utterly extinct and leaving no
modified progeny. Of the species which do change, only a few within
the same country change at the same time; and all modifications
are slowly effected. I have also shown that the intermediate varieties
which probably at first existed in the intermediate zones, would
be liable to be supplanted by the allied forms on either hand; for
the latter, from existing in greater numbers, would generally be
modified and improved at a quicker rate than the intermediate varieties,
which existed in lesser numbers; so that the intermediate varieties
would, in the long run, be supplanted and exterminated.
On this doctrine of the extermination of an infinitude of connecting
links, between the living and extinct inhabitants of the world,
and at each successive period between the extinct and still older
species, why is not every geological formation charged with such
links? Why does not every collection of fossil remains afford plain
evidence of the gradation and mutation of the forms of life? Although
geological research has undoubtedly revealed the former existence
of many links, bringing numerous forms of life much closer together,
it does not yield the infinitely many fine gradations between past
and present species required on the theory; and this is the most
obvious of the many objections which may be urged against it. Why,
again, do whole groups of allied species appear, though this appearance
is often false, to have come in suddenly on the successive geological
stages? Although we now know that organic beings appeared on this
globe, at a period incalculably remote, long before the lowest bed
of the Cambrian system was deposited, why do we not find beneath
this system great piles of strata stored with the remains of the
progenitors of the Cambrian fossils? For on the theory, such strata
must somewhere have been deposited at these ancient and utterly
unknown epochs of the world's history.
I can answer these questions and objections only on the supposition
that the geological record is far more imperfect than most geologists
believe. The number of specimens in all our museums is absolutely
as nothing compared with the countless generations of countless
species which have certainly existed. The parent-form of any two
or more species would not be in all its characters directly intermediate
between its modified offspring, any more than the rock-pigeon is
directly intermediate in crop and tail between its descendants,
the pouter and fantail pigeons. We should not be able to recognise
a species as the parent of another and modified species, if we were
to examine the two ever so closely, unless we possessed most of
the intermediate links; and owing to the imperfection of the geological
record, we have no just right to expect to find so many links. If
two or three, or even more linking forms were discovered, they would
simply be ranked by many naturalists as so many new species, more
especially if found in different geological sub-stages, let their
differences be ever so slight. Numerous existing doubtful forms
could be named which are probably varieties; but who will pretend
that in future ages so many fossil links will be discovered, that
naturalists will be able to decide whether or not these doubtful
forms ought to be called varieties? Only a small portion of the
world has been geologically explored. Only organic beings of certain
classes can be preserved in a fossil condition, at least in any
great number. Many species when once formed never undergo any further
change but become extinct without leaving modified descendants;
and the periods, during which species have undergone modification,
though long as measured by years, have probably been short in comparison
with the periods during which they retain the same form. It is the
dominant and widely ranging species which vary most frequently and
vary most, and varieties are often at first local- both causes rendering
the discovery of intermediate links in any one formation less likely.
Local varieties will not spread into other and distant regions until
they are considerably modified and improved; and when they have
spread, and are discovered in a geological formation, they appear
as if suddenly created there, and will be simply classed as new
species. Most formations have been intermittent in their accumulation;
and their duration has probably been shorter than the average duration
of specific forms. Successive formations are in most cases separated
from each other by blank intervals of time of great length; for
fossiliferous formations thick enough to resist future degradations
can as a general rule be accumulated only where much sediment is
deposited on the subsiding bed of the sea. During the alternate
periods of elevation and of stationary level the record will generally
be blank. During these latter periods there will probably be more
variability in the forms of life; during periods of subsidence,
more extinction.
With respect to the absence of strata rich in fossils beneath the
Cambrian formation, I can recur only to the hypothesis given in
the tenth chapter; namely, that though our continents and oceans
have endured for an enormous period in nearly their present relative
positions, we have no reason to assume that this has always been
the case; consequently formations much older than any now known
may lie buried beneath the great oceans. With respect to the lapse
of time not having been sufficient since our planet was consolidated
for the assumed amount of organic change, and this objection, as
urged by Sir William Thompson, is probably one of the gravest as
yet advanced, I can only say, firstly, that we do not know at what
rate species change as measured by years, and secondly, that many
philosophers are not as yet willing to admit that we know enough
of the constitution of the universe and of the interior of our globe
to speculate with safety on its past duration.
That the geological record is imperfect all will admit; but that
it is imperfect to the degree required by our theory, few will be
inclined to admit. If we look to long enough intervals of time,
geology plainly declares that species have all changed; and they
have changed in the manner required by the theory, for they have
changed slowly and in a graduated manner. We clearly see this in
the fossil remains from consecutive formations invariably being
much more closely related to each other, than are the fossils from
widely separated formations.
Such is the sum of the several chief objections and difficulties
which may be justly urged against the theory; and I have now briefly
recapitulated the answers and explanations which, as far as I can
see, may be given. I have felt these difficulties far too heavily
during many years to doubt their weight. But it deserves especial
notice that the more important objections relate to questions on
which we are confessedly ignorant; nor do we know how ignorant we
are. We do not know all the possible transitional gradations between
the simplest and the most perfect organs; it cannot be pretended
that we know all the varied means of Distribution during the long
lapse of years, or that we know how imperfect is the Geological
Record. Serious as these several objections are, in my judgment
they are by no means sufficient to overthrow the theory of descent
with subsequent modification.
Now let us turn to the other side of the argument. Under domestication
we see much variability, caused, or at least excited, by changed
conditions of life; but often in so obscure a manner, that we are
tempted to consider the variations as spontaneous. Variability is
governed by many complex laws,- by correlated growth, compensation,
the increased use and disuse of parts, and the definite action of
the surrounding conditions. There is much difficulty in ascertaining
how largely our domestic productions have been modified; but we
may safely infer that the amount has been large, and that modifications
can be inherited for long periods. As long as the conditions of
life remain the same, we have reason to believe that a modification,
which has already been inherited for many generations, may continue
to be inherited for an almost infinite number of generations. On
the other hand, we have evidence that variability when it has once
come into play, does not cease under domestication for a very long
period; nor do we know that it ever ceases, for new varieties are
still occasionally produced by our oldest domesticated productions.
Variability is not actually caused by man; he only unintentionally
exposes organic beings to new conditions of life, and then nature
acts on the organisation and causes it to vary. But man can and
does select the variations given to him by nature, and thus accumulates
them in any desired manner. He thus adapts animals and plants for
his own benefit or pleasure. He may do this methodically, or he
may do it unconsciously by preserving the individuals most useful
or pleasing to him without any intention of altering the breed.
It is certain that he can largely influence the character of a breed
by selecting, in each successive generation, individual differences
so slight as to be inappreciable except by an educated eye. This
unconscious process of selection has been the great agency in the
formation of the most distinct and useful domestic breeds. That
many breeds produced by man have to a large extent the character
of natural species, is shown by the inextricable doubts whether
many of them are varieties or aboriginally distinct species.
There is no reason why the principles which have acted so efficiently
under domestication should not have acted under nature. In the survival
of favoured individuals and races, during the constantly-recurrent
Struggle for Existence, we see a powerful and ever-acting form of
Selection. The struggle for existence inevitably follows from the
high geometrical ratio of increase which is common, to all organic
beings. This high rate of increase is proved by calculation,- by
the rapid increase of many animals and plants during succession
of peculiar seasons, and when naturalised in new countries. More
individuals are born than can possibly survive. A grain in the balance
may determine which individuals shall live and which shall die,-
which variety or species shall increase in number, and which shall
decrease, or finally become extinct. As the individuals of the same
species come in all respects into the closest competition with each
other, the struggle will generally be most severe between them;
it will be almost equally severe between the varieties of the same
species, and next in severity between the species of the same genus.
On the other hand the struggle will often be severe between beings
remote in the scale of nature. The slightest advantage in certain
individuals, at any age or during any season, over those with which
they come into competition, or better adaptation in however slight
a degree to the surrounding physical conditions, will, in the long
run, turn the balance.
With animals having separated sexes, there will be in most cases
a struggle between the males for the possession of the females.
The most vigorous males, or those which have most successfully struggled
with their conditions of life, will generally leave most progeny.
But success will often depend on the males having special weapons,
or means of defence, or charms; add a slight advantage will lead
to victory.
As geology plainly proclaims that each land has undergone great
physical changes, we might have expected to find that organic beings
have varied under nature, in the same way as they have varied under
domestication. And if there has been any variability under nature,
it would be an unaccountable fact if natural selection had not come
into play. It has often been asserted, but the assertion is incapable
of proof, that the amount of variation under nature is a strictly
limited quantity. Man, though acting on external characters alone
and often capriciously, can produce within a short period a great
result by adding up mere individual differences in his domestic
productions; and every one admits that species present individual
differences. But, besides such differences, all naturalists admit
that natural varieties exist, which are considered sufficiently
distinct to be worthy of record in systematic works. No one has
drawn any clear distinction between individual differences and slight
varieties; or between more plainly marked varieties and sub-species,
and species. On separate continents, and on different parts of the
same continent when divided by barriers of any kind, and on outlying
islands, what a multitude of forms exist, which some experienced
naturalists rank as varieties, others as geographical races or sub-species,
and others as distinct, though closely allied species!
If, then, animals and plants do vary, let it be ever so slightly
or slowly, why should not variations or individual differences,
which are in any way beneficial, be preserved and accumulated through
natural selection, or the survival of the fittest? If man can by
patience select variations useful to him, why, under changing and
complex conditions of life, should not variations useful to nature's
living products often arise, and be preserved or selected? What
limit can be put to this power, acting during long ages and rigidly
scrutinising the whole constitution, structure, and habits of each
creature,- favouring the good and rejecting the bad? I can see no
limit to this power, in slowly and beautifully adapting each form
to the most complex relations of life. The theory of natural selection,
even if we look no farther than this, seems to be in the highest
degree probable. I have already recapitulated, as fairly as I could,
the opposed difficulties and objections; now let us turn to the
special facts and arguments in favour of the theory.
On the view that species are only strongly marked and permanent
varieties, and that each species first existed as a variety, we
can see why it is that no line of demarcation can be drawn between
species, commonly supposed to have been produced by special acts
of creation, and varieties which are acknowledged to have been produced
by secondary laws. On this same view we can understand how it is
that in a region where many species of a genus have been produced,
and where they now flourish, these same species should present many
varieties; for where the manufactory of species has been active,
we might expect, as a general rule, to find it still in action;
and this is the case if varieties be incipient species. Moreover,
the species of the larger genera, which afford the greater number
of varieties or incipient species, retain to a certain degree the
character of varieties; for they differ from each other by a less
amount of difference than do the species of smaller genera. The
closely allied species also of the larger genera apparently have
restricted ranges, and in their affinities they are clustered in
little groups round other species- in both respects resembling varieties.
These are strange relations on the view that each species was independently
created, but are intelligible if each existed first as a variety.
As each species tends by its geometrical rate of reproduction to
increase inordinately in number; and as the modified descendants
of each species will be enabled to increase by as much as they become
more diversified in habits and structure, so as to be able to seize
on many and widely different places in the economy of nature, there
will be a constant tendency in natural selection to preserve the
most divergent offspring of any one species. Hence, during a long-continued
course of modification, the slight differences, characteristic of
varieties of the same species, tend to be augmented into the greater
differences characteristic of the species of the same genus. New
and improved varieties will inevitably supplant and exterminate
the older, less improved, and intermediate varieties; and thus species
are rendered to a large extent defined and distinct objects. Dominant
species belonging to the larger groups within each class tend to
give birth to new and dominant forms; so that each large group tends
to become still larger, and at the same time more divergent in character.
But as all groups cannot thus go on increasing in size, for the
world would not hold them, the more dominant groups beat the less
dominant. This tendency in the large groups to go on increasing
in size and diverging in character, together with the inevitable
contingency of much extinction, explains the arrangement of all
the forms of life in groups subordinate to groups, all within a
few great classes, which has prevailed throughout all time. This
grand fact of the grouping of all organic beings under what is called
the Natural System, is utterly inexplicable on the theory of creation.
As natural selection acts solely by accumulating slight, successive,
favourable variations, it can produce no great or sudden modifications;
it can act only by short and slow steps. Hence, the canon of "Natura
non facit saltum," which every fresh addition to our knowledge tends
to confirm, is on this theory intelligible. We can see why throughout
nature the same general end is gained by an almost infinite diversity
of means, for every peculiarity when once acquired is long inherited,
and structures already modified in many different ways have to be
adapted for the same general purpose. We can, in short, see why
nature is prodigal in variety, though niggard in innovation. But
why this should be a law of nature if each species has been independently
created no man can explain.
Many other facts are, as it seems to me, explicable on this theory.
How strange it is that a bird, under the form of a woodpecker, should
prey on insects on the ground; that upland geese which rarely or
never swim, should possess webbed feet; that a thrush-like bird
should dive and feed on sub-aquatic insects; and that a petrel should
have the habits and structure fitting it for the life of an awk!
and so in endless other cases. But on the view of each species constantly
trying to increase in number, with natural selection always ready
to adapt the slowly varying descendants of each to any unoccupied
or ill-occupied place in nature, these facts cease to be strange,
or might even have been anticipated.
We can to a certain extent understand how it is that there is so
much beauty throughout nature; for this may be largely attributed
to the agency of selection. That beauty, according to our sense
of it, is not universal, must be admitted by every one who will
look at some venomous snakes, at some fishes, and at certain hideous
bats with a distorted resemblance to the human face. Sexual selection
has given the most brilliant colours, elegant patterns, and other
ornaments to the males, and sometimes to both sexes of many birds,
butterflies, and other animals. With birds it has often rendered
the voice of the male musical to the female, as well as to our ears.
Flowers and fruit have been rendered conspicuous by brilliant colours
in contrast with the green foliage, in order that the flowers may
be readily seen, visited and fertilised by insects, and the seeds
disseminated by birds. How it comes that certain colours, sounds,
and forms should give pleasure to man and the lower animals,- that
is, that is, how the sense of beauty in its simplest form was first
acquired,- we do not know any more than how certain odours and flavours
were first rendered agreeable.
As natural selection acts by competition, it adapts and improves
the inhabitants of each country only in relation to their co-inhabitants;
so that we need feel no surprise at the species of any one country,
although on the ordinary view supposed to have been created and
specially adapted for that country, being beaten and supplanted
by the naturalised productions from another land. Nor ought we to
marvel if all the contrivances in nature be not, as far. as we can
judge, absolutely perfect, as in the case even of the human eye;
or if some of them be abhorrent to our ideas of fitness. We need
not marvel at the sting of the bee, when used against an enemy,
causing the bee's own death; at drones being produced in such great
numbers for one single act, and being then slaughtered by their
sterile sisters; at the astonishing waste of pollen by our fir-trees;
at the instinctive hatred of the queen-bee for her own fertile daughters;
at the Ichneumonidae feeding within the living bodies of caterpillars;
or at other such cases. The wonder indeed is, on the theory of natural
selection, that more cases of the want of absolute perfection have
not been detected.
The complex and little known laws governing the production of varieties
are the same, as far as we can judge, with the laws which have governed
the production of distinct species. In both cases physical conditions
seem to have produced some direct and definite effect, but how much
we cannot say. Thus, when varieties enter any new station, they
occasionally assume some of the characters proper to the species
of that station. With both varieties and species, use and disuse
seem to have produced a considerable effect; for it is impossible
to resist this conclusion when we look, for instance, at the logger-headed
duck, which has wings incapable of flight, in nearly the same condition
as in the domestic duck; or when we look at the burrowing tucu-tucu,
which is occasionally blind, and then at certain moles, which are
habitually blind and have their eyes covered with skin; or when
we look at the blind animals inhabiting the dark caves of America
and Europe. With varieties and species, correlated variation seems
to have played an important part, so that when one part has been
modified other parts have been necessarily modified. With both parties
and.species, reversions to long-lost characters occasionally occur.
How inexplicable on the theory of creation is the occasional appearance
of stripes on the shoulders and legs of the several species of the
horse-genus and of their hybrids! How simply is this fact explained
if we believe that these species are all descended from a striped
progenitor, in the same manner as the several domestic breeds of
the pigeon are descended from the blue and barred rock-pigeon!
On the ordinary view of each species having been independently
created, why should specific characters, or those by which the species
of the same genus differ from each other, be more variable than
generic characters in which they all agree? Why, for instance, should
the colour of a flower be more likely to vary in any one species
of a genus, if the other species possess differently coloured flowers,
than if all possessed the same coloured flowers? If species are
only well-marked varieties, of which the characters have become
in a high degree permanent, we can understand this fact; for they
have already varied since they branched off from a common progenitor
in certain characters, by which they have come to be specifically
distinct from each other; therefore these same characters would
be more likely again to vary than the generic characters which have
been inherited without change for an immense period. It is inexplicable
on the theory of creation why a part developed in a very unusual
manner in species alone of a genus, and therefore, as we may naturally
infer, of great importance to that species, should be eminently
liable to variation; but, on our view, this part has undergone,
since the several species branched off from a common progenitor,
an unusual amount of variability and modification, and therefore
we might expect the part generally to be still variable. But a part
may be developed in the most unusual manner, like the wing of a
bat, and yet not be more variable than any other structure, if the
part be common to many subordinate forms, that is, if it has been
inherited for a very long period; for in this case, it will have
been rendered constant by long-continued natural selection.
Glancing at instincts, marvellous as some are, they offer no greater
difficulty than do corporeal structures on the theory of the natural
selection of successive slight, but profitable modifications. We
can thus understand why nature moves by graduated steps in endowing
different animals of the same class with their several instincts.
I have attempted to show how much light the principle of gradation
throws on the admirable architectural powers of the hive-bee. Habit
no doubt often comes into play in modifying instincts; but it certainly
is not indispensable, as we see in the case of neuter insects, which
leave no progeny to inherit the effects of long-continued habit.
On the view of all the species of the same genus having descended
from a common parent, and having inherited much in common, we can
understand how it is that allied species, when placed under widely
different conditions of life, yet follow nearly the same instincts;
why the thrushes of tropical and temperate South America, for instance,
line their nests with mud like our British species. On the view
of instincts having been slowly acquired through natural selection,
we need not marvel at some instincts being not perfect and liable
to mistakes, and at many instincts causing other animals to suffer.
If species be only well-marked and permanent varieties, we can
at once see why their crossed offspring should follow the same complex
laws in their degrees and kinds of resemblance to their parents,-
in being absorbed into each other by successive crosses, and in
other such points,- as do the crossed offspring of acknowledged
varieties. This similarity would be a strange fact, if species had
been independently created and varieties had been produced through
secondary laws.
If we admit that the geological record is imperfect to an extreme
degree, then the facts, which the record does give, strongly support
the theory of descent with modification. New species have come on
the stage slowly and at successive intervals; and the amount of
change, after equal intervals of time, is widely different in different
groups. The extinction of species and of whole groups of species
which has played so conspicuous a part in the history of the organic
world almost inevitably follows from the principle of natural selection;
for old forms are supplanted by new and improved forms. Neither
single species nor groups of species reappear when the chain of
ordinary generation is once broken. The gradual diffusion of dominant
forms, with the slow modification of their descendants, causes the
forms of life, after long intervals of time, to appear as if they
had changed simultaneously throughout the world. The fact of the
fossil remains of each formation being in some degree intermediate
in character between the fossils in the formations above and below,
is simply explained by their intermediate position in the chain
of descent. The grand fact that all extinct beings can be classed
with all recent beings, naturally follows from the living and the
extinct being the offspring of common parents. As species have generally
diverged in character during their long course of descent and modification,
we can understand why it is that the more ancient forms, or early
progenitors of each group, so often occupy a position in some degree
intermediate between existing groups. Recent forms are generally
looked upon as being, on the whole, higher in the scale of organisation
than ancient forms; and they must be higher, insofar as the later
and more improved forms have conquered the older and less improved
forms in the struggle for life; they have also generally had their
organs more specialised for different functions. This fact is perfectly
compatible with numerous beings still retaining simple and but little
improved structures, fitted for simple conditions of life; it is
likewise compatible with some forms having retrograded in organisation,
by having become at each stage of descent better fitted for new
and degraded habits of life. Lastly, the wonderful law of the long
endurance of allied forms on the same continent,- of marsupials
in Australia, of Edentata in America, and other such cases,- is
intelligible, for within the same country the existing and the extinct
will be closely allied by descent.
Looking to geographical distribution, if we admit that there has
been during the long course of ages much migration from one part
of the world to another, owing to former climatal and geographical
changes and to the many occasional and unknown means of dispersal,
then we can understand, on the theory of descent with modification,
most of the great leading facts in Distribution. We can see why
there should be so striking a parallelism in the distribution of
organic beings throughout space, and in their geological succession
throughout time; for in both cases the beings have been connected
by the bond of ordinary generation, and the means of modification
have been the same. We see the full meaning of the wonderful fact,
which has struck every traveller, namely, that on the same continent,
under the most diverse conditions, under heat and cold, on mountain
and lowland, on deserts and marshes, most of the inhabitants within
each great class are plainly related; for they are the descendants
of the same progenitors and early colonists. On this same principle
of former migration, combined in most cases with modification, we
can understand, by the aid of the Glacial period, the identity of
some few plants, and the close alliance of many others, on the most
distant mountains, and in the northern and southern temperate zones;
and likewise the close alliance of some of the inhabitants of the
sea in the northern and southern temperate latitudes, though separated
by the whole intertropical ocean. Although two countries may present
physical conditions as closely similar as the same species ever
require, we need feel no surprise at their inhabitants being widely
different, if they have been for a long period completely sundered
from each other; for as the relation of organism to organism is
the most important of all relations, and as the two countries will
have received colonists at various periods and in different proportions,
from some other country or from each other, the course of modification
in the two areas will inevitably have been different.
On this view of migration, with subsequent modification, we see
why oceanic islands are inhabited by only few species, but of these,
why many are peculiar or endemic forms. We clearly see why species
belonging to those groups of animals which cannot cross wide spaces
of the ocean, as frogs and terrestrial mammals, do not inhabit oceanic
islands; and why, on the other hand, new and peculiar species of
bats, animals which can traverse the ocean, are found on islands
far distant from any continent. Such cases as the presence of peculiar
species of bats on oceanic islands and the absence of all other
terrestrial mammals, are facts utterly inexplicable on the theory
of independent acts of creation.
The existence of closely allied or representative species in any
two areas, implies, on the theory of descent with modification,
that the same parent-forms formerly inhabited both areas; and we
almost invariably find that wherever many closely allied species
inhabit two areas, some identical species are still common to both.
Wherever many closely allied yet distinct species occur, doubtful
forms and varieties belonging to the same groups likewise occur.
It is a rule of high generality that the inhabitants of each area
are related to the inhabitants of the nearest source whence immigrants
might have been derived. We see this in the striking relation of
nearly all plants and animals of the Galapagos Archipelago, of Juan
Fernandez, and of the other American islands, to the plants and
animals of the neighbouring American mainland; and of those of the
Cape de Verde Archipelago, and of the other African islands to the
African mainland. It must be admitted that these facts receive no
explanation on the theory of creation.
The fact, as we have seen, that all past and present organic beings
can be arranged within a few great classes, in groups subordinate
to groups, and with the extinct groups often falling in between
the recent groups, is intelligible on the theory of natural selection
with its contingencies of extinction and divergence of character.
On these same principles we see how it is, that the mutual affinities
of the forms within each class are so complex and circuitous. We
see why certain characters are far more serviceable than others
for classification;- why adaptive characters, though of paramount
importance to the beings, are of hardly any importance in classification;
why characters derived from rudimentary parts, though of no service
to the beings, are often of high classificatory value; and why embryological
characters are often the most valuable of all. The real affinities
of all organic beings, in contradistinction to their adaptive resemblances,
are due to inheritance or community of descent. The Natural System
is a genealogical arrangement, with the acquired grades of difference,
marked by the terms, varieties, species, genera, families, &c.;
and we have to discover the lines of descent by the most permanent
characters whatever they may be and of however slight vital importance.
The similar framework of bones in the hand of a man, wing of a
bat, fin of the porpoise, and leg of the horse,- the same number
of vertebrae forming the neck of the giraffe and of the elephant,-
and innumerable other such facts, at once explain themselves on
the theory of descent with slow and slight successive modifications.
The similarity of pattern in the wing and in the leg of a bat, though
used for such different purpose,- in the jaws and legs of a crab,-
in the petals, stamens, and pistils of a flower, is likewise, to
a large extent, intelligible on the view of the gradual modification
of parts or organs, which were aboriginally alike in an early progenitor
in each of these classes. On the principle of successive variations
not always supervening at an early age, and being inherited at a
corresponding not early period of life, we clearly see why the embryos
of mammals, birds, reptiles, and fishes should be so closely similar,
and so unlike the adult forms. We may cease marvelling at the embryo
of an air-breathing mammal or bird having branchial slits and arteries
running in loops, like those of a fish which has to breathe the
air dissolved in water by the aid of well-developed branchiae.
Disuse, aided sometimes by natural selection, will often have reduced
organs when rendered useless under changed habits or conditions
of life; and we can understand on this view the meaning of rudimentary
organs. But disuse and selection will generally act on each creature,
when it has come to maturity and has to play its full part in the
struggle for existence, and will thus have little power on an organ
during early life; hence the organ will not be reduced or rendered
rudimentary at this early age. The calf, for instance, has inherited
teeth, which never cut through the gums of the upper jaw, from an
early progenitor having well-developed teeth; and we may believe,
that the teeth in the mature animal were formerly reduced by disuse,
owing to the tongue and palate, or lips, having become excellently
fitted through natural selection to browse without their aid; whereas
in the calf, the teeth have been left unaffected, and on the principle
of inheritance at corresponding ages have been inherited from a
remote period to the present day. On the view of each organism with
all its separate parts having been specially created, how utterly
inexplicable is it that organs bearing the plain stamp of inutility,
such as the teeth in the embryonic calf or the shrivelled wings
under the soldered wingcovers of many beetles, should so frequently
occur. Nature may be said to have taken pains to reveal her scheme
of modification, by means of rudimentary organs, of embryological
and homologous structures, but we are too blind to understand her
meaning.
I have now recapitulated the facts and considerations which have
thoroughly convinced me that species have been modified, during
a long course of descent. This has been effected chiefly through
the natural selection of numerous successive, slight, favourable
variations; aided in an important manner by the inherited effects
of the use and disuse of parts; and in an unimportant manner, that
is in relation to adaptive structures, whether past or present,
by the direct action of external conditions, and by variations which
seem to us in our ignorance to arise spontaneously. It appears that
I formerly underrated the frequency and value of these latter forms
of variation, as leading to permanent modifications of structure
independently of natural selection. But as my conclusions have lately
been much misrepresented, and it has been stated that I attribute
the modification of species exclusively to natural selection, I
may be permitted to remark that in the first edition of this work,
and subsequently, I placed in a most conspicuous position- namely,
at the close of the Introduction- the following words: "I am convinced
that natural selection has been the main but not the exclusive means
of modification." This has been of no avail. Great is the power
of steady misrepresentation; but the history of science shows that
fortunately this power does not long endure.
It can hardly be supposed that a false theory would explain, in
so satisfactory a manner as does the theory of natural selection,
the several large classes of facts above specified. It has recently
been objected that this is an unsafe method of arguing; but it is
a method used in judging of the common events of life, and has often
been used by the greatest natural philosophers. The undulatory theory
of light has thus been arrived at; and the belief in the revolution
of the earth on its own axis was until lately supported by hardly
any direct evidence. It is no valid objection that science as yet
throws no light on the far higher problem of the essence or origin
of life. Who can explain what is the essence of the attraction of
gravity? No one now objects to following out the results consequent
on this unknown element of attraction; notwithstanding that Leibnitz
formerly accused Newton of introducing "occult qualities and miracles
into philosophy."
I see no good reason why the views given in this volume should
shock the religious feelings of any one. It is satisfactory, as
showing how transient such impressions are, to remember that the
greatest discovery ever made by man, namely, the law of the attraction
of gravity, was also attacked by Leibnitz, "as subversive of natural,
and inferentially of revealed, religion." A celebrated author and
divine has written to me that "he has gradually learnt to see that
it is just as noble a conception of the Deity to believe that He
created a few original forms capable of self-development into other
and needful forms, as to believe that He required a fresh act of
creation to supply the voids caused by the action of His laws."
Why, it may be asked, until recently did nearly all the most eminent
living naturalists and geologists disbelieve in the mutability of
species? It cannot be asserted that organic beings in a state of
nature are subject to no variation; it cannot be proved that the
amount of variation in the course of long ages is a limited quality;
no clear distinction has been, or can be, drawn between species
and well-marked varieties. It cannot be maintained that species
when intercrossed are invariably sterile, and varieties invariably
fertile; or that sterility is a special endowment and sign of creation.
The belief that species were immutable productions was almost unavoidable
as long as the history of the world was thought to be of short duration;
and now that we have acquired some idea of the lapse of time, we
are too apt to assume, without proof, that the geological record
is so perfect that it would have afforded us plain evidence of the
mutation of species, if they had undergone mutation.
But the chief cause of our natural unwillingness to admit that
one species has given birth to clear and distinct species, is that
we are always slow in admitting great changes of which we do not
see the steps. The difficulty is the same as that felt by so many
geologists, when Lyell first insisted that long lines of inland
cliffs had been formed, and great valleys excavated, by the agencies
which we see still at work. The mind cannot possibly grasp the full
meaning of the term of even a million years; it cannot add up and
perceive the full effects of many slight variations, accumulated
during an almost infinite number of generations.
Although I am fully convinced of the truth of the views given in
this volume under the form of an abstract, I by no means expect
to convince experienced naturalists whose minds are stocked with
a multitude of facts all viewed, during a long course of years,
from a point of view directly opposite to mine. It is so easy to
hide our ignorance under such expressions as the "plan of creation"
or "unity of design," &c., and to think that we give an explanation
when we only restate a fact. Any one whose disposition leads him
to attach more weight to unexplained difficulties than to the explanation
of a certain number of facts will certainly reject the theory. A
few naturalists, endowed with much flexibility of mind, and who
have already begun to doubt the immutability of species, may be
influenced by this volume; but I look with confidence to the future,-
to young and rising naturalists, who will be able to view both sides
of the question with impartiality. Whoever is led to believe that
species are mutable will do good service by conscientiously expressing
his conviction; for thus only can the load of prejudice by which
this subject is overwhelmed be removed.
Several eminent naturalists have of late published their belief
that a multitude of reputed species in each genus are not real species;
but that other species are real, that is, have been independently
created. This seems to me a strange conclusion to arrive at. They
admit that a multitude of forms, which till lately they themselves
thought were special creations, and which are still thus looked
at by the majority of naturalists, and which consequently have all
the external characteristic features of true species,- they admit
that these have been produced by variation, but they refuse to extend
the same view to other and slightly different forms. Nevertheless
they do not pretend that they can define, or even conjecture, which
are the created forms of life, and which are those produced by secondary
laws. They admit variation as a vera causa in one case, they arbitrarily
reject it in another, without assigning any distinction in the two
cases. The day will come when this will be given as a curious illustration
of the blindness of preconceived opinion. These authors seem no
more startled at a miraculous act of creation than at an ordinary
birth. But do they really believe that at innumerable periods in
the earth's history certain elemental atoms have been commanded
suddenly to flash into living tissues? Do they believe that at each
supposed act of creation one individual or many were produced? Were
all the infinitely numerous kinds of animals and plants created
as eggs or seed, or as full grown? and in the case of mammals, were
they created bearing the false marks of nourishment from the mother's
womb? Undoubtedly some of these same questions cannot be answered
by those who believe in the appearance or creation of only a few
forms of life, or of some one form alone. It has been maintained
by several authors that it is as easy to believe in the creation
of a million beings as of one; but Maupertuis' philosophical axiom
"of least action" leads the mind more willingly to admit the smaller
number; and certainly we ought not to believe that innumerable beings
within each great class have been created with plain, but deceptive,
marks of descent from a single parent.
As a record of a former state of things, I have retained in the
foregoing paragraphs, and elsewhere, several sentences which imply
that naturalists believe in the separate creation of each species;
and I have been much censured for having thus expressed myself.
But undoubtedly this was the general belief when the first edition
of the present work appeared. I formerly spoke to very many naturalists
on the subject of evolution, and never once met with any sympathetic
agreement. It is probable that some did then believe in evolution,
but they were either silent, or expressed themselves so ambiguously
that it was not easy to understand their meaning. Now things are
wholly changed, and almost every naturalist admits the great principle
of evolution. There are, however, some who still think that species
have suddenly given birth, through quite unexplained means, to new
and totally different forms: but, as I have attempted to show, weighty
evidence can be opposed to the admission of great and abrupt modifications.
Under a scientific point of view, and as leading to further investigation,
but little advantage is gained by believing that new forms are suddenly
developed in an inexplicable manner from old and widely different
forms, over the old belief in the creation of species from the dust
of the earth.
It may be asked how far I extend the doctrine of the modification
of species. The question is difficult to answer, because the more
distinct the forms are which we consider, by so much the arguments
in favour of community of descent become fewer in number and less
in force. But some arguments of the greatest weight extend very
far. All the members of whole classes are connected together by
a chain of affinities, and all can be classed on the same principle,
in groups subordinate to groups. Fossil remains sometimes tend to
fill up very wide intervals between existing orders.
Organs in a rudimentary condition plainly show that an early progenitor
had the organ in a fully developed condition; and this in some cases
implies an enormous amount of modification in the descendants. Throughout
whole classes various structures are formed on the same pattern,
and at a very early age the embryos closely resemble each other.
Therefore I cannot doubt that the theory of descent with modification
embraces all the members of the same great class or kingdom. I believe
that animals are descended from at most only four or five progenitors,
and plants from an equal or lesser number.
Analogy would lead me one step farther, namely, to the belief that
all animals and plants are descended from some one prototype. But
analogy may be a deceitful guide. Nevertheless all living things
have much in common, in their chemical composition, their cellular
structure, their laws of growth, and their liability to injurious
influences. We see this even in so trifling a fact as that the same
poison often similarly affects plants and animals; or that the poison
secreted by the gallfly produces monstrous growths on the wild rose
or oak-tree. With all organic beings excepting perhaps some of the
very lowest, sexual production seems to be essentially similar.
With all, as far as is at present known the germinal vesicle is
the same; so that all organisms start from a common origin. If we
look even to the two main divisions- namely, to the animal and vegetable
kingdoms- certain low forms are so far intermediate in character
that naturalists have disputed to which kingdom they should be referred.
As Professor Asa Gray has remarked, "The spores and other reproductive
bodies of many of the lower algae may claim to have first a characteristically
animal, and then an unequivocally vegetable existence." Therefore,
on the principle of natural selection with divergence of character,
it does not seem incredible that, from such low and intermediate
form, both animals and plants may have been developed; and, if we
admit this, we must likewise admit that all the organic beings which
have ever lived on this earth may be descended from some one primordial
form. But this inference is chiefly grounded on analogy and it is
immaterial whether or not it be accepted. No doubt it is possible,
as Mr. G. H. Lewes has urged, that at the first commencement of
life many different forms were evolved; but if so we may conclude
that only a very few have left modified descendants. For, as I have
recently remarked in regard to the members of each great kingdom,
such as the Vertebrata, Articulata, &c., we have distinct evidence
in their embryological homologous and rudimentary structures that
within each kingdom all the members are descended from a single
progenitor.
When the views advanced by me in this volume, and by Mr. Wallace,
or when analogous views on the origin of species are generally admitted,
we can dimly foresee that there will be a considerable revolution
in natural history. Systematists will be able to pursue their labours
as at present; but they will not be incessantly haunted by the shadowy
doubt whether this or that form be a true species. This, I feel
sure and I speak after experience, will be no slight relief. The
endless disputes whether or not some fifty species of British brambles
are good species will cease. Systematists will have only to decide
(not that this will be easy) whether any form be sufficiently constant
and distinct from other forms, to be capable of definition; and
if definable, whether the differences be sufficiently important
to deserve a specific name. This latter point will become a far
more essential consideration than it is at present; for differences,
however slight, between any two forms if not blended by intermediate
gradations, are looked at by most naturalists as sufficient to raise
both forms to the rank of species.
Hereafter we shall be compelled to acknowledge that the only distinction
between species and well-marked varieties is, that the latter are
known, or believed, to be connected at the present day by intermediate
gradations, whereas species were formerly thus connected. Hence,
without rejecting the consideration of the present existence of
intermediate gradations between any two forms we shall be led to
weigh more carefully and to value higher the actual amount of difference
between them. It is quite possible that forms now generally acknowledged
to be merely varieties may hereafter be thought worthy of specific
names; and in this case scientific and common language will come
into accordance. In short, we shall have to treat species in the
same manner as those naturalists treat genera, who admit that genera
are merely artificial combinations made for convenience. This may
not be a cheering prospect; but we shall at least be free from the
vain search for the undiscovered and undiscoverable essence of the
term species.
The other and more general departments of natural history will
rise greatly in interest. The terms used by naturalists, of affinity,
relationship, community of type, paternity, morphology, adaptive
characters, rudimentary and aborted organs, &c., will cease
to be metaphorical, and will have a plain signification. When we
no longer look at an organic being as a savage looks at a ship,
as something wholly beyond his comprehension; when we regard every
production of nature as one which has had a long history; when we
contemplate every complex structure and instinct as the summing
up of many contrivances, each useful to the possessor, in the same
way as any great mechanical invention is the summing up of the labour,
the experience, the reason, and even the blunders of numerous workmen;
when we thus view each organic being, how far more interesting-
I speak from experience- does the study of natural history become!
A grand and almost untrodden field of inquiry will be opened, on
the causes and laws of variation, on correlation, on the effects
of use and disuse, on the direct action of external conditions,
and so forth. The study of domestic productions will rise immensely
in value. A new variety raised by man will be a more important and
interesting subject for study than one more species added to the
infinitude of already recorded species. Our classifications will
come to be, as far as they can be so made, genealogies; and will
then truly give what may be called the plan of creation. The rules
for classifying will no doubt become simpler when we have a definite
object in view. We possess no pedigrees or armorial bearings; and
we have to discover and trace the many diverging lines of descent
in our natural genealogies, by characters of any kind which have
long been inherited. Rudimentary organs will speak infallibly with
respect to the nature of long-lost structures. Species and groups
of species which are called aberrant, and which may fancifully be
called living fossils, will aid us in forming a picture of the ancient
forms of life. Embryology will often reveal to us the structure,
in some degree obscured, of the prototype of each great class.
When we feel assured that all the individuals of the same species,
and all the closely allied species of most genera, have within a
not very remote period descended from one parent, and have migrated
from some one birth-place; and when we better know the many means
of migration, then, by the light which geology now throws, and will
continue to throw, on former changes of climate and of the level
of the land, we shall surely be enabled to trace in an admirable
manner the former migrations of the inhabitants of the whole world.
Even at present, by comparing the differences between the inhabitants
of the sea on the opposite sides of a continent, and the nature
of the various inhabitants on that continent, in relation to their
apparent means of immigration, some light can be thrown on ancient
geography.
The noble science of Geology loses glory from the extreme imperfection
of the record. The crust of the earth with its imbedded remains
must not be looked at as a well-filled museum, but as a poor collection
made at hazard and at rare intervals. The accumulation of each great
fossiliferous formation will be recognised as having depended on
an unusual concurrence of favourable circumstances, and the blank
intervals between the successive stages as having been of vast duration.
But we shall be able to gauge with some security the duration of
these intervals by a comparison of the preceding and succeeding
organic forms. We must be cautious in attempting to correlate as
strictly contemporaneous two formations, which do not include many
identical species, by the general succession of the forms of life.
As species are produced and exterminated by slowly acting and still
existing causes, and not by miraculous acts of creation; and as
the most important of all causes of organic change is one which
is almost independent of altered and perhaps suddenly altered physical
conditions, namely, the mutual relation of organism to organism,-
the improvement of one organism entailing the improvement or the
extermination of others; it follows, that the amount of organic
change in the fossils of consecutive formations probably serves
as a fair measure of the relative though not actual lapse of time.
A number of species, however, keeping in a body might remain for
a long period unchanged, whilst within the same period several of
these species by migrating into new countries and coming into competition
with foreign associates, might become modified; so that we must
not overrate the accuracy of organic change as a measure of time.
In the future I see open fields for far more important researches.
Psychology will be securely based on the foundation already well
laid by Mr. Herbert Spencer, that of the necessary acquirement of
each mental power and capacity by gradation. Much light will be
thrown on the origin of man and his history.
Authors of the highest eminence seem to be fully satisfied with
the view that each species has been independently created. To my
mind it accords better with what we know of the laws impressed on
matter by the Creator, that the production and extinction of the
past and present inhabitants of the world should have been due to
secondary causes, like those determining the birth and death of
the individual. When I view all beings not as special creations,
but as the lineal descendants of some few beings which lived long
before the first bed of the Cambrian system was deposited, they
seem to me to become ennobled. Judging from the past, we may safely
infer that not one living species will transmit its unaltered likeness
to a distant futurity. And of the species now living very few will
transmit progeny of any kind to a far distant futurity; for the
manner in which all organic beings are grouped, shows that the greater
number of species in each genus, and all the species in many genera,
have left no descendants, but have become utterly extinct. We can
so far take a prophetic glance into futurity as to foretell that
it will be the common and widely-spread species, belonging to the
larger and dominant groups within each class, which will ultimately
prevail and procreate new and dominant species. As all the living
forms of life are the lineal descendants of those which lived long
before the Cambrian epoch, we may feel certain that the ordinary
succession by generation has never once been broken, and that no
cataclysm has desolated the whole world. Hence we may look with
some confidence to secure future of great length. And as natural
selection works solely by and for the good of each being, all corporeal
and mental endowments will tend to progress towards perfection.
It is interesting to contemplate a tangled bank, clothed with many
plants of many kinds, with birds singing on the bushes, with various
insects flitting about, and with worms crawling through the damp
earth, and to reflect that these elaborately constructed forms,
so different from each other, and dependent upon each other in so
complex a manner, have all been produced by laws acting around us.
These laws, taken in the largest sense, being Growth with Reproduction;
Inheritance which is almost implied by reproduction; Variability
from the indirect and direct action of the conditions of life and
from use and disuse: a Ratio of Increase so high as to lead to a
Struggle for Life, and as a consequence to Natural Selection, entailing
Divergence of Character and the Extinction of less-improved forms.
Thus, from the war of nature, from famine and death, the most exalted
object which we are capable of conceiving, namely, the production
of the higher animals, directly follows. There is grandeur in this
view of life, with its several powers, having been originally breathed
by the Creator into a few forms or into one; and that, whilst this
planet has gone cycling on according to the fixed law of gravity,
from so simple a beginning endless forms most beautiful and most
wonderful have been, and are being evolved.
THE END
GLOSSARY
GLOSSARY OF THE PRINCIPAL SCIENTIFIC TERMS USED IN THE PRESENT
VOLUME
I am indebted to the kindness of Mr. W. S. Dallas for this Glossary,
which has been given because several readers have complained to
me that some of the terms used were unintelligible to them. Mr.
Dallas has endeavoured to give the explanations of the terms in
as popular a form as possible.
ABERRANT, Forms or groups of animals or plants which deviate in
important characters from their nearest allies, so as not to be
easily included in the same group with them, are said to be aberrant.
ABERRATION (in Optics), In the refraction of light by a convex
lens the rays passing through different parts of the lens are brought
to a focus at slightly different distances,- this is called spherical
aberration; at the same time the coloured rays are separated by
the prismatic action of the lens and likewise brought to a focus
at different distances, this is chromatic aberration.
ABNORMAL, Contrary to the general rule.
ABORTED, An organ is said to be aborted, when its development has
been arrested at a very early stage.
ALBINISM, Albinos are animals in which the usual colouring matters
characteristic of the species have not been produced in the skin
and its appendages. Albinism is the state of being an albino.
ALGAE, A class of plants including the ordinary seaweeds and the
filamentous fresh-water weeds.
ALTERNATION OF GENERATIONS, This term is applied to a peculiar
mode of reproduction which prevails among many of the lower animals,
in which the egg produces a living form quite different from its
parent, but from which the parent-form is reproduced by a process
of budding, or by the division of the substance of the first product
of the egg.
AMMONITES, A group of fossil, spiral, chambered shells, allied
to the existing pearly nautilus, but having the partitions between
the chambers waved in complicated patterns at their junction with
the outer wall of the shell.
ANALOGY, That resemblance of structures which depends upon similarity
of function, as in the wings of insects and birds. Such structures
are said to be analogous, and to be analogues of each other.
ANIMALCULE, A minute animal: generally applied to those visible
only by the microscope.
ANNELIDS, A class of worms in which the surface of the body exhibits
a more or less distinct division into rings or segments, generally
provided with appendages for locomotion and with gills. It includes
the ordinary marine worms, the earthworms, and the leeches.
ANTENNAE, Jointed organs appended to the head in insects, Crustacea
and centipedes, and not belonging to the mouth.
ANTHERS, The summits of the stamens of flowers, in which the pollen
or fertilising dust is produced.
APLACENTALIA, APLACENTATA or Aplacental Mammals. See MAMMALIA.
ARCHETYPAL, Of or belonging to the Archetype, or ideal primitive
form upon which all the beings of a group seem to be organised.
ARTICULATA, A great division of the animal kingdom characterised
generally by having the surface of the body divided into rings called
segments, a greater or less number of which are furnished with jointed
legs (such as insects, crustaceans and centipedes).
ASYMMETRICAL, Having the two sides unlike.
ATROPHIED, Arrested in development at a very early age.
BALANUS, The genus including the common acorn shells which live
in abundance on the rocks of the sea-coast.
BATRACRIANS, A class of animals allied to the reptiles, but undergoing
a peculiar metamorphosis, in which the young animal is generally
aquatic and breathes by gills. (Examples, frogs, toads, and newts.)
BOULDERS, Large transported blocks of stone generally imbedded
in clays or gravel.
BRACHIOPODA, A class of marine Mollusca, or softbodied animals,
furnished with a bivalve shell, attached to submarine objects by
a stalk which passes through an aperture in one of the valves, and
furnished with fringed arms, by the action of which food is carried
to the mouth.
BRANCHIAE, Gills or organs for respiration in water.
BRANCHIAL, Pertaining to gills or branchiae.
CAMBRIAN SYSTEM, A series of very ancient Palaeozoic rocks, between
the Laurentian and the Silurian. Until recently these were regarded
as the oldest fossiliferous rocks.
CANIDAE, The dog-family, including the dog, wolf, fox, jackal,
&c.
CARAPACE, The shell enveloping the anterior part of the body in
crustaceans generally; applied also to the hard shelly pieces of
the cirripedes.
CARBONIFEROUS, This term is applied to the great formation which
includes among other rocks, the coal-measures. It belongs to the
oldest, or Palaeozoic , system of formations.
CAUDAL, Of or belonging to the tail.
CEPHALOPODS, The highest class of the Molluscs or soft-bodied animals,
characterised by having the mouth surrounded by a greater or less
number of fleshy arms or tentacles, which, in most living species,
are furnished with sucking-cups. (Examples, cuttle-fish, nautilus.)
CETACEA, An order of Mammalia, including the whales, dolphins,
&c., having the form of the body fish-like, the skin naked,
and only the forelimbs developed.
CHELONIA, An order of reptiles including the turtles, tortoises,
&c.
CIRRIPEDES, An order of crustaceans including the barnacles and
acorn-shells. Their young resemble those of many other crustaceans
in form; but when mature they are always attached to other objects,
either directly or by means of a stalk, and their bodies are enclosed
by a calcareous shell composed of several pieces, two of which can
open to give issue to a bunch of curled, jointed tentacles, which
represent the limbs.
COCCUS, The genus of insects including the cochineal. In these
the male is a minute, winged fly, and the female generally a motionless,
berry-like mass.
COCOON, A case usually of silky material, in which insects are
frequently enveloped during the second or resting-stage (pupa) of
their existence. The term "cocoon-stage" is here used as equivalent
to "pupa-stage."
COELOSPERMOUS, A term applied to those fruits of the Umbelliferae
which have the seed hollowed on the inner face.
COLEOPTERA beetles, an order of insects, having a biting mouth
and the first pair of wings more or less horny, forming sheaths
for the second pair, and usually meeting in a straight line down
the middle of the back.
COLUMN, A peculiar organ in the flowers of orchids, in which the
stamens, style and stigma (or the reproductive parts) are united.
COMPOSITAE, or COMPOSITOUS PLANTS, Plants in which the inflorescence
consists of numerous small flowers (florets) brought together into
a dense head, the base of which is enclosed by a common envelope.
(Examples, the daisy, dandelion, &c.)
CONFERVAE, The filamentous weeds of fresh water.
CONGLOMERATE, A rock made up of fragments of rock or pebbles, cemented
together by some other material.
COROLLA The second envelope of a flower usually composed of coloured,
leaf-like organs (petals), which may be united by their edges either
in the basal part or throughout.
CORRELATION, The normal coincidence of one phenomenon, character,
&c., with another.
CORYMB, A bunch of flowers in which those springing from the lower
part of the flower stalk are supported on long stalks so as to be
nearly on a level with the upper ones.
COTYLEDONS, The first or seed-leaves of plants.
CRUSTACEANS, A class of articulated animals, having the skin of
the body generally more or less hardened by the deposition of calcareous
matter, breathing by means of gills. (examples, crab, lobster, shrimp,
&c.)
CURCULIO, The old generic term for the beetles known as weevils,
characterised by their four-jointed feet, and by the head being
produced into a sort of beak, upon the sides of which the antennae
are inserted.
CUTANEOUS, Of or belonging to the skin.
DEGRADATION, The wearing down of land by the action of the sea
or of meteoric agencies.
DENUDATION, The wearing away of the surface of the land by water.
DEVONIAN SYSTEM or formation, A series of Palaeozoic rocks, including
the Old Red Sandstone.
DICOTYLEDONS, or DICOTYLEDONOUS PLANTS, A class of plants characterised
by having two seed-leaves, by the formation of new wood between
the bark and the old wood (exogenous growth) and by the reticulation
of the veins of the leaves. The parts of the flowers are generally
in multiples of five.
DIFFERENTATION, The separation or discrimination of parts or organs
which in simpler forms of life are more or less united.
DIMORPHIC, Having two distinct forms.- Dimorphism is the condition
of the appearance of the same species under two dissimilar forms.
DIOECIOUS, Having the organs of the sexes upon distinct individuals.
DIORITE, A peculiar form of greenstone.
DORSAL, Of or belonging to the back.
EDENTATA, A peculiar order of quadrupeds, characterised by the
absence of at least the middle incisor (front) teeth in both jaws.
(Examples, the sloths and armadillos.)
ELYTRA, The hardened fore-wings of beetles, serving as sheaths
for the membranous hind-wings, which constitute the true organs
of flight.
EMBRYO, The young animal undergoing development within the egg
or womb.
EMBRYOLOGY, The study of the development of the embryo.
ENDEMIC, Peculiar to a given locality.
ENTOMOSTRACA, A division of the class Crustacea, having all the
segments of the body usually distinct, gills attached to the feet
or organs of the mouth, and the feet fringed with fine hairs. They
are generally of small size.
EOCENE, The earliest of the three divisions of the Tertiary epoch
of geologists. Rocks of this age contain a small proportion of shells
identical with species now living.
EPHEMEROUS INSECTS, Insects allied to the May-fly.
FAUNA, The totality of the animals naturally inhabiting a certain
country or region, or which have lived during a given geological
period.
FELIDAE, The cat-family.
FERAL, Having become wild from a state of cultivation or domestication.
FLORA, The totality of the plants growing naturally in a country,
or during a given geological period.
FLORETS, Flowers imperfectly developed in some respects, and collected
into a dense spike or head, as in the grasses, the dandelion, &c.
FOETAL, Of or belonging to the foetus, or embryo in course of development.
FORAMINIFERA, A class of animals of very low organisation, and
generally of small size, having a jellylike body, from the surface
of which delicate filaments can be given off and retracted for the
prehension of external objects, and having a calcareous or sandy
shell, usually divided into chambers, and perforated with small
apertures.
FOSSILIFEROUS, Containing fossils.
FOSSORIAL, Having a faculty of digging. The Fossorial Hymenoptera
are a group of wasp-like insects, which burrow in sandy soil to
make nests for their young.
FRENUM (pl. FRENA), A small band or fold of skin.
FUNGI (sing. FUNGUS), A class of cellular plants, of which mushrooms,
toadstools, and moulds, are familiar examples.
FURCULA, The forked bone formed by the union of the collar-bones
in many birds, such as the common fowl.
GALLINACEOUS BIRDS, An order of birds of which the common fowl,
turkey, and pheasant, are well-known examples.
GALLUS, The genus of birds which includes the common fowl.
GANGLION, A swelling or knot from which nerves are given off as
from a centre.
GANOID FISHES, Fishes covered with peculiar enamelled bony scales.
Most of them are extinct.
GERMINAL VESICLE, A minute vesicle in the eggs of animals, from
which development of the embryo proceeds.
GLACIAL PERIOD, A period of great cold and of enormous extension
of ice upon the surface of the earth. It is believed that glacial
periods have occurred repeatedly during the geological history of
the earth, but the term is generally applied to the close of the
Tertiary epoch, when nearly the whole of Europe was subjected to
an arctic climate.
GLAND, An organ which secretes or separates some peculiar product
from the blood or sap of animals or plants.
GLOTTIS, The opening of the windpipe into the oesophagus or gullet.
GNEISS, A rock approaching granite in composition, but more or
less laminated, and really produced by the alteration of a sedimentary
deposit after its consolidation.
GRALLATORES, The so-called wading-birds (storks, cranes, snipes,
&c.), which are generally furnished with long legs, bare of
feathers above the heel, and have no membranes between the toes.
GRANITE, A rock consisting essentially of crystals of felspar and
mica in a mass of quartz.
HABITAT, The locality in which a plant or animal naturally lives.
HEMIPTERA, An order or sub-order of insects, characterised by the
possession of a jointed beak or rostrum, and by having the fore-wings
horny in the basal portion and membranous at the extremity, where
they cross each other. This group includes the various species of
bugs.
HERMAPHRODITE, Possessing the organs of both sexes.
HOMOLOGY, That relation between parts which results from their
development from corresponding embryonic parts, either in different
animals, as in the case of the arm of man, the fore-leg of a quadruped,
and the wing of a bird; or in the same individual, as in the case
of the fore and hind legs in quadrupeds, and the segments or rings
and their appendages of which the body of a worm, a centipede, &c.,
is composed. The latter is called serial homology. The parts which
stand in such a relation to each other are said to be homologous,
and one such part or organ is called the homologue of the other.
In different plants the parts of the flower are homologous, and
in general these parts are regarded as homologous with leaves.
HOMOPTERA, An order or sub-order of insects having (like the Hemiptera)
a jointed beak, but in which the fore-wings are either wholly membranous
or wholly leathery, The Cicadae, frog-hoppers, and Aphides, are
well-known examples.
HYBRID, The offspring of the union of two distinct species.
HYMENOPTERA, An order of insects possessing biting jaws and usually
four membranous wings in which there are a few veins. Bees and wasps
are familiar examples of this group.
HYPERTROPHIED, Excessively developed.
ICHNEUMONIDAE, A family of hymenopterous insects, the members of
which lay their eggs in the bodies or eggs of other insects.
IMAGO, The perfect (generally winged) reproductive state of an
insect.
INDIGENES, The aboriginal animal or vegetable inhabitants of a
country or region.
INFLORESCENCE, The mode of arrangement of the flowers of plants.
INFUSORIA, A class of microscopic animalcules, so called from their
having originally been observed in infusions of vegetable matters.
They consist of a gelatinous material enclosed in a delicate membrane,
the whole or part of which is furnished with short vibrating hairs
(called cilia), by means of which the animalcules swim through the
water or convey the minute particles of their food to the orifice
of the mouth.
INSECTIVOROUS, Feeding on insects.
INVERTEBRATA, or INVERTEBRATE ANIMALS, Those animals which do not
possess a backbone or spinal column.
LACUNAE, Spaces left among the tissues in some of the lower animals
and serving in place of vessels for the circulation of the fluids
of the body.
LAMELLATED, Furnished with lamellae or little plates.
LARVA (pl. LARVAE), The first condition of an insect at its issuing
from the egg, when it is usually in the form of a grub, caterpillar,
or maggot.
LARYNX, The upper part of the windpipe opening into the gullet.
LAURENTIAN, A group of greatly altered and very ancient rocks,
which is greatly developed along the course of the St. Laurence,
whence the name. It is in these that the earliest known traces of
organic bodies have been found.
LEGUMINOSAE, An order of plants represented by the common peas
and beans, having an irregular flower in which one petal stands
up like a wing, and the stamens and pistil are enclosed in a sheath
formed by two other petals. The fruit is a pod (or legume).
LEMURIDAE, A group of four-handed animals, distinct from the monkeys
and approaching the insectivorous quadrupeds in some of their characters
and habits. Its members have the nostrils curved or twisted, and
a claw instead of a nail upon the first finger of the hind hands.
LEPIDOPTERA, An order of insects, characterised by the possession
of a spiral proboscis, and of four large more or less scaly wings.
It includes the well-known butterflies and moths.
LITTORAL, Inhabiting the seashore.
LOESS, A marly deposit of recent (Post-Tertiary) date, which occupies
a great part of the valley of the Rhine.
MALACOSTRACA, The higher division of the Crustacea, including the
ordinary crabs, lobsters, shrimps, &c., together with the woodlice
and sand-hoppers.
MAMMALIA, The highest class of animals, including the ordinary
hairy quadrupeds, the whales and man, and characterised by the production
of living young which are nourished after birth by milk from the
teats (Mammae, Mammary glands) of the mother. A striking difference
in embryonic development has led to the division of this class into
two great groups; in one of these, when the embryo has attained
a certain stage, a vascular connection, called the placenta, is
formed between the embryo and the mother; in the other this is wanting,
and the young are produced in a very incomplete state. The former,
including the greater part of the class, are called Placental mammals;
the latter, or Aplacental mammals, include the marsupials and monotremes
(Ornithorhynchus).
MAMMIFEROUS, Having mammae or teats (see MAMMALIA)
MANDIBLES, in insects, the first or uppermost pair of jaws, which
are generally solid, horny, biting organs. In birds the term is
applied to both jaws with their horny coverings. In quadrupeds the
mandible is properly the lower jaw.
MARSUPIALS, An order of Mammalia in which the young are born in
a very incomplete state of development, and carried by the mother,
while sucking, in a ventral pouch (marsupium), such as the kangaroos,
opossums, &c. (see MAMMALIA).
MAXILLAE, in insects, the second or lower pair of jaws, which are
composed of several joints and furnished with peculiar jointed appendages
called palpi, or feelers.
MELANISM, The opposite of albinism; an undue development of colouring
material in the skin and its appendages.
METAMORPHIC ROCKS, Sedimentary rocks which have undergone alteration,
generally by the action of heat, subsequently to their deposition
and consolidation.
MOLLUSCA, One of the great divisions of the animal kingdom, including
those animals which have a soft body, usually furnished with a shell,
and in which the nervous ganglia, or centres, present no definite
general arrangement. They are generally known under the denomination
of "shellfish"; the cuttle-fish, and the common snails, whelks,
oysters, mussels, and cockles, may serve as examples of them.
MONOCOTYLEDONS, or MONOCOTYLEDONOUS PLANTS, Plants in which the
seed sends up only a single seed-leaf (or cotyledon); characterised
by the absence of consecutive layers of wood in the stem (endogenous
growth), by the veins of the leaves being generally straight, and
by the parts of the flowers being generally in multiples of three.
(Examples, grasses, lilies, orchids, palms, &c.)
MORAINES, The accumulations of fragments of rock brought down by
glaciers.
MORPHOLOGY, The law of form or structure independent of function.
MYSIS-STAGE, A stage in the development of certain crustaceans
(prawns), in which they closely resemble the adults of a genus (Mysis)
belonging to a slightly lower group.
NASCENT, Commencing development.
NATATORY, Adapted for the purpose of swimming.
NAUPLIUS-FORM, The earliest stage in the development of many Crustacea,
especially belonging to the lower groups. In this stage the animal
has a short body, with indistinct indications of a division into
segments, and three pairs of fringed limbs. This form of the common
fresh-water cyclops was described as a distinct genus under the
name of Nauplius.
NEURATION, The arrangement of the veins or nervures in the wings
of insects.
NEUTERS, Imperfectly developed females of certain social insects
(such as ants and bees), which perform all the labours of the community.
Hence, they are also called workers.
NICTITATING MEMBRANE, A semi-transparent membrane, which can be
drawn across the eye in birds and reptiles, either to moderate the
effects of a strong light or to sweep particles of dust, &c.,
from the surface of the eye.
OCELLI, The simple eyes or stemmata of insects, usually situated
on the crown of the head between the great compound eyes.
OESOPHAGUS, The gullet.
OOLITIC, A great series of secondary rocks, so called from the
texture of some of its members, which appear to be made up of a
mass of small egg-like calcareous bodies.
OPERCULUM, A calcareous plate employed by many Molluscae to close
the aperture of their shell. The opercular valves of cirripedes
are those which close the aperture of the shell.
ORBIT, The bony cavity for the reception of the eye.
ORGANISM, An organised being, whether plant or animal.
ORTHOSPERMOUS, A term applied to those fruits of the Umbelliferae
which have the seed straight.
OSCULANT, Forms or groups apparently intermediate between and connecting
other groups are said to be osculant.
OVA, Eggs.
OVARIUM or OVARY (in plants), The lower part of the pistil or female
organ of the flower, containing the ovules or incipient seeds; by
growth after the other organs of the flower have fallen, it usually
becomes converted into the fruit.
OVIGEROUS, Egg-bearing.
OVULES (of plants), The seeds in the earliest condition.
PACHYDERMS, A group of Mammalia, so called from their thick skins,
and including the elephant, rhinoceros, hippopotamus, &c.
PALAEOZOIC, The oldest system of fossiliferous rocks.
PALPI, Jointed appendages to some of the organs of the mouth in
insects and Crustacea.
PAPILIONACEAE, An order of plants (see LEGUMINOSAE), The flowers
of these plants are called papilionaceous, or butterfly-like, from
the fancied resemblance of the expanded superior petals to the wings
of a butterfly.
PARASITE, An animal or plant living upon or in, and at the expense
of, another organism.
PARTHENOGENESIS, The production of living organisms from unimpregnated
eggs or seeds.
PEDUNCULATED, Supported upon a stem or stalk. The pedunculated
oak has its acorns borne upon a footstool.
PELORIA or PELORISM, The appearance of regularity of structure
in the flowers of plants which normally bear irregular flowers.
PELVIS, The bony arch to which the hind limbs of vertebrate animals
are articulated.
PETALS, The leaves of the corolla, or second circle of organs in
a flower. They are usually of delicate texture and brightly coloured.
PHYLLODINEOUS, Having flattened, leaf-like twigs or leafstalks
instead of true leaves.
PIGMENT, The colouring material produced generally in the superficial
parts of animals. The cells secreting it are called pigment-cells.
PINNATE, Bearing leaflets on each side of a central stalk.
PISTILS, The female organs of a flower, which occupy a position
in the centre of the other floral organs. The pistil is generally
divisible into the ovary or germen, the style and the stigma.
PLACENTALIA, PLACENTATA, or Placental Mammals, See MAMMALIA.
PLANTIGRADES, Quadrupeds which walk upon the whole sole of the
foot, like the bears.
PLASTIC, Readily capable of change.
PLEISTOCENE PERIOD, The latest portion of the Tertiary epoch.
PLUMULE (in plants), The minute bud between the seed-leaves of
newly-germinated plants.
PLUTONIC ROCKS, Rocks supposed to have been produced by igneous
action in the depths of the earth.
POLLEN, The male element in flowering plants; usually a fine dust
produced by the anthers, which, by contact with the stigma effects
the fecundation of the seeds. This impregnation is brought about
by means of tubes (pollen-tubes) which issue from the pollen-grains
adhering to the stigma, and penetrate through the tissues until
they reach the ovary.
POLYANDROUS (flowers), Flowers having many stamens.
POLYGAMOUS PLANTS, Plants in which some flowers are unisexual and
others hermaphrodite. The unisexual (male and female) flowers, may
be on the same or on different plants.
POLYMORPHIC, Presenting many forms.
POLYZOARY, The common structure formed by the cells of the Polyzoa,
such as the well-known seamats.
PREHENSILE, Capable of grasping.
PREPOTENT, Having a superiority of power.
PRIMARIES, The feathers forming the tip of the wing of a bird,
and inserted upon that part which represents the hand of man.
PROCESSES, Projecting portions of bones, usually for the attachment
of muscles, ligaments, &c.
PROPOLIS, A resinous material collected by the hivebees from the
opening buds of various trees.
PROTEAN, Exceedingly variable.
PROTOZOA, The lowest great division of the animal kingdom. These
animals are composed of a gelatinous material, and show scarcely
any trace of distinct organs. The Infusoria, Foraminifera, and sponges,
with some other forms, belong to this division.
PUPA (pl. Pupae), The second stage in the development of an insect,
from which it emerges in the perfect (winged) reproductive form.
In most insects the pupal stage is passed in perfect repose. The
chrysalis is the pupal state of butterflies.
RADICLE, The minute root of an embryo plant.
RAMUS, One half of the lower jaw in the Mammalia. The portion which
rises to articulate with the skull is called the ascending ramus.
RANGE, The extent of country over which a plant or animal is naturally
spread. Range in time expresses the distribution of a species or
group through the fossiliferous beds of the earth's crust.
RETINA, The delicate inner coat of the eye, formed by nervous filaments
spreading from the optic nerve, and serving for the perception of
the impressions produced by light.
RETROGRESSION, Backward development. When an animal, as it approaches
maturity, becomes less perfectly organised than might be expected
from its early stages and known relationships, it is said to undergo
a retrograde development or metamorphosis.
RHIZOPODS, A class of lowly organised animals (Protozoa), having
a gelatinous body, the surface of which can be protruded in the
form of root-like processes or filaments, which serve for locomotion
and the prehension of food. The most important order is that of
the Foraminifera.
RODENTS, The gnawing Mammalia, such as the rats, rabbits, and squirrels.
They are especially characterised by the possession of a single
pair of chisel-like cutting teeth in each jaw, between which and
the grinding teeth there is a great gap.
RUBUS, The bramble genus.
RUDIMENTARY, Very imperfectly developed.
RUMINANTS, The group of quadrupeds which ruminate or chew the cud,
such as oxen, sheep, and deer. They have divided hoofs, and are
destitute of front teeth in the upper jaw.
SACRAL, Belonging to the sacrum, or the bone composed usually of
two or more united vertebrae to which the sides of the pelvis in
vertebrate animals are attached.
SARCODE, The gelatinous material of which the bodies of the lowest
animals (Protozoa) are composed.
SCUTELLAE The horny plates with which the feet of birds are generally
more or less covered, especially in front.
SEDIMENTARY FORMATIONS, Rocks deposited as sediments from water.
SEGMENTS, The transverse rings of which the body of an articulate
animal or annelid is composed.
SEPALS, The leaves or segments of the calyx, or outermost envelope
of an ordinary flower. They are usually green, but sometimes brightly
coloured.
SERRATURES, Teeth like those of a saw.
SESSILE, Not supported on a stem or footstalk.
SILURIAN SYSTEM, A very ancient system of fossiliferous rocks belonging
to the earlier part of the Palaeozoic series.
SPECIALISATION, The setting apart of a particular organ for the
performance of a particular function.
SPINAL CORD, The central portion of the nervous system in the Vertebrata,
which descends from the brain through the arches of the vertebrae,
and gives off nearly all the nerves to the various organs of the
body.
STAMENS, The male organs of flowering plants, standing in a circle
within the petals. They usually consist of a filament and an anther,
the anther being the essential part in which the pollen, or fecundating
dust, is formed.
STERNUM, The breast-bone.
STIGMA, The apical portion of the pistil in flowering plants.
STIPULES, Small leafy organs placed at the base of the footstalks
of the leaves in many plants.
STYLE, The middle portion of the perfect pistil, which rises like
a column from the ovary and supports the stigma at its summit.
SUBCUTANEOUS, Situated beneath the skin.
SUCTORIAL, Adapted for sucking.
SUTURES (in the skull), The lines of junction of the bones of which
the skull is composed.
TARSUS (pl. TARSI), The jointed feet of articulate animals, such
as insects.
TELEOSTEAN FISHES, Fishes of the kind familiar to us in the present
day, having the skeleton usually completely ossified and the scales
horny.
TENTACULA or TENTACLES, Delicate fleshy organs of prehension or
touch possessed by many of the lower animals.
TERTIARY, The latest geological epoch, immediately preceding the
establishment of the present order of things.
TRACHEA, The windpipe or passage for the admission of air to the
lungs.
TRIDACTYLE, Three-fingered, or composed of three movable parts
attached to a common base.
TRILOBITES, A peculiar group of extinct crustaceans, somewhat resembling
the woodlice in external form, and, like some of them, capable of
rolling themselves up into a ball. Their remains are found only
in the Palaeozoic rocks, and most abundantly in those of Silurian
age.
TRIMORPHIC, Presenting three distinct forms.
UMBELLIFERAE, An order of plants in which the flowers, which contain
five stamens and a pistil with two styles, are supported upon footstalks
which spring from the top of the flower stem and spread out like
the wires of an umbrella, so as to bring all the flowers in the
same head (umbel) nearly to the same level. (Examples, parsley and
carrot.)
UNGULATA, Hoofed quadrupeds.
UNICELLULAR, Consisting of a single cell.
VASCULAR, Containing blood-vessels.
VERMIFORM, Like a worm.
VERTEBRATA: or VERTEBRATE ANIMALS, The highest division of the
animal kingdom, so called from the presence in most cases of a backbone
composed of numerous joints or vertebrae, which constitutes the
centre of the skeleton and at the same time supports and protects
the central parts of the nervous system.
WHORLS, The circles or spiral lines in which the parts of plants
are arranged upon the axis of growth.
WORKERS, See neuters.
ZOEA-STAGE, The earliest stage in the development of many of the
higher Crustacea, so called from the name of Zoea applied to these
young animals when they were supposed to constitute a peculiar genus.
ZOOIDS, In many of the lower animals (such as the corals, Medusae,
&c.) reproduction takes place in two ways, namely, by means
of eggs and by a process of budding with or without separation from
the parent of the product of the latter, which is often very different
from that of the egg. The individuality of the species is represented
by the whole of the form produced between two sexual reproductions;
and these forms, which are apparently individual animals, have been
called zooide.
END GLOSSARY

|
|